This is a modern-English version of Italian Hours, originally written by James, Henry.
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.
ITALIAN HOURS
By Henry James
Published November 1909
PREFACE
The chapters of which this volume is composed have with few exceptions already been collected, and were then associated with others commemorative of other impressions of (no very extensive) excursions and wanderings. The notes on various visits to Italy are here for the first time exclusively placed together, and as they largely refer to quite other days than these—the date affixed to each paper sufficiently indicating this—I have introduced a few passages that speak for a later and in some cases a frequently repeated vision of the places and scenes in question. I have not hesitated to amend my text, expressively, wherever it seemed urgently to ask for this, though I have not pretended to add the element of information or the weight of curious and critical insistence to a brief record of light inquiries and conclusions. The fond appeal of the observer concerned is all to aspects and appearances—above all to the interesting face of things as it mainly used to be.
The chapters in this volume have mostly been collected before, with a few exceptions, and were previously linked with others that commemorate different experiences from (not very extensive) trips and travels. The notes on various visits to Italy are published here for the first time, together as a collection, and since they refer to quite different times than now—the date on each piece clearly shows this—I’ve included some passages that reflect a later and, in some cases, a frequently repeated perspective on the locations and scenes discussed. I haven’t hesitated to revise my text where it seemed necessary, although I haven’t attempted to add a lot of information or critical detail to a brief account of light inquiries and conclusions. The heartfelt interest of the observer is focused on aspects and appearances—especially on the interesting faces of things as they mainly used to be.
H. J.
CONTENTS
TABLE OF CONTENTS
VENICE
It is a great pleasure to write the word; but I am not sure there is not a certain impudence in pretending to add anything to it. Venice has been painted and described many thousands of times, and of all the cities of the world is the easiest to visit without going there. Open the first book and you will find a rhapsody about it; step into the first picture-dealer’s and you will find three or four high-coloured “views” of it. There is notoriously nothing more to be said on the subject. Every one has been there, and every one has brought back a collection of photographs. There is as little mystery about the Grand Canal as about our local thoroughfare, and the name of St. Mark is as familiar as the postman’s ring. It is not forbidden, however, to speak of familiar things, and I hold that for the true Venice-lover Venice is always in order. There is nothing new to be said about her certainly, but the old is better than any novelty. It would be a sad day indeed when there should be something new to say. I write these lines with the full consciousness of having no information whatever to offer. I do not pretend to enlighten the reader; I pretend only to give a fillip to his memory; and I hold any writer sufficiently justified who is himself in love with his theme.
It’s a real pleasure to write about this topic, but I’m not sure there's not a bit of audacity in thinking I can add anything new. Venice has been painted and described thousands of times, and of all the cities in the world, it's the easiest to experience without actually visiting. Open any book, and you'll find praise for it; step into the nearest art shop, and you’ll see a few vibrant “views” of it. There’s really not much more to say on the subject. Everyone has been there, and everyone comes back with a collection of photos. There’s as little mystery about the Grand Canal as there is about our local street, and the name St. Mark is as familiar as the postman’s ring. However, it’s not wrong to talk about things we know well, and I believe that for true Venice lovers, Venice is always worth discussing. There may not be anything new to say about her, but the old stories are better than any new ones. It would be quite unfortunate if there was something new to say. I write these words fully aware that I don’t have any new information to share. I don’t aim to enlighten the reader; I just want to jog their memory, and I think any writer is justified if they truly love their subject.
I
Mr. Ruskin has given it up, that is very true; but only after extracting half a lifetime of pleasure and an immeasurable quantity of fame from it. We all may do the same, after it has served our turn, which it probably will not cease to do for many a year to come. Meantime it is Mr. Ruskin who beyond anyone helps us to enjoy. He has indeed lately produced several aids to depression in the shape of certain little humorous—ill-humorous—pamphlets (the series of St. Mark’s Rest) which embody his latest reflections on the subject of our city and describe the latest atrocities perpetrated there. These latter are numerous and deeply to be deplored; but to admit that they have spoiled Venice would be to admit that Venice may be spoiled—an admission pregnant, as it seems to us, with disloyalty. Fortunately one reacts against the Ruskinian contagion, and one hour of the lagoon is worth a hundred pages of demoralised prose. This queer late-coming prose of Mr. Ruskin (including the revised and condensed issue of the Stones of Venice, only one little volume of which has been published, or perhaps ever will be) is all to be read, though much of it appears addressed to children of tender age. It is pitched in the nursery-key, and might be supposed to emanate from an angry governess. It is, however, all suggestive, and much of it is delightfully just. There is an inconceivable want of form in it, though the author has spent his life in laying down the principles of form and scolding people for departing from them; but it throbs and flashes with the love of his subject—a love disconcerted and abjured, but which has still much of the force of inspiration. Among the many strange things that have befallen Venice, she has had the good fortune to become the object of a passion to a man of splendid genius, who has made her his own and in doing so has made her the world’s. There is no better reading at Venice therefore, as I say, than Ruskin, for every true Venice-lover can separate the wheat from the chaff. The narrow theological spirit, the moralism à tout propos, the queer provincialities and pruderies, are mere wild weeds in a mountain of flowers. One may doubtless be very happy in Venice without reading at all—without criticising or analysing or thinking a strenuous thought. It is a city in which, I suspect, there is very little strenuous thinking, and yet it is a city in which there must be almost as much happiness as misery. The misery of Venice stands there for all the world to see; it is part of the spectacle—a thoroughgoing devotee of local colour might consistently say it is part of the pleasure. The Venetian people have little to call their own—little more than the bare privilege of leading their lives in the most beautiful of towns. Their habitations are decayed; their taxes heavy; their pockets light; their opportunities few. One receives an impression, however, that life presents itself to them with attractions not accounted for in this meagre train of advantages, and that they are on better terms with it than many people who have made a better bargain. They lie in the sunshine; they dabble in the sea; they wear bright rags; they fall into attitudes and harmonies; they assist at an eternal conversazione. It is not easy to say that one would have them other than they are, and it certainly would make an immense difference should they be better fed. The number of persons in Venice who evidently never have enough to eat is painfully large; but it would be more painful if we did not equally perceive that the rich Venetian temperament may bloom upon a dog’s allowance. Nature has been kind to it, and sunshine and leisure and conversation and beautiful views form the greater part of its sustenance. It takes a great deal to make a successful American, but to make a happy Venetian takes only a handful of quick sensibility. The Italian people have at once the good and the evil fortune to be conscious of few wants; so that if the civilisation of a society is measured by the number of its needs, as seems to be the common opinion to-day, it is to be feared that the children of the lagoon would make but a poor figure in a set of comparative tables. Not their misery, doubtless, but the way they elude their misery, is what pleases the sentimental tourist, who is gratified by the sight of a beautiful race that lives by the aid of its imagination. The way to enjoy Venice is to follow the example of these people and make the most of simple pleasures. Almost all the pleasures of the place are simple; this may be maintained even under the imputation of ingenious paradox. There is no simpler pleasure than looking at a fine Titian, unless it be looking at a fine Tintoret or strolling into St. Mark’s,—abominable the way one falls into the habit,—and resting one’s light-wearied eyes upon the windowless gloom; or than floating in a gondola or than hanging over a balcony or than taking one’s coffee at Florian’s. It is of such superficial pastimes that a Venetian day is composed, and the pleasure of the matter is in the emotions to which they minister. These are fortunately of the finest—otherwise Venice would be insufferably dull. Reading Ruskin is good; reading the old records is perhaps better; but the best thing of all is simply staying on. The only way to care for Venice as she deserves it is to give her a chance to touch you often—to linger and remain and return.
Mr. Ruskin has given it up, which is very true; but only after getting half a lifetime of pleasure and an immense amount of fame from it. We all can do the same when it has served our purpose, which it likely will not stop doing for many years to come. In the meantime, it is Mr. Ruskin who helps us enjoy it more than anyone else. He has recently produced several aids to depression in the form of some mildly humorous—ill-humored—pamphlets (the series of St. Mark’s Rest) that contain his latest thoughts on our city and describe the latest atrocities committed there. These are numerous and deeply regrettable; but to admit that they have ruined Venice would be to admit that Venice can be ruined—an admission that seems disloyal to us. Luckily, one can resist the Ruskinian influence, and one hour in the lagoon is worth a hundred pages of demoralized prose. This strange late-coming prose by Mr. Ruskin (including the revised and condensed issue of the Stones of Venice, of which only one small volume has been published, or perhaps ever will be) is worth reading, even though much of it seems aimed at young children. It is pitched in a nursery tone and might be thought to come from an angry governess. However, it is all thought-provoking, and much of it is delightfully accurate. There's an unimaginable lack of structure in it, even though the author has spent his life establishing the principles of form and scolding others for straying from them; but it pulses and shines with his love for the subject—a love that is bewildered and rejected, yet still has the strength of inspiration. Among the many strange things that have happened to Venice, it has had the good fortune to become the object of a passion from a man of incredible genius, who has made her his own and, in doing so, has made her the world’s. Therefore, as I said, there is no better reading in Venice than Ruskin, for every true lover of Venice can sift the good from the bad. The narrow theological mindset, the moralizing à tout propos, the odd provincial quirks, and the prudery are merely wild weeds among a mountain of flowers. One can undoubtedly be very happy in Venice without reading at all—without criticizing or analyzing or thinking a strenuous thought. It is a city where, I suspect, there is very little intense thinking, yet it is also a place where there must be nearly as much happiness as misery. The misery of Venice is there for all the world to see; it is part of the spectacle—a devoted enthusiast of local color might consistently argue it’s part of the pleasure. The Venetian people have little to call their own—little more than the bare privilege of living in the most beautiful of towns. Their homes are falling apart; their taxes are high; their pockets are light; their opportunities are few. However, one gets the impression that life offers them attractions that aren’t accounted for by this meager list of advantages, and that they have a better relationship with it than many who’ve made a better deal. They lounge in the sunshine; they play in the sea; they wear bright rags; they strike poses and harmonies; they take part in an eternal conversazione. It’s hard to say that one would want them to be different from how they are, and it would certainly make a huge difference if they were better fed. The number of people in Venice who clearly never have enough to eat is painfully high; but it would be more painful if we didn’t also see that the rich Venetian temperament can thrive on a meager diet. Nature has been kind to it, and sunshine, leisure, conversation, and beautiful views form the majority of its nourishment. It takes a lot to create a successful American, but to make a happy Venetian requires only a handful of quick sensitivity. The Italian people have the unique blend of good and bad fortune of being aware of few wants; so if society's civilization is measured by the number of its needs, as seems to be the common belief today, it’s feared that the children of the lagoon would fare poorly in a comparative analysis. Not their misery, certainly, but the way they evade it is what pleases the sentimental tourist, who is gratified by the sight of a beautiful race living off their imagination. The way to enjoy Venice is to follow these people’s example and make the most of simple pleasures. Almost all the pleasures here are simple; this can be argued even under the charge of clever paradox. There is no simpler pleasure than looking at a fine Titian, unless it’s looking at a fine Tintoret or wandering into St. Mark’s—appallingly, the habit one develops—and resting one’s weary eyes on the windowless gloom; or floating in a gondola, or hanging over a balcony, or sipping coffee at Florian’s. It is from such superficial pastimes that a Venetian day is composed, and the pleasure lies in the emotions they evoke. Fortunately, these emotions are among the finest—otherwise, Venice would be unbearably dull. Reading Ruskin is good; reading old records might be better; but the best thing is simply staying on. The only way to appreciate Venice as she deserves is to give her the chance to reach you often—to linger, remain, and come back.
II
The danger is that you will not linger enough—a danger of which the author of these lines had known something. It is possible to dislike Venice, and to entertain the sentiment in a responsible and intelligent manner. There are travellers who think the place odious, and those who are not of this opinion often find themselves wishing that the others were only more numerous. The sentimental tourist’s sole quarrel with his Venice is that he has too many competitors there. He likes to be alone; to be original; to have (to himself, at least) the air of making discoveries. The Venice of to-day is a vast museum where the little wicket that admits you is perpetually turning and creaking, and you march through the institution with a herd of fellow-gazers. There is nothing left to discover or describe, and originality of attitude is completely impossible. This is often very annoying; you can only turn your back on your impertinent playfellow and curse his want of delicacy. But this is not the fault of Venice; it is the fault of the rest of the world. The fault of Venice is that, though she is easy to admire, she is not so easy to live with as you count living in other places. After you have stayed a week and the bloom of novelty has rubbed off you wonder if you can accommodate yourself to the peculiar conditions. Your old habits become impracticable and you find yourself obliged to form new ones of an undesirable and unprofitable character. You are tired of your gondola (or you think you are) and you have seen all the principal pictures and heard the names of the palaces announced a dozen times by your gondolier, who brings them out almost as impressively as if he were an English butler bawling titles into a drawing-room. You have walked several hundred times round the Piazza and bought several bushels of photographs. You have visited the antiquity mongers whose horrible sign-boards dishonour some of the grandest vistas in the Grand Canal; you have tried the opera and found it very bad; you have bathed at the Lido and found the water flat. You have begun to have a shipboard-feeling—to regard the Piazza as an enormous saloon and the Riva degli Schiavoni as a promenade-deck. You are obstructed and encaged; your desire for space is unsatisfied; you miss your usual exercise. You try to take a walk and you fail, and meantime, as I say, you have come to regard your gondola as a sort of magnified baby’s cradle. You have no desire to be rocked to sleep, though you are sufficiently kept awake by the irritation produced, as you gaze across the shallow lagoon, by the attitude of the perpetual gondolier, with his turned-out toes, his protruded chin, his absurdly unscientific stroke. The canals have a horrible smell, and the everlasting Piazza, where you have looked repeatedly at every article in every shop-window and found them all rubbish, where the young Venetians who sell bead bracelets and “panoramas” are perpetually thrusting their wares at you, where the same tightly-buttoned officers are for ever sucking the same black weeds, at the same empty tables, in front of the same cafés—the Piazza, as I say, has resolved itself into a magnificent tread-mill. This is the state of mind of those shallow inquirers who find Venice all very well for a week; and if in such a state of mind you take your departure you act with fatal rashness. The loss is your own, moreover; it is not—with all deference to your personal attractions—that of your companions who remain behind; for though there are some disagreeable things in Venice there is nothing so disagreeable as the visitors. The conditions are peculiar, but your intolerance of them evaporates before it has had time to become a prejudice. When you have called for the bill to go, pay it and remain, and you will find on the morrow that you are deeply attached to Venice. It is by living there from day to day that you feel the fulness of her charm; that you invite her exquisite influence to sink into your spirit. The creature varies like a nervous woman, whom you know only when you know all the aspects of her beauty. She has high spirits or low, she is pale or red, grey or pink, cold or warm, fresh or wan, according to the weather or the hour. She is always interesting and almost always sad; but she has a thousand occasional graces and is always liable to happy accidents. You become extraordinarily fond of these things; you count upon them; they make part of your life. Tenderly fond you become; there is something indefinable in those depths of personal acquaintance that gradually establish themselves. The place seems to personify itself, to become human and sentient and conscious of your affection. You desire to embrace it, to caress it, to possess it; and finally a soft sense of possession grows up and your visit becomes a perpetual love-affair. It is very true that if you go, as the author of these lines on a certain occasion went, about the middle of March, a certain amount of disappointment is possible. He had paid no visit for several years, and in the interval the beautiful and helpless city had suffered an increase of injury. The barbarians are in full possession and you tremble for what they may do. You are reminded from the moment of your arrival that Venice scarcely exists any more as a city at all; that she exists only as a battered peep-show and bazaar. There was a horde of savage Germans encamped in the Piazza, and they filled the Ducal Palace and the Academy with their uproar. The English and Americans came a little later. They came in good time, with a great many French, who were discreet enough to make very long repasts at the Caffè Quadri, during which they were out of the way. The months of April and May of the year 1881 were not, as a general thing, a favourable season for visiting the Ducal Palace and the Academy. The valet-de-place had marked them for his own and held triumphant possession of them. He celebrates his triumphs in a terrible brassy voice, which resounds all over the place, and has, whatever language he be speaking, the accent of some other idiom. During all the spring months in Venice these gentry abound in the great resorts, and they lead their helpless captives through churches and galleries in dense irresponsible groups. They infest the Piazza; they pursue you along the Riva; they hang about the bridges and the doors of the cafés. In saying just now that I was disappointed at first, I had chiefly in mind the impression that assails me to-day in the whole precinct of St. Mark’s. The condition of this ancient sanctuary is surely a great scandal. The pedlars and commissioners ply their trade—often a very unclean one—at the very door of the temple; they follow you across the threshold, into the sacred dusk, and pull your sleeve, and hiss into your ear, scuffling with each other for customers. There is a great deal of dishonour about St. Mark’s altogether, and if Venice, as I say, has become a great bazaar, this exquisite edifice is now the biggest booth.
The risk is that you won't stay long enough—something the author of these lines knows a bit about. It’s possible to dislike Venice while still being responsible and thoughtful about it. There are travelers who find the place dreadful, and those who don’t share that view often wish there were fewer of the former. The sentimental tourist's main issue with their Venice is simply that there are too many other visitors around. They want to be alone, to be unique, to feel like they’re making discoveries. Today's Venice is essentially a large museum where the little entrance gate is constantly creaking and turning, and you walk through the place with a crowd of fellow sightseers. There’s nothing new to discover or describe, and being original is completely impossible. This can be quite frustrating; you can only turn away from your annoying fellow tourists and curse their lack of sensitivity. But that’s not Venice’s fault; it’s the fault of the rest of the world. Venice's flaw is that, although she’s easy to admire, she’s harder to adapt to than living in other places. After a week, when the novelty has worn off, you start to wonder if you can adjust to the unique conditions there. Your old habits feel impractical, and you find yourself having to create new ones that are frustrating and useless. You grow tired of your gondola (or think you do), and you've seen all the main paintings and heard your gondolier announce the names of the palaces a dozen times, almost as dramatically as if he were an English butler shouting titles in a living room. You’ve walked around the Piazza hundreds of times and bought tons of photographs. You’ve visited the antique sellers with their terrible signs ruining some of the most stunning views along the Grand Canal; you’ve tried the opera and thought it was really bad; you’ve swum at the Lido and found the water dull. You start to feel like you’re on a ship—seeing the Piazza as a vast lounge area and the Riva degli Schiavoni as a promenade deck. You feel trapped and confined; your craving for space isn't met; you miss your usual exercise. You try to go for a walk and fail, and in the meantime, as I said, you begin to see your gondola as
III
It is treated as a booth in all ways, and if it had not somehow a great spirit of solemnity within it the traveller would soon have little warrant for regarding it as a religious affair. The restoration of the outer walls, which has lately been so much attacked and defended, is certainly a great shock. Of the necessity of the work only an expert is, I suppose, in a position to judge; but there is no doubt that, if a necessity it be, it is one that is deeply to be regretted. To no more distressing necessity have people of taste lately had to resign themselves. Wherever the hand of the restorer has been laid all semblance of beauty has vanished; which is a sad fact, considering that the external loveliness of St. Mark’s has been for ages less impressive only than that of the still comparatively uninjured interior. I know not what is the measure of necessity in such a case, and it appears indeed to be a very delicate question. To-day, at any rate, that admirable harmony of faded mosaic and marble which, to the eye of the traveller emerging from the narrow streets that lead to the Piazza, filled all the further end of it with a sort of dazzling silver presence—to-day this lovely vision is in a way to be completely reformed and indeed well-nigh abolished. The old softness and mellowness of colour—the work of the quiet centuries and of the breath of the salt sea—is giving way to large crude patches of new material which have the effect of a monstrous malady rather than of a restoration to health. They look like blotches of red and white paint and dishonourable smears of chalk on the cheeks of a noble matron. The face toward the Piazzetta is in especial the newest-looking thing conceivable—as new as a new pair of boots or as the morning’s paper. We do not profess, however, to undertake a scientific quarrel with these changes; we admit that our complaint is a purely sentimental one. The march of industry in united Italy must doubtless be looked at as a whole, and one must endeavour to believe that it is through innumerable lapses of taste that this deeply interesting country is groping her way to her place among the nations. For the present, it is not to be denied, certain odd phases of the process are more visible than the result, to arrive at which it seems necessary that, as she was of old a passionate votary of the beautiful, she should to-day burn everything that she has adored. It is doubtless too soon to judge her, and there are moments when one is willing to forgive her even the restoration of St. Mark’s. Inside as well there has been a considerable attempt to make the place more tidy; but the general effect, as yet, has not seriously suffered. What I chiefly remember is the straightening out of that dark and rugged old pavement—those deep undulations of primitive mosaic in which the fond spectator was thought to perceive an intended resemblance to the waves of the ocean. Whether intended or not the analogy was an image the more in a treasure-house of images; but from a considerable portion of the church it has now disappeared. Throughout the greater part indeed the pavement remains as recent generations have known it—dark, rich, cracked, uneven, spotted with porphyry and time-blackened malachite, polished by the knees of innumerable worshippers; but in other large stretches the idea imitated by the restorers is that of the ocean in a dead calm, and the model they have taken the floor of a London club-house or of a New York hotel. I think no Venetian and scarcely any Italian cares much for such differences; and when, a year ago, people in England were writing to the Times about the whole business and holding meetings to protest against it the dear children of the lagoon—so far as they heard or heeded the rumour—thought them partly busy-bodies and partly asses. Busy-bodies they doubtless were, but they took a good deal of disinterested trouble. It never occurs to the Venetian mind of to-day that such trouble may be worth taking; the Venetian mind vainly endeavours to conceive a state of existence in which personal questions are so insipid that people have to look for grievances in the wrongs of brick and marble. I must not, however, speak of St. Mark’s as if I had the pretension of giving a description of it or as if the reader desired one. The reader has been too well served already. It is surely the best-described building in the world. Open the Stones of Venice, open Théophile Gautier’s Italia, and you will see. These writers take it very seriously, and it is only because there is another way of taking it that I venture to speak of it; the way that offers itself after you have been in Venice a couple of months, and the light is hot in the great Square, and you pass in under the pictured porticoes with a feeling of habit and friendliness and a desire for something cool and dark. There are moments, after all, when the church is comparatively quiet and empty, and when you may sit there with an easy consciousness of its beauty. From the moment, of course, that you go into any Italian church for any purpose but to say your prayers or look at the ladies, you rank yourself among the trooping barbarians I just spoke of; you treat the place as an orifice in the peep-show. Still, it is almost a spiritual function—or, at the worst, an amorous one—to feed one’s eyes on the molten colour that drops from the hollow vaults and thickens the air with its richness. It is all so quiet and sad and faded and yet all so brilliant and living. The strange figures in the mosaic pictures, bending with the curve of niche and vault, stare down through the glowing dimness; the burnished gold that stands behind them catches the light on its little uneven cubes. St. Mark’s owes nothing of its character to the beauty of proportion or perspective; there is nothing grandly balanced or far-arching; there are no long lines nor triumphs of the perpendicular. The church arches indeed, but arches like a dusky cavern. Beauty of surface, of tone, of detail, of things near enough to touch and kneel upon and lean against—it is from this the effect proceeds. In this sort of beauty the place is incredibly rich, and you may go there every day and find afresh some lurking pictorial nook. It is a treasury of bits, as the painters say; and there are usually three or four of the fraternity with their easels set up in uncertain equilibrium on the undulating floor. It is not easy to catch the real complexion of St. Mark’s, and these laudable attempts at portraiture are apt to look either lurid or livid. But if you cannot paint the old loose-looking marble slabs, the great panels of basalt and jasper, the crucifixes of which the lonely anguish looks deeper in the vertical light, the tabernacles whose open doors disclose a dark Byzantine image spotted with dull, crooked gems—if you cannot paint these things you can at least grow fond of them. You grow fond even of the old benches of red marble, partly worn away by the breeches of many generations and attached to the base of those wide pilasters of which the precious plating, delightful in its faded brownness, with a faint grey bloom upon it, bulges and yawns a little with honourable age.
It feels like a booth in every way, and if it didn’t have a deep sense of solemnity, the traveler would have little reason to see it as a religious site. The restoration of the outer walls, which has recently sparked so much debate, is certainly shocking. Only an expert can truly judge whether the work was necessary; however, if it is necessary, it’s something we can only regret. Recently, those with taste have had to accept no more distressing necessity. Wherever the restorer has worked, all traces of beauty have disappeared; this is sad, especially since St. Mark’s external beauty was for ages only slightly less impressive than its still relatively undamaged interior. I’m unsure how to measure necessity in such cases, and it seems to be a delicate question. Today, at any rate, that admirable harmony of faded mosaics and marble, which, to the eye of a traveler coming from the narrow streets leading to the Piazza, filled the far end with a dazzling silver presence—today this beautiful vision is on the brink of being completely transformed and almost abolished. The old softness and warmth of color, shaped by quiet centuries and the sea breeze, is being replaced by large, crude patches of new material that look more like a disease than a restoration. They resemble splotches of red and white paint and dishonorable smudges of chalk on the cheeks of a noble matron. The face looking toward the Piazzetta is especially the newest-looking thing imaginable—fresh like a new pair of boots or the morning’s newspaper. However, we don’t claim to engage in a scientific argument about these changes; our complaint is purely sentimental. The progress of industry in unified Italy must certainly be viewed as a whole, and we must try to believe that through countless lapses of taste, this deeply fascinating country is finding its place among the nations. For now, it’s undeniable that some odd phases of this process are more apparent than the end result, which seems to require that, having once been a passionate devotee of beauty, she must today burn everything she has loved. It’s surely too early to judge her, and there are moments when one is willing to forgive her even for the restoration of St. Mark’s. Inside, there has also been a significant effort to tidy up the space; however, so far, the overall effect hasn’t suffered much. What I mainly remember is how they straightened out that dark, uneven old pavement—those deep undulations of primitive mosaic in which the fond observer was meant to see a resemblance to ocean waves. Whether intended or not, that analogy was just one more image in this treasure trove of images, but it has now disappeared from a significant portion of the church. Much of the pavement remains as recent generations have known it—dark, rich, cracked, uneven, speckled with porphyry and time-darkened malachite, polished by the knees of countless worshippers; but in other large areas, the restorers have mimicked the calm sea, and the model they’ve chosen resembles the floor of a London club or a New York hotel. I don’t think any Venetians, and hardly any Italians, care much about these differences; and when people in England were writing to the Times about the whole matter and holding meetings to protest it last year, the dear children of the lagoon—so far as they heard the rumors—thought they were partly meddling and partly foolish. They were indeed meddling, but they put in a lot of disinterested effort. The Venetian mind today does not even consider that such effort might be worth taking; it vainly tries to imagine a state of existence where personal issues are so dull that people have to search for grievances in the problems of brick and marble. However, I must not speak of St. Mark’s as if I intend to provide a description or as if the reader is looking for one. The reader has already been well served. It is surely the best-described building in the world. Open the Stones of Venice, open Théophile Gautier’s Italia, and you will see. These writers take it very seriously, and it is only because there’s another way of looking at it that I dare to mention it; the kind of perspective that comes after you’ve spent a couple of months in Venice, and the light is hot in the great Square, as you walk under the painted porticoes, feeling a sense of familiarity and comfort, longing for something cool and dark. There are moments, after all, when the church is relatively quiet and empty, allowing you to sit there with an easy awareness of its beauty. Of course, as soon as you enter any Italian church for any reason other than to say your prayers or admire the ladies, you place yourself among the throngs of barbarians I just mentioned; you treat the place as a viewing hole. Still, it’s almost a spiritual experience—or, at worst, an amorous one—to let your eyes feast on the rich colors that cascade from the hollow vaults and fill the air with their richness. It all feels so quiet and sad and faded, yet so brilliant and alive. The strange figures in the mosaic images curve with the niches and arches, gazing down through the glowing dimness; the burnished gold behind them catches the light on its uneven little cubes. St. Mark’s owes much of its character not to perfect proportions or perspectives; there’s nothing grandly balanced or soaring; no long lines or triumphs of the vertical. The church does arch, but like a shadowy cavern. The beauty comes from the surface, tone, detail, and things close enough to touch, kneel on, and lean against—it is from this that the effect arises. In this type of beauty, the place is incredibly rich, and you could visit every day and discover some hidden pictorial corner. It’s a treasure trove of fragments, as the painters say; and there are usually three or four artists setting up their easels in uncertain balance on the undulating floor. It’s not easy to capture the true essence of St. Mark’s, and these commendable attempts at portraiture often end up looking either garish or pale. But even if you can’t paint the old, loose-looking marble slabs, the large panels of basalt and jasper, or the crucifixes whose lonely anguish resonates in the vertical light, or the tabernacles with their open doors revealing dark Byzantine images adorned with dull, crooked gems—if you can’t paint these things, you can at least come to love them. You grow fond even of the old red marble benches, partially worn down by the trousers of many generations, attached to the bases of those wide pilasters, whose precious plating, charming in its faded brownness, with a faint gray bloom upon it, bulges and yawns slightly with honorable age.
{Illustration: FLAGS AT ST. MARK’S VENICE}
{Illustration: FLAGS AT ST. MARK’S VENICE}
IV
Even at first, when the vexatious sense of the city of the Doges reduced to earning its living as a curiosity-shop was in its keenness, there was a great deal of entertainment to be got from lodging on Riva Schiavoni and looking out at the far-shimmering lagoon. There was entertainment indeed in simply getting into the place and observing the queer incidents of a Venetian installation. A great many persons contribute indirectly to this undertaking, and it is surprising how they spring out at you during your novitiate to remind you that they are bound up in some mysterious manner with the constitution of your little establishment. It was an interesting problem for instance to trace the subtle connection existing between the niece of the landlady and the occupancy of the fourth floor. Superficially it was none too visible, as the young lady in question was a dancer at the Fenice theatre—or when that was closed at the Rossini—and might have been supposed absorbed by her professional duties. It proved necessary, however, that she should hover about the premises in a velvet jacket and a pair of black kid gloves with one little white button; as also, that she should apply a thick coating of powder to her face, which had a charming oval and a sweet weak expression, like that of most of the Venetian maidens, who, as a general thing—it was not a peculiarity of the land-lady’s niece—are fond of besmearing themselves with flour. You soon recognise that it is not only the many-twinkling lagoon you behold from a habitation on the Riva; you see a little of everything Venetian. Straight across, before my windows, rose the great pink mass of San Giorgio Maggiore, which has for an ugly Palladian church a success beyond all reason. It is a success of position, of colour, of the immense detached Campanile, tipped with a tall gold angel. I know not whether it is because San Giorgio is so grandly conspicuous, with a great deal of worn, faded-looking brickwork; but for many persons the whole place has a kind of suffusion of rosiness. Asked what may be the leading colour in the Venetian concert, we should inveterately say Pink, and yet without remembering after all that this elegant hue occurs very often. It is a faint, shimmering, airy, watery pink; the bright sea-light seems to flush with it and the pale whiteish-green of lagoon and canal to drink it in. There is indeed a great deal of very evident brickwork, which is never fresh or loud in colour, but always burnt out, as it were, always exquisitely mild.
Even at first, when the annoying feeling of the city of the Doges, reduced to surviving as a curiosity shop, was at its peak, there was a lot of entertainment to be had from staying on Riva Schiavoni and gazing out at the sparkling lagoon. There was indeed enjoyment in simply being in the place and watching the strange happenings of a Venetian setup. A lot of people contribute indirectly to this experience, and it's surprising how they pop up during your early days to remind you that they are mysteriously connected to the workings of your little establishment. For instance, it was an interesting puzzle to trace the subtle link between the landlady's niece and the occupancy of the fourth floor. On the surface, it wasn’t too clear, as the young lady in question was a dancer at the Fenice theatre—or when that was closed, at the Rossini—and one might assume she was fully absorbed in her work. However, it turned out she needed to hang around the premises in a velvet jacket and a pair of black kid gloves with one little white button; additionally, she had to apply a thick coat of powder to her face, which had a lovely oval shape and a sweet, delicate expression, much like many Venetian girls, who, as a general rule—it wasn't just the landlady’s niece—enjoy smearing themselves with flour. You quickly realize that it's not only the many-twinkling lagoon you see from a place on the Riva; you catch glimpses of everything Venetian. Right across from my windows stood the great pink mass of San Giorgio Maggiore, which, despite being an ugly Palladian church, has an unreasonable success. It’s a success of location, color, and the immense detached Campanile topped with a tall gold angel. I don't know if it's because San Giorgio is so strikingly prominent, with a lot of worn, faded-looking brickwork; but for many, the whole area has a kind of rosy glow. If asked what the main color in the Venetian landscape is, we would often stubbornly say pink, yet without realizing just how often this elegant hue appears. It’s a soft, shimmering, airy, watery pink; the bright sea light seems to flush with it, and the pale whitish-green of the lagoon and canal absorbs it. There is indeed a lot of very visible brickwork, which is never fresh or loud in color but always looks burnt out, as it were, always exquisitely mild.
Certain little mental pictures rise before the collector of memories at the simple mention, written or spoken, of the places he has loved. When I hear, when I see, the magical name I have written above these pages, it is not of the great Square that I think, with its strange basilica and its high arcades, nor of the wide mouth of the Grand Canal, with the stately steps and the well-poised dome of the Salute; it is not of the low lagoon, nor the sweet Piazzetta, nor the dark chambers of St. Mark’s. I simply see a narrow canal in the heart of the city—a patch of green water and a surface of pink wall. The gondola moves slowly; it gives a great smooth swerve, passes under a bridge, and the gondolier’s cry, carried over the quiet water, makes a kind of splash in the stillness. A girl crosses the little bridge, which has an arch like a camel’s back, with an old shawl on her head, which makes her characteristic and charming; you see her against the sky as you float beneath. The pink of the old wall seems to fill the whole place; it sinks even into the opaque water. Behind the wall is a garden, out of which the long arm of a white June rose—the roses of Venice are splendid—has flung itself by way of spontaneous ornament. On the other side of this small water-way is a great shabby facade of Gothic windows and balconies—balconies on which dirty clothes are hung and under which a cavernous-looking doorway opens from a low flight of slimy water-steps. It is very hot and still, the canal has a queer smell, and the whole place is enchanting.
Certain little mental images come to mind for someone collecting memories at the simple mention, whether written or spoken, of the places they’ve loved. When I hear or see the magical name I've written at the top of these pages, I don’t think of the grand Square with its unique basilica and high arcades, nor the wide mouth of the Grand Canal with its impressive steps and the perfectly balanced dome of the Salute; it’s not the low lagoon, the charming Piazzetta, or the shadowy rooms of St. Mark’s. Instead, I see a narrow canal in the heart of the city—a patch of green water and a surface of pink wall. The gondola moves slowly; it makes a smooth turn, passes under a bridge, and the gondolier’s call echoes over the calm water, creating a ripple in the stillness. A girl crosses the small bridge, which arches like a camel's back, wearing an old shawl on her head that makes her look distinctive and lovely; you can see her against the sky as you drift below. The pink of the old wall appears to fill the entire scene; it even seeps into the murky water. Behind the wall is a garden, where the long arm of a white June rose—the roses of Venice are magnificent—has reached out as a spontaneous embellishment. On the other side of this little canal is a large shabby facade adorned with Gothic windows and balconies—balconies where dirty laundry is hung and beneath which a cavernous doorway opens from a slimy staircase leading down to the water. It's very hot and still, the canal has a strange smell, and the entire place is enchanting.
{Illustration: A NARROW CANAL, VENICE}
{Illustration: A NARROW CANAL, VENICE}
It is poor work, however, talking about the colour of things in Venice. The fond spectator is perpetually looking at it from his window, when he is not floating about with that delightful sense of being for the moment a part of it, which any gentleman in a gondola is free to entertain. Venetian windows and balconies are a dreadful lure, and while you rest your elbows on these cushioned ledges the precious hours fly away. But in truth Venice isn’t in fair weather a place for concentration of mind. The effort required for sitting down to a writing-table is heroic, and the brightest page of MS. looks dull beside the brilliancy of your milieu. All nature beckons you forth and murmurs to you sophistically that such hours should be devoted to collecting impressions. Afterwards, in ugly places, at unprivileged times, you can convert your impressions into prose. Fortunately for the present proser the weather wasn’t always fine; the first month was wet and windy, and it was better to judge of the matter from an open casement than to respond to the advances of persuasive gondoliers. Even then however there was a constant entertainment in the view. It was all cold colour, and the steel-grey floor of the lagoon was stroked the wrong way by the wind. Then there were charming cool intervals, when the churches, the houses, the anchored fishing-boats, the whole gently-curving line of the Riva, seemed to be washed with a pearly white. Later it all turned warm—warm to the eye as well as to other senses. After the middle of May the whole place was in a glow. The sea took on a thousand shades, but they were only infinite variations of blue, and those rosy walls I just spoke of began to flush in the thick sunshine. Every patch of colour, every yard of weather-stained stucco, every glimpse of nestling garden or daub of sky above a calle, began to shine and sparkle—began, as the painters say, to “compose.” The lagoon was streaked with odd currents, which played across it like huge smooth finger-marks. The gondolas multiplied and spotted it allover; every gondola and gondolier looking, at a distance, precisely like every other.
It's not great to focus on the color of things in Venice. The enthusiastic viewer is always looking at it from their window, or they’re enjoying the moment of feeling like part of it while floating in a gondola. Venetian windows and balconies are a huge temptation, and when you rest your elbows on these cushioned ledges, time flies by. But honestly, Venice isn’t really a place for concentrating during good weather. It takes a heroic effort to sit down at a writing table, and even the best page of writing looks dull compared to the brilliance of your surroundings. Nature beckons you outside, suggesting that these hours are meant for soaking in impressions. Later, in less appealing places and at inconvenient times, you can turn those impressions into prose. Luckily for the current writer, the weather wasn’t always nice; the first month was wet and windy, so it was better to take in the view from an open window than to be drawn in by the persuasive gondoliers. Even then, the view was constantly entertaining. It was all cold colors, and the lagoon's steel-grey surface was ruffled by the wind. Then there were refreshing cool moments when the churches, homes, anchored fishing boats, and the whole gently curving line of the Riva looked like they were washed in a pearly white. Later, everything warmed up—warm to the eyes and to other senses. After mid-May, the whole place glowed. The sea shimmered in countless shades that were essentially infinite variations of blue, and the rosy walls I mentioned began to flush in the bright sunshine. Every splash of color, every piece of weathered stucco, every view of a cozy garden or patch of sky above a street began to shine and sparkle—started, as artists say, to “compose.” The lagoon was marked with odd currents that moved across like giant smooth fingerprints. The gondolas multiplied, dotting the water; every gondola and gondolier looking, from afar, just like every other one.
There is something strange and fascinating in this mysterious impersonality of the gondola. It has an identity when you are in it, but, thanks to their all being of the same size, shape and colour, and of the same deportment and gait, it has none, or as little as possible, as you see it pass before you. From my windows on the Riva there was always the same silhouette—the long, black, slender skiff, lifting its head and throwing it back a little, moving yet seeming not to move, with the grotesquely-graceful figure on the poop. This figure inclines, as may be, more to the graceful or to the grotesque—standing in the “second position” of the dancing-master, but indulging from the waist upward in a freedom of movement which that functionary would deprecate. One may say as a general thing that there is something rather awkward in the movement even of the most graceful gondolier, and something graceful in the movement of the most awkward. In the graceful men of course the grace predominates, and nothing can be finer than the large, firm way in which, from their point of vantage, they throw themselves over their tremendous oar. It has the boldness of a plunging bird and the regularity of a pendulum. Sometimes, as you see this movement in profile, in a gondola that passes you—see, as you recline on your own low cushions, the arching body of the gondolier lifted up against the sky—it has a kind of nobleness which suggests an image on a Greek frieze. The gondolier at Venice is your very good friend—if you choose him happily—and on the quality of the personage depends a good deal that of your impressions. He is a part of your daily life, your double, your shadow, your complement. Most people, I think, either like their gondolier or hate him; and if they like him, like him very much. In this case they take an interest in him after his departure; wish him to be sure of employment, speak of him as the gem of gondoliers and tell their friends to be certain to “secure” him. There is usually no difficulty in securing him; there is nothing elusive or reluctant about a gondolier. Nothing would induce me not to believe them for the most part excellent fellows, and the sentimental tourist must always have a kindness for them. More than the rest of the population, of course, they are the children of Venice; they are associated with its idiosyncrasy, with its essence, with its silence, with its melancholy.
There’s something strange and fascinating about the gondola’s mysterious impersonality. It has a unique identity when you’re in it, but because they’re all the same size, shape, and color, and have similar postures and movements, it feels almost generic as you watch it glide by. From my windows on the Riva, I always saw the same silhouette—the long, black, slender boat lifting its bow slightly, moving yet seeming to stand still, with the oddly graceful figure at the back. This figure either leans more towards grace or awkwardness—standing in a “second position” like a dancer but moving freely from the waist up in a way that a dance instructor wouldn’t approve of. Generally speaking, there’s something a bit clumsy about even the most graceful gondolier's movements, and something elegant in the clumsiness of the others. Among the graceful ones, grace dominates, and nothing is as striking as the confident way they lean into their long oar from their elevated position. It has the daring of a diving bird and the consistency of a pendulum. Sometimes, as you watch this in profile from a gondola passing by—seeing the gondolier's arched body against the sky—it possesses a kind of nobility that reminds you of a figure on a Greek frieze. The gondolier in Venice can be a great companion—if you pick the right one—and your experience often depends on their quality. He becomes part of your routine, your twin, your shadow, your complement. Most people either really like their gondolier or can’t stand him; and if they like him, they like him a lot. In that case, they continue to think about him after he leaves, hope he has work, refer to him as the best of gondoliers, and tell friends to make sure they “book” him. Usually, there’s no trouble getting him; gondoliers aren’t elusive or hesitant. I’d say most of them are genuinely good guys, and sentimental tourists typically feel fond of them. More than the rest of the population, they are, of course, the true children of Venice; they embody its character, its essence, its quietness, and its melancholy.
When I say they are associated with its silence I should immediately add that they are associated also with its sound. Among themselves they are an extraordinarily talkative company. They chatter at the traghetti, where they always have some sharp point under discussion; they bawl across the canals; they bespeak your commands as you approach; they defy each other from afar. If you happen to have a traghetto under your window, you are well aware that they are a vocal race. I should go even further than I went just now, and say that the voice of the gondolier is in fact for audibility the dominant or rather the only note of Venice. There is scarcely another heard sound, and that indeed is part of the interest of the place. There is no noise there save distinctly human noise; no rumbling, no vague uproar, nor rattle of wheels and hoofs. It is all articulate and vocal and personal. One may say indeed that Venice is emphatically the city of conversation; people talk all over the place because there is nothing to interfere with its being caught by the ear. Among the populace it is a general family party. The still water carries the voice, and good Venetians exchange confidences at a distance of half a mile. It saves a world of trouble, and they don’t like trouble. Their delightful garrulous language helps them to make Venetian life a long conversazione. This language, with its soft elisions, its odd transpositions, its kindly contempt for consonants and other disagreeables, has in it something peculiarly human and accommodating. If your gondolier had no other merit he would have the merit that he speaks Venetian. This may rank as a merit even—some people perhaps would say especially—when you don’t understand what he says. But he adds to it other graces which make him an agreeable feature in your life. The price he sets on his services is touchingly small, and he has a happy art of being obsequious without being, or at least without seeming, abject. For occasional liberalities he evinces an almost lyrical gratitude. In short he has delightfully good manners, a merit which he shares for the most part with the Venetians at large. One grows very fond of these people, and the reason of one’s fondness is the frankness and sweetness of their address. That of the Italian family at large has much to recommend it; but in the Venetian manner there is something peculiarly ingratiating. One feels that the race is old, that it has a long and rich civilisation in its blood, and that if it hasn’t been blessed by fortune it has at least been polished by time. It hasn’t a genius for stiff morality, and indeed makes few pretensions in that direction. It scruples but scantly to represent the false as the true, and has been accused of cultivating the occasion to grasp and to overreach, and of steering a crooked course—not to your and my advantage—amid the sanctities of property. It has been accused further of loving if not too well at least too often, of being in fine as little austere as possible. I am not sure it is very brave, nor struck with its being very industrious. But it has an unfailing sense of the amenities of life; the poorest Venetian is a natural man of the world. He is better company than persons of his class are apt to be among the nations of industry and virtue—where people are also sometimes perceived to lie and steal and otherwise misconduct themselves. He has a great desire to please and to be pleased.
When I say they are connected to its silence, I should quickly add that they are also linked to its sound. They are an incredibly talkative bunch. They chat at the traghetti, always having some sharp topic to discuss; they shout across the canals; they call out your wishes as you approach; they challenge each other from a distance. If you have a traghetto outside your window, you know they are a vocal group. I should go even further and say that the gondolier's voice is actually the main, or rather the only, sound in Venice. There’s hardly any other noise, which adds to the charm of the place. There's no noise except for distinctly human sounds; no rumbling, no vague clamor, nor the clatter of wheels and hooves. Everything is clear, vocal, and personal. You could definitely say that Venice is the city of conversation; people talk everywhere because there's nothing to block what they hear. Among the locals, it feels like one big family gathering. The calm water carries voices, and good Venetians share secrets even from half a mile away. It saves a lot of hassle, and they prefer to avoid trouble. Their lovely, chatty language makes Venetian life a long conversazione. This language, with its smooth elisions, quirky shifts, and friendly disregard for harsh consonants and other unpleasant sounds, has something inherently kind and accommodating about it. If your gondolier had no other quality, the fact that he speaks Venetian would be a big plus—some might even say especially when you don’t understand what he’s saying. But he also has other qualities that make him a pleasant part of your life. The fee he charges for his services is refreshingly low, and he has a wonderful way of being respectful without seeming subservient. For little acts of generosity, he shows an almost poetic gratitude. In short, he has delightful manners, a trait he mostly shares with Venetians in general. One grows quite fond of these people, and the reason for that fondness lies in their openness and warmth. The typical Italian family has much to recommend it, but there's something uniquely appealing about the Venetian way. You sense that this community is old, with a rich history bubbling in its blood, and that while it may not have been favored by fortune, it has certainly been refined by time. It doesn’t have a knack for strict morality, and indeed doesn't make many claims in that area. It hardly hesitates to present falsehoods as truths and has been accused of seizing opportunities for gain and steering a crooked course—not to your or my benefit—amidst the sacredness of property. It has also been accused of loving, if not too well, at least too frequently, essentially being as non-austere as possible. I'm not sure it’s particularly brave, nor does it appear very industrious. But it has a consistent awareness of the finer things in life; even the poorest Venetian is a natural socialite. He is better company than those in his class can be in industrious and virtuous nations—where people are sometimes seen to lie, steal, and act otherwise dishonorably. He genuinely wants to please and to be pleased.
V
In that matter at least the cold-blooded stranger begins at last to imitate him; begins to lead a life that shall be before all things easy; unless indeed he allow himself, like Mr. Ruskin, to be put out of humour by Titian and Tiepolo. The hours he spends among the pictures are his best hours in Venice, and I am ashamed to have written so much of common things when I might have been making festoons of the names of the masters. Only, when we have covered our page with such festoons what more is left to say? When one has said Carpaccio and Bellini, the Tintoret and the Veronese, one has struck a note that must be left to resound at will. Everything has been said about the mighty painters, and it is of little importance that a pilgrim the more has found them to his taste. “Went this morning to the Academy; was very much pleased with Titian’s ‘Assumption.’” That honest phrase has doubtless been written in many a traveller’s diary, and was not indiscreet on the part of its author. But it appeals little to the general reader, and we must moreover notoriously not expose our deepest feelings. Since I have mentioned Titian’s “Assumption” I must say that there are some people who have been less pleased with it than the observer we have just imagined. It is one of the possible disappointments of Venice, and you may if you like take advantage of your privilege of not caring for it. It imparts a look of great richness to the side of the beautiful room of the Academy on which it hangs; but the same room contains two or three works less known to fame which are equally capable of inspiring a passion. “The ‘Annunciation’ struck me as coarse and superficial”: that note was once made in a simple-minded tourist’s book. At Venice, strange to say, Titian is altogether a disappointment; the city of his adoption is far from containing the best of him. Madrid, Paris, London, Florence, Dresden, Munich—these are the homes of his greatness.
In this regard, the cold-blooded stranger finally starts to emulate him; he begins to lead a life that focuses primarily on ease, unless he allows himself, like Mr. Ruskin, to be irritated by Titian and Tiepolo. The hours spent among the artworks are his best hours in Venice, and I feel ashamed to have written so much about ordinary things when I could have been celebrating the names of the masters. But once we’ve filled our page with those names, what more is there to say? After mentioning Carpaccio and Bellini, Tintoretto and Veronese, we've hit a note that should resonate for a while. Everything has been said about these great painters, and it hardly matters that another traveler has found them to his liking. “I went to the Academy this morning; I was really impressed by Titian’s ‘Assumption.’” That straightforward sentence has certainly appeared in many travelers' diaries, and its author wasn't being indiscreet. But it doesn’t resonate much with the average reader, and we shouldn’t openly disclose our deepest feelings either. Since I’ve brought up Titian’s “Assumption,” I should note that some people have not enjoyed it as much as the observer we just envisioned. It can be one of the potential disappointments of Venice, and you’re free to take advantage of the fact that you might not appreciate it. It adds a sense of richness to the beautiful room in the Academy where it hangs, but that same room has two or three lesser-known works that can inspire just as much passion. “The ‘Annunciation’ seemed coarse and shallow to me”: that was noted in a simple tourist’s book once. Strangely enough, in Venice, Titian is generally a letdown; the city that adopted him doesn't contain his greatest works. Madrid, Paris, London, Florence, Dresden, Munich—these are the places where his greatness truly resides.
There are other painters who have but a single home, and the greatest of these is the Tintoret. Close beside him sit Carpaccio and Bellini, who make with him the dazzling Venetian trio. The Veronese may be seen and measured in other places; he is most splendid in Venice, but he shines in Paris and in Dresden. You may walk out of the noon-day dusk of Trafalgar Square in November, and in one of the chambers of the National Gallery see the family of Darius rustling and pleading and weeping at the feet of Alexander. Alexander is a beautiful young Venetian in crimson pantaloons, and the picture sends a glow into the cold London twilight. You may sit before it for an hour and dream you are floating to the water-gate of the Ducal Palace, where a certain old beggar who has one of the handsomest heads in the world—he has sat to a hundred painters for Doges and for personages more sacred—has a prescriptive right to pretend to pull your gondola to the steps and to hold out a greasy immemorial cap. But you must go to Venice in very fact to see the other masters, who form part of your life while you are there, who illuminate your view of the universe. It is difficult to express one’s relation to them; the whole Venetian art-world is so near, so familiar, so much an extension and adjunct of the spreading actual, that it seems almost invidious to say one owes more to one of them than to the other. Nowhere, not even in Holland, where the correspondence between the real aspects and the little polished canvases is so constant and so exquisite, do art and life seem so interfused and, as it were, so consanguineous. All the splendour of light and colour, all the Venetian air and the Venetian history are on the walls and ceilings of the palaces; and all the genius of the masters, all the images and visions they have left upon canvas, seem to tremble in the sunbeams and dance upon the waves. That is the perpetual interest of the place—that you live in a certain sort of knowledge as in a rosy cloud. You don’t go into the churches and galleries by way of a change from the streets; you go into them because they offer you an exquisite reproduction of the things that surround you. All Venice was both model and painter, and life was so pictorial that art couldn’t help becoming so. With all diminutions life is pictorial still, and this fact gives an extraordinary freshness to one’s perception of the great Venetian works. You judge of them not as a connoisseur, but as a man of the world, and you enjoy them because they are so social and so true. Perhaps of all works of art that are equally great they demand least reflection on the part of the spectator—they make least of a mystery of being enjoyed. Reflection only confirms your admiration, yet is almost ashamed to show its head. These things speak so frankly and benignantly to the sense that even when they arrive at the highest style—as in the Tintoret’s “Presentation of the little Virgin at the Temple”—they are still more familiar.
There are other painters who have only one home, and the greatest among them is Tintoretto. Next to him are Carpaccio and Bellini, who together with him create the stunning Venetian trio. The Veronese can be found in other locations; he is most magnificent in Venice, but he also shines in Paris and Dresden. You can step out of the midday gloom of Trafalgar Square in November and find yourself in one of the rooms of the National Gallery, watching the family of Darius rustling, pleading, and weeping at the feet of Alexander. Alexander is a handsome young Venetian in crimson pants, and the painting brings warmth into the chilly London twilight. You could sit in front of it for an hour and imagine yourself drifting to the water-gate of the Ducal Palace, where a certain old beggar with one of the most handsome faces in the world—who has posed for a hundred painters as Doges and more revered figures—has a right to act like he’s pulling your gondola to the steps and offering you a worn, greasy cap. But you need to actually go to Venice to see the other masters, who become part of your life while you’re there, illuminating your view of the universe. It’s hard to describe your connection to them; the whole Venetian art world feels so close, so familiar, and so intertwined with reality, that it almost seems unfair to say you owe more to one than the others. Nowhere, not even in Holland, where the relationship between real scenes and the polished canvases is so consistent and exquisite, do art and life feel so blended and almost related by blood. All the splendor of light and color, all the Venetian atmosphere and history, fill the walls and ceilings of the palaces. The genius of the masters, all the images and visions they’ve left on canvas, seem to shimmer in the sunlight and dance on the waves. That’s the constant allure of the place—you live in a kind of knowledge that’s like a rosy cloud. You don’t visit the churches and galleries as a break from the streets; you enter them because they offer a beautiful reflection of the things around you. All of Venice was both the model and the artist, and life was so visual that art couldn’t help but mirror it. Even with all its changes, life still feels visual, and this gives an extraordinary freshness to how you perceive the great Venetian works. You assess them not as an art critic, but as a worldly person, enjoying them because they are so relatable and genuine. Perhaps among all equally great works of art, they require the least contemplation from the viewer—they pose the least mystery about being enjoyed. Reflection only deepens your appreciation, yet almost feels reluctant to make itself known. These works communicate so openly and kindly to the senses that even when they reach the highest style—as in Tintoretto’s “Presentation of the Virgin at the Temple”—they remain more approachable.
But it is hard, as I say, to express all this, and it is painful as well to attempt it—painful because in the memory of vanished hours so filled with beauty the consciousness of present loss oppresses. Exquisite hours, enveloped in light and silence, to have known them once is to have always a terrible standard of enjoyment. Certain lovely mornings of May and June come back with an ineffaceable fairness. Venice isn’t smothered in flowers at this season, in the manner of Florence and Rome; but the sea and sky themselves seem to blossom and rustle. The gondola waits at the wave-washed steps, and if you are wise you will take your place beside a discriminating companion. Such a companion in Venice should of course be of the sex that discriminates most finely. An intelligent woman who knows her Venice seems doubly intelligent, and it makes no woman’s perceptions less keen to be aware that she can’t help looking graceful as she is borne over the waves. The handsome Pasquale, with uplifted oar, awaits your command, knowing, in a general way, from observation of your habits, that your intention is to go to see a picture or two. It perhaps doesn’t immensely matter what picture you choose: the whole affair is so charming. It is charming to wander through the light and shade of intricate canals, with perpetual architecture above you and perpetual fluidity beneath. It is charming to disembark at the polished steps of a little empty campo—a sunny shabby square with an old well in the middle, an old church on one side and tall Venetian windows looking down. Sometimes the windows are tenantless; sometimes a lady in a faded dressing-gown leans vaguely on the sill. There is always an old man holding out his hat for coppers; there are always three or four small boys dodging possible umbrella-pokes while they precede you, in the manner of custodians, to the door of the church.
But it’s tough, as I said, to express all this, and it’s also painful to try—painful because memories of those beautiful moments make the weight of present loss feel heavy. Those exquisite hours, wrapped in light and silence, create a standard of enjoyment that’s hard to match. Certain lovely mornings in May and June come back with an unforgettable charm. Venice isn’t covered in flowers at this time like Florence and Rome; instead, the sea and sky seem to blossom and dance. The gondola waits at the steps washed by waves, and if you’re smart, you’ll sit next to a discerning companion. In Venice, this companion should definitely be the kind of woman who notices the little things. An intelligent woman who knows her Venice appears even more insightful, and it doesn’t make her any less graceful to realize she looks elegant as she glides over the waves. The handsome Pasquale, with his oar held high, is ready for your command, generally aware from watching your habits that you intend to see a painting or two. It probably doesn’t matter much which painting you pick: the whole experience is delightful. It’s wonderful to wander through the light and shadow of complex canals, with beautiful architecture above you and fluidity below. It’s lovely to step onto the polished steps of a small empty campo—a sunny, worn-out square with an old well in the middle, an old church on one side, and tall Venetian windows looking down. Sometimes the windows are empty; sometimes a woman in a faded robe leans dreamily on the sill. There’s always an old man holding out his hat for coins; there are always three or four little boys dodging potential umbrella pokes as they lead you, like little guards, to the church door.
VI
The churches of Venice are rich in pictures, and many a masterpiece lurks in the unaccommodating gloom of side-chapels and sacristies. Many a noble work is perched behind the dusty candles and muslin roses of a scantily-visited altar; some of them indeed, hidden behind the altar, suffer in a darkness that can never be explored. The facilities offered you for approaching the picture in such cases are a mockery of your irritated wish. You stand at tip-toe on a three-legged stool, you climb a rickety ladder, you almost mount upon the shoulders of the custode. You do everything but see the picture. You see just enough to be sure it’s beautiful. You catch a glimpse of a divine head, of a fig tree against a mellow sky, but the rest is impenetrable mystery. You renounce all hope, for instance, of approaching the magnificent Cima da Conegliano in San Giovanni in Bragora; and bethinking yourself of the immaculate purity that shines in the spirit of this master, you renounce it with chagrin and pain. Behind the high altar in that church hangs a Baptism of Christ by Cima which I believe has been more or less repainted. You make the thing out in spots, you see it has a fullness of perfection. But you turn away from it with a stiff neck and promise yourself consolation in the Academy and at the Madonna dell’ Orto, where two noble works by the same hand—pictures as clear as a summer twilight—present themselves in better circumstances. It may be said as a general thing that you never see the Tintoret. You admire him, you adore him, you think him the greatest of painters, but in the great majority of cases your eyes fail to deal with him. This is partly his own fault; so many of his works have turned to blackness and are positively rotting in their frames. At the Scuola di San Rocco, where there are acres of him, there is scarcely anything at all adequately visible save the immense “Crucifixion” in the upper story. It is true that in looking at this huge composition you look at many pictures; it has not only a multitude of figures but a wealth of episodes; and you pass from one of these to the other as if you were “doing” a gallery. Surely no single picture in the world contains more of human life; there is everything in it, including the most exquisite beauty. It is one of the greatest things of art; it is always interesting. There are works of the artist which contain touches more exquisite, revelations of beauty more radiant, but there is no other vision of so intense a reality, an execution so splendid. The interest, the impressiveness, of that whole corner of Venice, however melancholy the effect of its gorgeous and ill-lighted chambers, gives a strange importance to a visit to the Scuola. Nothing that all travellers go to see appears to suffer less from the incursions of travellers. It is one of the loneliest booths of the bazaar, and the author of these lines has always had the good fortune, which he wishes to every other traveller, of having it to himself. I think most visitors find the place rather alarming and wicked-looking. They walk about a while among the fitful figures that gleam here and there out of the great tapestry (as it were) with which the painter has hung all the walls, and then, depressed and bewildered by the portentous solemnity of these objects, by strange glimpses of unnatural scenes, by the echo of their lonely footsteps on the vast stone floors, they take a hasty departure, finding themselves again, with a sense of release from danger, a sense that the genius loci was a sort of mad white-washer who worked with a bad mixture, in the bright light of the campo, among the beggars, the orange-vendors and the passing gondolas. Solemn indeed is the place, solemn and strangely suggestive, for the simple reason that we shall scarcely find four walls elsewhere that inclose within a like area an equal quantity of genius. The air is thick with it and dense and difficult to breathe; for it was genius that was not happy, inasmuch as it, lacked the art to fix itself for ever. It is not immortality that we breathe at the Scuola di San Rocco, but conscious, reluctant mortality.
The churches of Venice are filled with artwork, and many masterpieces hide in the dimly lit side chapels and sacristies. There are many noble works tucked behind dusty candles and artificial roses at little-visited altars; some, in fact, are hidden behind the altar and exist in darkness that can never be uncovered. The ways offered to you for viewing such paintings are a mockery of your frustrated desire. You stand on your toes on a shaky stool, climb a rickety ladder, and nearly hoist yourself onto the shoulders of the custode. You do everything except actually see the picture. You see just enough to know it’s beautiful. You catch a glimpse of a divine face or a fig tree against a soft sky, but the rest remains an impenetrable mystery. You give up all hope, for example, of getting close to the magnificent Cima da Conegliano in San Giovanni in Bragora; and recalling the pure spirit that shines through this master’s work, you let it go with disappointment and sadness. Behind the high altar in that church hangs a Baptism of Christ by Cima, which I believe has been somewhat restored. You can make it out in spots and see that it has a fullness of perfection. But you walk away from it with a stiff neck, vowing to find solace at the Academy and at the Madonna dell’ Orto, where two fine pieces by the same artist—paintings as clear as a summer twilight—await in better conditions. Generally speaking, you hardly ever see Tintoretto. You admire him, adore him, and believe him to be the greatest painter, but in most instances, your eyes can’t fully engage with his work. This is partly his fault; many of his pieces have turned black and are practically decaying in their frames. At the Scuola di San Rocco, where he has a vast presence, there is hardly anything visible enough except for the huge “Crucifixion” in the upper level. It’s true that when you look at this massive composition, you are seeing many paintings; it features not only a multitude of figures but also a wealth of episodes, allowing you to move from one to another as if you were “doing” a gallery. Surely, no single painting in the world depicts as much human life; it captures everything, including exquisite beauty. It is one of the greatest works of art; it is endlessly engaging. There are other pieces by the artist containing more delicate touches, more brilliant revelations of beauty, but there is no other vision of such intense reality, such splendid execution. The interest and impact of that entire area of Venice, no matter how melancholy its beautiful, poorly lit chambers may feel, give a strange significance to a visit to the Scuola. Nothing that all travelers seek seems to suffer less from tourist encroachments. It is one of the lonelier spots in the bazaar, and the author of these lines has always had the good fortune, which he wishes for every other traveler, of having it to himself. I think most visitors find the place a bit intimidating and sinister-looking. They walk around for a while among the flickering figures that stand out here and there from the vast tapestry the painter has spread across all the walls, and then, feeling depressed and bewildered by the heavy solemnity of these objects, by strange glimpses of unnatural scenes, and by the echo of their lonely footsteps on the large stone floors, they leave quickly, relieved to find themselves again in the bright light of the campo, among beggars, orange vendors, and passing gondolas. Indeed, it’s a solemn place, solemn and strangely evocative, simply because you will hardly find four walls anywhere else that contain within them an equal amount of genius in such a small space. The air feels thick with it, dense and hard to breathe; for it was genius that was not happy, lacking the means to last forever. It’s not immortality we breathe at the Scuola di San Rocco, but a conscious, reluctant awareness of mortality.
Fortunately, however, we can turn to the Ducal Palace, where everything is so brilliant and splendid that the poor dusky Tintoret is lifted in spite of himself into the concert. This deeply original building is of course the loveliest thing in Venice, and a morning’s stroll there is a wonderful illumination. Cunningly select your hour—half the enjoyment of Venice is a question of dodging—and enter at about one o’clock, when the tourists have flocked off to lunch and the echoes of the charming chambers have gone to sleep among the sunbeams. There is no brighter place in Venice—by which I mean that on the whole there is none half so bright. The reflected sunshine plays up through the great windows from the glittering lagoon and shimmers and twinkles over gilded walls and ceilings. All the history of Venice, all its splendid stately past, glows around you in a strong sealight. Everyone here is magnificent, but the great Veronese is the most magnificent of all. He swims before you in a silver cloud; he thrones in an eternal morning. The deep blue sky burns behind him, streaked across with milky bars; the white colonnades sustain the richest canopies, under which the first gentlemen and ladies in the world both render homage and receive it. Their glorious garments rustle in the air of the sea and their sun-lighted faces are the very complexion of Venice. The mixture of pride and piety, of politics and religion, of art and patriotism, gives a splendid dignity to every scene. Never was a painter more nobly joyous, never did an artist take a greater delight in life, seeing it all as a kind of breezy festival and feeling it through the medium of perpetual success. He revels in the gold-framed ovals of the ceilings, multiplies himself there with the fluttering movement of an embroidered banner that tosses itself into the blue. He was the happiest of painters and produced the happiest picture in the world. “The Rape of Europa” surely deserves this title; it is impossible to look at it without aching with envy. Nowhere else in art is such a temperament revealed; never did inclination and opportunity combine to express such enjoyment. The mixture of flowers and gems and brocade, of blooming flesh and shining sea and waving groves, of youth, health, movement, desire—all this is the brightest vision that ever descended upon the soul of a painter. Happy the artist who could entertain such a vision; happy the artist who could paint it as the masterpiece I here recall is painted.
Fortunately, we can head over to the Ducal Palace, where everything is so brilliant and stunning that even the poor dusky Tintoret feels uplifted and part of the scene. This truly unique building is, of course, the most beautiful thing in Venice, and a stroll there in the morning is a wonderful experience. Be smart about your timing—half the enjoyment of Venice is about avoiding the crowds—and arrive around one o’clock, when the tourists have gone off to lunch and the echoes of the charming rooms have settled in the sunshine. There’s no brighter spot in Venice—meaning there's really none that compares. The sunlight streams through the large windows from the sparkling lagoon, shimmering and glistening over the gilded walls and ceilings. All of Venice’s history, its glorious past, radiates around you in a warm glow. Everyone here is magnificent, but the great Veronese stands out the most. He seems to float before you in a silver haze; he reigns in an eternal morning. The deep blue sky blazes behind him, streaked with soft white lines; the white columns support the richest canopies, beneath which the world’s finest ladies and gentlemen both show respect and receive it. Their magnificent outfits rustle in the sea air, and their sun-kissed faces embody the essence of Venice. The mix of pride and reverence, of politics and spirituality, of art and patriotism, adds a grand dignity to every scene. Never was a painter more joyfully noble, never did an artist take greater pleasure in life, viewing it all as a kind of breezy celebration and feeling it through the lens of lasting success. He delights in the gold-framed ovals of the ceilings, multiplying himself in a fluttering movement like an embroidered banner that dances in the blue sky. He was the happiest of painters and created the happiest painting in the world. “The Rape of Europa” truly deserves this title; it’s impossible to look at it without feeling a pang of envy. Nowhere else in art is such a temperament displayed; never did desire and chance come together to convey such joy. The combination of flowers and jewels and brocade, of radiant flesh and shimmering sea and swaying groves, of youth, health, movement, and longing—this is the brightest vision that ever blessed a painter's soul. Happy is the artist who could hold such a vision; happy is the artist who could capture it as the masterpiece I remember here is captured.
The Tintoret’s visions were not so bright as that; but he had several that were radiant enough. In the room that contains the work just cited are several smaller canvases by the greatly more complex genius of the Scuola di San Rocco, which are almost simple in their loveliness, almost happy in their simplicity. They have kept their brightness through the centuries, and they shine with their neighbours in those golden rooms. There is a piece of painting in one of them which is one of the sweetest things in Venice and which reminds one afresh of those wild flowers of execution that bloom so profusely and so unheeded in the dark corners of all of the Tintoret’s work. “Pallas chasing away Mars” is, I believe, the name that is given to the picture; and it represents in fact a young woman of noble appearance administering a gentle push to a fine young man in armour, as if to tell him to keep his distance. It is of the gentleness of this push that I speak, the charming way in which she puts out her arm, with a single bracelet on it, and rests her young hand, its rosy fingers parted, on his dark breastplate. She bends her enchanting head with the effort—a head which has all the strange fairness that the Tintoret always sees in women—and the soft, living, flesh-like glow of all these members, over which the brush has scarcely paused in its course, is as pretty an example of genius as all Venice can show. But why speak of the Tintoret when I can say nothing of the great “Paradise,” which unfolds its somewhat smoky splendour and the wonder of its multitudinous circles in one of the other chambers? If it were not one of the first pictures in the world it would be about the biggest, and we must confess that the spectator gets from it at first chiefly an impression of quantity. Then he sees that this quantity is really wealth; that the dim confusion of faces is a magnificent composition, and that some of the details of this composition are extremely beautiful. It is impossible however in a retrospect of Venice to specify one’s happiest hours, though as one looks backward certain ineffaceable moments start here and there into vividness. How is it possible to forget one’s visits to the sacristy of the Frari, however frequent they may have been, and the great work of John Bellini which forms the treasure of that apartment?
The visions of Tintoretto weren't as bright as that, but he had quite a few that were radiant enough. In the room with the previously mentioned artwork, there are several smaller canvases by the much more complex genius of the Scuola di San Rocco, which are almost simple in their beauty, almost joyful in their simplicity. They have maintained their brightness through the centuries, shining alongside their neighbors in those golden rooms. One painting among them is one of the sweetest pieces in Venice, reminding us of those wildflowers of execution that bloom abundantly and go unnoticed in the dark corners of all Tintoretto’s work. “Pallas chasing away Mars” is, I believe, the title of the painting, and it actually depicts a young woman of noble appearance gently pushing a fine young man in armor, as if telling him to keep his distance. It’s the softness of this push that I’m focusing on, the charming way she extends her arm—adorned with a single bracelet—and rests her young hand, its rosy fingers splayed, on his dark breastplate. She bends her enchanting head with the effort—a head that embodies the unique beauty Tintoretto always sees in women—and the soft, lifelike glow of all her features, over which the brush has barely paused, is one of the most exquisite examples of genius Venice has to offer. But why discuss Tintoretto when I can't mention the magnificent “Paradise,” which reveals its somewhat smoky splendor and the wonder of its countless figures in one of the other chambers? If it weren't one of the most notable paintings in the world, it would certainly be one of the largest, and we must admit that the initial impression it gives to onlookers is one of sheer quantity. Then you realize that this quantity is actually richness; that the hazy cluster of faces forms a stunning composition, and some details of this composition are remarkably beautiful. However, in reflecting on Venice, it’s impossible to pinpoint one’s happiest moments, though as you look back, certain unforgettable experiences come sharply into focus. How can you forget visits to the sacristy of the Frari, no matter how frequent they were, and the great work of John Bellini that treasures that space?
VII
Nothing in Venice is more perfect than this, and we know of no work of art more complete. The picture is in three compartments; the Virgin sits in the central division with her child; two venerable saints, standing close together, occupy each of the others. It is impossible to imagine anything more finished or more ripe. It is one of those things that sum up the genius of a painter, the experience of a life, the teaching of a school. It seems painted with molten gems, which have only been clarified by time, and is as solemn as it is gorgeous and as simple as it is deep. Giovanni Bellini is more or less everywhere in Venice, and, wherever he is, almost certain to be first—first, I mean, in his own line: paints little else than the Madonna and the saints; he has not Carpaccio’s care for human life at large, nor the Tintoret’s nor the of the Veronese. Some of his greater pictures, however, where several figures are clustered together, have a richness of sanctity that is almost profane. There is one of them on the dark side of the room at the Academy that contains Titian’s “Assumption,” which if we could only see it—its position is an inconceivable scandal—would evidently be one of the mightiest of so-called sacred pictures. So too is the Madonna of San Zaccaria, hung in a cold, dim, dreary place, ever so much too high, but so mild and serene, and so grandly disposed and accompanied, that the proper attitude for even the most critical amateur, as he looks at it, strikes one as the bended knee. There is another noble John Bellini, one of the very few in which there is no Virgin, at San Giovanni Crisostomo—a St. Jerome, in a red dress, sitting aloft upon the rocks and with a landscape of extraordinary purity behind him. The absence of the peculiarly erect Madonna makes it an interesting surprise among the works of the painter and gives it a somewhat less strenuous air. But it has brilliant beauty and the St. Jerome is a delightful old personage.
Nothing in Venice is more perfect than this, and we don't know of any artwork that's more complete. The painting has three sections; the Virgin is in the center with her child, while two venerable saints stand closely together in the other sections. It's impossible to imagine anything more polished or more developed. It sums up the genius of a painter, the experience of a lifetime, the teachings of a school. It looks like it's painted with molten gems that have only been refined by time, and it’s as solemn as it is gorgeous and as simple as it is profound. Giovanni Bellini is pretty much everywhere in Venice, and wherever he is, he’s almost always the best—best, I mean, in his own area: he paints mostly the Madonna and the saints; he doesn’t have Carpaccio’s attention to human life in general, nor the styles of Tintoretto or Veronese. However, some of his larger paintings, where several figures are grouped together, have a richness of sanctity that feels almost profane. There’s one of them in the dark corner of the room at the Academy which contains Titian’s “Assumption,” and if we could only see it—its placement is an unbelievable scandal—it would clearly be one of the greatest of so-called sacred paintings. The Madonna of San Zaccaria is also like that, hung in a cold, dim, dreary spot, far too high, but so gentle and serene, and so majestically arranged and accompanied, that the proper response for even the most critical viewer, as he looks at it, seems to be a bent knee. Another beautiful piece by Bellini, one of the very few without a Virgin, is in San Giovanni Crisostomo—a St. Jerome in a red robe, sitting high on the rocks with an incredibly pure landscape behind him. The lack of the typically upright Madonna makes it an interesting surprise among the painter's works and gives it a somewhat less intense vibe. But it has stunning beauty, and St. Jerome is a charming old character.
The same church contains another great picture for which the haunter of these places must find a shrine apart in his memory; one of the most interesting things he will have seen, if not the most brilliant. Nothing appeals more to him than three figures of Venetian ladies which occupy the foreground of a smallish canvas of Sebastian del Piombo, placed above the high altar of San Giovanni Crisostomo. Sebastian was a Venetian by birth, but few of his productions are to be seen in his native place; few indeed are to be seen anywhere. The picture represents the patron-saint of the church, accompanied by other saints and by the worldly votaries I have mentioned. These ladies stand together on the left, holding in their hands little white caskets; two of them are in profile, but the foremost turns her face to the spectator. This face and figure are almost unique among the beautiful things of Venice, and they leave the susceptible observer with the impression of having made, or rather having missed, a strange, a dangerous, but a most valuable, acquaintance. The lady, who is superbly handsome, is the typical Venetian of the sixteenth century, and she remains for the mind the perfect flower of that society. Never was there a greater air of breeding, a deeper expression of tranquil superiority. She walks a goddess—as if she trod without sinking the waves of the Adriatic. It is impossible to conceive a more perfect expression of the aristocratic spirit either in its pride or in its benignity. This magnificent creature is so strong and secure that she is gentle, and so quiet that in comparison all minor assumptions of calmness suggest only a vulgar alarm. But for all this there are depths of possible disorder in her light-coloured eye.
The same church has another amazing painting that the visitor to these places will hold in a special place in their memory; one of the most captivating things they will have seen, if not the most stunning. Nothing resonates more with them than the three figures of Venetian ladies that fill the foreground of a smaller canvas by Sebastian del Piombo, positioned above the high altar of San Giovanni Crisostomo. Sebastian was born in Venice, but few of his works are found in his hometown; in fact, they are scarce anywhere. The painting depicts the patron saint of the church, joined by other saints and the worldly devotees I mentioned earlier. These ladies stand together on the left, holding small white boxes; two of them are in profile, but the one in front turns her face toward the viewer. This face and figure are almost unparalleled among the beautiful sights of Venice, leaving the sensitive observer with a feeling of having made—or rather missed—an unusual, risky, but incredibly valuable acquaintance. The lady, who is stunningly beautiful, represents the typical Venetian woman of the sixteenth century, embodying the ideal of that society. Never has there been a greater sense of sophistication or a deeper expression of quiet superiority. She moves like a goddess—as if she glides across the Adriatic without leaving a trace. It's hard to imagine a more perfect embodiment of aristocratic spirit, whether in its pride or its kindness. This magnificent woman is so confident and poised that her gentleness stands out, while compared to her, all lesser displays of calmness seem merely like lowly anxiety. Yet, beneath this exterior, there are depths of potential turmoil in her light-colored eye.
I had meant however to say nothing about her, for it’s not right to speak of Sebastian when one hasn’t found room for Carpaccio. These visions come to one, and one can neither hold them nor brush them aside. Memories of Carpaccio, the magnificent, the delightful—it’s not for want of such visitations, but only for want of space, that I haven’t said of him what I would. There is little enough need of it for Carpaccio’s sake, his fame being brighter to-day—thanks to the generous lamp Mr. Ruskin has held up to it—than it has ever been. Yet there is something ridiculous in talking of Venice without making him almost the refrain. He and the Tintoret are the two great realists, and it is hard to say which is the more human, the more various. The Tintoret had the mightier temperament, but Carpaccio, who had the advantage of more newness and more responsibility, sailed nearer to perfection. Here and there he quite touches it, as in the enchanting picture, at the Academy, of St. Ursula asleep in her little white bed, in her high clean room, where the angel visits her at dawn; or in the noble St. Jerome in his study at S. Giorgio Schiavoni. This latter work is a pearl of sentiment, and I may add without being fantastic a ruby of colour. It unites the most masterly finish with a kind of universal largeness of feeling, and he who has it well in his memory will never hear the name of Carpaccio without a throb of almost personal affection. Such indeed is the feeling that descends upon you in that wonderful little chapel of St. George of the Slaves, where this most personal and sociable of artists has expressed all the sweetness of his imagination. The place is small and incommodious, the pictures are out of sight and ill-lighted, the custodian is rapacious, the visitors are mutually intolerable, but the shabby little chapel is a palace of art. Mr. Ruskin has written a pamphlet about it which is a real aid to enjoyment, though I can’t but think the generous artist, with his keen senses and his just feeling, would have suffered to hear his eulogist declare that one of his other productions—in the Museo Civico of Palazzo Correr, a delightful portrait of two Venetian ladies with pet animals—is the “finest picture in the world.” It has no need of that to be thought admirable; and what more can a painter desire?
I had intended not to say anything about her, because it’s not fair to talk about Sebastian when there’s no room for Carpaccio. These visions come to us, and we can neither hold onto them nor brush them aside. Memories of Carpaccio, the amazing, the charming—there’s not a lack of such reminders, but only a lack of space, that’s why I haven’t said what I wanted to about him. There’s little need to for Carpaccio's sake, since his fame is brighter today—thanks to the generous light Mr. Ruskin has shed on it—than it’s ever been. Yet there’s something silly about discussing Venice without making him a central part of it. He and Tintoretto are the two great realists, and it’s hard to say which is more human, more varied. Tintoretto had the stronger temperament, but Carpaccio, who had the benefit of being fresher and more responsible, came closer to perfection. Occasionally, he truly touches it, like in the enchanting painting at the Academy of St. Ursula asleep in her small white bed, in her tidy room, where the angel visits her at dawn; or in the noble St. Jerome in his study at S. Giorgio Schiavoni. This latter piece is a gem of sentiment, and I can add without being overdramatic a ruby of color. It combines the most masterful finish with a kind of universal sense of feeling, and anyone who remembers it well will always associate Carpaccio with a feeling of almost personal affection. That’s truly the feeling that washes over you in that wonderful little chapel of St. George of the Slaves, where this most personal and sociable of artists has captured all the sweetness of his imagination. The place is small and cramped, the pictures are hard to see and poorly lit, the caretaker is greedy, the visitors are intolerable to each other, but that shabby little chapel is a palace of art. Mr. Ruskin has written a pamphlet about it that genuinely enhances the experience, although I can’t help but think the kind artist, with his sharp senses and fair feelings, would have been pained to hear his admirer declare that one of his other works—in the Museo Civico of Palazzo Correr, a delightful portrait of two Venetian ladies with their pets—is the “finest picture in the world.” It doesn’t need that to be regarded as admirable; and what more can a painter wish for?
VIII
May in Venice is better than April, but June is best of all. Then the days are hot, but not too hot, and the nights are more beautiful than the days. Then Venice is rosier than ever in the morning and more golden than ever as the day descends. She seems to expand and evaporate, to multiply all her reflections and iridescences. Then the life of her people and the strangeness of her constitution become a perpetual comedy, or at least a perpetual drama. Then the gondola is your sole habitation, and you spend days between sea and sky. You go to the Lido, though the Lido has been spoiled. When I first saw it, in 1869, it was a very natural place, and there was but a rough lane across the little island from the landing-place to the beach. There was a bathing-place in those days, and a restaurant, which was very bad, but where in the warm evenings your dinner didn’t much matter as you sat letting it cool on the wooden terrace that stretched out into the sea. To-day the Lido is a part of united Italy and has been made the victim of villainous improvements. A little cockney village has sprung up on its rural bosom and a third-rate boulevard leads from Santa Elisabetta to the Adriatic. There are bitumen walks and gas-lamps, lodging-houses, shops and a teatro diurno. The bathing-establishment is bigger than before, and the restaurant as well; but it is a compensation perhaps that the cuisine is no better. Such as it is, however, you won’t scorn occasionally to partake of it on the breezy platform under which bathers dart and splash, and which looks out to where the fishing-boats, with sails of orange and crimson, wander along the darkening horizon. The beach at the Lido is still lonely and beautiful, and you can easily walk away from the cockney village. The return to Venice in the sunset is classical and indispensable, and those who at that glowing hour have floated toward the towers that rise out of the lagoon will not easily part with the impression. But you indulge in larger excursions—you go to Burano and Torcello, to Malamocco and Chioggia. Torcello, like the Lido, has been improved; the deeply interesting little cathedral of the eighth century, which stood there on the edge of the sea, as touching in its ruin, with its grassy threshold and its primitive mosaics, as the bleached bones of a human skeleton washed ashore by the tide, has now been restored and made cheerful, and the charm of the place, its strange and suggestive desolation, has well-nigh departed.
May in Venice is better than April, but June is the best of all. The days are warm, but not too warm, and the nights are more beautiful than the days. Venice looks pinker than ever in the morning and more golden as the day fades. She seems to stretch out and shimmer, multiplying all her reflections and colors. The lives of her people and the uniqueness of her character turn into a never-ending comedy, or at least a continual drama. The gondola becomes your only home, and you spend your days between the sea and the sky. You visit the Lido, even though it's been ruined. When I first saw it in 1869, it was a very natural place, with only a rough path across the little island from the landing spot to the beach. Back then, there was a bathing area and a restaurant, which was terrible, but on warm evenings, it didn't matter much as you relaxed, letting your meal cool on the wooden terrace that extended into the sea. Today, the Lido is part of united Italy and has suffered from terrible developments. A little Cockney village has popped up on its rural grounds, and a mediocre boulevard runs from Santa Elisabetta to the Adriatic. There are paved walks and streetlights, boarding houses, shops, and a teatro diurno. The bathing establishment is bigger than before, as is the restaurant; but it’s a small consolation that the food is no better. However, you often won’t refuse to enjoy a meal on the breezy platform where bathers splash around, looking out at the fishing boats with orange and crimson sails drifting along the darkening horizon. The beach at the Lido is still quiet and beautiful, and you can easily walk away from the Cockney village. The return to Venice at sunset is a classic experience that you can’t miss, and those who have floated toward the towers rising from the lagoon during that glowing hour won't easily forget it. But you indulge in bigger adventures—you visit Burano and Torcello, Malamocco, and Chioggia. Like the Lido, Torcello has been developed; the deeply interesting little eighth-century cathedral that stood on the edge of the sea, beautifully touching in its ruin—with its grassy entrance and its primitive mosaics—has been restored and brightened, and the charm of the place, with its strange and evocative desolation, has nearly vanished.
It will still serve you as a pretext, however, for a day on the lagoon, especially as you will disembark at Burano and admire the wonderful fisher-folk, whose good looks—and bad manners, I am sorry to say—can scarcely be exaggerated. Burano is celebrated for the beauty of its women and the rapacity of its children, and it is a fact that though some of the ladies are rather bold about it every one of them shows you a handsome face. The children assail you for coppers, and in their desire to be satisfied pursue your gondola into the sea. Chioggia is a larger Burano, and you carry away from either place a half-sad, half-cynical, but altogether pictorial impression; the impression of bright-coloured hovels, of bathing in stagnant canals, of young girls with faces of a delicate shape and a susceptible expression, with splendid heads of hair and complexions smeared with powder, faded yellow shawls that hang like old Greek draperies, and little wooden shoes that click as they go up and down the steps of the convex bridges; of brown-cheeked matrons with lustrous tresses and high tempers, massive throats encased with gold beads, and eyes that meet your own with a certain traditional defiance. The men throughout the islands of Venice are almost as handsome as the women; I have never seen so many good-looking rascals. At Burano and Chioggia they sit mending their nets, or lounge at the street corners, where conversation is always high-pitched, or clamour to you to take a boat; and everywhere they decorate the scene with their splendid colour—cheeks and throats as richly brown as the sails of their fishing-smacks—their sea-faded tatters which are always a “costume,” their soft Venetian jargon, and the gallantry with which they wear their hats, an article that nowhere sits so well as on a mass of dense Venetian curls. If you are happy you will find yourself, after a June day in Venice (about ten o’clock), on a balcony that overhangs the Grand Canal, with your elbows on the broad ledge, a cigarette in your teeth and a little good company beside you. The gondolas pass beneath, the watery surface gleams here and there from their lamps, some of which are coloured lanterns that move mysteriously in the darkness. There are some evenings in June when there are too many gondolas, too many lanterns, too many serenades in front of the hotels. The serenading in particular is overdone; but on such a balcony as I speak of you needn’t suffer from it, for in the apartment behind you—an accessible refuge—there is more good company, there are more cigarettes. If you are wise you will step back there presently.
It will still give you a reason for a day on the lagoon, especially since you'll get off at Burano and enjoy the lovely fishermen and women, whose looks—and, I regret to say, rude behavior—are hard to exaggerate. Burano is famous for its beautiful women and the boldness of its children, and it’s true that while some of the ladies can be quite forward, each of them has a striking face. The kids swarm you for change, and they chase your gondola into the sea, determined to get what they want. Chioggia is like a bigger version of Burano, leaving you with a bittersweet, somewhat cynical, but entirely picturesque impression; you’ll see brightly colored huts, people swimming in stagnant canals, young girls with delicate features and expressive faces, stunning hair and powdered complexions, faded yellow shawls draped like ancient Greek fabrics, and little wooden shoes that click as they navigate the steps of the arched bridges; there are brown-skinned mothers with shiny hair and strong tempers, gold beads around their necks, and eyes that meet yours with a traditional defiance. The men across the islands of Venice are nearly as attractive as the women; I’ve never seen so many charming rascals. In Burano and Chioggia, they mend their nets or hang out on street corners, where conversations are always loud, or they call out to you to take a boat; and everywhere they bring vibrant color to the scene—cheeks and necks as rich and brown as the sails of their fishing boats—their sun-bleached rags that are always “costumes,” their soft Venetian slang, and the way they stylishly wear their hats, which look best perched atop a head full of thick Venetian curls. If you’re lucky, after a June day in Venice (around ten o’clock), you’ll find yourself on a balcony that overlooks the Grand Canal, resting your elbows on the wide ledge, a cigarette in your mouth, and good company beside you. Gondolas glide by below, the water glimmering from their lamps, some of which are colorful lanterns that sway mysteriously in the darkness. Some June evenings have too many gondolas, too many lanterns, and too many serenades in front of the hotels. The serenading, in particular, can be excessive; but on that kind of balcony, you won’t have to endure it, because in the apartment behind you—a welcome escape—there's more good company and plenty of cigarettes. If you’re smart, you’ll step back there soon.
1882.
THE GRAND CANAL
The honour of representing the plan and the place at their best might perhaps appear, in the City of St. Mark, properly to belong to the splendid square which bears the patron’s name and which is the centre of Venetian life so far (this is pretty well all the way indeed) as Venetian life is a matter of strolling and chaffering, of gossiping and gaping, of circulating without a purpose, and of staring—too often with a foolish one—through the shop-windows of dealers whose hospitality makes their doorsteps dramatic, at the very vulgarest rubbish in all the modern market. If the Grand Canal, however, is not quite technically a “street,” the perverted Piazza is perhaps even less normal; and I hasten to add that I am glad not to find myself studying my subject under the international arcades, or yet (I will go the length of saying) in the solemn presence of the church. For indeed in that case I foresee I should become still more confoundingly conscious of the stumbling-block that inevitably, even with his first few words, crops up in the path of the lover of Venice who rashly addresses himself to expression. “Venetian life” is a mere literary convention, though it be an indispensable figure. The words have played an effective part in the literature of sensibility; they constituted thirty years ago the title of Mr. Howells’s delightful volume of impressions; but in using them to-day one owes some frank amends to one’s own lucidity. Let me carefully premise therefore that so often as they shall again drop from my pen, so often shall I beg to be regarded as systematically superficial.
The honor of showcasing the plan and the place at their best might seem, in the City of St. Mark, to properly belong to the magnificent square that carries the patron's name and serves as the heart of Venetian life. This life mostly revolves around strolling and haggling, gossiping and gawking, wandering aimlessly, and staring—too often without purpose—through shop windows filled with the most mundane goods offered by dealers whose welcoming doorsteps add flair, showcasing the lowest-quality products in today’s market. If the Grand Canal isn’t exactly a “street,” the distorted Piazza may be even less conventional; I should add that I’m relieved not to be studying my subject under the busy arcades or, dare I say, in the solemn presence of the church. In that scenario, I can easily see myself becoming overly aware of the stumbling block that inevitably arises for anyone enchanted by Venice who dares to express it. “Venetian life” is just a literary convention, even if it’s an essential one. These words have played a powerful role in sensitive literature; they were the title of Mr. Howells’s charming volume of impressions thirty years ago. However, when using them today, I must be clear about my intent. So, I want to make it clear that every time these words slip from my pen, I ask to be seen as purposefully superficial.
Venetian life, in the large old sense, has long since come to an end, and the essential present character of the most melancholy of cities resides simply in its being the most beautiful of tombs. Nowhere else has the past been laid to rest with such tenderness, such a sadness of resignation and remembrance. Nowhere else is the present so alien, so discontinuous, so like a crowd in a cemetery without garlands for the graves. It has no flowers in its hands, but, as a compensation perhaps—and the thing is doubtless more to the point—it has money and little red books. The everlasting shuffle of these irresponsible visitors in the Piazza is contemporary Venetian life. Everything else is only a reverberation of that. The vast mausoleum has a turnstile at the door, and a functionary in a shabby uniform lets you in, as per tariff, to see how dead it is. From this constatation, this cold curiosity, proceed all the industry, the prosperity, the vitality of the place. The shopkeepers and gondoliers, the beggars and the models, depend upon it for a living; they are the custodians and the ushers of the great museum—they are even themselves to a certain extent the objects of exhibition. It is in the wide vestibule of the square that the polygot pilgrims gather most densely; Piazza San Marco is the lobby of the opera in the intervals of the performance. The present fortune of Venice, the lamentable difference, is most easily measured there, and that is why, in the effort to resist our pessimism, we must turn away both from the purchasers and from the vendors of ricordi. The ricordi that we prefer are gathered best where the gondola glides—best of all on the noble waterway that begins in its glory at the Salute and ends in its abasement at the railway station. It is, however, the cockneyfied Piazzetta (forgive me, shade of St. Theodore—has not a brand new café begun to glare there, electrically, this very year?) that introduces us most directly to the great picture by which the Grand Canal works its first spell, and to which a thousand artists, not always with a talent apiece, have paid their tribute. We pass into the Piazzetta to look down the great throat, as it were, of Venice, and the vision must console us for turning our back on St. Mark’s.
Venetian life, in its traditional sense, has long been over, and the true nature of this saddest of cities lies in it being the most beautiful of tombs. Nowhere else has the past been laid to rest with such care, with a sadness of acceptance and memory. Nowhere is the present so foreign, so fragmented, so much like a crowd in a cemetery without flowers for the graves. It has no blossoms in its hands, but perhaps as a trade-off—and this is probably more accurate—it has money and little red books. The endless shuffle of these indifferent tourists in the Piazza represents contemporary Venetian life. Everything else is just an echo of that. The vast mausoleum has a turnstile at the entrance, and an attendant in a worn uniform lets you in, for a fee, to see just how lifeless it is. From this observation, this cold curiosity, all the hustle, the prosperity, and the energy of the place arise. The shopkeepers and gondoliers, the beggars and models, all rely on it for their livelihood; they are the keepers and guides of the grand museum—they are even to some extent exhibits themselves. It is in the large lobby of the square that the diverse tourists gather most densely; Piazza San Marco is the lobby of the opera during intermissions. The current state of Venice, the unfortunate contrast, is easiest to gauge there, and that's why, in our struggle against pessimism, we must look away from both the buyers and sellers of souvenirs. The souvenirs we prefer are best gathered where the gondola glides—especially on the stunning waterway that starts gloriously at the Salute and ends disappointingly at the railway station. However, it is the gaudy Piazzetta (forgive me, spirit of St. Theodore—hasn't a brand new café started to shine there, electrically, this very year?) that brings us most directly to the magnificent view that the Grand Canal first casts its spell with, to which countless artists, not always equally talented, have paid their homage. We enter the Piazzetta to gaze down the grand throat, so to speak, of Venice, and this sight must comfort us for turning our backs on St. Mark’s.
We have been treated to it again and again, of course, even if we have never stirred from home; but that is only a reason the more for catching at any freshness that may be left in the world of photography. It is in Venice above all that we hear the small buzz of this vulgarising voice of the familiar; yet perhaps it is in Venice too that the picturesque fact has best mastered the pious secret of how to wait for us. Even the classic Salute waits like some great lady on the threshold of her saloon. She is more ample and serene, more seated at her door, than all the copyists have told us, with her domes and scrolls, her scolloped buttresses and statues forming a pompous crown, and her wide steps disposed on the ground like the train of a robe. This fine air of the woman of the world is carried out by the well-bred assurance with which she looks in the direction of her old-fashioned Byzantine neighbour; and the juxtaposition of two churches so distinguished and so different, each splendid in its sort, is a sufficient mark of the scale and range of Venice. However, we ourselves are looking away from St. Mark’s—we must blind our eyes to that dazzle; without it indeed there are brightnesses and fascinations enough. We see them in abundance even while we look away from the shady steps of the Salute. These steps are cool in the morning, yet I don’t know that I can justify my excessive fondness for them any better than I can explain a hundred of the other vague infatuations with which Venice sophisticates the spirit. Under such an influence fortunately one need n’t explain—it keeps account of nothing but perceptions and affections. It is from the Salute steps perhaps, of a summer morning, that this view of the open mouth of the city is most brilliantly amusing. The whole thing composes as if composition were the chief end of human institutions. The charming architectural promontory of the Dogana stretches out the most graceful of arms, balancing in its hand the gilded globe on which revolves the delightful satirical figure of a little weathercock of a woman. This Fortune, this Navigation, or whatever she is called—she surely needs no name—catches the wind in the bit of drapery of which she has divested her rotary bronze loveliness. On the other side of the Canal twinkles and glitters the long row of the happy palaces which are mainly expensive hotels. There is a little of everything everywhere, in the bright Venetian air, but to these houses belongs especially the appearance of sitting, across the water, at the receipt of custom, of watching in their hypocritical loveliness for the stranger and the victim. I call them happy, because even their sordid uses and their vulgar signs melt somehow, with their vague sea-stained pinks and drabs, into that strange gaiety of light and colour which is made up of the reflection of superannuated things. The atmosphere plays over them like a laugh, they are of the essence of the sad old joke. They are almost as charming from other places as they are from their own balconies, and share fully in that universal privilege of Venetian objects which consists of being both the picture and the point of view.
We've experienced it over and over again, even if we've never left home; but that just makes it more essential to seize any freshness still left in the world of photography. In Venice, especially, we hear the low buzz of this familiar voice becoming commonplace; yet perhaps it’s here that picturesque scenes have truly mastered the sacred art of waiting for us. The classic Salute stands like a grand lady at the entrance to her salon. She appears more generous and calm, more settled at her door, than all the copyists have described, with her domes and scrolls, her decorative buttresses and statues forming a grand crown, and her wide steps lying on the ground like the train of a gown. This refined demeanor is highlighted by the confidence with which she faces her old-fashioned Byzantine neighbor; the contrast between these two distinguished and different churches, each magnificent in its own way, highlights the scale and diversity of Venice. However, we ourselves are turning away from St. Mark's—we have to shield our eyes from that brightness; without it, there are certainly enough lights and charms. We see them in abundance even while looking away from the cool steps of the Salute. These steps are refreshing in the morning, though I can't say why I'm so fond of them any more than I can explain many of the other vague attractions that Venice stirs in one's soul. Fortunately, under such influence, one doesn't need to explain—it only accounts for perceptions and emotions. Perhaps it’s from the Salute steps on a summer morning that this view of the city's open mouth is most brilliantly entertaining. Everything comes together as if composition were the main goal of human endeavors. The charming architectural promontory of the Dogana extends the most graceful arms, holding in its hand the gilded globe that spins a delightful, satirical figure of a little weathercock of a woman. This Fortune, this Navigation, or whatever she's called—she hardly needs a name—catches the wind in the piece of drapery she has shed from her rotating bronze elegance. On the other side of the Canal sparkles the long line of cheerful palaces, mostly high-end hotels. There’s a little bit of everything everywhere in the bright Venetian air, but these houses particularly give off a vibe of sitting across the water, waiting for customs, pretending their lovely exteriors are watching for strangers and victims. I call them happy because, even with their sordid purposes and tacky signs, they somehow blend into that strange joy of light and color, made up of the reflection of aged things. The atmosphere dances around them like laughter; they embody the essence of the old sad joke. They’re almost as charming from other spots as they are from their own balconies, sharing fully in that universal privilege of Venetian sights that consist of being both the picture and the viewpoint.
This double character, which is particularly strong in the Grand Canal, adds a difficulty to any control of one’s notes. The Grand Canal may be practically, as in impression, the cushioned balcony of a high and well-loved palace—the memory of irresistible evenings, of the sociable elbow, of endless lingering and looking; or it may evoke the restlessness of a fresh curiosity, of methodical inquiry, in a gondola piled with references. There are no references, I ought to mention, in the present remarks, which sacrifice to accident, not to completeness. A rhapsody of Venice is always in order, but I think the catalogues are finished. I should not attempt to write here the names of all the palaces, even if the number of those I find myself able to remember in the immense array were less insignificant. There are many I delight in that I don’t know, or at least don’t keep, apart. Then there are the bad reasons for preference that are better than the good, and all the sweet bribery of association and recollection. These things, as one stands on the Salute steps, are so many delicate fingers to pick straight out of the row a dear little featureless house which, with its pale green shutters, looks straight across at the great door and through the very keyhole, as it were, of the church, and which I needn’t call by a name—a pleasant American name—that every one in Venice, these many years, has had on grateful lips. It is the very friendliest house in all the wide world, and it has, as it deserves to have, the most beautiful position. It is a real porto di mare, as the gondoliers say—a port within a port; it sees everything that comes and goes, and takes it all in with practised eyes. Not a tint or a hint of the immense iridescence is lost upon it, and there are days of exquisite colour on which it may fancy itself the heart of the wonderful prism. We wave to it from the Salute steps, which we must decidedly leave if we wish to get on, a grateful hand across the water, and turn into the big white church of Longhena—an empty shaft beneath a perfunctory dome—where an American family and a German party, huddled in a corner upon a pair of benches, are gazing, with a conscientiousness worthy of a better cause, at nothing in particular.
This dual nature, especially prominent in the Grand Canal, complicates any effort to keep track of one's thoughts. The Grand Canal can feel like, in essence, the plush balcony of a beloved palace—filled with memories of irresistible evenings, friendly conversations, and endless moments of contemplation; or it can stir a fresh curiosity, a methodical exploration, in a gondola stacked with references. I should mention that there are no references in these observations, which lean more on chance than completeness. A tribute to Venice is always welcome, but I believe the lists are complete. I wouldn’t try to write down all the palace names, even if the quantity I can remember from the vast selection were less trivial. There are many I cherish that I don't know, or at least don’t keep apart. Then there are the questionable reasons for preference that are better than the justifiable ones, along with all the sweet nostalgia tied to memories. These elements, as you stand on the Salute steps, are like delicate fingers picking out a dear little featureless house, which, with its pale green shutters, gazes directly across at the grand door and through the very keyhole of the church, so to speak, and which I needn’t name—a charming American name that everyone in Venice has had on appreciative lips for many years. It is the friendliest house in the entire world, and it rightfully enjoys the most beautiful location. It is a true porto di mare, as the gondoliers say—a port within a port; it watches everything that arrives and departs, absorbing it all with practiced awareness. Not a shade or glimmer of the vast iridescence escapes its notice, and there are days of exquisite color when it might imagine itself the heart of the amazing prism. We wave to it from the Salute steps, which we really must leave if we wish to move on, a grateful hand across the water, before heading into the large white church of Longhena—an empty shaft beneath a routine dome—where an American family and a German group, huddled in a corner on a couple of benches, stare, with a diligence worthy of a better cause, at nothing in particular.
For there is nothing particular in this cold and conventional temple to gaze at save the great Tintoretto of the sacristy, to which we quickly pay our respects, and which we are glad to have for ten minutes to ourselves. The picture, though full of beauty, is not the finest of the master’s; but it serves again as well as another to transport—there is no other word—those of his lovers for whom, in far-away days when Venice was an early rapture, this strange and mystifying painter was almost the supreme revelation. The plastic arts may have less to say to us than in the hungry years of youth, and the celebrated picture in general be more of a blank; but more than the others any fine Tintoret still carries us back, calling up not only the rich particular vision but the freshness of the old wonder. Many things come and go, but this great artist remains for us in Venice a part of the company of the mind. The others are there in their obvious glory, but he is the only one for whom the imagination, in our expressive modern phrase, sits up. “The Marriage in Cana,” at the Salute, has all his characteristic and fascinating unexpectedness—the sacrifice of the figure of our Lord, who is reduced to the mere final point of a clever perspective, and the free, joyous presentation of all the other elements of the feast. Why, in spite of this queer one-sidedness, does the picture give us no impression of a lack of what the critics call reverence? For no other reason that I can think of than because it happens to be the work of its author, in whose very mistakes there is a singular wisdom. Mr. Ruskin has spoken with sufficient eloquence of the serious loveliness of the row of heads of the women on the right, who talk to each other as they sit at the foreshortened banquet. There could be no better example of the roving independence of the painter’s vision, a real spirit of adventure for which his subject was always a cluster of accidents; not an obvious order, but a sort of peopled and agitated chapter of life, in which the figures are submissive pictorial notes. These notes are all there in their beauty and heterogeneity, and if the abundance is of a kind to make the principle of selection seem in comparison timid, yet the sense of “composition” in the spectator—if it happen to exist—reaches out to the painter in peculiar sympathy. Dull must be the spirit of the worker tormented in any field of art with that particular question who is not moved to recognise in the eternal problem the high fellowship of Tintoretto.
This cold and conventional church doesn’t offer much to look at besides the great Tintoretto in the sacristy, which we quickly visit and are glad to have all to ourselves for ten minutes. The painting, while beautiful, isn't his best work; but it still has the power to transport—there's really no other word for it—those who admire him, reminding us of the days when Venice was a source of early enchantment and this strange, enigmatic artist was nearly a supreme revelation. The visual arts may resonate less with us than they did during our hungry youth, and the famous painting might seem more like a blank canvas; yet, any fine Tintoretto still takes us back, reviving not just the rich, specific vision but also the freshness of the old wonder. Many things come and go, but this great artist remains a part of our mental landscape in Venice. The others are there in their obvious glory, but he is the only one that truly stirs our imagination in our expressive modern way. “The Marriage at Cana” at the Salute is filled with his characteristic and fascinating surprises—the way the figure of our Lord is reduced to a simple endpoint in a clever perspective, while everything else about the feast is presented freely and joyfully. Why, despite this odd imbalance, does the painting not come across as lacking what critics call reverence? I can only assume it's because it’s created by its author, who infuses even his mistakes with a unique wisdom. Mr. Ruskin has eloquently praised the serious beauty of the row of women’s heads on the right, who chat as they sit at the shortened banquet. This is a perfect example of the painter's independent vision, a real spirit of adventure where his subject is often a collection of accidents—not an obvious arrangement, but rather a lively and populated chapter of life, where the figures act as subordinate visual notes. These notes are present in their beauty and variety, and while the abundance might make the principle of selection seem timid by comparison, the sense of "composition" in the viewer—if it exists—reaches out to the painter in a unique way. It takes a dull spirit for any artist tormented by that enduring question not to feel a kinship with the profound fellowship of Tintoretto.
If the long reach from this point to the deplorable iron bridge which discharges the pedestrian at the Academy—or, more comprehensively, to the painted and gilded Gothic of the noble Palazzo Foscari—is too much of a curve to be seen at any one point as a whole, it represents the better the arched neck, as it were, of the undulating serpent of which the Canalazzo has the likeness. We pass a dozen historic houses, we note in our passage a hundred component “bits,” with the baffled sketcher’s sense, and with what would doubtless be, save for our intensely Venetian fatalism, the baffled sketcher’s temper. It is the early palaces, of course, and also, to be fair, some of the late, if we could take them one by one, that give the Canal the best of its grand air. The fairest are often cheek-by-jowl with the foulest, and there are few, alas, so fair as to have been completely protected by their beauty. The ages and the generations have worked their will on them, and the wind and the weather have had much to say; but disfigured and dishonoured as they are, with the bruises of their marbles and the patience of their ruin, there is nothing like them in the world, and the long succession of their faded, conscious faces makes of the quiet waterway they overhang a promenade historique of which the lesson, however often we read it, gives, in the depth of its interest, an incomparable dignity to Venice. We read it in the Romanesque arches, crooked to-day in their very curves, of the early middle-age, in the exquisite individual Gothic of the splendid time, and in the cornices and columns of a decadence almost as proud. These things at present are almost equally touching in their good faith; they have each in their degree so effectually parted with their pride. They have lived on as they could and lasted as they might, and we hold them to no account of their infirmities, for even those of them whose blank eyes to-day meet criticism with most submission are far less vulgar than the uses we have mainly managed to put them to. We have botched them and patched them and covered them with sordid signs; we have restored and improved them with a merciless taste, and the best of them we have made over to the pedlars. Some of the most striking objects in the finest vistas at present are the huge advertisements of the curiosity-shops.
If the long distance from here to the sad iron bridge that leads pedestrians to the Academy—or, more broadly, to the painted and gilded Gothic of the grand Palazzo Foscari—is too much of a curve to be seen in its entirety at any one spot, it better represents the arched neck, so to speak, of the undulating serpent that resembles the Canalazzo. We pass a dozen historic houses, noticing a hundred individual “bits” along the way, with the confused perspective of a sketch artist, and what would surely be, if it weren't for our distinctly Venetian acceptance of fate, the frustrated temper of a sketch artist. It’s the early palaces, of course, and to be fair, some of the later ones too, if we could examine them one by one, that give the Canal its majestic character. The most beautiful are often right next to the ugliest, and sadly, few are so beautiful that their charm completely shields them. Time and generations have taken their toll, and wind and weather have had their say; but despite being disfigured and dishonored with the scars of their marble and the endurance of their decay, there’s nothing like them in the world, and the long line of their faded, aware faces transforms the quiet waterway they overlook into a promenade historique whose lessons, no matter how often we revisit them, impart an unmatched dignity to Venice due to their profound interest. We read it in the Romanesque arches, now twisted in their very curves, from the early Middle Ages, in the exquisite individual Gothic from a splendid era, and in the cornices and columns of a decline that was almost as distinguished. These elements today are equally poignant in their sincerity; they have each in their way effectively shed their pride. They have survived as best they could and endured as long as they might, and we don’t hold them accountable for their flaws, for even those amongst them whose blank eyes today face criticism most meekly are far less ordinary than the ways we've largely used them. We’ve butchered, patched, and covered them with tacky signs; we've restored and “improved” them with ruthless taste, and the best of them we have handed over to the vendors. Some of the most eye-catching elements in the most beautiful views today are the massive ads for curiosity shops.
The antiquity-mongers in Venice have all the courage of their opinion, and it is easy to see how well they know they can confound you with an unanswerable question. What is the whole place but a curiosity-shop, and what are you here for yourself but to pick up odds and ends? “We pick them up for you,” say these honest Jews, whose prices are marked in dollars, “and who shall blame us if, the flowers being pretty well plucked, we add an artificial rose or two to the composition of the bouquet?” They take care, in a word, that there be plenty of relics, and their establishments are huge and active. They administer the antidote to pedantry, and you can complain of them only if you never cross their thresholds. If you take this step you are lost, for you have parted with the correctness of your attitude. Venice becomes frankly from such a moment the big depressing dazzling joke in which after all our sense of her contradictions sinks to rest—the grimace of an over-strained philosophy. It’s rather a comfort, for the curiosity-shops are amusing. You have bad moments indeed as you stand in their halls of humbug and, in the intervals of haggling, hear through the high windows the soft splash of the sea on the old water-steps, for you think with anger of the noble homes that are laid waste in such scenes, of the delicate lives that must have been, that might still be, led there. You reconstruct the admirable house according to your own needs; leaning on a back balcony, you drop your eyes into one of the little green gardens with which, for the most part, such establishments are exasperatingly blessed, and end by feeling it a shame that you yourself are not in possession. (I take for granted, of course, that as you go and come you are, in imagination, perpetually lodging yourself and setting up your gods; for if this innocent pastime, this borrowing of the mind, be not your favourite sport there is a flaw in the appeal that Venice makes to you.) There may be happy cases in which your envy is tempered, or perhaps I should rather say intensified, by real participation. If you have had the good fortune to enjoy the hospitality of an old Venetian home and to lead your life a little in the painted chambers that still echo with one of the historic names, you have entered by the shortest step into the inner spirit of the place. If it did n’t savour of treachery to private kindness I should like to speak frankly of one of these delightful, even though alienated, structures, to refer to it as a splendid example of the old palatial type. But I can only do so in passing, with a hundred precautions, and, lifting the curtain at the edge, drop a commemorative word on the success with which, in this particularly happy instance, the cosmopolite habit, the modern sympathy, the intelligent, flexible attitude, the latest fruit of time, adjust themselves to the great gilded, relinquished shell and try to fill it out. A Venetian palace that has not too grossly suffered and that is not overwhelming by its mass makes almost any life graceful that may be led in it. With cultivated and generous contemporary ways it reveals a pre-established harmony. As you live in it day after day its beauty and its interest sink more deeply into your spirit; it has its moods and its hours and its mystic voices and its shifting expressions. If in the absence of its masters you have happened to have it to yourself for twenty-four hours you will never forget the charm of its haunted stillness, late on the summer afternoon for instance, when the call of playing children comes in behind from the campo, nor the way the old ghosts seemed to pass on tip-toe on the marble floors. It gives you practically the essence of the matter that we are considering, for beneath the high balconies Venice comes and goes, and the particular stretch you command contains all the characteristics. Everything has its turn, from the heavy barges of merchandise, pushed by long poles and the patient shoulder, to the floating pavilions of the great serenades, and you may study at your leisure the admirable Venetian arts of managing a boat and organising a spectacle. Of the beautiful free stroke with which the gondola, especially when there are two oars, is impelled, you never, in the Venetian scene, grow weary; it is always in the picture, and the large profiled action that lets the standing rowers throw themselves forward to a constant recovery has the double value of being, at the fag-end of greatness, the only energetic note. The people from the hotels are always afloat, and, at the hotel pace, the solitary gondolier (like the solitary horseman of the old-fashioned novel) is, I confess, a somewhat melancholy figure. Perched on his poop without a mate, he re-enacts perpetually, in high relief, with his toes turned out, the comedy of his odd and charming movement. He always has a little the look of an absent-minded nursery-maid pushing her small charges in a perambulator.
The antique dealers in Venice are as confident in their opinions as they come, and it’s clear they know how to stump you with an unanswerable question. What is the entire place but a curiosity shop, and what are you here for if not to collect odds and ends? “We gather them for you,” say these honest sellers, whose prices are listed in dollars, “and who can blame us if, the good stuff being mostly gone, we add a fake rose or two to the bouquet?” They make sure there are plenty of relics, and their shops are huge and bustling. They provide relief from snobbery, and you can only complain about them if you never step through their doors. Once you do, you're lost, because you've given up your previous stance. From that moment on, Venice becomes the big, overwhelming punchline that highlights all our sense of her contradictions—a grimace of an overstretched philosophy. It’s oddly comforting, since the curiosity shops are entertaining. You definitely have rough moments standing in their halls of nonsense, and in the gaps between haggling, you hear the gentle splash of the sea against the old steps outside through the high windows. You feel anger thinking about the grand homes destroyed in such scenes, and the delicate lives that must have existed there, and might still exist. You reimagine the beautiful house to fit your own needs; leaning on a back balcony, you gaze into one of the little green gardens that these shops seem annoyingly blessed with, and end up feeling ashamed that you don’t own it. (I assume, of course, that as you come and go, you’re constantly imagining yourself living there and creating your own world; if this innocent pastime, this mental borrowing, isn't your favorite hobby, then there’s something off about your attraction to Venice.) There may be fortunate situations where your envy is softened—or perhaps I should say heightened—by real involvement. If you’ve had the good luck to experience the hospitality of an old Venetian home and to spend some time in the beautifully painted rooms that still carry one of the historical names, you’ve taken the quickest route to understanding the true essence of the place. If it didn’t seem unfair to personal goodwill, I’d love to speak openly about one of these lovely, even though somewhat distant, buildings and refer to it as a stunning example of the old palatial style. But I can only mention it briefly, with many precautions, and, lifting a corner of the curtain, I’ll drop a quick word on how well, in this particularly happy case, the cosmopolitan habits, modern empathy, flexible attitudes, and the latest fruits of time adapt to the grand, gilded, empty shell and try to fill it out. A Venetian palace that hasn’t been too badly damaged and isn’t overwhelmingly massive makes almost any life within it graceful. With cultivated and generous contemporary manners, it reveals a pre-existing harmony. Living in it day after day deepens your appreciation for its beauty and intrigue; it has its moods, hours, mystic whispers, and ever-shifting expressions. If you happen to have it all to yourself for twenty-four hours while its owners are absent, you’ll never forget the charm of its ghostly stillness, like on a summer afternoon when the sounds of playing children come softly from the campo, or the way the old ghosts seem to glide silently across the marble floors. It gives you practically the essence of what we’re considering, for beneath the high balconies, Venice ebbs and flows, and the specific stretch you can see encompasses all its traits. Everything takes its turn, from the heavy goods barges pushed by long poles and tireless shoulders to the floating stages of grand serenades, and you can study at your leisure the remarkable Venetian arts of boat handling and spectacle organizing. You never tire of the beautiful, fluid stroke with which the gondola, especially when rowed with two oars, moves; it’s always a part of the scene, and the broad, striking motion that allows the standing rowers to lean forward for a constant recovery adds a unique energy to the waning grandeur. People from the hotels are always out on the water, and, moving at the pace of hotel life, the solitary gondolier (like the lone horseman from an old novel) is, I admit, somewhat of a melancholic sight. Perched alone at the back, he perpetually performs, in bold relief and with his toes turned out, the comedy of his quirky and charming strokes. He always looks a bit like a distracted nanny pushing her little charges in a stroller.
But why should I risk too free a comparison, where this picturesque and amiable class are concerned? I delight in their sun-burnt complexions and their childish dialect; I know them only by their merits, and I am grossly prejudiced in their favour. They are interesting and touching, and alike in their virtues and their defects human nature is simplified as with a big effective brush. Affecting above all is their dependence on the stranger, the whimsical stranger who swims out of their ken, yet whom Providence sometimes restores. The best of them at any rate are in their line great artists. On the swarming feast-days, on the strange feast-night of the Redentore, their steering is a miracle of ease. The master-hands, the celebrities and winners of prizes—you may see them on the private gondolas in spotless white, with brilliant sashes and ribbons, and often with very handsome persons—take the right of way with a pardonable insolence. They penetrate the crush of boats with an authority of their own. The crush of boats, the universal sociable bumping and squeezing, is great when, on the summer nights, the ladies shriek with alarm, the city pays the fiddlers, and the illuminated barges, scattering music and song, lead a long train down the Canal. The barges used to be rowed in rhythmic strokes, but now they are towed by the steamer. The coloured lamps, the vocalists before the hotels, are not to my sense the greatest seduction of Venice; but it would be an uncandid sketch of the Canalazzo that shouldn’t touch them with indulgence. Taking one nuisance with another, they are probably the prettiest in the world, and if they have in general more magic for the new arrival than for the old Venice-lover, they in any case, at their best, keep up the immemorial tradition. The Venetians have had from the beginning of time the pride of their processions and spectacles, and it’s a wonder how with empty pockets they still make a clever show. The Carnival is dead, but these are the scraps of its inheritance. Vauxhall on the water is of course more Vauxhall than ever, with the good fortune of home-made music and of a mirror that reduplicates and multiplies. The feast of the Redeemer—the great popular feast of the year—is a wonderful Venetian Vauxhall. All Venice on this occasion takes to the boats for the night and loads them with lamps and provisions. Wedged together in a mass it sups and sings; every boat is a floating arbour, a private café-concert. Of all Christian commemorations it is the most ingenuously and harmlessly pagan. Toward morning the passengers repair to the Lido, where, as the sun rises, they plunge, still sociably, into the sea. The night of the Redentore has been described, but it would be interesting to have an account, from the domestic point of view, of its usual morrow. It is mainly an affair of the Giudecca, however, which is bridged over from the Zattere to the great church. The pontoons are laid together during the day—it is all done with extraordinary celerity and art—and the bridge is prolonged across the Canalazzo (to Santa Maria Zobenigo), which is my only warrant for glancing at the occasion. We glance at it from our palace windows; lengthening our necks a little, as we look up toward the Salute, we see all Venice, on the July afternoon, so serried as to move slowly, pour across the temporary footway. It is a flock of very good children, and the bridged Canal is their toy. All Venice on such occasions is gentle and friendly; not even all Venice pushes anyone into the water.
But why should I risk making an overly generous comparison regarding this picturesque and charming group? I love their sun-tanned skin and childlike way of speaking; I know them only by their good qualities, and I am quite biased in their favor. They are both interesting and moving, and in both their strengths and weaknesses, human nature feels simplified, like it’s been painted with a broad, effective brush. What’s especially touching is their reliance on the outsider, the quirky stranger who comes from outside their world, yet whom fate sometimes brings back. The best among them are truly talented artists. During the bustling feast days, especially on the unique night of the Redentore, their steering is nothing short of miraculous. The masters, the famous names and prizewinners—you can see them in private gondolas, gleaming white, adorned with vibrant sashes and ribbons, often accompanied by very attractive companions—they move with an excusable arrogance. They navigate through the crowded boats with their own brand of authority. The chaos of boats, the collective friendly bumping and squeezing, is intense when, on summer nights, the ladies scream in fright, the city pays the musicians, and the illuminated barges, filled with music and song, create a long procession down the Canal. Barges used to be rowed with rhythmic strokes, but now they’re pulled by a steamer. The colorful lights and singers in front of the hotels aren’t, in my opinion, the biggest charm of Venice; but it wouldn’t be fair to depict the Canalazzo without acknowledging them favorably. Taking one nuisance with another, they’re probably the prettiest in the world, and while they generally enchant newcomers more than longtime Venice lovers, they still maintain age-old traditions at their best. The Venetians have always taken pride in their parades and spectacles, and it’s amazing how, despite being short on funds, they still manage to put on a clever show. The Carnival may be over, but these are the remnants of its legacy. Vauxhall on the water is, of course, more Vauxhall than ever, blessed with homemade music and reflections that amplify the scene. The feast of the Redeemer—the biggest popular celebration of the year—is a spectacular Venetian Vauxhall. On this occasion, all of Venice takes to the boats for the night, filling them with lights and supplies. Packed together, they eat and sing; every boat turns into a floating garden, a private café-concert. Of all Christian celebrations, it’s the most innocently and harmlessly pagan. As dawn approaches, the passengers head to the Lido, where, as the sun rises, they dive into the sea, still in good company. The night of the Redentore has been described, but it would be fascinating to get a domestic perspective on the usual aftermath. However, it mainly involves the Giudecca, which connects from the Zattere to the grand church. The pontoons are assembled during the day—done with remarkable speed and skill—and the bridge extends across the Canalazzo (to Santa Maria Zobenigo), which is my only reason for mentioning the occasion. We observe from our palace windows; stretching our necks a bit, as we gaze toward the Salute, we see all of Venice, on that July afternoon, so tightly packed that it moves slowly, crossing the temporary walkway. It’s a delightful crowd, and the bridged Canal is their playground. On such occasions, Venice is gentle and friendly; even Venice doesn’t shove anyone into the water.
But from the same high windows we catch without any stretching of the neck a still more indispensable note in the picture, a famous pretender eating the bread of bitterness. This repast is served in the open air, on a neat little terrace, by attendants in livery, and there is no indiscretion in our seeing that the pretender dines. Ever since the table d’hôte in “Candide” Venice has been the refuge of monarchs in want of thrones—she would n’t know herself without her rois en exil. The exile is agreeable and soothing, the gondola lets them down gently. Its movement is an anodyne, its silence a philtre, and little by little it rocks all ambitions to sleep. The proscript has plenty of leisure to write his proclamations and even his memoirs, and I believe he has organs in which they are published; but the only noise he makes in the world is the harmless splash of his oars. He comes and goes along the Canalazzo, and he might be much worse employed. He is but one of the interesting objects it presents, however, and I am by no means sure that he is the most striking. He has a rival, if not in the iron bridge, which, alas, is within our range, at least—to take an immediate example—in the Montecuculi Palace. Far-descended and weary, but beautiful in its crooked old age, with its lovely proportions, its delicate round arches, its carvings and its disks of marble, is the haunted Montecuculi. Those who have a kindness for Venetian gossip like to remember that it was once for a few months the property of Robert Browning, who, however, never lived in it, and who died in the splendid Rezzonico, the residence of his son and a wonderful cosmopolite “document,” which, as it presents itself, in an admirable position, but a short way farther down the Canal, we can almost see, in spite of the curve, from the window at which we stand. This great seventeenth century pile, throwing itself upon the water with a peculiar florid assurance, a certain upward toss of its cornice which gives it the air of a rearing sea-horse, decorates immensely—and within, as well as without—the wide angle that it commands.
But from the same high windows, we can see without craning our necks a crucial detail in the scene: a well-known pretender dining on the bread of bitterness. This meal is served outside on a tidy little terrace by waitstaff in uniforms, and it’s not inappropriate for us to watch the pretender eat. Ever since the table d’hôte in “Candide,” Venice has been a refuge for monarchs in search of thrones—she wouldn’t recognize herself without her rois en exil. The exile is pleasant and calming, and the gondola eases them along. Its gentle movement is soothing, its silence is enchanting, and slowly it rocks all their ambitions to sleep. The proscribed has plenty of time to write his proclamations and even his memoirs, and I believe there are publications for them; but the only noise he makes in the world is the soft splash of his oars. He navigates the Canalazzo, and he could be occupying himself much worse. He is just one of the intriguing sights it offers, but I'm not convinced he’s the most noticeable. He has competition, if not with the iron bridge, which sadly is within our view, at least—just to give a direct example—with the Montecuculi Palace. Tired but beautiful in its crooked old age, with its lovely proportions, delicate rounded arches, carvings, and disks of marble, the haunted Montecuculi stands proud. Those who enjoy Venetian gossip like to remember that it was once owned for a few months by Robert Browning, who, however, never lived there and died in the grand Rezzonico, the home of his son, which is an impressive “document” that we can almost see, despite the curve of the Canal, from the window we're standing by. This grand seventeenth-century building, stretching out over the water with a unique, ornate confidence and a certain upward tilt of its cornice that gives it the look of a rearing sea-horse, greatly enhances the wide angle it commands, both inside and out.
There is a more formal greatness in the high square Gothic Foscari, just below it, one of the noblest creations of the fifteenth century, a masterpiece of symmetry and majesty. Dedicated to-day to official uses—it is the property of the State—it looks conscious of the consideration it enjoys, and is one of the few great houses within our range whose old age strikes us as robust and painless. It is visibly “kept up”; perhaps it is kept up too much; perhaps I am wrong in thinking so well of it. These doubts and fears course rapidly through my mind—I am easily their victim when it is a question of architecture—as they are apt to do to-day, in Italy, almost anywhere, in the presence of the beautiful, of the desecrated or the neglected. We feel at such moments as if the eye of Mr. Ruskin were upon us; we grow nervous and lose our confidence. This makes me inevitably, in talking of Venice, seek a pusillanimous safety in the trivial and the obvious. I am on firm ground in rejoicing in the little garden directly opposite our windows—it is another proof that they really show us everything—and in feeling that the gardens of Venice would deserve a page to themselves. They are infinitely more numerous than the arriving stranger can suppose; they nestle with a charm all their own in the complications of most back-views. Some of them are exquisite, many are large, and even the scrappiest have an artful understanding, in the interest of colour, with the waterways that edge their foundations. On the small canals, in the hunt for amusement, they are the prettiest surprises of all. The tangle of plants and flowers crowds over the battered walls, the greenness makes an arrangement with the rosy sordid brick. Of all the reflected and liquefied things in Venice, and the number of these is countless, I think the lapping water loves them most. They are numerous on the Canalazzo, but wherever they occur they give a brush to the picture and in particular, it is easy to guess, give a sweetness to the house. Then the elements are complete—the trio of air and water and of things that grow. Venice without them would be too much a matter of the tides and the stones. Even the little trellises of the traghetti count charmingly as reminders, amid so much artifice, of the woodland nature of man. The vine-leaves, trained on horizontal poles, make a roof of chequered shade for the gondoliers and ferrymen, who doze there according to opportunity, or chatter or hail the approaching “fare.” There is no “hum” in Venice, so that their voices travel far; they enter your windows and mingle even with your dreams. I beg the reader to believe that if I had time to go into everything, I would go into the traghetti, which have their manners and their morals, and which used to have their piety. This piety was always a madonnina, the protectress of the passage—a quaint figure of the Virgin with the red spark of a lamp at her feet. The lamps appear for the most part to have gone out, and the images doubtless have been sold for bric-a-brac. The ferrymen, for aught I know, are converted to Nihilism—a faith consistent happily with a good stroke of business. One of the figures has been left, however—the Madonnetta which gives its name to a traghetto near the Rialto. But this sweet survivor is a carven stone inserted ages ago in the corner of an old palace and doubtless difficult of removal. Pazienza, the day will come when so marketable a relic will also be extracted from its socket and purchased by the devouring American. I leave that expression, on second thought, standing; but I repent of it when I remember that it is a devouring American—a lady long resident in Venice and whose kindnesses all Venetians, as well as her country-people, know, who has rekindled some of the extinguished tapers, setting up especially the big brave Gothic shrine, of painted and gilded wood, which, on the top of its stout palo, sheds its influence on the place of passage opposite the Salute.
There's a more formal grandeur to the high square Gothic Foscari, just below it, one of the most noble creations of the fifteenth century, a masterpiece of symmetry and majesty. Now dedicated to official uses—it belongs to the State—it seems aware of the respect it commands and stands out as one of the few great buildings in our view whose old age appears strong and effortless. It's clearly "well-maintained"; maybe it's maintained a bit too much; perhaps I'm wrong to think so highly of it. These doubts and worries rush through my mind—I easily fall victim to them when it comes to architecture—as they often do today, in Italy, just about anywhere, in the presence of beauty, the desecrated, or the neglected. At such moments, we feel as if Mr. Ruskin’s eye is upon us; we get nervous and lose our confidence. This makes me inevitably seek a timid safety in the trivial and the obvious when talking about Venice. I feel secure in celebrating the little garden right across from our windows—it’s another proof that they truly show us everything—and in recognizing that the gardens of Venice deserve a page of their own. There are far more of them than an arriving visitor might expect; they nestle in most back views with their own charming appeal. Some are exquisite, many are large, and even the smallest gardens exhibit an artistic understanding of color in relation to the waterways that border them. On the small canals, while seeking fun, they are the prettiest surprises. The tangle of plants and flowers spills over the worn walls, and the greenery complements the faded red brick. Among all the reflected and flowing things in Venice, and there’s countless of them, I believe the lapping water loves them the most. They are plentiful along the Canalazzo, but wherever they are found, they enhance the scene, and in particular, it’s easy to guess that they add sweetness to the houses. Thus, all the elements come together—the trio of air, water, and living things. Venice without them would lean too heavily on tides and stones. Even the little trellises of the traghetti charmingly remind us, amid so much artifice, of humanity's connection to nature. The vine leaves, trained on horizontal poles, create a canopy of dappled shade for the gondoliers and ferrymen, who lounge there when they can, or chat or call out to the approaching "fare." There’s no "hum" in Venice, so their voices carry far; they drift into your windows and even mix with your dreams. I ask the reader to trust that if I had time to cover everything, I would delve into the traghetti, which have their own customs and morals, and which used to have their piety. This piety always involved a madonnina, the protector of the crossing—a quaint figure of the Virgin with a little lamp glowing at her feet. Most lamps appear to have gone out, and the images have likely been sold as bric-a-brac. The ferrymen, for all I know, may have converted to Nihilism—a belief conveniently aligned with running a good business. However, one figure remains—the Madonnetta that gives its name to a traghetto close to the Rialto. But this sweet survivor is a carved stone placed ages ago in the corner of an old palace and is probably hard to remove. Pazienza, the day will come when such a marketable relic will also be extracted from its place and bought by the ravenous American. I leave that expression as is, but I reconsider it when I remember that it’s a ravenous American—a woman who has long resided in Venice and whose kindness is known by all Venetians as well as her fellow countrymen—who has reignited some of the snuffed-out candles, especially restoring the large, bold Gothic shrine of painted and gilded wood, which, atop its sturdy palo, casts its influence on the passageway opposite the Salute.
If I may not go into those of the palaces this devious discourse has left behind, much less may I enter the great galleries of the Academy, which rears its blank wall, surmounted by the lion of St. Mark, well within sight of the windows at which we are still lingering. This wondrous temple of Venetian art—for all it promises little from without—overhangs, in a manner, the Grand Canal, but if we were so much as to cross its threshold we should wander beyond recall. It contains, in some of the most magnificent halls—where the ceilings have all the glory with which the imagination of Venice alone could over-arch a room—some of the noblest pictures in the world; and whether or not we go back to them on any particular occasion for another look, it is always a comfort to know that they are there, as the sense of them on the spot is a part of the furniture of the mind—the sense of them close at hand, behind every wall and under every cover, like the inevitable reverse of a medal, of the side exposed to the air that reflects, intensifies, completes the scene. In other words, as it was the inevitable destiny of Venice to be painted, and painted with passion, so the wide world of picture becomes, as we live there, and however much we go about our affairs, the constant habitation of our thoughts. The truth is, we are in it so uninterruptedly, at home and abroad, that there is scarcely a pressure upon us to seek it in one place more than in another. Choose your standpoint at random and trust the picture to come to you. This is manifestly why I have not, I find myself conscious, said more about the features of the Canalazzo which occupy the reach between the Salute and the position we have so obstinately taken up. It is still there before us, however, and the delightful little Palazzo Dario, intimately familiar to English and American travellers, picks itself out in the foreshortened brightness. The Dario is covered with the loveliest little marble plates and sculptured circles; it is made up of exquisite pieces—as if there had been only enough to make it small—so that it looks, in its extreme antiquity, a good deal like a house of cards that hold together by a tenure it would be fatal to touch. An old Venetian house dies hard indeed, and I should add that this delicate thing, with submission in every feature, continues to resist the contact of generations of lodgers. It is let out in floors (it used to be let as a whole) and in how many eager hands—for it is in great requisition—under how many fleeting dispensations have we not known and loved it? People are always writing in advance to secure it, as they are to secure the Jenkins’s gondolier, and as the gondola passes we see strange faces at the windows—though it’s ten to one we recognise them—and the millionth artist coming forth with his traps at the water-gate. The poor little patient Dario is one of the most flourishing booths at the fair.
If I can’t go into those palaces left behind by this winding narrative, I definitely can’t enter the grand galleries of the Academy, which looms with its blank wall topped by the lion of St. Mark, right in view of the windows we’re still at. This amazing temple of Venetian art—though it looks unassuming from the outside—overlooks the Grand Canal, but if we should dare to cross its threshold, we’d be lost. Inside, in some of the most magnificent halls—where the ceilings have all the splendor that only the imagination of Venice could create—are some of the finest paintings in the world. Whether we revisit them on any particular occasion or not, it’s always reassuring to know they’re there, as their presence on site is a part of our mental landscape—felt all around us, behind every wall and under every cover, like the inevitable reverse side of a coin, reflecting and enhancing the scene. In other words, just as it was Venice’s fate to be portrayed with passion, the vast world of art becomes, as we exist in it, and however busy we are, a constant part of our thoughts. The truth is, we’re immersed in it so completely, at home and away, that there’s hardly any pressure to seek it in one spot over another. Pick any vantage point at random and trust that the art will find you. This is clearly why I haven’t, as I’ve just realized, said much about the features of the Canalazzo that stretch between the Salute and the stubborn spot we’ve taken up. Nevertheless, it’s still right there in front of us, and the charming little Palazzo Dario, well-known to English and American travelers, stands out in the shortened brightness. The Dario is adorned with the prettiest little marble plates and sculpted circles; it’s made up of delicate pieces—as if only enough materials were available to make it small—so that, in its great age, it looks strikingly like a house of cards precariously balanced. An old Venetian house is incredibly resilient, and I should note that this delicate structure, with its graceful features, continues to withstand the test of generations of tenants. It’s rented out by the floor (it used to be rented as a whole), and how many eager hands have we not known and loved it under the many temporary arrangements it has experienced? People are always writing ahead to secure it, just as they do to book Jenkins’s gondolier. As the gondola passes, we see unfamiliar faces at the windows—though it’s likely we recognize them—and the latest artist coming out with their gear at the water gate. The poor little patient Dario is one of the most bustling spots at the fair.
The faces in the window look out at the great Sansovino—the splendid pile that is now occupied by the Prefect. I feel decidedly that I don’t object as I ought to the palaces of the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries. Their pretensions impose upon me, and the imagination peoples them more freely than it can people the interiors of the prime. Was not moreover this masterpiece of Sansovino once occupied by the Venetian post-office, and thereby intimately connected with an ineffaceable first impression of the author of these remarks? He had arrived, wondering, palpitating, twenty-three years ago, after nightfall, and, the first thing on the morrow, had repaired to the post-office for his letters. They had been waiting a long time and were full of delayed interest, and he returned with them to the gondola and floated slowly down the Canal. The mixture, the rapture, the wonderful temple of the poste restante, the beautiful strangeness, all humanised by good news—the memory of this abides with him still, so that there always proceeds from the splendid waterfront I speak of a certain secret appeal, something that seems to have been uttered first in the sonorous chambers of youth. Of course this association falls to the ground—or rather splashes into the water—if I am the victim of a confusion. Was the edifice in question twenty-three years ago the post-office, which has occupied since, for many a day, very much humbler quarters? I am afraid to take the proper steps for finding out, lest I should learn that during these years I have misdirected my emotion. A better reason for the sentiment, at any rate, is that such a great house has surely, in the high beauty of its tiers, a refinement of its own. They make one think of colosseums and aqueducts and bridges, and they constitute doubtless, in Venice, the most pardonable specimen of the imitative. I have even a timid kindness for the huge Pesaro, far down the Canal, whose main reproach, more even than the coarseness of its forms, is its swaggering size, its want of consideration for the general picture, which the early examples so reverently respect. The Pesaro is as far out of the frame as a modern hotel, and the Cornaro, close to it, oversteps almost equally the modesty of art. One more thing they and their kindred do, I must add, for which, unfortunately, we can patronise them less. They make even the most elaborate material civilisation of the present day seem woefully shrunken and bourgeois, for they simply—I allude to the biggest palaces—can’t be lived in as they were intended to be. The modern tenant may take in all the magazines, but he bends not the bow of Achilles. He occupies the place, but he doesn’t fill it, and he has guests from the neighbouring inns with ulsters and Baedekers. We are far at the Pesaro, by the way, from our attaching window, and we take advantage of it to go in rather a melancholy mood to the end. The long straight vista from the Foscari to the Rialto, the great middle stretch of the Canal, contains, as the phrase is, a hundred objects of interest, but it contains most the bright oddity of its general Deluge air. In all these centuries it has never got over its resemblance to a flooded city; for some reason or other it is the only part of Venice in which the houses look as if the waters had overtaken them. Everywhere else they reckon with them—have chosen them; here alone the lapping seaway seems to confess itself an accident.
The faces in the window look out at the grand Sansovino—the beautiful building now occupied by the Prefect. I definitely feel that I don’t mind as much as I should about the palaces from the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries. Their grandeur impresses me, and my imagination fills them with more life than it can with the simpler places. Wasn't this masterpiece of Sansovino once home to the Venetian post office, and doesn’t that connect it intimately to an unforgettable first impression of the author of these remarks? He had arrived, curious and excited, twenty-three years ago, after dark, and the very next morning went to the post office for his letters. They had been waiting a long time and held a wealth of delayed interest, and he returned to the gondola with them, floating slowly down the Canal. The mix of emotions, the joy, the amazing temple of the poste restante, the beautiful strangeness, all made human by good news—the memory of this still stays with him, so that there’s always a certain secret appeal that comes from the splendid waterfront I mentioned, something that seems to have been first spoken in the resonant chambers of youth. Of course, this connection falls apart—or rather splashes into the water—if I am mistaken. Was that building twenty-three years ago really the post office, which now occupies much humbler quarters? I hesitate to find out, afraid that I’ll discover I’ve misdirected my feelings all these years. A better reason for the sentiment, at least, is that such a grand house surely has a beauty of its own in its stunning levels. They remind one of colosseums and aqueducts and bridges, and they are undoubtedly the most forgivable example of imitation in Venice. I even have a hesitant fondness for the massive Pesaro, further down the Canal, whose main flaw, even more than the roughness of its design, is its overbearing size, its disregard for the overall picture, which the earlier examples so respectfully honor. The Pesaro is as far out of place as a modern hotel, and the Cornaro, nearby, also goes beyond the modesty of art. There’s one more thing that they and their kind do, which unfortunately makes it harder for us to appreciate them. They make today’s elaborate material culture seem sadly small and bourgeois, because they simply—I’m referring to the largest palaces—can’t be lived in as they were meant to be. The modern resident may fill the space with all sorts of possessions, but he doesn’t truly inhabit it. He occupies the place, but doesn’t fill it, and he brings guests from nearby inns, clad in overcoats and carrying travel guides. We are quite far from the Pesaro, by the way, from our attached window, and we take advantage of this to approach the end rather melancholically. The long, straight view from the Foscari to the Rialto, the great central stretch of the Canal, contains, as they say, a hundred points of interest, but most of all, it holds the bright peculiarity of its overall washed-out appearance. Through all these centuries, it has never lost its resemblance to a flooded city; for some reason, it's the only part of Venice where the houses look as if the waters had caught up with them. Everywhere else, they seem reckoning with the water—have chosen it; here alone, the lapping waves seem to acknowledge themselves as an accident.
{Illustration: PALAZZO MONCENIGO, VENICE}
{Illustration: PALAZZO MONCENIGO, VENICE}
There are persons who hold this long, gay, shabby, spotty perspective, in which, with its immense field of confused reflection, the houses have infinite variety, the dullest expanse in Venice. It was not dull, we imagine, for Lord Byron, who lived in the midmost of the three Mocenigo palaces, where the writing-table is still shown at which he gave the rein to his passions. For other observers it is sufficiently enlivened by so delightful a creation as the Palazzo Loredan, once a masterpiece and at present the Municipio, not to speak of a variety of other immemorial bits whose beauty still has a degree of freshness. Some of the most touching relics of early Venice are here—for it was here she precariously clustered—peeping out of a submersion more pitiless than the sea. As we approach the Rialto indeed the picture falls off and a comparative commonness suffuses it. There is a wide paved walk on either side of the Canal, on which the waterman—and who in Venice is not a waterman?—is prone to seek repose. I speak of the summer days—it is the summer Venice that is the visible Venice. The big tarry barges are drawn up at the fondamenta, and the bare-legged boatmen, in faded blue cotton, lie asleep on the hot stones. If there were no colour anywhere else there would be enough in their tanned personalities. Half the low doorways open into the warm interior of waterside drinking-shops, and here and there, on the quay, beneath the bush that overhangs the door, there are rickety tables and chairs. Where in Venice is there not the amusement of character and of detail? The tone in this part is very vivid, and is largely that of the brown plebeian faces looking out of the patchy miscellaneous houses—the faces of fat undressed women and of other simple folk who are not aware that they enjoy, from balconies once doubtless patrician, a view the knowing ones of the earth come thousands of miles to envy them. The effect is enhanced by the tattered clothes hung to dry in the windows, by the sun-faded rags that flutter from the polished balustrades—these are ivory-smooth with time; and the whole scene profits by the general law that renders decadence and ruin in Venice more brilliant than any prosperity. Decay is in this extraordinary place golden in tint and misery couleur de rose. The gondolas of the correct people are unmitigated sable, but the poor market-boats from the islands are kaleidoscopic.
There are people who see this long, colorful, worn-down, and patchy view, where, with its vast mix of confused reflections, the houses offer endless variety, even in the dullest parts of Venice. It probably wasn’t dull for Lord Byron, who lived in the middle of the three Mocenigo palaces, where the writing desk is still shown at which he let loose his passions. For others, it’s lively enough thanks to a beautiful creation like the Palazzo Loredan, once a masterpiece and now the Municipio, not to mention a mix of other timeless spots whose beauty still feels somewhat fresh. Some of the most poignant remnants of early Venice are found here—this is where it clung precariously, peeking out from a submersion more relentless than the sea. As we get closer to the Rialto, the scene becomes less picturesque and a sense of commonness sets in. There’s a wide paved walkway on either side of the canal, where the boatmen—and who in Venice isn’t a boatman?—tend to take a break. I’m talking about the summer days—it’s the summer Venice that is the most visible. The big, tar-covered barges are lined up at the fondamenta, and the bare-legged boatmen, in faded blue cotton, sleep on the hot stones. Even if there were no color elsewhere, their sun-kissed skin provides enough. Half the low doorways lead into the warm interiors of waterside bars, and here and there, on the quay, under the bush that hangs over the door, are rickety tables and chairs. Where in Venice is there not a sense of character and detail? The vibe in this area is very vivid, mainly due to the brown, common faces peering out from the patchy, mismatched houses—the faces of plump, uncovered women and other ordinary folks who don’t realize that they enjoy a view from once-patrician balconies that those in the know come thousands of miles to envy. The effect is heightened by the tattered clothes hanging to dry in the windows, and faded rags fluttering from the polished balustrades—these have become smooth and ivory-like over time; the whole scene benefits from the general truth that decadence and ruin in Venice shine brighter than any prosperity. Here, decay takes on a golden hue and misery wears a couleur de rose. The gondolas of the well-to-do are pure black, while the poor market boats from the islands are a riot of color.
The Bridge of the Rialto is a name to conjure with, but, honestly speaking, it is scarcely the gem of the composition. There are of course two ways of taking it—from the water or from the upper passage, where its small shops and booths abound in Venetian character; but it mainly counts as a feature of the Canal when seen from the gondola or even from the awful vaporetto. The great curve of its single arch is much to be commended, especially when, coming from the direction of the railway-station, you see it frame with its sharp compass-line the perfect picture, the reach of the Canal on the other side. But the backs of the little shops make from the water a graceless collective hump, and the inside view is the diverting one. The big arch of the bridge—like the arches of all the bridges—is the waterman’s friend in wet weather. The gondolas, when it rains, huddle beside the peopled barges, and the young ladies from the hotels, vaguely fidgeting, complain of the communication of insect life. Here indeed is a little of everything, and the jewellers of this celebrated precinct—they have their immemorial row—make almost as fine a show as the fruiterers. It is a universal market, and a fine place to study Venetian types. The produce of the islands is discharged there, and the fishmongers announce their presence. All one’s senses indeed are vigorously attacked; the whole place is violently hot and bright, all odorous and noisy. The churning of the screw of the vaporetto mingles with the other sounds—not indeed that this offensive note is confined to one part of the Canal. But Just here the little piers of the resented steamer are particularly near together, and it seems somehow to be always kicking up the water. As we go further down we see it stopping exactly beneath the glorious windows of the Ca’d’Oro. It has chosen its position well, and who shall gainsay it for having put itself under the protection of the most romantic facade in Europe? The companionship of these objects is a symbol; it expresses supremely the present and the future of Venice. Perfect, in its prime, was the marble Ca’d’Oro, with the noble recesses of its loggie, but even then it probably never “met a want,” like the successful vaporetto. If, however, we are not to go into the Museo Civico—the old Museo Correr, which rears a staring renovated front far down on the left, near the station, so also we must keep out of the great vexed question of steam on the Canalazzo, just as a while since we prudently kept out of the Accademia. These are expensive and complicated excursions. It is obvious that if the vaporetti have contributed to the ruin of the gondoliers, already hard pressed by fate, and to that of the palaces, whose foundations their waves undermine, and that if they have robbed the Grand Canal of the supreme distinction of its tranquillity, so on the other hand they have placed “rapid transit,” in the New York phrase, in everybody’s reach, and enabled everybody—save indeed those who wouldn’t for the world—to rush about Venice as furiously as people rush about New York. The suitability of this consummation needn’t be pointed out.
The Rialto Bridge is a well-known name, but honestly, it’s not the highlight of the experience. There are two main ways to view it—from the water or from the upper walkway filled with small shops that capture the Venetian vibe. However, it really stands out as a feature of the canal when seen from a gondola or even from the crowded vaporetto. The impressive curve of its single arch is definitely something to admire, especially when you approach from the railway station and see it perfectly framing the canal on the other side. But from the water, the backs of the little shops create an unappealing collective hump, and the more interesting view is from inside. The large arch of the bridge—like all bridges—is a lifesaver for gondoliers when it rains. When it rains, gondolas gather next to the busy barges, and young ladies from hotels, slightly uneasy, complain about bugs. Here you can find a little bit of everything, and the jewelers in this famous area—they’ve got their traditional row—put on a display almost as impressive as the fruit sellers. It’s a bustling market and a great spot to observe Venetian life. Fresh produce from the islands is brought in, and fishmongers promote their catch. All your senses are definitely engaged; the whole place is hot and bright, full of smells and sounds. The noise from the vaporetto blends with everything else—not that the annoying sound is limited to just one part of the canal. But right here, the small piers for the crowded steamer are particularly close together, and it always seems to be splashing the water around. As we continue further down, we see it stop right under the magnificent windows of the Ca’d’Oro. It has picked a great spot, and who could argue against it for placing itself beneath the most romantic facade in Europe? The relationship between these sights symbolizes the present and future of Venice. The marble Ca’d’Oro was stunning in its prime, with its grand loggias, but even then it probably never “met a need” like the popular vaporetto. If we’re not heading to the Museo Civico—the old Museo Correr, which has an awkwardly renovated front further down on the left, near the station—we should also avoid the debated issue of steam on the Canalazzo, just like we wisely skipped the Accademia earlier. These are costly and complex outings. It’s clear that while the vaporetti have contributed to the decline of the gondoliers, already struggling, and to the palaces, whose foundations they undermine, and while they’ve taken away the Grand Canal’s peaceful charm, they’ve also made “rapid transit,” to borrow a term from New York, accessible to everyone. This allows anyone—except for those who absolutely wouldn’t— to race around Venice just as fiercely as people do in New York. The appropriateness of this development is obvious.
Even we ourselves, in the irresistible contagion, are going so fast now that we have only time to note in how clever and costly a fashion the Museo Civico, the old Fondaco dei Turchi, has been reconstructed and restored. It is a glare of white marble without, and a series of showy majestic halls within, where a thousand curious mementos and relics of old Venice are gathered and classified. Of its miscellaneous treasures I fear I may perhaps frivolously prefer the series of its remarkable living Longhis, an illustration of manners more copious than the celebrated Carpaccio, the two ladies with their little animals and their long sticks. Wonderful indeed today are the museums of Italy, where the renovations and the belle ordonnance speak of funds apparently unlimited, in spite of the fact that the numerous custodians frankly look starved. What is the pecuniary source of all this civic magnificence—it is shown in a hundred other ways—and how do the Italian cities manage to acquit themselves of expenses that would be formidable to communities richer and doubtless less aesthetic? Who pays the bills for the expressive statues alone, the general exuberance of sculpture, with which every piazzetta of almost every village is patriotically decorated? Let us not seek an answer to the puzzling question, but observe instead that we are passing the mouth of the populous Canareggio, next widest of the waterways, where the race of Shylock abides, and at the corner of which the big colourless church of San Geremia stands gracefully enough on guard. The Canareggio, with its wide lateral footways and humpbacked bridges, makes on the feast of St. John an admirable noisy, tawdry theatre for one of the prettiest and the most infantile of the Venetian processions.
Even we ourselves, caught up in the irresistible excitement, are moving so quickly now that we can only take a moment to appreciate how cleverly and expensively the Museo Civico, the old Fondaco dei Turchi, has been rebuilt and restored. It shines with white marble on the outside and features a series of grand, impressive halls inside, filled with countless fascinating mementos and relics of old Venice that are organized and displayed. Among its diverse treasures, I fear I might frivolously prefer the remarkable living Longhis, which illustrate social customs more richly than the famous Carpaccio, with its two ladies holding their small animals and long sticks. The museums of Italy today are truly amazing, where the renovations and the belle ordonnance suggest apparently unlimited funding, despite the fact that the many caretakers honestly look underfed. What is the financial source of all this civic grandeur—it is evident in many other ways—and how do Italian cities manage to handle expenses that would be overwhelming for wealthier and certainly less artsy communities? Who pays for the expressive statues alone, the sheer abundance of sculpture that decorates every little piazzetta in almost every village with patriotic fervor? Let’s not try to solve this puzzling question but instead notice that we are passing by the busy Canareggio, the second widest of the waterways, where the line of Shylock lives, and at the corner of which the large, colorless church of San Geremia stands elegantly on guard. The Canareggio, with its broad side walkways and humped bridges, becomes a wonderfully noisy, flashy stage for one of the prettiest and most childlike of the Venetian processions during the feast of St. John.
The rest of the course is a reduced magnificence, in spite of interesting bits, of the battered pomp of the Pesaro and the Cornaro, of the recurrent memories of royalty in exile which cluster about the Palazzo Vendramin Calergi, once the residence of the Comte de Chambord and still that of his half-brother, in spite too of the big Papadopoli gardens, opposite the station, the largest private grounds in Venice, but of which Venice in general mainly gets the benefit in the usual form of irrepressible greenery climbing over walls and nodding at water. The rococo church of the Scalzi is here, all marble and malachite, all a cold, hard glitter and a costly, curly ugliness, and here too, opposite, on the top of its high steps, is San Simeone Profeta, I won’t say immortalised, but unblushingly misrepresented, by the perfidious Canaletto. I shall not stay to unravel the mystery of this prosaic painter’s malpractices; he falsified without fancy, and as he apparently transposed at will the objects he reproduced, one is never sure of the particular view that may have constituted his subject. It would look exactly like such and such a place if almost everything were not different. San Simeone Profeta appears to hang there upon the wall; but it is on the wrong side of the Canal and the other elements quite fail to correspond. One’s confusion is the greater because one doesn’t know that everything may not really have changed, even beyond all probability—though it’s only in America that churches cross the street or the river—and the mixture of the recognisable and the different makes the ambiguity maddening, all the more that the painter is almost as attaching as he is bad. Thanks at any rate to the white church, domed and porticoed, on the top of its steps, the traveller emerging for the first time upon the terrace of the railway-station seems to have a Canaletto before him. He speedily discovers indeed even in the presence of this scene of the final accents of the Canalazzo—there is a charm in the old pink warehouses on the hot fondamenta—that he has something much better. He looks up and down at the gathered gondolas; he has his surprise after all, his little first Venetian thrill; and as the terrace of the station ushers in these things we shall say no harm of it, though it is not lovely. It is the beginning of his experience, but it is the end of the Grand Canal.
The rest of the course is a diminished splendor, even with some interesting bits, of the worn-out glory of the Pesaro and the Cornaro, of the recurring memories of exiled royalty that surround the Palazzo Vendramin Calergi, once home to the Comte de Chambord and still to his half-brother, despite the big Papadopoli gardens across from the station, the largest private grounds in Venice, though Venice as a whole mainly benefits from it in the usual way of unstoppable greenery climbing over walls and nodding at the water. The rococo church of the Scalzi is here, all marble and malachite, with a cold, hard sparkle and a costliness that skews toward ugly, and here too, opposite, at the top of its steep steps, is San Simeone Profeta, not exactly immortalized, but shamelessly misrepresented by the deceptive Canaletto. I won’t dwell on the mystery of this mundane painter's mistakes; he distorted without flair, and since he seemed to move around the objects he painted at will, one can never be certain of the specific view he might have used for his subject. It would look just like such and such a place if almost everything weren’t different. San Simeone Profeta looks like it’s hanging there on the wall; but it’s on the wrong side of the Canal, and the other elements don’t match up at all. The confusion is heightened because you can’t know if everything might not have actually changed beyond belief—though it’s only in America that churches cross the street or the river—and the blend of the familiar and the unfamiliar makes the ambiguity frustrating, especially since the painter is almost as charming as he is poor. At least thanks to the white church, domed and with a portico, at the top of its steps, a traveler stepping onto the terrace of the railway station for the first time seems to have a Canaletto in front of him. He soon realizes, even in the presence of this scene, with the final touches of the Canalazzo—there’s a charm in the old pink warehouses along the hot fondamenta—that he has something much better. He looks up and down at the gathered gondolas; he gets his surprise after all, his little first Venetian thrill; and since the terrace of the station opens up to these things, we won’t criticize it, even though it’s not beautiful. It marks the beginning of his experience, but it also signifies the end of the Grand Canal.
1892.
VENICE: AN EARLY IMPRESSION
There would be much to say about that golden chain of historic cities which stretches from Milan to Venice, in which the very names—Brescia, Verona, Mantua, Padua—are an ornament to one’s phrase; but I should have to draw upon recollections now three years old and to make my short story a long one. Of Verona and Venice only have I recent impressions, and even to these must I do hasty justice. I came into Venice, just as I had done before, toward the end of a summer’s day, when the shadows begin to lengthen and the light to glow, and found that the attendant sensations bore repetition remarkably well. There was the same last intolerable delay at Mestre, just before your first glimpse of the lagoon confirms the already distinct sea-smell which has added speed to the precursive flight of your imagination; then the liquid level, edged afar off by its band of undiscriminated domes and spires, soon distinguished and proclaimed, however, as excited and contentious heads multiply at the windows of the train; then your long rumble on the immense white railway-bridge, which, in spite of the invidious contrast drawn, and very properly, by Mr. Ruskin between the old and the new approach, does truly, in a manner, shine across the green lap of the lagoon like a mighty causeway of marble; then the plunge into the station, which would be exactly similar to every other plunge save for one little fact—that the keynote of the great medley of voices borne back from the exit is not “Cab, sir!” but “Barca, signore!”
There’s a lot to say about that chain of historic cities stretching from Milan to Venice, where the names—Brescia, Verona, Mantua, Padua—add elegance to one's speech; but I'd have to rely on memories that are now three years old, making my short story much longer. I only have fresh impressions of Verona and Venice, and even those deserve quick attention. I arrived in Venice, just like before, toward the end of a summer day, when the shadows start to stretch and the light glows, and I found that the feelings were just as vivid as before. There was the same annoying wait at Mestre before your first look at the lagoon confirms the distinct sea smell that quickens your imagination; then the water level, marked in the distance by its array of indistinct domes and spires, soon becomes identifiable as excited heads press against the train windows; then you rumble along the huge white railway bridge, which, despite the valid comparison made by Mr. Ruskin between the old and the new entry, really shines across the green lagoon like a massive marble causeway; then you dive into the station, which would be just like any other dive except for one small detail—that the main theme of the chaotic voices drifting back from the exit is not “Cab, sir!” but “Barca, signore!”
I do not mean, however, to follow the traveller through every phase of his initiation, at the risk of stamping poor Venice beyond repair as the supreme bugbear of literature; though for my own part I hold that to a fine healthy romantic appetite the subject can’t be too diffusely treated. Meeting in the Piazza on the evening of my arrival a young American painter who told me that he had been spending the summer just where I found him, I could have assaulted him for very envy. He was painting forsooth the interior of St. Mark’s. To be a young American painter unperplexed by the mocking, elusive soul of things and satisfied with their wholesome light-bathed surface and shape; keen of eye; fond of colour, of sea and sky and anything that may chance between them; of old lace and old brocade and old furniture (even when made to order); of time-mellowed harmonies on nameless canvases and happy contours in cheap old engravings; to spend one’s mornings in still, productive analysis of the clustered shadows of the Basilica, one’s afternoons anywhere, in church or campo, on canal or lagoon, and one’s evenings in star-light gossip at Florian’s, feeling the sea-breeze throb languidly between the two great pillars of the Piazzetta and over the low black domes of the church—this, I consider, is to be as happy as is consistent with the preservation of reason.
I don’t intend to take you through every step of the traveler’s journey, risking to portray poor Venice as the ultimate nightmare of literature; although I personally believe that for a healthy romantic spirit, the topic can be explored in great detail. When I met a young American painter in the Piazza on the evening of my arrival, who told me he had spent the summer right there, I could have felt envious. He was, indeed, painting the interior of St. Mark’s. To be a young American painter, untouched by the mocking, elusive nature of things and content with their beautiful, light-soaked surface and form; observant; in love with color, the sea, the sky, and everything that might lie between them; with an appreciation for old lace, vintage brocade, and antique furniture (even if it was custom-made); for time-worn harmonies on unnamed canvases and pleasing shapes in inexpensive old prints; to spend mornings quietly analyzing the shadows of the Basilica, afternoons wandering anywhere—be it in a church, in a campo, on a canal, or in a lagoon—and evenings chatting under the stars at Florian’s, feeling the gentle sea breeze pulse between the two grand pillars of the Piazzetta and over the low black domes of the church—this, I believe, is as happy as one can be while still keeping one’s sanity.
The mere use of one’s eyes in Venice is happiness enough, and generous observers find it hard to keep an account of their profits in this line. Everything the attention touches holds it, keeps playing with it—thanks to some inscrutable flattery of the atmosphere. Your brown-skinned, white-shirted gondolier, twisting himself in the light, seems to you, as you lie at contemplation beneath your awning, a perpetual symbol of Venetian “effect.” The light here is in fact a mighty magician and, with all respect to Titian, Veronese and Tintoret, the greatest artist of them all. You should see in places the material with which it deals—slimy brick, marble battered and befouled, rags, dirt, decay. Sea and sky seem to meet half-way, to blend their tones into a soft iridescence, a lustrous compound of wave and cloud and a hundred nameless local reflections, and then to fling the clear tissue against every object of vision. You may see these elements at work everywhere, but to see them in their intensity you should choose the finest day in the month and have yourself rowed far away across the lagoon to Torcello. Without making this excursion you can hardly pretend to know Venice or to sympathise with that longing for pure radiance which animated her great colourists. It is a perfect bath of light, and I couldn’t get rid of a fancy that we were cleaving the upper atmosphere on some hurrying cloud-skiff. At Torcello there is nothing but the light to see—nothing at least but a sort of blooming sand-bar intersected by a single narrow creek which does duty as a canal and occupied by a meagre cluster of huts, the dwellings apparently of market-gardeners and fishermen, and by a ruinous church of the eleventh century. It is impossible to imagine a more penetrating case of unheeded collapse. Torcello was the mother-city of Venice, and she lies there now, a mere mouldering vestige, like a group of weather-bleached parental bones left impiously unburied. I stopped my gondola at the mouth of the shallow inlet and walked along the grass beside a hedge to the low-browed, crumbling cathedral. The charm of certain vacant grassy spaces, in Italy, overfrowned by masses of brickwork that are honeycombed by the suns of centuries, is something that I hereby renounce once for all the attempt to express; but you may be sure that whenever I mention such a spot enchantment lurks in it.
The simple act of using your eyes in Venice is enough happiness, and keen observers find it tough to keep track of their delights in this regard. Everything your gaze touches captures it, continuously playing with it—thanks to some mysterious allure of the atmosphere. Your brown-skinned, white-shirted gondolier, twisting in the light, appears to you, as you lie contemplating beneath your awning, a constant symbol of the Venetian “effect.” The light here is a powerful magician and, with all due respect to Titian, Veronese, and Tintoretto, the best artist of them all. You should see the materials it works with—slimy brick, battered and dirty marble, rags, dirt, decay. The sea and sky seem to meet halfway, blending their tones into a soft iridescence, a shiny mix of wave and cloud along with a hundred nameless local reflections, and then throw the clear fabric against every object in sight. You can observe these elements at work everywhere, but to truly appreciate their intensity, you should pick the finest day of the month and get rowed far across the lagoon to Torcello. Without this trip, you can hardly claim to know Venice or to understand the longing for pure brightness that inspired her great colorists. It’s a perfect bath of light, and I couldn't shake the feeling that we were gliding through the upper atmosphere on some fast-moving cloud boat. At Torcello, there's nothing but light to see—at least nothing but a sort of blooming sandbar crossed by a single narrow creek that serves as a canal and home to a small collection of huts, apparently belonging to market gardeners and fishermen, along with a crumbling church from the eleventh century. It's hard to imagine a more profound example of unnoticed decline. Torcello was the mother-city of Venice, and now it lies there, a mere decaying remnant, like a group of sun-bleached parental bones left tragically unburied. I stopped my gondola at the entrance of the shallows and walked along the grass next to a hedge to the low-browed, crumbling cathedral. The charm of certain empty grassy spaces in Italy, overshadowed by masses of brickwork weathered by centuries of sun, is something I hereby give up trying to express; but you can be sure that whenever I mention such a place, enchantment hides within it.
A delicious stillness covered the little campo at Torcello; I remember none so subtly audible save that of the Roman Campagna. There was no life but the visible tremor of the brilliant air and the cries of half-a-dozen young children who dogged our steps and clamoured for coppers. These children, by the way, were the handsomest little brats in the world, and, each was furnished with a pair of eyes that could only have signified the protest of nature against the meanness of fortune. They were very nearly as naked as savages, and their little bellies protruded like those of infant cannibals in the illustrations of books of travel; but as they scampered and sprawled in the soft, thick grass, grinning like suddenly-translated cherubs and showing their hungry little teeth, they suggested forcibly that the best assurance of happiness in this world is to be found in the maximum of innocence and the minimum of wealth. One small urchin—framed, if ever a child was, to be the joy of an aristocratic mamma—was the most expressively beautiful creature I had ever looked upon. He had a smile to make Correggio sigh in his grave; and yet here he was running wild among the sea-stunted bushes, on the lonely margin of a decaying world, in prelude to how blank or to how dark a destiny? Verily nature is still at odds with propriety; though indeed if they ever really pull together I fear nature will quite lose her distinction. An infant citizen of our own republic, straight-haired, pale-eyed and freckled, duly darned and catechised, marching into a New England schoolhouse, is an object often seen and soon forgotten; but I think I shall always remember with infinite tender conjecture, as the years roll by, this little unlettered Eros of the Adriatic strand. Yet all youthful things at Torcello were not cheerful, for the poor lad who brought us the key of the cathedral was shaking with an ague, and his melancholy presence seemed to point the moral of forsaken nave and choir. The church, admirably primitive and curious, reminded me of the two or three oldest churches of Rome—St. Clement and St. Agnes. The interior is rich in grimly mystical mosaics of the twelfth century and the patchwork of precious fragments in the pavement not inferior to that of St. Mark’s. But the terribly distinct Apostles are ranged against their dead gold backgrounds as stiffly as grenadiers presenting arms—intensely personal sentinels of a personal Deity. Their stony stare seems to wait for ever vainly for some visible revival of primitive orthodoxy, and one may well wonder whether it finds much beguilement in idly-gazing troops of Western heretics—passionless even in their heresy.
A peaceful stillness enveloped the small campo at Torcello; I remember it being so subtly audible except for the sounds of the Roman Campagna. There was no life except for the visible shimmer of the vibrant air and the cries of a handful of young kids who followed us, begging for coins. These kids, by the way, were the cutest little rascals in the world, each with eyes that seemed to protest against the unfairness of fate. They were nearly as bare as savages, their little bellies sticking out like those of baby cannibals in travel book illustrations; but as they dashed and tumbled in the soft, thick grass, smiling like suddenly-transformed cherubs and showing their hungry little teeth, they strongly suggested that the key to happiness in this world lies in maximum innocence and minimal wealth. One small boy—if any child could bring joy to an aristocratic mom—was the most expressively beautiful creature I had ever seen. He had a smile that would make Correggio sigh in his grave; and yet here he was, running wild among the sea-stunted bushes, on the lonely edge of a decaying world, facing what kind of blank or dark future? Truly, nature is still at odds with propriety; but if they ever really came together, I fear nature would lose her uniqueness. An infant citizen of our own republic—straight-haired, pale-eyed, and freckled, neatly dressed and schooled, marching into a New England classroom—is a familiar sight, quickly forgotten; but I think I will always remember with deep affection, as the years go by, this little uneducated Eros of the Adriatic shore. Yet not all youthful things at Torcello were joyful, for the poor boy who brought us the key to the cathedral was shivering with fever, and his sorrowful presence seemed to underscore the story of the abandoned nave and choir. The church, wonderfully primitive and intriguing, reminded me of the two or three oldest churches in Rome—St. Clement and St. Agnes. The interior is rich with grimly mystical twelfth-century mosaics and the patchwork of precious fragments in the pavement, which rivals that of St. Mark’s. But the sharply distinct Apostles stand against their dead gold backgrounds as stiffly as soldiers presenting arms—intensely personal sentinels of a personal God. Their stony gaze seems to wait endlessly for some visible revival of primitive orthodoxy, and one may wonder whether it finds much satisfaction in the idly-gazing groups of Western heretics—passionless even in their heresy.
I had been curious to see whether in the galleries and temples of Venice I should be disposed to transpose my old estimates—to burn what I had adored and adore what I had burned. It is a sad truth that one can stand in the Ducal Palace for the first time but once, with the deliciously ponderous sense of that particular half-hour’s being an era in one’s mental history; but I had the satisfaction of finding at least—a great comfort in a short stay—that none of my early memories were likely to change places and that I could take up my admirations where I had left them. I still found Carpaccio delightful, Veronese magnificent, Titian supremely beautiful and Tintoret scarce to be appraised. I repaired immediately to the little church of San Cassano, which contains the smaller of Tintoret’s two great Crucifixions; and when I had looked at it a while I drew a long breath and felt I could now face any other picture in Venice with proper self-possession. It seemed to me I had advanced to the uttermost limit of painting; that beyond this another art—inspired poetry—begins, and that Bellini, Veronese, Giorgione, and Titian, all joining hands and straining every muscle of their genius, reach forward not so far but that they leave a visible space in which Tintoret alone is master. I well remember the exaltations to which he lifted me when first I learned to know him; but the glow of that comparatively youthful amazement is dead, and with it, I fear, that confident vivacity of phrase of which, in trying to utter my impressions, I felt less the magniloquence than the impotence. In his power there are many weak spots, mysterious lapses and fitful intermissions; but when the list of his faults is complete he still remains to me the most interesting of painters. His reputation rests chiefly on a more superficial sort of merit—his energy, his unsurpassed productivity, his being, as Théophile Gautier says, le roi des fougueux. These qualities are immense, but the great source of his impressiveness is that his indefatigable hand never drew a line that was not, as one may say, a moral line. No painter ever had such breadth and such depth; and even Titian, beside him, scarce figures as more than a great decorative artist. Mr. Ruskin, whose eloquence in dealing with the great Venetians sometimes outruns his discretion, is fond of speaking even of Veronese as a painter of deep spiritual intentions. This, it seems to me, is pushing matters too far, and the author of “The Rape of Europa” is, pictorially speaking, no greater casuist than any other genius of supreme good taste. Titian was assuredly a mighty poet, but Tintoret—well, Tintoret was almost a prophet. Before his greatest works you are conscious of a sudden evaporation of old doubts and dilemmas, and the eternal problem of the conflict between idealism and realism dies the most natural of deaths. In his genius the problem is practically solved; the alternatives are so harmoniously interfused that I defy the keenest critic to say where one begins and the other ends. The homeliest prose melts into the most ethereal poetry—the literal and the imaginative fairly confound their identity.
I had been curious to see if, in the galleries and churches of Venice, I would feel inclined to change my previous opinions—to dismiss what I once loved and love what I once dismissed. It’s a bittersweet reality that you can only experience the Ducal Palace for the first time once, with an unforgettable awareness that those particular thirty minutes represent a significant moment in your mental journey. However, I found great comfort in the fact that none of my early impressions were likely to shift and that I could pick up my admiration right where I left off. I still found Carpaccio delightful, Veronese magnificent, Titian incredibly beautiful, and Tintoret difficult to evaluate. I immediately went to the small church of San Cassano, which holds the smaller of Tintoret's two major Crucifixions; after gazing at it for a while, I took a deep breath, feeling ready to face any other artwork in Venice with confidence. It felt like I had reached the absolute limit of painting; beyond this point, another form of art—poetry—emerges, and Bellini, Veronese, Giorgione, and Titian, all striving with all their creative power, reach forward but leave a noticeable space where Tintoret stands alone as the master. I vividly remember the exhilaration he inspired in me when I first discovered his work; however, the excitement of that youthful amazement has faded, and with it, I fear, the confident expression I used to have while attempting to convey my impressions—though I felt more powerless than grandiose. In his work, there are many weak spots, mysterious gaps, and inconsistent moments; yet when I think of his flaws, he still remains the most interesting of painters to me. His reputation largely rests on a more surface-level merit—his energy, his unmatched productivity, and his being, as Théophile Gautier puts it, le roi des fougueux. These traits are impressive, but what truly captivates me is that his tireless hand never made a mark that wasn’t, one might say, a moral statement. No painter has ever possessed such depth and breadth; even Titian, next to him, seems more like a great decorative artist. Mr. Ruskin, whose eloquence about the great Venetians sometimes exceeds his prudence, often refers to Veronese as a painter of profound spiritual intentions. I believe this is going too far; the creator of “The Rape of Europa” isn’t really any more of a nuanced thinker than any other artist of exceptional taste. Titian was undoubtedly a powerful poet, but Tintoret—well, Tintoret was almost a prophet. Before his greatest works, you feel a sudden release from old doubts and dilemmas, and the timeless conflict between idealism and realism fades away effortlessly. In his genius, this conflict is practically resolved; the two alternatives blend harmoniously, making it impossible for even the sharpest critic to identify where one begins and the other ends. The plainest prose transforms into the most transcendent poetry—the literal and the imaginative truly blur their boundaries.
This, however, is vague praise. Tintoret’s great merit, to my mind, was his unequalled distinctness of vision. When once he had conceived the germ of a scene it defined itself to his imagination with an intensity, an amplitude, an individuality of expression, which makes one’s observation of his pictures seem less an operation of the mind than a kind of supplementary experience of life. Veronese and Titian are content with a much looser specification, as their treatment of any subject that the author of the Crucifixion at San Cassano has also treated abundantly proves. There are few more suggestive contrasts than that between the absence of a total character at all commensurate with its scattered variety and brilliancy in Veronese’s “Marriage of Cana,” at the Louvre, and the poignant, almost startling, completeness of Tintoret’s illustration of the theme at the Salute church. To compare his “Presentation of the Virgin,” at the Madonna dell’ Orto, with Titian’s at the Academy, or his “Annunciation” with Titian’s close at hand, is to measure the essential difference between observation and imagination. One has certainly not said all that there is to say for Titian when one has called him an observer. Il y mettait du sien, and I use the term to designate roughly the artist whose apprehension, infinitely deep and strong when applied to the single figure or to easily balanced groups, spends itself vainly on great dramatic combinations—or rather leaves them ungauged. It was the whole scene that Tintoret seemed to have beheld in a flash of inspiration intense enough to stamp it ineffaceably on his perception; and it was the whole scene, complete, peculiar, individual, unprecedented, that he committed to canvas with all the vehemence of his talent. Compare his “Last Supper,” at San Giorgio—its long, diagonally placed table, its dusky spaciousness, its scattered lamp-light and halo-light, its startled, gesticulating figures, its richly realistic foreground—with the customary formal, almost mathematical rendering of the subject, in which impressiveness seems to have been sought in elimination rather than comprehension. You get from Tintoret’s work the impression that he felt, pictorially, the great, beautiful, terrible spectacle of human life very much as Shakespeare felt it poetically—with a heart that never ceased to beat a passionate accompaniment to every stroke of his brush. Thanks to this fact his works are signally grave, and their almost universal and rapidly increasing decay doesn’t relieve their gloom. Nothing indeed can well be sadder than the great collection of Tintorets at San Rocco. Incurable blackness is settling fast upon all of them, and they frown at you across the sombre splendour of their great chambers like gaunt twilight phantoms of pictures. To our children’s children Tintoret, as things are going, can be hardly more than a name; and such of them as shall miss the tragic beauty, already so dimmed and stained, of the great “Bearing of the Cross” in that temple of his spirit will live and die without knowing the largest eloquence of art. If you wish to add the last touch of solemnity to the place recall as vividly as possible while you linger at San Rocco the painter’s singularly interesting portrait of himself, at the Louvre. The old man looks out of the canvas from beneath a brow as sad as a sunless twilight, with just such a stoical hopelessness as you might fancy him to wear if he stood at your side gazing at his rotting canvases. It isn’t whimsical to read it as the face of a man who felt that he had given the world more than the world was likely to repay. Indeed before every picture of Tintoret you may remember this tremendous portrait with profit. On one side the power, the passion, the illusion of his art; on the other the mortal fatigue of his spirit. The world’s knowledge of him is so small that the portrait throws a doubly precious light on his personality; and when we wonder vainly what manner of man he was, and what were his purpose, his faith and his method, we may find forcible assurance there that they were at any rate his life—one of the most intellectually passionate ever led.
This, however, is vague praise. Tintoretto’s great strength, in my opinion, was his unmatched clarity of vision. Once he had the idea for a scene, it took shape in his imagination with such intensity, depth, and unique expression that looking at his paintings feels more like an added experience of life than just an observation. Veronese and Titian are satisfied with a looser interpretation of their subjects, as shown by their treatment of themes that Tintoretto, the creator of the Crucifixion at San Cassano, has also explored thoroughly. A striking contrast can be seen between the lack of an overarching character that matches the scattered variety and brightness in Veronese’s “Marriage of Cana” at the Louvre, and the powerful, almost shocking completeness of Tintoretto’s depiction of the theme at the Salute church. Comparing his “Presentation of the Virgin” at the Madonna dell’ Orto with Titian’s at the Academy, or his “Annunciation” with Titian’s nearby, highlights the fundamental difference between observation and imagination. It’s not enough to simply call Titian an observer. Il y mettait du sien, and I use this term to roughly describe the artist whose deep understanding, when focused on a single figure or easily balanced groups, fails to engage when faced with larger dramatic compositions—or rather, leaves them unmeasured. Tintoretto seemed to have captured the entire scene in a flash of inspiration so intense that it was indelibly marked on his perception; and it was this complete, distinct, individual, unprecedented scene that he painted with all the fervor of his talent. Compare his “Last Supper” at San Giorgio—its long, diagon
Verona, which was my last Italian stopping-place, is in any conditions a delightfully interesting city; but the kindness of my own memory of it is deepened by a subsequent ten days’ experience of Germany. I rose one morning at Verona, and went to bed at night at Botzen! The statement needs no comment, and the two places, though but fifty miles apart, are as painfully dissimilar as their names. I had prepared myself for your delectation with a copious tirade on German manners, German scenery, German art and the German stage—on the lights and shadows of Innsbrück, Munich, Nüremberg and Heidelberg; but just as I was about to put pen to paper I glanced into a little volume on these very topics lately published by that famous novelist and moralist, M. Ernest Feydeau, the fruit of a summer’s observation at Homburg. This work produced a reaction; and if I chose to follow M. Feydeau’s own example when he wishes to qualify his approbation I might call his treatise by any vile name known to the speech of man. But I content myself with pronouncing it superficial. I then reflect that my own opportunities for seeing and judging were extremely limited, and I suppress my tirade, lest some more enlightened critic should come and hang me with the same rope. Its sum and substance was to have been that—superficially—Germany is ugly; that Munich is a nightmare, Heidelberg a disappointment (in spite of its charming castle) and even Nüremberg not a joy for ever. But comparisons are odious, and if Munich is ugly Verona is beautiful enough. You may laugh at my logic, but will probably assent to my meaning. I carried away from Verona a precious mental picture upon which I cast an introspective glance whenever between Botzen and Strassburg the oppression of external circumstance became painful. It was a lovely August afternoon in the Roman arena—a ruin in which repair and restoration have been so watchfully and plausibly practised that it seems all of one harmonious antiquity. The vast stony oval rose high against the sky in a single clear, continuous line, broken here and there only by strolling and reclining loungers. The massive tiers inclined in solid monotony to the central circle, in which a small open-air theatre was in active operation. A small quarter of the great slope of masonry facing the stage was roped off into an auditorium, in which the narrow level space between the foot-lights and the lowest step figured as the pit. Foot-lights are a figure of speech, for the performance was going on in the broad glow of the afternoon, with a delightful and apparently by no means misplaced confidence in the good-will of the spectators. What the piece was that was deemed so superbly able to shift for itself I know not—very possibly the same drama that I remember seeing advertised during my former visit to Verona; nothing less than La Tremenda Giustizia di Dio. If titles are worth anything this product of the melodramatist’s art might surely stand upon its own legs. Along the tiers above the little group of regular spectators was gathered a free-list of unauthorised observers, who, although beyond ear-shot, must have been enabled by the generous breadth of Italian gesture to follow the tangled thread of the piece. It was all deliciously Italian—the mixture of old life and new, the mountebank’s booth (it was hardly more) grafted on the antique circus, the dominant presence of a mighty architecture, the loungers and idlers beneath the kindly sky and upon the sun-warmed stones. I never felt more keenly the difference between the background to life in very old and very new civilisations. There are other things in Verona to make it a liberal education to be born there, though that it is one for the contemporary Veronese I don’t pretend to say. The Tombs of the Scaligers, with their soaring pinnacles, their high-poised canopies, their exquisite refinement and concentration of the Gothic idea, I can’t profess, even after much worshipful gazing, to have fully comprehended and enjoyed. They seemed to me full of deep architectural meanings, such as must drop gently into the mind one by one, after infinite tranquil contemplation. But even to the hurried and preoccupied traveller the solemn little chapel-yard in the city’s heart, in which they stand girdled by their great swaying curtain of linked and twisted iron, is one of the most impressive spots in Italy. Nowhere else is such a wealth of artistic achievement crowded into so narrow a space; nowhere else are the daily comings and goings of men blessed by the presence of manlier art. Verona is rich furthermore in beautiful churches—several with beautiful names: San Fermo, Santa Anastasia, San Zenone. This last is a structure of high antiquity and of the most impressive loveliness. The nave terminates in a double choir, that is a sub-choir or crypt into which you descend and where you wander among primitive columns whose variously grotesque capitals rise hardly higher than your head, and an upper choral plane reached by broad stairways of the bravest effect. I shall never forget the impression of majestic chastity that I received from the great nave of the building on my former visit. I then decided to my satisfaction that every church is from the devotional point of view a solecism that has not something of a similar absolute felicity of proportion; for strictly formal beauty seems best to express our conception of spiritual beauty. The nobly serious character of San Zenone is deepened by its single picture—a masterpiece of the most serious of painters, the severe and exquisite Mantegna.
Verona, which was my last stop in Italy, is a wonderfully interesting city; but my fond memories of it have been enriched by a subsequent ten days in Germany. One morning, I woke up in Verona and went to bed that night in Botzen! This statement needs no explanation, and the two places, though only fifty miles apart, are as painfully different as their names suggest. I had planned a lengthy rant about German manners, scenery, art, and theater—about the highlights and lowlights of Innsbrück, Munich, Nuremberg, and Heidelberg; but just as I was about to start writing, I picked up a small book on these very subjects recently published by that famous novelist and moralist, M. Ernest Feydeau, based on his summer observations in Homburg. This book changed my perspective; and if I were to follow M. Feydeau’s own method of critiquing his favorites, I could call his treatise any ugly name known to humanity. But I’m satisfied to say it’s superficial. I then remember that my own opportunities for seeing and judging were extremely limited, and I hold back my rant, lest a more informed critic comes along and points out my shortcomings. The gist of my thoughts was going to be that—on the surface—Germany is unattractive; that Munich is a nightmare, Heidelberg a letdown (despite its charming castle), and even Nuremberg isn’t a treasure. But comparisons are unpleasant, and if Munich is ugly, Verona is beautifully charming enough. You might chuckle at my reasoning, but you'll likely agree with my sentiment. I left Verona with a treasured mental image that I revisit whenever the heaviness of my surroundings between Botzen and Strassburg becomes overwhelming. It was a lovely August afternoon in the Roman arena—a ruin where restoration has been so attentively executed that it feels like one cohesive piece of ancient history. The vast stone oval rose proudly against the sky in a clear, continuous line, occasionally interrupted by leisurely visitors. The massive tiers sloped down monotonously to the central circle where a small open-air theater was actively performing. A small section of the grand stone slope in front of the stage was cordoned off into an audience area, where the narrow space between the stage and the lowest step served as the pit. The term “foot-lights” is a bit misleading since the performance was taking place in the broad afternoon light, fully confident in the goodwill of its audience. I’m not sure what play was considered so outstanding it could carry itself—I suspect it was the same drama I remember being advertised during my last visit to Verona; namely, La Tremenda Giustizia di Dio. If titles carry any weight, this melodramatic work could certainly stand on its own. Above the small group of regular audience members, an assortment of unauthorized spectators gathered, who, although out of earshot, must have been able to follow the tangled narrative thanks to the generous gestures typical in Italian performances. Everything felt delightfully Italian—the blend of old and new, the makeshift booth (it was hardly more) attached to the ancient circus, the overwhelming presence of magnificent architecture, and the relaxed individuals beneath the welcoming sky and on the sun-kissed stones. I never felt the contrast between life in ancient and modern civilizations more acutely. There are other aspects of Verona that would make it a valuable place to be born, though whether it remains one for contemporary Veronese, I can’t say. The Tombs of the Scaligers, with their towering spires, elevated canopies, and exquisite refinement embodying the Gothic style, I cannot claim to have fully understood and appreciated even after much admiring gazing. They seemed to hold profound architectural meanings that must be grasped slowly over time through quiet contemplation. But even for the rushed and distracted traveler, the solemn little chapel yard in the heart of the city, where they are encircled by a grand swaying curtain of wrought iron, is one of the most striking places in Italy. Nowhere else is such a wealth of artistic achievement found in such a compact area; nowhere else are the daily comings and goings of people graced by the presence of more sophisticated art. Additionally, Verona is rich in beautiful churches—many with lovely names: San Fermo, Santa Anastasia, San Zenone. This last one is an ancient structure of remarkable beauty. The nave ends in a double choir, which includes a sub-choir or crypt that you enter, wandering among primitive columns with variously grotesque capitals that barely rise above your head, and an upper choral level accessed by broad, striking staircases. I’ll never forget the sense of majestic purity I felt from the grand nave of the building during my previous visit. At that time, I concluded that every church, from a devotional standpoint, is flawed unless it has a similar perfect proportion; for true formal beauty seems best to capture our understanding of spiritual beauty. The nobly serious character of San Zenone is heightened by its single artwork—a masterpiece from the most serious of painters, the austere and exquisite Mantegna.
{Illustration: THE AMPHITHEATRE, VERONA}
{Illustration: THE AMPHITHEATER, VERONA}
1872
TWO OLD HOUSES AND THREE YOUNG WOMEN
There are times and places that come back yet again, but that, when the brooding tourist puts out his hand to them, meet it a little slowly, or even seem to recede a step, as if in slight fear of some liberty he may take. Surely they should know by this time that he is capable of taking none. He has his own way—he makes it all right. It now becomes just a part of the charming solicitation that it presents precisely a problem—that of giving the particular thing as much as possible without at the same time giving it, as we say, away. There are considerations, proprieties, a necessary indirectness—he must use, in short, a little art. No necessity, however, more than this, makes him warm to his work, and thus it is that, after all, he hangs his three pictures.
There are times and places that come back again, but when the pensive traveler reaches out to them, they respond a little slowly or even seem to take a step back, as if they’re slightly afraid of the freedom he might take. They should realize by now that he would take none. He finds his own way—he makes it all work out. It becomes part of the delightful challenge that it presents a unique problem—that of giving just enough of the experience without fully giving it away, as we say. There are considerations, social norms, a necessary subtlety—he must, in short, use a bit of finesse. However, there's no need for anything more than that to get him engaged in his work, and that's how he ends up displaying his three pictures.
I
The evening that was to give me the first of them was by no means the first occasion of my asking myself if that inveterate “style” of which we talk so much be absolutely conditioned—in dear old Venice and elsewhere—on decrepitude. Is it the style that has brought about the decrepitude, or the decrepitude that has, as it were, intensified and consecrated the style? There is an ambiguity about it all that constantly haunts and beguiles. Dear old Venice has lost her complexion, her figure, her reputation, her self-respect; and yet, with it all, has so puzzlingly not lost a shred of her distinction. Perhaps indeed the case is simpler than it seems, for the poetry of misfortune is familiar to us all, whereas, in spite of a stroke here and there of some happy justice that charms, we scarce find ourselves anywhere arrested by the poetry of a run of luck. The misfortune of Venice being, accordingly, at every point, what we most touch, feel and see, we end by assuming it to be of the essence of her dignity; a consequence, we become aware, by the way, sufficiently discouraging to the general application or pretension of style, and all the more that, to make the final felicity deep, the original greatness must have been something tremendous. If it be the ruins that are noble we have known plenty that were not, and moreover there are degrees and varieties: certain monuments, solid survivals, hold up their heads and decline to ask for a grain of your pity. Well, one knows of course when to keep one’s pity to oneself; yet one clings, even in the face of the colder stare, to one’s prized Venetian privilege of making the sense of doom and decay a part of every impression. Cheerful work, it may be said of course; and it is doubtless only in Venice that you gain more by such a trick than you lose. What was most beautiful is gone; what was next most beautiful is, thank goodness, going—that, I think, is the monstrous description of the better part of your thought. Is it really your fault if the place makes you want so desperately to read history into everything?
The evening that was supposed to give me my first experience was definitely not the first time I asked myself if that stubborn “style” we discuss so often is entirely influenced—specifically in dear old Venice and beyond—by decay. Did the style create the decay, or has the decay, in a way, intensified and sanctified the style? There’s a confusing aspect to it all that continually fascinates and intrigues me. Dear old Venice has lost her allure, her shape, her reputation, her dignity; and still, puzzlingly, she hasn’t lost a bit of her charm. Perhaps the situation is actually simpler than it appears, since we’re all familiar with the beauty that comes with misfortune. Meanwhile, despite a rare moment of delightful justice that captivates us, we hardly ever feel the beauty of good luck. Since the misfortune of Venice is, at every turn, what we most touch, feel, and see, we come to assume it’s fundamental to her dignity; a realization that, by the way, is quite discouraging for any broad application or claim of style, especially given that, to achieve true happiness, the original greatness must have been something extraordinary. If the ruins are indeed noble, we know many that aren’t, and there are also degrees and varieties: some solid monuments stand tall and refuse to beg for your pity. Well, of course, we know when to keep our pity to ourselves; yet, even in the face of a more indifferent view, we cling to our cherished Venetian privilege of making the sense of doom and decay part of every impression. It might be considered cheerful work; and it’s probably only in Venice where you gain more from this perspective than you lose. What was most beautiful is gone; what was next most beautiful is, thankfully, fading—that, I believe, is the disturbing reality of much of your thoughts. Is it truly your fault if the place makes you so desperately want to interpret everything through history?
You do that wherever you turn and wherever you look, and you do it, I should say, most of all at night. It comes to you there with longer knowledge, and with all deference to what flushes and shimmers, that the night is the real time. It perhaps even wouldn’t take much to make you award the palm to the nights of winter. This is certainly true for the form of progression that is most characteristic, for every question of departure and arrival by gondola. The little closed cabin of this perfect vehicle, the movement, the darkness and the plash, the indistinguishable swerves and twists, all the things you don’t see and all the things you do feel—each dim recognition and obscure arrest is a possible throb of your sense of being floated to your doom, even when the truth is simply and sociably that you are going out to tea. Nowhere else is anything as innocent so mysterious, nor anything as mysterious so pleasantly deterrent to protest. These are the moments when you are most daringly Venetian, most content to leave cheap trippers and other aliens the high light of the mid-lagoon and the pursuit of pink and gold. The splendid day is good enough for them; what is best for you is to stop at last, as you are now stopping, among clustered pali and softly-shifting poops and prows, at a great flight of water-steps that play their admirable part in the general effect of a great entrance. The high doors stand open from them to the paved chamber of a basement tremendously tall and not vulgarly lighted, from which, in turn, mounts the slow stone staircase that draws you further on. The great point is, that if you are worthy of this impression at all, there isn’t a single item of it of which the association isn’t noble. Hold to it fast that there is no other such dignity of arrival as arrival by water. Hold to it that to float and slacken and gently bump, to creep out of the low, dark felze and make the few guided movements and find the strong crooked and offered arm, and then, beneath lighted palace-windows, pass up the few damp steps on the precautionary carpet—hold to it that these things constitute a preparation of which the only defect is that it may sometimes perhaps really prepare too much. It’s so stately that what can come after?—it’s so good in itself that what, upstairs, as we comparative vulgarians say, can be better? Hold to it, at any rate, that if a lady, in especial, scrambles out of a carriage, tumbles out of a cab, flops out of a tram-car, and hurtles, projectile-like, out of a “lightning-elevator,” she alights from the Venetian conveyance as Cleopatra may have stepped from her barge. Upstairs—whatever may be yet in store for her—her entrance shall still advantageously enjoy the support most opposed to the “momentum” acquired. The beauty of the matter has been in the absence of all momentum—elsewhere so scientifically applied to us, from behind, by the terrible life of our day—and in the fact that, as the elements of slowness, the felicities of deliberation, doubtless thus all hang together, the last of calculable dangers is to enter a great Venetian room with a rush.
You do that wherever you go and wherever you look, and I should say, you do it most of all at night. It comes to you there with deeper understanding, and with all respect to what glimmers and shines, that nighttime is the real essence of it. It wouldn’t take much to make you favor the nights of winter. This is especially true for the way things typically unfold, for every question of leaving and arriving by gondola. The little enclosed cabin of this perfect vehicle, the motion, the darkness and the sound of water splashing, the indistinguishable twists and turns, all the things you can’t see and all the things you can feel—each dim sense of recognition and moment of uncertainty is a possible hint that you might be drifting toward your demise, even when the truth is simply that you’re going out for tea. Nowhere else is anything as innocent so mysterious, nor anything as mysterious so pleasantly dissuasive to complaint. These are the moments when you feel most daringly Venetian, most content to leave the budget tourists and other outsiders to enjoy the bright mid-lagoon and the pursuit of pink and gold. The stunning day is fine for them; what’s best for you is to finally stop, as you are now stopping, among clustered pali and gently shifting sterns and bows, at a grand set of water steps that play their wonderful part in creating a grand entrance. The tall doors stand open from there to a beautifully spacious, dimly lit basement chamber, from which the slow stone staircase leads you further in. The key point is, if you deserve this experience at all, every element of it has a noble association. Remember that there’s no other arrival that holds such dignity as arriving by water. Remember that to float and relax and gently bump, to step out of the low, dark felze and make a few guided movements to find the strong, welcoming arm, and then, beneath bright palace windows, ascend the few damp steps onto the inviting carpet—remember that these things create a preparation that only has one flaw: it might sometimes prepare you too much. It’s so grand that what can follow?—it’s so amazing by itself that what, upstairs, as we somewhat unsophisticated people would say, could be better? Remember, at least, that if a lady, especially, scrambles out of a car, tumbles out of a cab, flops out of a tram, and hurtles out of a “lightning-elevator,” she steps from the Venetian ride as Cleopatra might have from her barge. Upstairs—whatever may await her—her entrance will still benefit from the support most opposed to the “momentum” she’s built up. The beauty of the situation lies in the absence of all that momentum—applied to us elsewhere so scientifically, from behind, by the relentless pace of our lives—and the fact that, as the elements of slowness and the pleasures of contemplation certainly connect, the last thing you want is to enter a grand Venetian room in a hurry.
Not the least happy note, therefore, of the picture I am trying to frame is that there was absolutely no rushing; not only in the sense of a scramble over marble floors, but, by reason of something dissuasive and distributive in the very air of the place, a suggestion, under the fine old ceilings and among types of face and figure abounding in the unexpected, that here were many things to consider. Perhaps the simplest rendering of a scene into the depths of which there are good grounds of discretion for not sinking would be just this emphasis on the value of the unexpected for such occasions—with due qualification, naturally, of its degree. Unexpectedness pure and simple, it is needless to say, may easily endanger any social gathering, and I hasten to add moreover that the figures and faces I speak of were probably not in the least unexpected to each other. The stage they occupied was a stage of variety—Venice has ever been a garden of strange social flowers. It is only as reflected in the consciousness of the visitor from afar—brooding tourist even call him, or sharp-eyed bird on the branch—that I attempt to give you the little drama; beginning with the felicity that most appealed to him, the visible, unmistakable fact that he was the only representative of his class. The whole of the rest of the business was but what he saw and felt and fancied—what he was to remember and what he was to forget. Through it all, I may say distinctly, he clung to his great Venetian clue—the explanation of everything by the historic idea. It was a high historic house, with such a quantity of recorded past twinkling in the multitudinous candles that one grasped at the idea of something waning and displaced, and might even fondly and secretly nurse the conceit that what one was having was just the very last. Wasn’t it certainly, for instance, no mere illusion that there is no appreciable future left for such manners—an urbanity so comprehensive, a form so transmitted, as those of such a hostess and such a host? The future is for a different conception of the graceful altogether—so far as it’s for a conception of the graceful at all. Into that computation I shall not attempt to enter; but these representative products of an antique culture, at least, and one of which the secret seems more likely than not to be lost, were not common, nor indeed was any one else—in the circle to which the picture most insisted on restricting itself.
Not the least happy note, therefore, of the picture I am trying to frame is that there was absolutely no rushing; not only in the sense of a scramble over marble floors, but because of something dissuasive and distributive in the very air of the place, a suggestion, under the fine old ceilings and among the variety of faces and figures bursting with the unexpected, that there were many things to think about. Perhaps the simplest way to describe a scene where it’s wise not to dive too deep would be to emphasize the value of the unexpected for such occasions—with the necessary qualification of its extent. Pure and simple unexpectedness, as we all know, can easily jeopardize any social gathering, and I should also mention that the figures and faces I speak of were probably not at all unexpected to one another. The stage they occupied was one of variety—Venice has always been a garden of unusual social delicacies. It’s only through the eyes of a distant visitor—call him a brooding tourist or a sharp-eyed bird on a branch—that I try to present you with this little drama; starting with the joy that most appealed to him, the clear, undeniable fact that he was the only representative of his class. Everything else was just what he perceived, felt, and imagined—what he would remember and what he would forget. Throughout it all, I can say clearly, he held onto his key to Venice—the understanding of everything through its historical context. It was a grand historical setting, with so much recorded past twinkling in the countless candles that one couldn’t help but sense something fading and passing, and might even secretly nurture the idea that what one was experiencing was truly the very last of its kind. Wasn’t it indeed no mere illusion that there is no real future left for such manners—an urbanity so all-encompassing, a form so well-established, as those of such a hostess and host? The future belongs to a completely different idea of grace—if it even allows for a conception of grace at all. I won’t try to delve into that calculation; but these representative products of an ancient culture, one whose secret seems more likely than not to be lost, were not common, nor was anyone else—in the circle that this picture restricts itself to.
Neither, on the other hand, was anyone either very beautiful or very fresh: which was again, exactly, a precious “value” on an occasion that was to shine most, to the imagination, by the complexity of its references. Such old, old women with such old, old jewels; such ugly, ugly ones with such handsome, becoming names; such battered, fatigued gentlemen with such inscrutable decorations; such an absence of youth, for the most part, in either sex—of the pink and white, the “bud” of new worlds; such a general personal air, in fine, of being the worse for a good deal of wear in various old ones. It was not a society—that was clear—in which little girls and boys set the tune; and there was that about it all that might well have cast a shadow on the path of even the most successful little girl. Yet also—let me not be rudely inexact—it was in honour of youth and freshness that we had all been convened. The fiançailles of the last—unless it were the last but one—unmarried daughter of the house had just been brought to a proper climax; the contract had been signed, the betrothal rounded off—I’m not sure that the civil marriage hadn’t, that day, taken place. The occasion then had in fact the most charming of heroines and the most ingenuous of heroes, a young man, the latter, all happily suffused with a fair Austrian blush. The young lady had had, besides other more or less shining recent ancestors, a very famous paternal grandmother, who had played a great part in the political history of her time and whose portrait, in the taste and dress of 1830, was conspicuous in one of the rooms. The grand-daughter of this celebrity, of royal race, was strikingly like her and, by a fortunate stroke, had been habited, combed, curled in a manner exactly to reproduce the portrait. These things were charming and amusing, as indeed were several other things besides. The great Venetian beauty of our period was there, and nature had equipped the great Venetian beauty for her part with the properest sense of the suitable, or in any case with a splendid generosity—since on the ideally suitable character of so brave a human symbol who shall have the last word? This responsible agent was at all events the beauty in the world about whom probably, most, the absence of question (an absence never wholly propitious) would a little smugly and monotonously flourish: the one thing wanting to the interest she inspired was thus the possibility of ever discussing it. There were plenty of suggestive subjects round about, on the other hand, as to which the exchange of ideas would by no means necessarily have dropped. You profit to the full at such times by all the old voices, echoes, images—by that element of the history of Venice which represents all Europe as having at one time and another revelled or rested, asked for pleasure or for patience there; which gives you the place supremely as the refuge of endless strange secrets, broken fortunes and wounded hearts.
Neither, on the other hand, was anyone particularly beautiful or youthful: which was, again, precisely a valuable “thing” on an occasion that was meant to impress the imagination with its complexity of references. Such old, old women with such old, old jewels; such ugly, ugly ones with such attractive, fitting names; such worn-out, weary gentlemen with such mysterious decorations; such a general absence of youth, mostly, in either sex—of the pink and white, the “bud” of new worlds; such a universal air, in short, of being significantly worn from various old ones. It was clear that this was not a society where little girls and boys led the way; and there was something about it all that could have cast a shadow even on the path of the most successful little girl. Yet also—let me not be imprecise—it was in honor of youth and freshness that we had all been gathered. The fiançailles of the last—unless it were the last but one—unmarried daughter of the house had just come to a proper conclusion; the contract had been signed, the betrothal completed—I’m not sure that the civil marriage hadn’t, that day, actually taken place. The occasion then indeed had the most charming of heroines and the most innocent of heroes, a young man, the latter, all happily glowing with a fair Austrian blush. The young lady had, in addition to other more or less illustrious recent ancestors, a very famous paternal grandmother, who had played a significant role in the political history of her time and whose portrait, in the style and dress of 1830, was prominently displayed in one of the rooms. This celebrity’s granddaughter, of royal descent, resembled her strikingly and, by a fortunate turn of events, had been dressed, styled, and curled in a way that perfectly mirrored the portrait. These details were charming and entertaining, as indeed were several other aspects. The great Venetian beauty of our time was present, and nature had equipped the great Venetian beauty with the best sense of what was suitable, or in any case with remarkable generosity—because who can ultimately have the final say on the ideally suitable character of such a brave human symbol? This responsible figure was, at any rate, the beauty in the world about whom probably, the absence of questions (an absence never entirely favorable) would smugly and monotonously prevail: the only thing lacking in the interest she sparked was the possibility of ever discussing it. However, there were plenty of suggestive topics around, which could definitely have led to the exchange of ideas. You fully benefit at such times from all the old voices, echoes, images—by that element of the history of Venice which represents all of Europe at one point or another having reveled or rested, sought pleasure or patience there; which presents the place as the ultimate refuge of endless strange secrets, broken fortunes, and wounded hearts.
II
There had been, on lines of further or different speculation, a young Englishman to luncheon, and the young Englishman had proved “sympathetic”; so that when it was a question afterwards of some of the more hidden treasures, the browner depths of the old churches, the case became one for mutual guidance and gratitude—for a small afternoon tour and the wait of a pair of friends in the warm little campi, at locked doors for which the nearest urchin had scurried off to fetch the keeper of the key. There are few brown depths to-day into which the light of the hotels doesn’t shine, and few hidden treasures about which pages enough, doubtless, haven’t already been printed: my business, accordingly, let me hasten to say, is not now with the fond renewal of any discovery—at least in the order of impressions most usual. Your discovery may be, for that matter, renewed every week; the only essential is the good luck—which a fair amount of practice has taught you to count upon-of not finding, for the particular occasion, other discoverers in the field. Then, in the quiet corner, with the closed door—then in the presence of the picture and of your companion’s sensible emotion—not only the original happy moment, but everything else, is renewed. Yet once again it can all come back. The old custode, shuffling about in the dimness, jerks away, to make sure of his tip, the old curtain that isn’t much more modern than the wonderful work itself. He does his best to create light where light can never be; but you have your practised groping gaze, and in guiding the young eyes of your less confident associate, moreover, you feel you possess the treasure. These are the refined pleasures that Venice has still to give, these odd happy passages of communication and response.
There had been, on different speculation, a young Englishman at lunch, and he turned out to be “sympathetic”; so when the conversation later shifted to some of the more hidden treasures, the darker corners of the old churches, it became a moment for mutual guidance and appreciation—for a brief afternoon tour and the wait of two friends in the warm little campi, at locked doors for which the nearest kid had run off to get the key holder. Nowadays, there are few dark corners into which the light of hotels doesn’t shine, and few hidden treasures that haven’t already been extensively documented; my purpose here, let me quickly clarify, is not to revisit any discoveries—at least not in the usual way of impressions. Your discovery can, for that matter, be refreshed every week; the only thing that matters is the good fortune—which a fair amount of experience has taught you to rely on—of not encountering, on this particular occasion, other explorers in the area. Then, in that quiet corner, with the door closed—then in the presence of the artwork and your companion’s genuine reaction—not only is the original happy moment renewed, but everything else is too. Once again, it can all come back. The old custodian, shuffling around in the dim light, checks to make sure of his tip, pulling back the old curtain that isn’t much more modern than the remarkable work itself. He tries his best to create light where there is none; but you have your practiced searching eye, and while guiding the young eyes of your less confident friend, you feel you possess the treasure. These are the refined pleasures that Venice still offers, these unique moments of connection and response.
But the point of my reminiscence is that there were other communications that day, as there were certainly other responses. I have forgotten exactly what it was we were looking for—without much success—when we met the three Sisters. Nothing requires more care, as a long knowledge of Venice works in, than not to lose the useful faculty of getting lost. I had so successfully done my best to preserve it that I could at that moment conscientiously profess an absence of any suspicion of where we might be. It proved enough that, wherever we were, we were where the three sisters found us. This was on a little bridge near a big campo, and a part of the charm of the matter was the theory that it was very much out of the way. They took us promptly in hand—they were only walking over to San Marco to match some coloured wool for the manufacture of such belated cushions as still bloom with purple and green in the long leisures of old palaces; and that mild errand could easily open a parenthesis. The obscure church we had feebly imagined we were looking for proved, if I am not mistaken, that of the sisters’ parish; as to which I have but a confused recollection of a large grey void and of admiring for the first time a fine work of art of which I have now quite lost the identity. This was the effect of the charming beneficence of the three sisters, who presently were to give our adventure a turn in the emotion of which everything that had preceded seemed as nothing. It actually strikes me even as a little dim to have been told by them, as we all fared together, that a certain low, wide house, in a small square as to which I found myself without particular association, had been in the far-off time the residence of George Sand. And yet this was a fact that, though I could then only feel it must be for another day, would in a different connection have set me richly reconstructing.
But the point of my memory is that there were other interactions that day, just as there were certainly other reactions. I’ve forgotten what we were searching for—without much luck—when we ran into the three sisters. Nothing requires more care, as a long experience in Venice teaches, than to not lose the helpful ability to get lost. I had done such a good job of maintaining that skill that I could honestly say I had no idea where we might be at that moment. It was enough that, wherever we were, we were where the three sisters found us. This was on a little bridge near a large square, and part of the charm was the idea that it was quite out of the way. They took us under their wing quickly—they were just walking over to San Marco to find some colored yarn for making those late cushions that still bloom with purple and green in the leisurely old palaces; and that simple task could easily lead to a digression. The obscure church we had half-heartedly thought we were searching for turned out, if I remember correctly, to be the one where the sisters attended, of which I have only a hazy memory of a large grey space and of admiring for the first time a beautiful piece of art whose identity I’ve now completely forgotten. This was due to the kind generosity of the three sisters, who soon were about to give our adventure a shift in emotion that made everything that had come before seem insignificant. It even seems a bit vague to me now that they told us, as we all walked together, that a certain low, wide house, in a small square that I found myself associating with nothing in particular, had once been the home of George Sand. Yet this was a fact that, although I could only feel it needed to be saved for another time, would have led me to richly reconstruct in another context.
Madame Sand’s famous Venetian year has been of late immensely in the air—a tub of soiled linen which the muse of history, rolling her sleeves well up, has not even yet quite ceased energetically and publicly to wash. The house in question must have been the house to which the wonderful lady betook herself when, in 1834, after the dramatic exit of Alfred de Musset, she enjoyed that remarkable period of rest and refreshment with the so long silent, the but recently rediscovered, reported, extinguished, Doctor Pagello. As an old Sandist—not exactly indeed of the première heure, but of the fine high noon and golden afternoon of the great career—I had been, though I confess too inactively, curious as to a few points in the topography of the eminent adventure to which I here allude; but had never got beyond the little public fact, in itself always a bit of a thrill to the Sandist, that the present Hotel Danieli had been the scene of its first remarkable stages. I am not sure indeed that the curiosity I speak of has not at last, in my breast, yielded to another form of wonderment—truly to the rather rueful question of why we have so continued to concern ourselves, and why the fond observer of the footprints of genius is likely so to continue, with a body of discussion, neither in itself and in its day, nor in its preserved and attested records, at all positively edifying. The answer to such an inquiry would doubtless reward patience, but I fear we can now glance at its possibilities only long enough to say that interesting persons—so they be of a sufficiently approved and established interest—render in some degree interesting whatever happens to them, and give it an importance even when very little else (as in the case I refer to) may have operated to give it a dignity. Which is where I leave the issue of further identifications.
Madame Sand’s famous Venetian year has recently been a hot topic—a heap of dirty laundry that the muse of history, with her sleeves rolled up, hasn’t quite finished washing. The house in question must have been the one she went to in 1834, after the dramatic departure of Alfred de Musset, where she enjoyed a remarkable period of rest and refreshment with the long-silent, recently rediscovered, reported, and supposedly extinguished Doctor Pagello. As an old Sand fan—not exactly from the very beginning, but from the high noon and golden afternoon of her great career—I had been, although I admit not very actively, curious about a few details regarding this notable adventure I mention; however, I had never gone beyond the well-known fact, which is always a thrill for a Sand enthusiast, that the current Hotel Danieli was the site of its initial remarkable moments. I'm not even sure if my curiosity has finally transformed into another kind of wonder—truly a somewhat rueful question of why we continue to be so invested in this, and why those who enjoy tracking the footprints of genius are likely to keep doing so, with a body of discussion that, both in its time and in the preserved records, isn’t exactly uplifting. The answer to such a question would certainly reward patience, but I fear we can now only look at its possibilities long enough to say that interesting people—if they have enough approved and established interest—make whatever happens to them somewhat interesting, and give it significance even when very little else (as in the case I’m referring to) has contributed to its worthiness. This is where I’ll leave the issue of further identifications.
For the three sisters, in the kindest way in the world, had asked us if we already knew their sequestered home and whether, in case we didn’t, we should be at all amused to see it. My own acquaintance with them, though not of recent origin, had hitherto lacked this enhancement, at which we both now grasped with the full instinct, indescribable enough, of what it was likely to give. But how, for that matter, either, can I find the right expression of what was to remain with us of this episode? It is the fault of the sad-eyed old witch of Venice that she so easily puts more into things that can pass under the common names that do for them elsewhere. Too much for a rough sketch was to be seen and felt in the home of the three sisters, and in the delightful and slightly pathetic deviation of their doing us so simply and freely the honours of it. What was most immediately marked was their resigned cosmopolite state, the effacement of old conventional lines by foreign contact and example; by the action, too, of causes full of a special interest, but not to be emphasised perhaps—granted indeed they be named at all—without a certain sadness of sympathy. If “style,” in Venice, sits among ruins, let us always lighten our tread when we pay her a visit.
For the three sisters, in the kindest way possible, had asked us if we already knew their secluded home and whether, if we didn’t, we would be interested in seeing it. My previous experience with them, although not recent, had lacked this enhancement, which we both now recognized with an indescribable instinct about what it was likely to offer. But how can I accurately express what this episode would mean to us? It’s the fault of the sad-eyed old witch of Venice that she easily enriches ordinary things with more than what common names can convey. There was so much to see and feel in the home of the three sisters, and in the lovely yet slightly bittersweet way they graciously welcomed us. What stood out most was their resigned cosmopolitan state, the fading of traditional boundaries through foreign influence; caused also by factors full of special interest, but perhaps not to be highlighted without a certain sorrowful sympathy. If “style,” in Venice, resides among ruins, let us always tread lightly when we pay her a visit.
Our steps were in fact, I am happy to think, almost soft enough for a death-chamber as we stood in the big, vague sala of the three sisters, spectators of their simplified state and their beautiful blighted rooms, the memories, the portraits, the shrunken relics of nine Doges. If I wanted a first chapter it was here made to my hand; the painter of life and manners, as he glanced about, could only sigh—as he so frequently has to—over the vision of so much more truth than he can use. What on earth is the need to “invent,” in the midst of tragedy and comedy that never cease? Why, with the subject itself, all round, so inimitable, condemn the picture to the silliness of trying not to be aware of it? The charming lonely girls, carrying so simply their great name and fallen fortunes, the despoiled decaduta house, the unfailing Italian grace, the space so out of scale with actual needs, the absence of books, the presence of ennui, the sense of the length of the hours and the shortness of everything else—all this was a matter not only for a second chapter and a third, but for a whole volume, a dénoûment and a sequel.
Our steps were, I’m glad to say, almost soft enough for a death chamber as we stood in the large, vague sala of the three sisters, witnessing their simple state and their beautifully decayed rooms, the memories, the portraits, the faded relics of nine Doges. If I wanted a first chapter, it was right here in front of me; the artist of life and manners, as he looked around, could only sigh—as he often does—over the sight of so much more truth than he can capture. What’s the point of “inventing” when tragedy and comedy are all around us, constantly unfolding? Why, with the extraordinary subject right there, condemn the artwork to the absurdity of pretending it isn’t happening? The charming solitary girls, carrying their famous name and fallen fortunes so gracefully, the dilapidated decaduta house, the ever-present Italian elegance, the space that feels so disproportionate to actual needs, the lack of books, the presence of boredom, the feeling of endless hours and the briefness of everything else—all of this deserves not just a second chapter and a third, but an entire volume, a dénoûment, and a sequel.
This time, unmistakably, it was the last—Wordsworth’s stately “shade of that which once was great”; and it was almost as if our distinguished young friends had consented to pass away slowly in order to treat us to the vision. Ends are only ends in truth, for the painter of pictures, when they are more or less conscious and prolonged. One of the sisters had been to London, whence she had brought back the impression of having seen at the British Museum a room exclusively filled with books and documents devoted to the commemoration of her family. She must also then have encountered at the National Gallery the exquisite specimen of an early Venetian master in which one of her ancestors, then head of the State, kneels with so sweet a dignity before the Virgin and Child. She was perhaps old enough, none the less, to have seen this precious work taken down from the wall of the room in which we sat and—on terms so far too easy—carried away for ever; and not too young, at all events, to have been present, now and then, when her candid elders, enlightened too late as to what their sacrifice might really have done for them, looked at each other with the pale hush of the irreparable. We let ourselves note that these were matters to put a great deal of old, old history into sweet young Venetian faces.
This time, without a doubt, it was the end—Wordsworth’s grand “shade of what once was great”; and it felt almost as if our distinguished young friends had agreed to fade away slowly just to give us this vision. In reality, ends are just that—ends—when they are more or less aware and drawn out. One of the sisters had visited London, where she returned with the impression of having seen at the British Museum a room entirely dedicated to books and documents honoring her family. She must have also encountered at the National Gallery the beautiful piece by an early Venetian master where one of her ancestors, who was then the head of the State, kneels with such sweet dignity before the Virgin and Child. She was probably old enough, nonetheless, to have witnessed this precious artwork taken down from the wall of the room we were in and—under terms far too lenient—removed forever; and certainly not too young to have occasionally seen her candid elders, who realized too late the true cost of their sacrifice, exchanging looks filled with the quiet sorrow of the irreparable. We allowed ourselves to recognize that these were matters that could evoke a wealth of ancient history in the sweet young Venetian faces.
III
In Italy, if we come to that, this particular appearance is far from being only in the streets, where we are apt most to observe it—in countenances caught as we pass and in the objects marked by the guide-books with their respective stellar allowances. It is behind the walls of the houses that old, old history is thick and that the multiplied stars of Baedeker might often best find their application. The feast of St. John the Baptist is the feast of the year in Florence, and it seemed to me on that night that I could have scattered about me a handful of these signs. I had the pleasure of spending a couple of hours on a signal high terrace that overlooks the Arno, as well as in the galleries that open out to it, where I met more than ever the pleasant curious question of the disparity between the old conditions and the new manners. Make our manners, we moderns, as good as we can, there is still no getting over it that they are not good enough for many of the great places. This was one of those scenes, and its greatness came out to the full into the hot Florentine evening, in which the pink and golden fires of the pyrotechnics arranged on Ponte Carraja—the occasion of our assembly—lighted up the large issue. The “good people” beneath were a huge, hot, gentle, happy family; the fireworks on the bridge, kindling river as well as sky, were delicate and charming; the terrace connected the two wings that give bravery to the front of the palace, and the close-hung pictures in the rooms, open in a long series, offered to a lover of quiet perambulation an alternative hard to resist.
In Italy, when it comes down to it, this particular scene is far from being just in the streets, where we’re most likely to notice it—in faces we glimpse as we walk by and in the sights highlighted by guidebooks with their star ratings. It’s behind the walls of the houses that ancient history is thick, and the many stars of Baedeker might often be best applied. The feast of St. John the Baptist is the highlight of the year in Florence, and it seemed to me on that night that I could’ve scattered a handful of these signs around me. I enjoyed spending a couple of hours on a prominent terrace overlooking the Arno, as well as in the galleries that lead out to it, where I encountered more than ever the delightful and curious question of the gap between old traditions and new behaviors. No matter how well we moderns try to refine our manners, it's clear that they often fall short for many of the grand places. This was one of those moments, and its magnificence shone brilliantly in the hot Florentine evening, as the pink and golden bursts from the fireworks arranged on Ponte Carraja—the reason for our gathering—illuminated the larger scene. The “good people” below were a vast, warm, gentle, happy crowd; the fireworks on the bridge lit up both the river and the sky, creating a delicate and charming spectacle; the terrace connected the two wings that enhance the forefront of the palace, and the closely hung paintings in the long series of open rooms offered an irresistible temptation for someone who loves a peaceful stroll.
Wherever he stood—on the broad loggia, in the cluster of company, among bland ejaculations and liquefied ices, or in the presence of the mixed masters that led him from wall to wall—such a seeker for the spirit of each occasion could only turn it over that in the first place this was an intenser, finer little Florence than ever, and that in the second the testimony was again wonderful to former fashions and ideas. What did they do, in the other time, the time of so much smaller a society, smaller and fewer fortunes, more taste perhaps as to some particulars, but fewer tastes, at any rate, and fewer habits and wants—what did they do with chambers so multitudinous and so vast? Put their “state” at its highest—and we know of many ways in which it must have broken down—how did they live in them without the aid of variety? How did they, in minor communities in which every one knew every one, and every one’s impression and effect had been long, as we say, discounted, find representation and emulation sufficiently amusing? Much of the charm of thinking of it, however, is doubtless that we are not able to say. This leaves us with the conviction that does them most honour: the old generations built and arranged greatly for the simple reason that they liked it, and they could bore themselves—to say nothing of each other, when it came to that—better in noble conditions than in mean ones.
Wherever he stood—on the wide terrace, in the crowd of people, among casual conversations and frozen treats, or in the presence of the various masters who guided him from one wall to another—this seeker of the spirit of each occasion could only realize that, first, this was a more intense, refined little Florence than ever, and second, the evidence was once again incredible regarding past styles and ideas. What did they do during the earlier times, when society was so much smaller, with fewer fortunes and perhaps more specific tastes, but definitely fewer tastes overall, along with fewer habits and needs—how did they use spaces that were so numerous and so large? They displayed their "status" at its peak—and we know of many ways it must have crumbled—how did they live in such spaces without the benefit of variety? In tight-knit communities where everyone knew each other, and everyone’s impressions and effects had long been, as we say, accounted for, how did they find enough representation and imitation entertaining? Much of the allure of thinking about it, however, is that we probably can’t really say. This leaves us with the belief that honors them most: the older generations built and arranged magnificently simply because they enjoyed it, and they could certainly endure boredom—with each other or otherwise—better in grand settings than in humble ones.
It was not, I must add, of the far-away Florentine age that I most thought, but of periods more recent and of which the sound and beautiful house more directly spoke. If one had always been homesick for the Arno-side of the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries, here was a chance, and a better one than ever, to taste again of the cup. Many of the pictures—there was a charming quarter of an hour when I had them to myself—were bad enough to have passed for good in those delightful years. Shades of Grand-Dukes encompassed me—Dukes of the pleasant later sort who weren’t really grand. There was still the sense of having come too late—yet not too late, after all, for this glimpse and this dream. My business was to people the place—its own business had never been to save us the trouble of understanding it. And then the deepest spell of all was perhaps that just here I was supremely out of the way of the so terribly actual Florentine question. This, as all the world knows, is a battle-ground, to-day, in many journals, with all Italy practically pulling on one side and all England, America and Germany pulling on the other: I speak of course of the more or less articulate opinion. The “improvement,” the rectification of Florence is in the air, and the problem of the particular ways in which, given such desperately delicate cases, these matters should be understood. The little treasure-city is, if there ever was one, a delicate case—more delicate perhaps than any other in the world save that of our taking on ourselves to persuade the Italians that they mayn’t do as they like with their own. They so absolutely may that I profess I see no happy issue from the fight. It will take more tact than our combined tactful genius may at all probably muster to convince them that their own is, by an ingenious logic, much rather ours. It will take more subtlety still to muster for them that dazzling show of examples from which they may learn that what in general is “ours” shall appear to them as a rule a sacrifice to beauty and a triumph of taste. The situation, to the truly analytic mind, offers in short, to perfection, all the elements of despair; and I am afraid that if I hung back, at the Corsini palace, to woo illusions and invoke the irrelevant, it was because I could think, in the conditions, of no better way to meet the acute responsibility of the critic than just to shirk it.
I should mention that I was thinking more about recent times rather than the distant Florentine era. If someone had always felt nostalgic for the Arno from the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries, this was a fantastic opportunity to experience it again. Many of the paintings—there was a lovely fifteen minutes when I had the place to myself—were mediocre enough to have passed for good during those charming years. I was surrounded by the spirits of Grand-Dukes—those later Dukes who weren’t truly grand. There was still a feeling of having arrived too late—yet not too late, after all, for this glimpse and this dream. My job was to bring life to the place—its purpose had never been to make it easy for us to understand it. And perhaps the strongest enchantment of all was that I was completely distanced from the intense Florentine debate. This, as everyone knows, is the topic of contention today in many publications, with all of Italy essentially on one side and all of England, America, and Germany on the other: I refer, of course, to the more or less articulate opinions. The “improvement” and rectification of Florence is a hot topic, along with the specific ways in which these delicate issues should be understood. The little treasure-city is, if anything, a sensitive case—perhaps more so than any other in the world, except for our attempt to convince the Italians that they can’t do as they please with their own. They absolutely can, and honestly, I don't see a happy outcome from this conflict. It will require more tact than our collective diplomatic skills can muster to persuade them that their own is, through some clever reasoning, much more ours. It will take even more subtlety to provide them with the impressive examples from which they can learn that what is generally “ours” often appears to them as a sacrifice to beauty and a triumph of taste. For a truly analytical mind, the situation perfectly embodies all the elements of despair. I'm afraid that if I lingered at the Corsini palace to cultivate illusions and bring up irrelevant matters, it was because I couldn’t think of a better way to tackle the sharp responsibility of the critic than simply to avoid it.
{1899.}
CASA ALVISI
Invited to “introduce” certain pages of cordial and faithful reminiscence from another hand, {1}
Invited to “introduce” some pages of warm and genuine memories from a different perspective, {1}
{1} “Browning in Venice,” being Recollections of the late Katharine De Kay Bronson, with a Prefatory Note by H. J. (Cornhill Magazine, February, 1902).}
{1} “Browning in Venice,” being Memories of the late Katharine De Kay Bronson, with a Preface by H. J. (Cornhill Magazine, February, 1902).}
in which a frankly predominant presence seems to live again, I undertook that office with an interest inevitably somewhat sad—so passed and gone to-day is so much of the life suggested. Those who fortunately knew Mrs. Bronson will read into her notes still more of it—more of her subject, more of herself too, and of many things—than she gives, and some may well even feel tempted to do for her what she has done here for her distinguished friend. In Venice, during a long period, for many pilgrims, Mrs. Arthur Bronson, originally of New York, was, so far as society, hospitality, a charming personal welcome were concerned, almost in sole possession; she had become there, with time, quite the prime representative of those private amenities which the Anglo-Saxon abroad is apt to miss just in proportion as the place visited is publicly wonderful, and in which he therefore finds a value twice as great as at home. Mrs. Bronson really earned in this way the gratitude of mingled generations and races. She sat for twenty years at the wide mouth, as it were, of the Grand Canal, holding out her hand, with endless good-nature, patience, charity, to all decently accredited petitioners, the incessant troop of those either bewilderedly making or fondly renewing acquaintance with the dazzling city.
in which a clearly dominant presence seems to come to life again, I took on that role with a naturally somewhat sad interest—so much of the life implied is now past and gone. Those who were lucky enough to know Mrs. Bronson will read even more into her notes—more about her topic, more about herself, and many other things—than she provides, and some may even feel tempted to do for her what she has done here for her distinguished friend. In Venice, for a long time, Mrs. Arthur Bronson, originally from New York, was, in terms of society, hospitality, and a warm personal welcome, almost the sole owner of that experience; she had become, over time, the main representative of the private comforts that Anglo-Saxons abroad often find lacking, especially in places that are publicly remarkable, which makes their value feel twice as significant as it does at home. In this way, Mrs. Bronson truly earned the gratitude of mixed generations and cultures. For twenty years, she sat at the wide mouth of the Grand Canal, extending her hand, with endless good nature, patience, and kindness, to all properly recognized petitioners, the unending stream of those either confusedly beginning or affectionately renewing their acquaintance with the dazzling city.
{Illustration: CASA ALVISI, VENICE}
{Illustration: CASA ALVISI, VENICE}
Casa Alvisi is directly opposite the high, broad-based florid church of S. Maria della Salute—so directly that from the balcony over the water-entrance your eye, crossing the canal, seems to find the key-hole of the great door right in a line with it; and there was something in this position that for the time made all Venice-lovers think of the genial padrona as thus levying in the most convenient way the toll of curiosity and sympathy. Every one passed, every one was seen to pass, and few were those not seen to stop and to return. The most generous of hostesses died a year ago at Florence; her house knows her no more—it had ceased to do so for some time before her death; and the long, pleased procession—the charmed arrivals, the happy sojourns at anchor, the reluctant departures that made Ca’ Alvisi, as was currently said, a social porto di mare—is, for remembrance and regret, already a possession of ghosts; so that, on the spot, at present, the attention ruefully averts itself from the dear little old faded but once familiarly bright façade, overtaken at last by the comparatively vulgar uses that are doing their best to “paint out” in Venice, right and left, by staring signs and other vulgarities, the immemorial note of distinction. The house, in a city of palaces, was small, but the tenant clung to her perfect, her inclusive position—the one right place that gave her a better command, as it were, than a better house obtained by a harder compromise; not being fond, moreover, of spacious halls and massive treasures, but of compact and familiar rooms, in which her remarkable accumulation of minute and delicate Venetian objects could show. She adored—in the way of the Venetian, to which all her taste addressed itself—the small, the domestic and the exquisite; so that she would have given a Tintoretto or two, I think, without difficulty, for a cabinet of tiny gilded glasses or a dinner-service of the right old silver.
Casa Alvisi is directly across from the tall, wide, ornate church of S. Maria della Salute—so directly that from the balcony over the water entrance, your eye can almost find the keyhole of the main door perfectly aligned with it. There was something about this position that made all the Venice enthusiasts think of the charming padrona practically collecting their curiosity and sympathy. Everyone passed by, everyone was seen passing, and few didn’t stop to turn back. The most generous of hostesses passed away a year ago in Florence; her house no longer holds her presence—it had started to lose that long before her death; and the long, happy stream of visitors—the delighted guests, the joyful stays, the unwilling departures that made Ca’ Alvisi, as people often said, a social porto di mare—is now just a memory filled with regret and ghosts. So now, on the site, the gaze sadly turns away from the dear little old faded but once vibrant façade, finally overwhelmed by the rather mundane activities that are trying to “paint out” in Venice, left and right, with glaring signs and other banalities, the timeless mark of distinction. The house, in a city of grand palaces, was small, but the tenant cherished her perfect, exclusive space—the one ideal location that gave her a better command, so to speak, than a nicer house achieved through a tougher compromise; not being particularly fond of spacious halls and huge treasures, but rather of cozy and familiar rooms where her impressive collection of tiny, delicate Venetian objects could be displayed. She loved—in the unique Venetian way that defined her taste—the small, the domestic, and the exquisite; I think she would have given away a Tintoretto or two without hesitation for a cabinet of tiny gilded glasses or a dinner set of the right old silver.
The general receptacle of these multiplied treasures played at any rate, through the years, the part of a friendly private-box at the constant operatic show, a box at the best point of the best tier, with the cushioned ledge of its front raking the whole scene and with its withdrawing rooms behind for more detached conversation; for easy—when not indeed slightly difficult—polyglot talk, artful bibite, artful cigarettes too, straight from the hand of the hostess, who could do all that belonged to a hostess, place people in relation and keep them so, take up and put down the topic, cause delicate tobacco and little gilded glasses to circulate, without ever leaving her sofa-cushions or intermitting her good-nature. She exercised in these conditions, with never a block, as we say in London, in the traffic, with never an admission, an acceptance of the least social complication, her positive genius for easy interest, easy sympathy, easy friendship. It was as if, at last, she had taken the human race at large, quite irrespective of geography, for her neighbours, with neighbourly relations as a matter of course. These things, on her part, had at all events the greater appearance of ease from their having found to their purpose—and as if the very air of Venice produced them—a cluster of forms so light and immediate, so pre-established by picturesque custom. The old bright tradition, the wonderful Venetian legend had appealed to her from the first, closing round her house and her well-plashed water-steps, where the waiting gondolas were thick, quite as if, actually, the ghost of the defunct Carnival—since I have spoken of ghosts—still played some haunting part.
The main place where these numerous treasures were kept served, over the years, as a cozy private box at a never-ending opera show, located at the best spot on the top tier, with a cushioned ledge offering a view of the whole scene and with private rooms behind for more laid-back conversations; for easy—though sometimes slightly tricky—multilingual chats, clever drinks, and stylish cigarettes straight from the hostess’s hand, who could do everything a good hostess should: connect people and keep them engaged, manage the topic of conversation, and ensure delicate tobacco and little gilded glasses were passed around, all without ever leaving her comfy seat or losing her friendly demeanor. She handled it all effortlessly, as we say in London, without any hiccups in the social flow, without acknowledging, or even accepting, any social complications—showing her natural talent for easy interest, easy compassion, and easy friendships. It was as if she had embraced humanity as a whole, regardless of geography, treating neighborly relations as a given. These elements appeared even more effortless on her part because they had found, to their advantage—and it seemed like the very atmosphere of Venice brought them forth—a collection of forms that were so light and immediate, established by picturesque custom. The old vibrant tradition, the enchanting Venetian legend had captivated her from the start, wrapping around her home and her well-splashed water steps, where gondolas waited thickly, almost as if the ghost of the long-gone Carnival—since I’ve mentioned ghosts—still played a haunting role.
Let me add, at the same time, that Mrs. Bronson’s social facility, which was really her great refuge from importunity, a defence with serious thought and serious feeling quietly cherished behind it, had its discriminations as well as its inveteracies, and that the most marked of all these, perhaps, was her attachment to Robert Browning. Nothing in all her beneficent life had probably made her happier than to have found herself able to minister, each year, with the returning autumn, to his pleasure and comfort. Attached to Ca’ Alvisi, on the land side, is a somewhat melancholy old section of a Giustiniani palace, which she had annexed to her own premises mainly for the purpose of placing it, in comfortable guise, at the service of her friends. She liked, as she professed, when they were the real thing, to have them under her hand; and here succeeded each other, through the years, the company of the privileged and the more closely domesticated, who liked, harmlessly, to distinguish between themselves and outsiders. Among visitors partaking of this pleasant provision Mr. Browning was of course easily first. But I must leave her own pen to show him as her best years knew him. The point was, meanwhile, that if her charity was great even for the outsider, this was by reason of the inner essence of it—her perfect tenderness for Venice, which she always recognised as a link. That was the true principle of fusion, the key to communication. She communicated in proportion—little or much, measuring it as she felt people more responsive or less so; and she expressed herself, or in other words her full affection for the place, only to those who had most of the same sentiment. The rich and interesting form in which she found it in Browning may well be imagined—together with the quite independent quantity of the genial at large that she also found; but I am not sure that his favour was not primarily based on his paid tribute of such things as “Two in a Gondola” and “A Toccata of Galuppi.” He had more ineffaceably than anyone recorded his initiation from of old.
Let me add, at the same time, that Mrs. Bronson’s social skills, which were really her great escape from unwanted attention, served as a defense with serious thoughts and deep feelings quietly held behind it. This had its distinctions as well as its constants, and perhaps the most notable of all was her affection for Robert Browning. Nothing in her generous life probably made her happier than being able to support his pleasure and comfort each year as autumn returned. Attached to Ca’ Alvisi on the land side is a somewhat sad old part of a Giustiniani palace, which she had added to her own property mainly to offer it, in a comfortable way, to her friends. She enjoyed, as she claimed, having real friends close at hand; and over the years, a mix of privileged guests and closer friends succeeded one another, who liked, in a harmless way, to set themselves apart from outsiders. Among the visitors who enjoyed this pleasant setup, Mr. Browning naturally stood out. But I will let her words illustrate how she knew him best in her prime. The important thing was that even her charity for outsiders was significant, thanks to its inner essence—her deep love for Venice, which she always saw as a connection. That was the true principle of unity, the key to communication. She communicated based on how responsive people were, measuring her engagement accordingly; and she expressed her full love for the place only to those who shared that sentiment. The rich and fascinating way in which she found this in Browning is easy to imagine—along with the independent amount of warmth he brought. However, I’m not sure if his favor was primarily rooted in his tribute through works like “Two in a Gondola” and “A Toccata of Galuppi.” He had more than anyone else captured his longstanding introduction to it.
She was thus, all round, supremely faithful; yet it was perhaps after all with the very small folk, those to the manner born, that she made the easiest terms. She loved, she had from the first enthusiastically adopted, the engaging Venetian people, whose virtues she found touching and their infirmities but such as appeal mainly to the sense of humour and the love of anecdote; and she befriended and admired, she studied and spoiled them. There must have been a multitude of whom it would scarce be too much to say that her long residence among them was their settled golden age. When I consider that they have lost her now I fairly wonder to what shifts they have been put and how long they may not have to wait for such another messenger of Providence. She cultivated their dialect, she renewed their boats, she piously relighted—at the top of the tide-washed pali of traghetto or lagoon—the neglected lamp of the tutelary Madonnetta; she took cognisance of the wives, the children, the accidents, the troubles, as to which she became, perceptibly, the most prompt, the established remedy. On lines where the amusement was happily less one-sided she put together in dialect many short comedies, dramatic proverbs, which, with one of her drawing-rooms permanently arranged as a charming diminutive theatre, she caused to be performed by the young persons of her circle—often, when the case lent itself, by the wonderful small offspring of humbler friends, children of the Venetian lower class, whose aptitude, teachability, drollery, were her constant delight. It was certainly true that an impression of Venice as humanly sweet might easily found itself on the frankness and quickness and amiability of these little people. They were at least so much to the good; for the philosophy of their patroness was as Venetian as everything else; helping her to accept experience without bitterness and to remain fresh, even in the fatigue which finally overtook her, for pleasant surprises and proved sincerities. She was herself sincere to the last for the place of her predilection; inasmuch as though she had arranged herself, in the later time—and largely for the love of “Pippa Passes”—an alternative refuge at Asolo, she absented herself from Venice with continuity only under coercion of illness.
She was completely loyal in every way; yet it was perhaps with the simple folks, those born to the way of life, that she found it easiest to connect. She loved the charming Venetian people from the start, and she found their virtues touching while their flaws mostly made her laugh and shared stories. She became their friend and admirer, studied them, and spoiled them. It can hardly be overstated that her long time living among them was their golden age. Now that they’ve lost her, I genuinely wonder how they’re managing and how long they might have to wait for another lucky break from fate. She learned their dialect, upgraded their boats, and faithfully lit again—the top of the tide-washed pali of traghetto or lagoon—the neglected lamp of the protective Madonnetta; she paid attention to the wives, the children, the accidents, the troubles, becoming, over time, the most immediate and established solution to their issues. In situations where the fun was thankfully more balanced, she crafted many short comedies and dramatic sayings in dialect, which she staged with one of her living rooms turned into a cozy little theater, performed by the young people in her circle—often, when it was suitable, by the delightful small children of lower-class Venetian friends, whose talent, eagerness to learn, and sense of humor constantly delighted her. It was certainly true that the charm of Venice could easily be felt in the openness, quickness, and friendliness of these little ones. That was at least a positive aspect; because her approach to life was as Venetian as everything else, helping her accept experiences without resentment and keeping her eager for pleasant surprises and genuine moments, even as exhaustion finally caught up with her. She remained sincere to the end regarding her favorite place; even though she had set up an alternative retreat in Asolo later on—largely due to her love for “Pippa Passes”—she only stayed away from Venice consistently when forced by illness.
At Asolo, periodically, the link with Browning was more confirmed than weakened, and there, in old Venetian territory, and with the invasion of visitors comparatively checked, her preferentially small house became again a setting for the pleasure of talk and the sense of Italy. It contained again its own small treasures, all in the pleasant key of the homelier Venetian spirit. The plain beneath it stretched away like a purple sea from the lower cliffs of the hills, and the white campanili of the villages, as one was perpetually saying, showed on the expanse like scattered sails of ships. The rumbling carriage, the old-time, rattling, red-velveted carriage of provincial, rural Italy, delightful and quaint, did the office of the gondola; to Bassano, to Treviso, to high-walled Castelfranco, all pink and gold, the home of the great Giorgione. Here also memories cluster; but it is in Venice again that her vanished presence is most felt, for there, in the real, or certainly the finer, the more sifted Cosmopolis, it falls into its place among the others evoked, those of the past seekers of poetry and dispensers of romance. It is a fact that almost every one interesting, appealing, melancholy, memorable, odd, seems at one time or another, after many days and much life, to have gravitated to Venice by a happy instinct, settling in it and treating it, cherishing it, as a sort of repository of consolations; all of which to-day, for the conscious mind, is mixed with its air and constitutes its unwritten history. The deposed, the defeated, the disenchanted, the wounded, or even only the bored, have seemed to find there something that no other place could give. But such people came for themselves, as we seem to see them—only with the egotism of their grievances and the vanity of their hopes. Mrs. Bronson’s case was beautifully different—she had come altogether for others.
At Asolo, the connection with Browning was often stronger than weaker, and there, in the old Venetian region, with the influx of visitors somewhat limited, her small, cozy house again became a place for enjoyable conversations and the essence of Italy. It held its own small treasures, all in the warm spirit of Venice. The plain below spread out like a purple sea from the lower cliffs of the hills, and the white campanili of the villages, as people often remarked, appeared on the horizon like scattered ship sails. The rumbling carriage, the charming, rattling, red-velvet carriage of provincial Italy, delightful and quaint, served the purpose of a gondola; it took people to Bassano, Treviso, and the high-walled Castelfranco, all painted in pink and gold, the home of the great Giorgione. Memories also gathered here; but it’s in Venice that her lost presence is felt the most, for there, in the real, or at least the more refined, more cosmopolitan atmosphere, it finds its place among the others reminisced—those of past seekers of poetry and givers of romance. It’s true that almost everyone interesting, appealing, melancholic, memorable, or quirky seems to have been drawn to Venice at some point, after many days and a full life, settling there and treating it like a haven of comfort; all of which today, for the aware mind, is blended with its ambiance, creating its unwritten history. The deposed, the defeated, the disenchanted, the wounded, or even just the bored, appear to have found something there that no other place could offer. But those people came for themselves, as we can see them—only with the self-absorption of their grievances and the vanity of their hopes. Mrs. Bronson’s situation was beautifully different—she had come entirely for others.
FROM CHAMBÉRY TO MILAN
Your truly sentimental tourist will never take it from any occasion that there is absolutely nothing for him, and it was at Chambéry—but four hours from Geneva—that I accepted the situation and decided there might be mysterious delights in entering Italy by a whizz through an eight-mile tunnel, even as a bullet through the bore of a gun. I found my reward in the Savoyard landscape, which greets you betimes with the smile of anticipation. If it is not so Italian as Italy it is at least more Italian than anything but Italy—more Italian, too, I should think, than can seem natural and proper to the swarming red-legged soldiery who so publicly proclaim it of the empire of M. Thiers. The light and the complexion of things had to my eyes not a little of that mollified depth last loved by them rather further on. It was simply perhaps that the weather was hot and the mountains drowsing in that iridescent haze that I have seen nearer home than at Chambéry. But the vegetation, assuredly, had an all but Transalpine twist and curl, and the classic wayside tangle of corn and vines left nothing to be desired in the line of careless grace. Chambéry as a town, however, constitutes no foretaste of the monumental cities. There is shabbiness and shabbiness, the fond critic of such things will tell you; and that of the ancient capital of Savoy lacks style. I found a better pastime, however, than strolling through the dark dull streets in quest of effects that were not forthcoming. The first urchin you meet will show you the way to Les Charmettes and the Maison Jean-Jacques. A very pleasant way it becomes as soon as it leaves the town—a winding, climbing by-road, bordered with such a tall and sturdy hedge as to give it the air of an English lane—if you can fancy an English lane introducing you to the haunts of a Madame de Warens.
Your truly sentimental tourist will never admit that there’s absolutely nothing for him, and it was in Chambéry—just four hours from Geneva—that I accepted the situation and decided there might be hidden delights in entering Italy by zooming through an eight-mile tunnel, like a bullet through the barrel of a gun. I found my reward in the Savoyard landscape, which welcomes you with a smile of anticipation. If it’s not as Italian as Italy, it's at least more Italian than anything else that isn't Italy—more Italian, too, I would think, than seems natural and proper to the bustling, red-legged soldiers who loudly announce it as part of M. Thiers' empire. The light and the look of things had, to me, a certain deep softness reminiscent of those I loved a bit further on. Perhaps it was simply that the weather was hot and the mountains were lounging in that iridescent haze I’ve seen closer to home than in Chambéry. But the vegetation definitely had an almost Transalpine twist and curl, and the classic roadside mix of corn and vines left nothing to be desired in terms of relaxed elegance. Chambéry as a town, however, doesn’t give a hint of the grand cities to come. There’s shabbiness and more shabbiness, the loving critic of such things will tell you; and the shabbiness of the ancient capital of Savoy lacks style. I found a better pastime, though, than wandering through the dark, dull streets looking for effects that weren’t there. The first kid you meet will point you towards Les Charmettes and the Maison Jean-Jacques. The path becomes very pleasant as soon as it leaves the town—a winding, climbing by-road lined with such a tall and sturdy hedge that it feels like an English lane—if you can imagine an English lane leading you to the haunts of Madame de Warens.
The house that formerly sheltered this lady’s singular ménage stands on a hillside above the road, which a rapid path connects with the little grass-grown terrace before it. It is a small shabby, homely dwelling, with a certain reputable solidity, however, and more of internal spaciousness than of outside promise. The place is shown by an elderly competent dame who points out the very few surviving objects which you may touch with the reflection—complacent in whatsoever degree suits you—that they have known the familiarity of Rousseau’s hand. It was presumably a meagrely-appointed house, and I wondered that on such scanty features so much expression should linger. But the structure has an ancient ponderosity, and the dust of the eighteenth century seems to lie on its worm-eaten floors, to cling to the faded old papiers à ramages on the walls and to lodge in the crevices of the brown wooden ceilings. Madame de Warens’s bed remains, with the narrow couch of Jean-Jacques as well, his little warped and cracked yellow spinet, and a battered, turnip-shaped silver timepiece, engraved with its master’s name—its primitive tick as extinct as his passionate heart-beats. It cost me, I confess, a somewhat pitying acceleration of my own to see this intimately personal relic of the genius loci—for it had dwelt; in his waistcoat-pocket, than which there is hardly a material point in space nearer to a man’s consciousness—tossed so the dog’s-eared visitors’ record or livre de cuisine recently denounced by Madame George Sand. In fact the place generally, in so far as some faint ghostly presence of its famous inmates seems to linger there, is by no means exhilarating. Coppet and Ferney tell, if not of pure happiness, at least of prosperity and, honour, wealth and success. But Les Charmettes is haunted by ghosts unclean and forlorn. The place tells of poverty, perversity, distress. A good deal of clever modern talent in France has been employed in touching up the episode of which it was the scene and tricking it out in idyllic love-knots. But as I stood on the charming terrace I have mentioned—a little jewel of a terrace, with grassy flags and a mossy parapet, and an admirable view of great swelling violet hills—stood there reminded how much sweeter Nature is than man, the story looked rather wan and unlovely beneath these literary decorations, and I could pay it no livelier homage than is implied in perfect pity. Hero and heroine have become too much creatures of history to take up attitudes as part of any poetry. But, not to moralise too sternly for a tourist between trains, I should add that, as an illustration, to be inserted mentally in the text of the “Confessions,” a glimpse of Les Charmettes is pleasant enough. It completes the rare charm of good autobiography to behold with one’s eyes the faded and battered background of the story; and Rousseau’s narrative is so incomparably vivid and forcible that the sordid little house at Chambéry seems of a hardly deeper shade of reality than so many other passages of his projected truth.
The house that once sheltered this lady’s unique household sits on a hillside above the road, connected by a quick path to the small grassy terrace in front. It’s a small, rundown, cozy home, but it has a certain respectable sturdiness, with more space inside than it suggests from the outside. An elderly, capable woman shows you around, pointing out the few remaining objects that you can touch, with the smug thought that they once belonged to Rousseau. It was likely a sparsely furnished house, and I found it surprising that so much character could linger in such a simple place. The building has an ancient weightiness, and the dust of the eighteenth century seems to cling to its worn floors, the faded old papiers à ramages on the walls, and the crevices of the brown wooden ceilings. Madame de Warens’s bed is still there, along with Jean-Jacques's narrow couch, his little warped and cracked yellow spinet, and a battered, turnip-shaped silver clock, engraved with his name—its primitive ticking now silent, just like his passionate heartbeats. I must admit, I felt a twinge of pity to see this deeply personal relic of the genius loci—for it had sat in his waistcoat pocket, which is probably the spot in space closest to a man’s consciousness—tossed like the dog-eared visitors' record or the livre de cuisine recently condemned by Madame George Sand. In fact, the place itself, while some faint ghostly presence of its famous residents seems to linger, isn’t exactly uplifting. Coppet and Ferney speak of, if not pure happiness, at least prosperity, honor, wealth, and success. But Les Charmettes is haunted by unclean and forlorn ghosts. It tells of poverty, perversion, and distress. A lot of clever modern talent in France has spruced up the episode that took place here, dressing it in idyllic love tales. But as I stood on the charming terrace I mentioned—a little gem of a terrace, with grassy flags and a mossy parapet and a stunning view of rolling violet hills—realizing how much sweeter Nature is than man, the story appeared rather pale and unappealing beneath these literary embellishments, and I could show it no more lively homage than perfect pity. The hero and heroine have too much become figures of history to take on any poetic roles. Yet, not to moralize too harshly for a tourist on a layover, I should add that, as an illustration to mentally insert into the “Confessions,” a glance at Les Charmettes is quite pleasant. It adds to the rare charm of a good autobiography to see with your own eyes the faded and battered backdrop of the story; and Rousseau’s narrative is so incredibly vivid and forceful that the shabby little house in Chambéry seems hardly more real than many other sections of his intended truth.
If I spent an hour at Les Charmettes, fumbling thus helplessly with the past, I recognised on the morrow how strongly the Mont Cenis Tunnel smells of the time to come. As I passed along the Saint-Gothard highway a couple of months since, I perceived, half up the Swiss ascent, a group of navvies at work in a gorge beneath the road. They had laid bare a broad surface of granite and had punched in the centre of it a round black cavity, of about the dimensions, as it seemed to me, of a soup-plate. This was to attain its perfect development some eight years hence. The Mont Cenis may therefore be held to have set a fashion which will be followed till the highest Himalaya is but the ornamental apex or snow-capped gable-tip of some resounding fuliginous corridor. The tunnel differs but in length from other tunnels; you spend half an hour in it. But you whirl out into the blest peninsula, and as you look back seem to see the mighty mass shrug its shoulders over the line, the mere turn of a dreaming giant in his sleep. The tunnel is certainly not a poetic object, out there is no perfection without its beauty; and as you measure the long rugged outline of the pyramid of which it forms the base you accept it as the perfection of a short cut. Twenty-four hours from Paris to Turin is speed for the times—speed which may content us, at any rate, until expansive Berlin has succeeded in placing itself at thirty-six from Milan.
If I spent an hour at Les Charmettes, struggling helplessly with the past, I realized the next day how strongly the Mont Cenis Tunnel points to the future. A couple of months ago, as I made my way along the Saint-Gothard highway, I noticed a group of workers halfway up the Swiss climb, digging in a gorge beneath the road. They had exposed a large stretch of granite and had created a round black hole in the middle of it, about the size of a soup plate, which would be fully developed in about eight years. The Mont Cenis has set a trend that will be followed until the highest Himalayas are just an ornamental peak or a snow-capped tip of some echoing dark corridor. The tunnel is different only in length from other tunnels; you spend half an hour in it. But you emerge into the blessed peninsula, and as you look back, you seem to see the massive form shrugging its shoulders over the line, like a dreaming giant turning in his sleep. The tunnel is certainly not a poetic sight; out there, there’s no perfection without its beauty. As you take in the long rugged outline of the pyramid of which it forms the base, you accept it as the perfect shortcut. Twenty-four hours from Paris to Turin is fast for the time—speed that may satisfy us, at least until vibrant Berlin manages to put itself thirty-six hours from Milan.
To enter Turin then of a lovely August afternoon was to find a city of arcades, of pink and yellow stucco, of innumerable cafes, of blue-legged officers, of ladies draped in the North-Italian mantilla. An old friend of Italy coming back to her finds an easy waking for dormant memories. Every object is a reminder and every reminder a thrill. Half an hour after my arrival, as I stood at my window, which overhung the great square, I found the scene, within and without, a rough epitome of every pleasure and every impression I had formerly gathered from Italy: the balcony and the Venetian-blind, the cool floor of speckled concrete, the lavish delusions of frescoed wall and ceiling, the broad divan framed for the noonday siesta, the massive medieval Castello in mid-piazza, with its shabby rear and its pompous Palladian front, the brick campaniles beyond, the milder, yellower light, the range of colour, the suggestion of sound. Later, beneath the arcades, I found many an old acquaintance: beautiful officers, resplendent, slow-strolling, contemplative of female beauty; civil and peaceful dandies, hardly less gorgeous, with that religious faith in moustache and shirt-front which distinguishes the belle jeunesse of Italy; ladies with heads artfully shawled in Spanish-looking lace, but with too little art—or too much nature at least—in the region of the bodice; well-conditioned young abbati with neatly drawn stockings. These indeed are not objects of first-rate interest, and with such Turin is rather meagrely furnished. It has no architecture, no churches, no monuments, no romantic street-scenery. It has the great votive temple of the Superga, which stands on a high hilltop above the city, gazing across at Monte Rosa and lifting its own fine dome against the sky with no contemptible art. But when you have seen the Superga from the quay beside the Po, a skein of a few yellow threads in August, despite its frequent habit of rising high and running wild, and said to yourself that in architecture position is half the battle, you have nothing left to visit but the Museum of pictures. The Turin Gallery, which is large and well arranged, is the fortunate owner of three or four masterpieces: a couple of magnificent Vandycks and a couple of Paul Veroneses; the latter a Queen of Sheba and a Feast of the House of Levi—the usual splendid combination of brocades, grandees and marble colonnades dividing those skies de turquoise malade to which Théophile Gautier is fond of alluding. The Veroneses are fine, but with Venice in prospect the traveller feels at liberty to keep his best attention in reserve. If, however, he has the proper relish for Vandyck, let him linger long and fondly here; for that admiration will never be more potently stirred than by the adorable group of the three little royal highnesses, sons and the daughter of Charles I. All the purity of childhood is here, and all its soft solidity of structure, rounded tenderly beneath the spangled satin and contrasted charmingly with the pompous rigidity. Clad respectively in crimson, white and blue, these small scions stand up in their ruffs and fardingales in dimpled serenity, squaring their infantine stomachers at the spectator with an innocence, a dignity, a delightful grotesqueness, which make the picture a thing of close truth as well as of fine decorum. You might kiss their hands, but you certainly would think twice before pinching their cheeks—provocative as they are of this tribute of admiration—and would altogether lack presumption to lift them off the ground or the higher level or dais on which they stand so sturdily planted by right of birth. There is something inimitable in the paternal gallantry with which the painter has touched off the young lady. She was a princess, yet she was a baby, and he has contrived, we let ourselves fancy, to interweave an intimation that she was a creature whom, in her teens, the lucklessly smitten—even as he was prematurely—must vainly sigh for. Though the work is a masterpiece of execution its merits under this head may be emulated, at a distance; the lovely modulations of colour in the three contrasted and harmonised little satin petticoats, the solidity of the little heads, in spite of all their prettiness, the happy, unexaggerated squareness and maturity of pose, are, severally, points to study, to imitate, and to reproduce with profit. But the taste of such a consummate thing is its great secret as well as its great merit—a taste which seems one of the lost instincts of mankind. Go and enjoy this supreme expression of Vandyck’s fine sense, and admit that never was a politer production.
To enter Turin on a lovely August afternoon is to find a city of arcades, pink and yellow stucco, countless cafes, blue-uniformed officers, and ladies draped in North-Italian mantillas. An old friend returning to Italy finds it easy to awaken dormant memories. Every object reminds them of something, and every reminder is a thrill. Half an hour after my arrival, as I stood at my window overlooking the large square, I found the scene, both inside and out, a rough summary of every pleasure and impression I had ever gathered from Italy: the balcony with Venetian blinds, the cool speckled concrete floor, the lavish illusions of frescoed walls and ceilings, the broad divan framed for a midday nap, the massive medieval castle in the town square with its shabby back and impressive Palladian front, the brick campaniles in the distance, the softer yellow light, the range of colors, the suggestion of sounds. Later, beneath the arcades, I encountered many old acquaintances: handsome officers, resplendent and strolling slowly, contemplating feminine beauty; well-dressed, civil dandies, not much less spectacular, with an almost religious belief in moustaches and shirt fronts that characterizes the belle jeunesse of Italia; ladies with heads artfully shawled in Spanish-looking lace, though with a bit too little art—or perhaps too much natural beauty—around the bodice; well-groomed young abbati in neatly drawn stockings. These aren’t exactly first-rate attractions, and Turin can feel rather sparse in that regard. It lacks impressive architecture, churches, monuments, and romantic street scenes. It boasts the grand votive temple of the Superga, which sits on a high hill above the city, gazing across at Monte Rosa and lifting its fine dome towards the sky with notable skill. But once you've seen the Superga from the quay beside the Po, just a few yellow threads in August—despite its frequent habit of rising high and running wild—and remind yourself that location plays a huge role in architecture, you’ll find little left to visit except the Picture Museum. The Turin Gallery, which is large and well-organized, is fortunate to own a few masterpieces: a couple of magnificent Vandycks and two Paul Veroneses; the latter being a Queen of Sheba and a Feast of the House of Levi—the usual splendid mix of brocades, nobles, and marble columns dividing those skies de turquoise malade that Théophile Gautier loves to reference. The Veroneses are impressive, but with Venice on the horizon, the traveler feels free to save their best attention for later. If, however, they truly appreciate Vandyck, they should linger here for a while; their admiration will be most deeply stirred by the charming group of the three little royal children, the sons and daughter of Charles I. All the innocence of childhood is present, along with its tender solidity, rounded sweetly beneath the glittering satin and contrasting beautifully with the pompous stiffness. Dressed in crimson, white, and blue, these little scions stand proudly in their ruffs and fardingales with dimpled calmness, presenting their innocent stomachs to the viewer with an innocence, dignity, and charming oddity that makes the painting both strikingly true and elegantly proper. You might want to kiss their hands, but you’d definitely think twice before pinching their cheeks—provocative as they may be for such a gesture of admiration—and you would utterly lack the audacity to lift them off the ground or the dais on which they stand so firmly planted by right of birth. There’s something unmatched in the painter's gallant portrayal of the young lady. She was a princess, yet still a baby, and he seems to subtly suggest that she would be the one whom, in their teens, the hopelessly lovesick—even like him—would yearn for. Though the execution of the work is masterful, its merits might be emulated from a distance; the lovely variations of color in the three contrasting and harmonized little satin petticoats, the solidity of the little heads despite their prettiness, the happy, unexaggerated squareness and maturity of pose, are all distinct points to study, imitate, and reproduce for personal gain. But the essence of such a refined piece is both its greatest secret and merit—a taste that seems one of the lost instincts of humanity. Go enjoy this supreme expression of Vandyck's exquisite sense and recognize that never has there been a more polite creation.
Milan speaks to us of a burden of felt life of which Turin is innocent, but in its general aspect still lingers a northern reserve which makes the place rather perhaps the last of the prose capitals than the first of the poetic. The long Austrian occupation perhaps did something to Germanise its physiognomy; though indeed this is an indifferent explanation when one remembers how well, temperamentally speaking, Italy held her own in Venetia. Milan, at any rate, if not bristling with the æsthetic impulse, opens to us frankly enough the thick volume of her past. Of that volume the Cathedral is the fairest and fullest page—a structure not supremely interesting, not logical, not even, to some minds, commandingly beautiful, but grandly curious and superbly rich. I hope, for my own part, never to grow too particular to admire it. If it had no other distinction it would still have that of impressive, immeasurable achievement. As I strolled beside its vast indented base one evening, and felt it, above me, rear its grey mysteries into the starlight while the restless human tide on which I floated rose no higher than the first few layers of street-soiled marble, I was tempted to believe that beauty in great architecture is almost a secondary merit, and that the main point is mass—such mass as may make it a supreme embodiment of vigorous effort. Viewed in this way a great building is the greatest conceivable work of art. More than any other it represents difficulties mastered, resources combined, labour, courage and patience. And there are people who tell us that art has nothing to do with morality! Little enough, doubtless, when it is concerned, even ever so little, in painting the roof of Milan Cathedral within to represent carved stone-work. Of this famous roof every one has heard—how good it is, how bad, how perfect a delusion, how transparent an artifice. It is the first thing your cicerone shows you on entering the church. The occasionally accommodating art-lover may accept it philosophically, I think; for the interior, though admirably effective as a whole, has no great sublimity, nor even purity, of pitch. It is splendidly vast and dim; the altarlamps twinkle afar through the incense-thickened air like foglights at sea, and the great columns rise straight to the roof, which hardly curves to meet them, with the girth and altitude of oaks of a thousand years; but there is little refinement of design—few of those felicities of proportion which the eye caresses, when it finds them, very much as the memory retains and repeats some happy lines of poetry or some haunting musical phrase. Consistently brave, none the less, is the result produced, and nothing braver than a certain exhibition that I privately enjoyed of the relics of St. Charles Borromeus. This holy man lies at his eternal rest in a small but gorgeous sepulchral chapel, beneath the boundless pavement and before the high altar; and for the modest sum of five francs you may have his shrivelled mortality unveiled and gaze at it with whatever reserves occur to you. The Catholic Church never renounces a chance of the sublime for fear of a chance of the ridiculous—especially when the chance of the sublime may be the very excellent chance of five francs. The performance in question, of which the good San Carlo paid in the first instance the cost, was impressive certainly, but as a monstrous matter or a grim comedy may still be. The little sacristan, having secured his audience, whipped on a white tunic over his frock, lighted a couple of extra candles and proceeded to remove from above the altar, by means of a crank, a sort of sliding shutter, just as you may see a shop-boy do of a morning at his master’s window. In this case too a large sheet of plate-glass was uncovered, and to form an idea of the étalage you must imagine that a jeweller, for reasons of his own, has struck an unnatural partnership with an undertaker. The black mummified corpse of the saint is stretched out in a glass coffin, clad in his mouldering canonicals, mitred, crosiered and gloved, glittering with votive jewels. It is an extraordinary mixture of death and life; the desiccated clay, the ashen rags, the hideous little black mask and skull, and the living, glowing, twinkling splendour of diamonds, emeralds and sapphires. The collection is really fine, and many great historic names are attached to the different offerings. Whatever may be the better opinion as to the future of the Church, I can’t help thinking she will make a figure in the world so long as she retains this great fund of precious “properties,” this prodigious capital decoratively invested and scintillating throughout Christendom at effectively-scattered points. You see I am forced to agree after all, in spite of the sliding shutter and the profane swagger of the sacristan, that a certain pastoral majesty saved the situation, or at least made irony gape. Yet it was from a natural desire to breathe a sweeter air that I immediately afterwards undertook the interminable climb to the roof of the cathedral. This is another world of wonders, and one which enjoys due renown, every square inch of wall on the winding stairways being bescribbled with a traveller’s name. There is a great glare from the far-stretching slopes of marble, a confusion (like the masts of a navy or the spears of an army) of image-capped pinnacles, biting the impalpable blue, and, better than either, the goodliest view of level Lombardy sleeping in its rich transalpine light and resembling, with its white-walled dwellings and the spires on its horizon, a vast green sea spotted with ships. After two months of Switzerland the Lombard plain is a rich rest to the eye, and the yellow, liquid, free-flowing light—as if on favoured Italy the vessels of heaven were more widely opened—had for mine a charm which made me think of a great opaque mountain as a blasphemous invasion of the atmospheric spaces.
Milan tells us about a burden of vibrant life that Turin is free from, yet its overall vibe still carries a northern restraint that makes it feel more like the last of the prose capitals than the first of the poetic ones. The long Austrian occupation may have influenced its appearance to some extent; although, considering how Italy held its own in Venetia, this seems like a weak explanation. Milan, however, while not overflowing with artistic energy, openly reveals the rich history of its past. Among that history, the Cathedral stands out as its most beautiful and comprehensive page—a structure that isn't typically fascinating, logical, or even, to some, strikingly beautiful but is grandly curious and fabulously rich. Personally, I hope never to become too discerning to appreciate it. Even if it had no other distinction, it would still be recognized for its impressive and monumental achievement. As I walked beside its vast, intricately designed base one evening, feeling it rise above me, casting its gray mysteries into the starlight while the restless crowd I was part of only reached the first few layers of street-smeared marble, I was tempted to think that beauty in great architecture might be a secondary quality, and that the key point is mass—mass that makes it a supreme representation of robust effort. Seen this way, a grand building is the greatest possible work of art. More than anything else, it embodies conquered challenges, combined resources, labor, courage, and patience. And there are people who tell us that art is unrelated to morality! Perhaps it is little relevant when it involves, even marginally, painting the interior of the Milan Cathedral to mimic carved stone. Everyone has heard of this famous ceiling—how good it is, how bad, how it’s a perfect illusion, how it’s a transparent trick. It’s the first thing your tour guide shows you when you enter the church. A somewhat accommodating art-lover might accept it philosophically, I think, because the interior, while impressively effective as a whole, lacks great sublimity or even purity of tone. It’s magnificently vast and dim; the altar lamps twinkle in the distance through the incense-thick sky like fog lights at sea, and the massive columns rise straight to the roof, barely curving to meet them, reminiscent of oaks that have stood for a thousand years; yet there’s little refinement in design—few of those delights in proportion that the eye cherishes when it finds them, much like the memory clings to and recites some beautiful lines of poetry or a haunting musical phrase. Still, the result achieved is consistently bold, and nothing is bolder than a certain display I privately enjoyed of the relics of St. Charles Borromeus. This holy man rests in eternal peace in a small but stunning tomb chapel, beneath the vast pavement and before the high altar; and for a modest fee of five francs, you can have his shriveled remains unveiled and gaze upon them at your convenience. The Catholic Church never misses an opportunity for the sublime just to avoid the ridiculous—especially when the chance for the sublime may be an excellent bargain of five francs. The experience in question, which the good San Carlo originally funded, was certainly impressive, though it may also come off as a grotesque spectacle or grim comedy. The little sacristan, having ensured his audience, put on a white tunic over his robe, lit a couple of additional candles, and proceeded to remove from above the altar, using a crank, a sort of sliding shutter, much like a shop assistant would do in the morning at his employer’s window. In this instance, a large sheet of plate glass was slid away, and to envision the display, you must imagine that a jeweler, for his own reasons, has formed an unnatural partnership with an undertaker. The black, mummified body of the saint is laid out in a glass coffin, dressed in his decaying ecclesiastical robes, mitre, crosier, and gloves, sparkling with votive jewels. It’s an extraordinary blend of death and life; the desiccated clay, the ashen rags, the grotesque little black mask and skull, alongside the vibrant, glittering splendor of diamonds, emeralds, and sapphires. The collection is genuinely impressive, and many notable historical names are linked to the various offerings. Regardless of what opinions may exist about the Church's future, I can’t help but believe she will continue to be significant in the world as long as she holds this vast array of precious "properties," this significant capital beautifying the faith and sparkling at various points across Christendom. You see, I’m ultimately compelled to agree, despite the sliding shutter and the irreverent flair of the sacristan, that a certain pastoral dignity saved the moment, or at least made irony seem absurd. Yet it was from a natural wish to breathe fresher air that I immediately decided to undertake the seemingly endless climb to the rooftop of the cathedral. This is another realm of wonders, one that is rightfully famous, with every inch of wall on the winding staircases covered in travelers' names. There is a bright glare reflecting off the expansive slopes of marble, a chaotic arrangement (like the masts of a fleet or the spears of an army) of image-capped spires reaching for the ethereal blue sky, and, even better, the most beautiful view of flat Lombardy bathed in its rich, transalpine light, resembling a vast green sea dotted with ships, complete with its white-walled homes and spires on the horizon. After two months in Switzerland, the Lombard plain is a rich treat for the eyes, and the warm, flowing, golden light—as if heaven's vessels were more widely opened over favored Italy—had a charm that made me perceive a massive, solid mountain as an offensive intrusion into the open air.
{Illustration: THE SIMPLON GATE, MILAN}
{Illustration: SIMPLON GATE, MILAN}
I have mentioned the cathedral first, but the prime treasure of Milan at the present hour is the beautiful, tragical Leonardo. The cathedral is good for another thousand years, but we ask whether our children will find in the most majestic and most luckless of frescoes much more than the shadow of a shadow. Its fame has been for a century or two that, as one may say, of an illustrious invalid whom people visit to see how he lasts, with leave-taking sighs and almost death-bed or tiptoe precautions. The picture needs not another scar or stain, now, to be the saddest work of art in the world; and battered, defaced, ruined as it is, it remains one of the greatest. We may really compare its anguish of decay to the slow conscious ebb of life in a human organism. The production of the prodigy was a breath from the infinite, and the painter’s conception not immeasurably less complex than the scheme, say, of his own mortal constitution. There has been much talk lately of the irony of fate, but I suspect fate was never more ironical than when she led the most scientific, the most calculating of all painters to spend fifteen long years in building his goodly house upon the sand. And yet, after all, may not the playing of that trick represent but a deeper wisdom, since if the thing enjoyed the immortal health and bloom of a first-rate Titian we should have lost one of the most pertinent lessons in the history of art? We know it as hearsay, but here is the plain proof, that there is no limit to the amount of “stuff” an artist may put into his work. Every painter ought once in his life to stand before the Cenacolo and decipher its moral. Mix with your colours and mess on your palette every particle of the very substance of your soul, and this lest perchance your “prepared surface” shall play you a trick! Then, and then only, it will fight to the last—it will resist even in death. Raphael was a happier genius; you look at his lovely “Marriage of the Virgin” at the Brera, beautiful as some first deep smile of conscious inspiration, but to feel that he foresaw no complaint against fate, and that he knew the world he wanted to know and charmed it into never giving him away. But I have left no space to speak of the Brera, nor of that paradise of book-worms with an eye for their background—if such creatures exist—the Ambrosian Library; nor of that mighty basilica of St. Ambrose, with its spacious atrium and its crudely solemn mosaics, in which it is surely your own fault if you don’t forget Dr. Strauss and M. Renan and worship as grimly as a Christian of the ninth century.
I mentioned the cathedral first, but the real treasure of Milan right now is the stunning, tragic work of Leonardo. The cathedral will be around for another thousand years, but we wonder if our children will see anything in the most grand yet unfortunate of frescoes beyond just a faint echo of its former glory. Its reputation for the past century or two has been like that of a celebrated yet ailing person whom everyone visits just to see how long they can hold on, with sorrowful goodbyes and careful approach. The artwork doesn’t need another scar or blemish to be recognized as the saddest piece of art in the world; despite being battered, damaged, and ruined, it remains one of the greatest. We can truly liken its painful decay to the slow, conscious decline of a human life. The creation of this masterpiece was a breath from the infinite, and the artist's vision was not much less complex than, say, his own physical being. There’s been a lot of talk recently about the irony of fate, but I suspect fate has never been more ironic than when it led the most scientific and calculating of painters to spend fifteen long years building his impressive house on shifting sand. Yet, maybe that very trick represents a deeper wisdom because if this artwork had enjoyed the everlasting vitality of a top-tier Titian, we’d have missed out on some of the most important lessons in art history. While we know it mostly as hearsay, here’s the clear evidence that there’s no limit to how much “stuff” an artist can inject into their work. Every painter should stand before the Cenacolo at least once and grasp its message. Mix every bit of your soul into your colors and mess on your palette, so that your “prepared surface” doesn’t deceive you! Only then will it fight to the end—it will resist even in death. Raphael had a more fortunate gift; when you look at his beautiful “Marriage of the Virgin” at the Brera, it’s as lovely as the first deep smile of true inspiration, and you can sense that he expected no grumbling from fate, knowing the world he wanted to engage with and charming it to never betray him. However, I haven’t left any space to talk about the Brera, nor about that haven for book-lovers with a knack for their surroundings—if such creatures exist—the Ambrosian Library; nor about that grand basilica of St. Ambrose, with its spacious atrium and its starkly solemn mosaics, where it's truly your own fault if you don’t forget Dr. Strauss and M. Renan and worship as earnestly as a Christian from the ninth century.
It is part of the sordid prose of the Mont Cenis road that, unlike those fine old unimproved passes, the Simplon, the Splügen and—yet awhile longer—the Saint-Gothard, it denies you a glimpse of that paradise adorned by the four lakes even as that of uncommented Scripture by the rivers of Eden. I made, however, an excursion to the Lake of Como, which, though brief, lasted long enough to suggest to me that I too was a hero of romance with leisure for a love-affair, and not a hurrying tourist with a Bradshaw in his pocket. The Lake of Como has figured largely in novels of “immoral” tendency—being commonly the spot to which inflamed young gentlemen invite the wives of other gentlemen to fly with them and ignore the restrictions of public opinion. But even the Lake of Como has been revised and improved; the fondest prejudices yield to time; it gives one somehow a sense of an aspiringly high tone. I should pay a poor compliment at least to the swarming inmates of the hotels which now alternate attractively by the water-side with villas old and new were I to read the appearances more cynically. But if it is lost to florid fiction it still presents its blue bosom to most other refined uses, and the unsophisticated tourist, the American at least, may do any amount of private romancing there. The pretty hotel at Cadenabbia offers him, for instance, in the most elegant and assured form, the so often precarious adventure of what he calls at home summer board. It is all so unreal, so fictitious, so elegant and idle, so framed to undermine a rigid sense of the chief end of man not being to float for ever in an ornamental boat, beneath an awning tasselled like a circus-horse, impelled by an affable Giovanni or Antonio from one stately stretch of lake-laved villa steps to another, that departure seems as harsh and unnatural as the dream-dispelling note of some punctual voice at your bedside on a dusky winter morning. Yet I wondered, for my own part, where I had seen it all before—the pink-walled villas gleaming through their shrubberies of orange and oleander, the mountains shimmering in the hazy light like so many breasts of doves, the constant presence of the melodious Italian voice. Where indeed but at the Opera when the manager has been more than usually regardless of expense? Here in the foreground was the palace of the nefarious barytone, with its banqueting-hall opening as freely on the stage as a railway buffet on the platform; beyond, the delightful back scene, with its operatic gamut of colouring; in the middle the scarlet-sashed barcaiuoli, grouped like a chorus, hat in hand, awaiting the conductor’s signal. It was better even than being in a novel—this being, this fairly wallowing, in a libretto.
It’s part of the rough charm of the Mont Cenis road that, unlike those nice old unrefined passes like the Simplon, the Splügen, and—at least for a while longer—the Saint-Gothard, it keeps you from seeing that paradise made beautiful by the four lakes, just like unedited scripture keeps you from the rivers of Eden. I did take a trip to Lake Como, which, although brief, was long enough to make me feel like a romantic hero with time for a love affair, not just a rushing tourist with a train schedule in my pocket. Lake Como has played a big role in novels with “immoral” themes—it's often the place where eager young men invite other men’s wives to elope and ignore what society thinks. But even Lake Como has been revamped and improved; even the strongest attachments fade over time. It somehow gives a feeling of elevated sophistication. I would be doing a disservice to the many guests of the hotels that now charmingly line the shore alongside new and old villas if I took a more cynical view. Yet, while it may have lost its dramatic allure, it still offers its beautiful waters for many other refined purposes, and the average tourist, particularly Americans, can indulge in plenty of personal daydreaming there. The lovely hotel at Cadenabbia provides him, in the most stylish and confident way, the often risky adventure he calls summer boarding back home. Everything feels so unreal, so fictional, so refined and lazy, designed to undermine any strict belief that the main purpose of life isn’t to float forever in a fancy boat, beneath a circus-like awning, paddled by a friendly Giovanni or Antonio from one grand lakeside villa to another, making departure feel as harsh and unnatural as the alarm clock ringing on a gloomy winter morning. Still, I couldn’t help but think that I had seen it all before—the pink-walled villas shining through their orange and oleander bushes, the mountains glowing in the soft light like dove breasts, the constant sound of melodious Italian voices. Where else but at the Opera when the manager has been especially extravagant? Right in front was the palace of the shady baritone, with its banquet hall opening as readily to the stage as a train station café does to the platform; beyond that, the delightful backdrop, rich with operatic colors; and in the center, the scarlet-sashed barcaiuoli, gathered like a chorus, hats in hand, waiting for the conductor’s cue. This was even better than being in a novel—this experience, this delightful immersion, felt like being in a libretto.
THE OLD SAINT-GOTHARD LEAVES FROM A NOTE-BOOK
Berne, September, 1873.—In Berne again, some eleven weeks after having left it in July. I have never been in Switzerland so late, and I came hither innocently supposing the last Cook’s tourist to have paid out his last coupon and departed. But I was lucky, it seems, to discover an empty cot in an attic and a very tight place at a table d’hôte. People are all flocking out of Switzerland, as in July they were flocking in, and the main channels of egress are terribly choked. I have been here several days, watching them come and go; it is like the march-past of an army. It gives one, for an occasional change from darker thoughts, a lively impression of the numbers of people now living, and above all now moving, at extreme ease in the world. Here is little Switzerland disgorging its tens of thousands of honest folk, chiefly English, and rarely, to judge by their faces and talk, children of light in any eminent degree; for whom snow-peaks and glaciers and passes and lakes and chalets and sunsets and a café complet, “including honey,” as the coupon says, have become prime necessities for six weeks every year. It’s not so long ago that lords and nabobs monopolised these pleasures; but nowadays in a month’s tour in Switzerland is no more a jeu de prince than a Sunday excursion. To watch this huge Anglo-Saxon wave ebbing through Berne suggests, no doubt most fallaciously, that the common lot of mankind isn’t after all so very hard and that the masses have reached a high standard of comfort. The view of the Oberland chain, as you see it from the garden of the hotel, really butters one’s bread most handsomely; and here are I don’t know how many hundred Cook’s tourists a day looking at it through the smoke of their pipes. Is it really the “masses,” however, that I see every day at the table d’hôte? They have rather too few h’s to the dozen, but their good-nature is great. Some people complain that they “vulgarise” Switzerland; but as far as I am concerned I freely give it up to them and offer them a personal welcome and take a peculiar satisfaction in seeing them here. Switzerland is a “show country”—I am more and more struck with the bearings of that truth; and its use in the world is to reassure persons of a benevolent imagination when they begin to wish for the drudging millions a greater supply of elevating amusement. Here is amusement for a thousand years, and as elevating certainly as mountains three miles high can make it. I expect to live to see the summit of Monte Rosa heated by steam-tubes and adorned with a hotel setting three tables d’hôte a day.
Berne, September, 1873.—I'm back in Berne, about eleven weeks after leaving in July. I've never been in Switzerland this late before, and I came here thinking the last tourist from Cook’s had used up their last coupon and left. But I was lucky to find an empty bed in an attic and a cramped spot at a table d’hôte. People are all leaving Switzerland now, just as they were arriving in July, and the main routes out are incredibly congested. I've been here several days, watching them come and go; it's like a parade of an army. It offers, as a nice break from darker thoughts, a vibrant sense of the many people living and, more importantly, moving about comfortably in the world. Here’s little Switzerland overflowing with tens of thousands of decent folks, mostly English, who, judging by their expressions and conversations, don’t seem particularly enlightened; for them, snow-capped peaks, glaciers, mountain passes, lakes, chalets, sunsets, and a café complet “including honey,” as the coupon states, have become essential for six weeks each year. Not too long ago, only lords and wealthy folks enjoyed these pleasures; now, a month’s tour in Switzerland is as ordinary as a Sunday outing. Watching this massive wave of Anglo-Saxons streaming through Berne misleadingly suggests that the average person’s life isn’t so hard after all and that the masses have reached a good level of comfort. The view of the Oberland range from the hotel garden truly enhances one’s experience; and there are countless Cook’s tourists daily enjoying it through the haze of their pipes. But is it really the “masses” I see every day at the table d’hôte? They definitely have a bit too few h’s to the dozen, but their good spirits are abundant. Some people grumble that they “vulgarize” Switzerland; but for my part, I gladly hand it over to them and warmly welcome them, taking a special pleasure in seeing them here. Switzerland is a “show country”—the significance of that truth strikes me more and more; its role in the world is to soothe kind-hearted individuals when they yearn for more uplifting entertainment for the hardworking millions. There’s entertainment here for a thousand years, and as uplifting as mountains three miles high can provide. I expect to live to see the summit of Monte Rosa heated by steam pipes and featuring a hotel serving three table d’hôte meals a day.
{Illustration: THE CLOCK TOWER, BERNE}
{Illustration: THE CLOCK TOWER, BERN}
I have been walking about the arcades, which used to bestow a grateful shade in July, but which seem rather dusky and chilly in these shortening autumn days. I am struck with the way the English always speak of them—with a shudder, as gloomy, as dirty, as evil-smelling, as suffocating, as freezing, as anything and everything but admirably picturesque. I take us Americans for the only people who, in travelling, judge things on the first impulse—when we do judge them at all—not from the standpoint of simple comfort. Most of us, strolling forth into these bustling basements, are, I imagine, too much amused, too much diverted from the sense of an alienable right to public ease, to be conscious of heat or cold, of thick air, or even of the universal smell of strong charcuterie. If the visible romantic were banished from the face of the earth I am sure the idea of it would still survive in some typical American heart....
I’ve been walking around the arcades, which used to provide a nice shade in July, but now feel pretty dark and chilly in these shorter autumn days. I’m struck by how the English always talk about them—with a shudder, describing them as gloomy, dirty, foul-smelling, suffocating, freezing—anything but beautifully picturesque. I think we Americans are the only ones who, when traveling, judge things on our initial impression—if we judge them at all—rather than from a simple comfort perspective. Most of us, wandering into these busy basements, are probably too amused and distracted to notice heat or cold, thick air, or even the widespread smell of strong charcuterie. Even if all visible romance were gone from the world, I believe the idea of it would still live on in some quintessential American heart....
Lucerne, September.—Berne, I find, has been filling with tourists at the expense of Lucerne, which I have been having almost to myself. There are six people at the table d’hôte; the excellent dinner denotes on the part of the chef the easy leisure in which true artists love to work. The waiters have nothing to do but lounge about the hall and chink in their pockets the fees of the past season. The day has been lovely in itself, and pervaded, to my sense, by the gentle glow of a natural satisfaction at my finding myself again on the threshold of Italy. I am lodged en prince, in a room with a balcony hanging over the lake—a balcony on which I spent a long time this morning at dawn, thanking the mountain-tops, from the depths of a landscape-lover’s heart, for their promise of superbly fair weather. There were a great many mountain-tops to thank, for the crags and peaks and pinnacles tumbled away through the morning mist in an endless confusion of grandeur. I have been all day in better humour with Lucerne than ever before—a forecast reflection of Italian moods. If Switzerland, as I wrote the other day, is so furiously a show-place, Lucerne is certainly one of the biggest booths at the fair. The little quay, under the trees, squeezed in between the decks of the steamboats and the doors of the hotels, is a terrible medley of Saxon dialects—a jumble of pilgrims in all the phases of devotion, equipped with book and staff, alpenstock and Baedeker. There are so many hotels and trinket-shops, so many omnibuses and steamers, so many Saint-Gothard vetturini, so many ragged urchins poking photographs, minerals and Lucernese English at you, that you feel as if lake and mountains themselves, in all their loveliness, were but a part of the “enterprise” of landlords and pedlars, and half expect to see the Righi and Pilatus and the fine weather figure as items on your hotel-bill between the bougie and the siphon. Nature herself assists you to this conceit; there is something so operatic and suggestive of footlights and scene-shifters in the view on which Lucerne looks out. You are one of five thousand—fifty thousand—“accommodated” spectators; you have taken your season-ticket and there is a responsible impresario somewhere behind the scenes. There is such a luxury of beauty in the prospect—such a redundancy of composition and effect—so many more peaks and pinnacles than are needed to make one heart happy or regale the vision of one quiet observer, that you finally accept the little Babel on the quay and the looming masses in the clouds as equal parts of a perfect system, and feel as if the mountains had been waiting so many ages for the hotels to come and balance the colossal group, that they show a right, after all, to have them big and numerous. The scene-shifters have been at work all day long, composing and discomposing the beautiful background of the prospect—massing the clouds and scattering the light, effacing and reviving, making play with their wonderful machinery of mist and haze. The mountains rise, one behind the other, in an enchanting gradation of distances and of melting blues and greys; you think each successive tone the loveliest and haziest possible till you see another loom dimly behind it. I couldn’t enjoy even The Swiss Times, over my breakfast, till I had marched forth to the office of the Saint-Gothard service of coaches and demanded the banquette for to-morrow. The one place at the disposal of the office was taken, but I might possibly m’entendre with the conductor for his own seat—the conductor being generally visible, in the intervals of business, at the post-office. To the post-office, after breakfast, I repaired, over the fine new bridge which now spans the green Reuss and gives such a woeful air of country-cousinship to the crooked old wooden structure which did sole service when I was here four years ago. The old bridge is covered with a running hood of shingles and adorned with a series of very quaint and vivid little paintings of the “Dance of Death,” quite in the Holbein manner; the new sends up a painful glare from its white limestone, and is ornamented with candelabra in a meretricious imitation of platinum. As an almost professional cherisher of the quaint I ought to have chosen to return at least by the dark and narrow way; but mark how luxury unmans us. I was already demoralised. I crossed the threshold of the timbered portal, took a few steps, and retreated. It smelt badly! So I marched back, counting the lamps in their fine falsity. But the other, the crooked and covered way, smelt very badly indeed; and no good American is without a fund of accumulated sensibility to the odour of stale timber.
Lucerne, September.—I've noticed that Berne has been filling up with tourists at the expense of Lucerne, which I've had almost to myself. There are six people at the dinner table; the amazing meal shows the leisure with which true artists love to work. The waiters have nothing to do but hang around the hall and pocket the tips from the past season. The day has been beautiful, and to me, it feels filled with a gentle glow of natural satisfaction as I find myself once again on the brink of Italy. I'm staying like royalty, in a room with a balcony overlooking the lake—a balcony where I spent a long time this morning at dawn, thanking the mountain tops from the depths of a landscape lover's heart for their promise of stunningly nice weather. There were many mountains to thank, as the crags, peaks, and pinnacles scattered into the morning mist in an endless display of grandeur. I've felt better about Lucerne today than ever before—a foretaste of Italian moods. If Switzerland, as I wrote the other day, is so overwhelmingly a tourist destination, Lucerne is definitely one of the biggest attractions at the fair. The little quay, under the trees, squeezed between the steamboats and hotel entrances, is a chaotic mix of Saxon dialects—a jumble of pilgrims in various phases of devotion, equipped with guidebooks, staffs, walking sticks, and Baedekers. There are so many hotels and souvenir shops, so many buses and boats, so many Saint-Gothard vetturini, and so many ragged kids shoving photographs, minerals, and half-baked English at you that you feel like the lake and the mountains themselves, in all their beauty, are just part of the “business” of landlords and vendors, and you half-expect to see the Righi and Pilatus and the fine weather listed on your hotel bill between the bougie and siphon. Nature itself encourages this idea; there's something so theatrical and reminiscent of stage lights and scene shifters in the view that Lucerne overlooks. You are one of five thousand—fifty thousand—“accommodated” spectators; you've bought your season ticket, and somewhere backstage, there’s an actual producer. There’s such a richness of beauty in the view—such an overflow of composition and effect—so many more peaks and pinnacles than are needed to make one heart happy or delight the eyes of one quiet observer, that you ultimately accept the little Babel at the quay and the towering masses in the clouds as equal parts of a perfect system, feeling as if the mountains had been waiting eons for the hotels to come and balance the colossal group, so they rightfully deserve to be big and numerous. The scene shifters have been busy all day, composing and decomposing the beautiful backdrop of the view—massing the clouds and scattering the light, erasing and reviving, playing with their wonderful machinery of mist and haze. The mountains rise, one behind the other, in a mesmerizing gradient of distances and melting blues and grays; you think each subsequent tone is the loveliest and haziest possible until you see another one looming vaguely behind it. I couldn't even enjoy The Swiss Times at breakfast until I had gone to the office for the Saint-Gothard coach service and asked for a seat for tomorrow. The one seat available was taken, but I might be able to m’entendre with the conductor for his own seat—the conductor being generally around during breaks at the post office. After breakfast, I headed to the post office, over the fine new bridge that now spans the green Reuss and makes the crooked old wooden structure, which served when I was here four years ago, look painfully outdated. The old bridge is covered with a running hood of shingles and decorated with a series of quaint and colorful little paintings of the “Dance of Death,” very much in the Holbein style; the new one shines painfully bright from its white limestone and is adorned with candelabras in a gaudy imitation of platinum. As someone who cherishes the quaint, I should have chosen to return at least by the dark and narrow way; but notice how luxury demoralizes us. I was already disheartened. I crossed the threshold of the timbered portal, took a few steps, and retreated. It smelled bad! So I marched back, counting the lamps in their fine falsehood. But the other way, the crooked and covered path, smelled even worse; and no good American is without a well-developed sensitivity to the smell of stale timber.
Meanwhile I had spent an hour in the great yard of the postoffice, waiting for my conductor to turn up and seeing the yellow malles-postes pushed to and fro. At last, being told my man was at my service, I was brought to speech of a huge, jovial, bearded, delightful Italian, clad in the blue coat and waistcoat, with close, round silver buttons, which are a heritage of the old postilions. No, it was not he; it was a friend of his; and finally the friend was produced, en costume de ville, but equally jovial, and Italian enough—a brave Lucernese, who had spent half of his life between Bellinzona and Camerlata. For ten francs this worthy man’s perch behind the luggage was made mine as far as Bellinzona, and we separated with reciprocal wishes for good weather on the morrow. To-morrow is so manifestly determined to be as fine as any other 30th of September since the weather became on this planet a topic of conversation that I have had nothing to do but stroll about Lucerne, staring, loafing and vaguely intent on regarding the fact that, whatever happens, my place is paid to Milan. I loafed into the immense new Hotel National and read the New York Tribune on a blue satin divan; after which I was rather surprised, on coming out, to find myself staring at a green Swiss lake and not at the Broadway omnibuses. The Hotel National is adorned with a perfectly appointed Broadway bar—one of the “prohibited” ones seeking hospitality in foreign lands after the manner of an old-fashioned French or Italian refugee.
Meanwhile, I had spent an hour in the big yard of the post office, waiting for my driver to show up and watching the yellow mail carts being moved around. Finally, I was told that my man was ready, and I met a huge, cheerful, bearded Italian, dressed in a blue coat and waistcoat with shiny silver buttons, a tradition from the old postilions. But it wasn’t him; it was a friend of his. Eventually, the friend appeared, dressed casually but just as cheerful and Italian—a brave guy from Lucerne who had spent half his life bouncing between Bellinzona and Camerlata. For ten francs, I secured this fine man’s spot behind the luggage all the way to Bellinzona, and we parted ways with mutual hopes for good weather tomorrow. Tomorrow is clearly set to be as nice as any other September 30th since weather became a topic of conversation on this planet, so I had nothing to do but wander around Lucerne, gazing, loafing, and vaguely focused on the fact that, no matter what, my ticket to Milan was paid for. I wandered into the huge new Hotel National and read the New York Tribune on a blue satin couch; after that, I was quite surprised to find myself staring at a green Swiss lake instead of the Broadway buses when I stepped outside. The Hotel National features a perfectly set-up Broadway bar—one of the “prohibited” ones seeking a welcome in foreign lands like an old-fashioned French or Italian refugee.
Milan, October.—My journey hither was such a pleasant piece of traveller’s luck that I feel a delicacy for taking it to pieces to see what it was made of. Do what we will, however, there remains in all deeply agreeable impressions a charming something we can’t analyse. I found it agreeable even, given the rest of my case, to turn out of bed, at Lucerne, by four o’clock, into the chilly autumn darkness. The thick-starred sky was cloudless, and there was as yet no flush of dawn; but the lake was wrapped in a ghostly white mist which crept halfway up the mountains and made them look as if they too had been lying down for the night and were casting away the vaporous tissues of their bedclothes. Into this fantastic fog the little steamer went creaking away, and I hung about the deck with the two or three travellers who had known better than to believe it would save them francs or midnight sighs—over those debts you “pay with your person”—to go and wait for the diligence at the Poste at Fliielen, or yet at the Guillaume Tell. The dawn came sailing up over the mountain-tops, flushed but unperturbed, and blew out the little stars and then the big ones, as a thrifty matron after a party blows out her candles and lamps; the mist went melting and wandering away into the duskier hollows and recesses of the mountains, and the summits defined their profiles against the cool soft light.
Milan, October.—My trip here was such a delightful stroke of luck that I hesitate to break it down to see what made it so special. No matter what we do, though, there’s always something enchanting about truly enjoyable experiences that we can’t analyze. I even found it pleasant, considering my situation, to get out of bed in Lucerne at four in the morning into the chilly autumn darkness. The sky was full of stars and clear, with no hint of dawn yet; however, the lake was covered in a ghostly white mist that crept halfway up the mountains, making them look like they had been resting through the night and were shaking off the fog like bedclothes. Into this surreal fog, the little steamer chugged away, and I lingered on the deck with a few fellow travelers who had wisely decided against waiting for the coach at the Poste in Fliielen or at the Guillaume Tell—hoping to save a few francs or avoid the midnight sighs over those debts you “pay with your person.” Dawn arrived, rising over the mountain tops, blushing yet calm, and snuffed out the little stars and then the bigger ones, like a frugal hostess extinguishing her candles and lamps after a party; the mist slowly melted away into the darker valleys and nooks of the mountains, while the peaks stood out against the cool, soft light.
At Flüelen, before the landing, the big yellow coaches were actively making themselves bigger, and piling up boxes and bags on their roofs in a way to turn nervous people’s thoughts to the sharp corners of the downward twists of the great road. I climbed into my own banquette, and stood eating peaches—half-a-dozen women were hawking them about under the horses’ legs—with an air of security that might have been offensive to the people scrambling and protesting below between coupé and intérieur. They were all English and all had false alarms about the claim of somebody else to their place, the place for which they produced their ticket, with a declaration in three or four different tongues of the inalienable right to it given them by the expenditure of British gold. They were all serenely confuted by the stout, purple-faced, many-buttoned conductors, patted on the backs, assured that their bath-tubs had every advantage of position on the top, and stowed away according to their dues. When once one has fairly started on a journey and has but to go and go by the impetus received, it is surprising what entertainment one finds in very small things. We surrender to the gaping traveller’s mood, which surely isn’t the unwisest the heart knows. I don’t envy people, at any rate, who have outlived or outworn the simple sweetness of feeling settled to go somewhere with bag and umbrella. If we are settled on the top of a coach, and the “somewhere” contains an element of the new and strange, the case is at its best. In this matter wise people are content to become children again. We don’t turn about on our knees to look out of the omnibus-window, but we indulge in very much the same round-eyed contemplation of accessible objects. Responsibility is left at home or at the worst packed away in the valise, relegated to quite another part of the diligence with the clean shirts and the writing-case. I sucked in the gladness of gaping, for this occasion, with the somewhat acrid juice of my indifferent peaches; it made me think them very good. This was the first of a series of kindly services it rendered me. It made me agree next, as we started, that the gentleman at the booking-office at Lucerne had but played a harmless joke when he told me the regular seat in the banquette was taken. No one appeared to claim it; so the conductor and I reversed positions, and I found him quite as conversible as the usual Anglo-Saxon.
At Flüelen, just before we landed, the big yellow coaches were busily making themselves look bigger, stacking boxes and bags on their roofs, which caused nervous passengers to think about the sharp turns of the winding road. I climbed into my seat and started eating peaches—half a dozen women were selling them under the horses' legs—feeling secure, which might have seemed rude to the people scrambling and complaining below between the coupe and interior. They were all English and had false worries about someone else claiming their spot, the one they showed tickets for, confidently declaring in three or four different languages their rights to it courtesy of British money. They were all calmly reassured by the stout, purple-faced conductors, who patted their backs and assured them that their large bags had the best position on top, and they were stowed away according to their needs. Once you’ve truly started on a journey and just have to go with the momentum you’ve gained, it’s surprising how much entertainment you can find in little things. We give in to that curious traveler’s mood, which isn’t the worst state of mind to be in. I don’t envy those who have outgrown the simple joy of feeling ready to go somewhere with just a bag and an umbrella. If we’re settled on top of a coach and the “somewhere” has a hint of novelty and excitement, it’s the best experience there is. In this regard, wise people happily return to being children again. We don’t turn around on our knees to look out of the bus window, but we definitely indulge in the same wide-eyed wonder at everything around us. Responsibility is left at home or, at worst, packed away in the suitcase, assigned to a completely different part of the coach with clean shirts and a writing kit. I took in the joy of gawking for this occasion, mixed with the somewhat sharp juice of my unremarkable peaches; it made me think they were quite good. This was just the first of many nice benefits it provided me. It also prompted me to realize, as we began our journey, that the guy at the booking office in Lucerne was just playing a harmless prank when he told me the regular seat in the banquette was taken. No one came forward to claim it; so the conductor and I switched places, and I found him just as friendly as the usual Englishman.
He was trolling snatches of melody and showing his great yellow teeth in a jovial grin all the way to Bellinzona—and this in face of the sombre fact that the Saint-Gothard tunnel is scraping away into the mountain, all the while, under his nose, and numbering the days of the many-buttoned brotherhood. But he hopes, for long service’s sake, to be taken into the employ of the railway; he at least is no cherisher of quaintness and has no romantic perversity. I found the railway coming on, however, in a manner very shocking to mine. About an hour short of Andermatt they have pierced a huge black cavity in the mountain, around which has grown up a swarming, digging, hammering, smoke-compelling colony. There are great barracks, with tall chimneys, down in the gorge that bristled the other day but with natural graces, and a wonderful increase of wine-shops in the little village of Göschenen above. Along the breast of the mountain, beside the road, come wandering several miles of very handsome iron pipes, of a stupendous girth—a conduit for the water-power with which some of the machinery is worked. It lies at its mighty length among the rocks like an immense black serpent, and serves, as a mere detail, to give one the measure of the central enterprise. When at the end of our long day’s journey, well down in warm Italy, we came upon the other aperture of the tunnel, I could but uncap with a grim reverence. Truly Nature is great, but she seems to me to stand in very much the shoes of my poor friend the conductor. She is being superseded at her strongest points, successively, and nothing remains but for her to take humble service with her master. If she can hear herself think amid that din of blasting and hammering she must be reckoning up the years to elapse before the cleverest of Ober-Ingénieurs decides that mountains are mere obstructive matter and has the Jungfrau melted down and the residuum carried away in balloons and dumped upon another planet.
He was humming bits of melody and flashing his big yellow teeth in a cheerful grin all the way to Bellinzona—even with the heavy reality that the Saint-Gothard tunnel is being carved into the mountain right under his nose, counting down the days of the many-buttoned brotherhood. Still, he hopes that after long service, he’ll be hired by the railway; he certainly isn't someone who clings to quaint things or has any romantic oddities. However, I found the railway progressing in a way that shocked me. About an hour before we reached Andermatt, they created a massive black hole in the mountain, around which a bustling, digging, hammering, smoke-producing community has sprung up. There are large barracks with tall chimneys down in the gorge that used to be filled only with natural beauty, and a significant increase in wine shops in the small village of Göschenen above. Along the mountainside, next to the road, stretch several miles of very impressive iron pipes, incredibly thick—these are conduits for the water power that operates some of the machinery. It lies among the rocks like a huge black serpent, and serves to highlight the scale of the main project. When, at the end of our long journey, we finally reached the other end of the tunnel, deep in warm Italy, I could only uncover my head with a grim respect. Truly, Nature is powerful, but it seems to me she stands very much in the position of my poor friend the conductor. She is being overtaken at her strongest points one after another, and all that’s left for her to do is accept a humble role under her master. If she can hear her own thoughts amidst that noise of blasting and hammering, she must be counting the years until the smartest of engineers decides that mountains are just obstacles to be eliminated and has the Jungfrau melted down, with the leftovers transported away in balloons and dumped on another planet.
The Devil’s Bridge, with the same failing apparently as the good Homer, was decidedly nodding. The volume of water in the torrent was shrunken, and I missed the thunderous uproar and far-leaping spray that have kept up a miniature tempest in the neighbourhood on my other passages. It suddenly occurs to me that the fault is not in the good Homer’s inspiration, but simply in the big black pipes above-mentioned. They dip into the rushing stream higher up, presumably, and pervert its fine frenzy to their prosaic uses. There could hardly be a more vivid reminder of the standing quarrel between use and beauty, and of the hard time poor beauty is having. I looked wistfully, as we rattled into dreary Andermatt, at the great white zigzags of the Oberalp road which climbed away to the left. Even on one’s way to Italy one may spare a throb of desire for the beautiful vision of the castled Grisons. Dear to me the memory of my day’s drive last summer through that long blue avenue of mountains, to queer little mouldering Ilanz, visited before supper in the ghostly dusk. At Andermatt a sign over a little black doorway flanked by two dung-hills seemed to me tolerably comical: Mineraux, Quadrupedes, Oiseaux, OEufs, Tableaux Antiques. We bundled in to dinner and the American gentleman in the banquette made the acquaintance of the Irish lady in the coupé, who talked of the weather as foine and wore a Persian scarf twisted about her head. At the other end of the table sat an Englishman, out of the intérieur, who bore an extraordinary resemblance to the portraits of Edward VI’s and Mary’s reigns. He walking, a convincing Holbein. The impression was of value to a cherisher of quaintness, and he must have wondered—not knowing me for such a character—why I stared at him. It wasn’t him I was staring at, but some handsome Seymour or Dudley or Digby with a ruff and a round cap and plume.
The Devil’s Bridge, like the great Homer, was definitely looking a bit off. The water in the torrent was low, and I missed the loud noise and spray that usually create a mini storm in the area during my previous visits. It suddenly hit me that the problem isn’t with Homer’s creativity, but rather with the big black pipes mentioned earlier. They probably dip into the rushing water higher up and divert its wild energy for their mundane purposes. It couldn’t be a clearer reminder of the ongoing conflict between utility and beauty, and how rough things are for poor beauty. As we rattled into the dreary town of Andermatt, I looked longingly at the great white zigzags of the Oberalp road that climbed to the left. Even on the way to Italy, one can’t help feeling a twinge of desire for the stunning sight of the castles in Grisons. I cherish the memory of my drive last summer through that long blue tunnel of mountains to the quirky little crumbling town of Ilanz, which I visited before dinner in the eerie twilight. At Andermatt, a sign over a small black door flanked by two manure piles struck me as quite funny: Mineraux, Quadrupedes, Oiseaux, OEufs, Tableaux Antiques. We rushed in for dinner, and the American man in the back seat got to know the Irish lady in the coupe, who described the weather as foine and wore a Persian scarf twisted around her head. At the other end of the table sat an Englishman, dressed plainly, who looked remarkably like portraits from the reigns of Edward VI and Mary. He was like a convincing Holbein painting come to life. The impression was valuable for someone who appreciates the unusual, and he must have wondered—since he didn’t know me to be that kind of person—why I was staring at him. It wasn’t him I was staring at, but some dashing Seymour, Dudley, or Digby with a ruff and a round cap and plume.
From Andermatt, through its high, cold, sunny valley, we passed into rugged little Hospenthal, and then up the last stages of the ascent. From here the road was all new to me. Among the summits of the various Alpine passes there is little to choose. You wind and double slowly into keener cold and deeper stillness; you put on your overcoat and turn up the collar; you count the nestling snow-patches and then you cease to count them; you pause, as you trudge before the lumbering coach, and listen to the last-heard cow-bell tinkling away below you in kindlier herbage. The sky was tremendously blue, and the little stunted bushes on the snow-streaked slopes were all dyed with autumnal purples and crimsons. It was a great display of colour. Purple and crimson too, though not so fine, were the faces thrust out at us from the greasy little double casements of a barrack beside the road, where the horses paused before the last pull. There was one little girl in particular, beginning to lisser her hair, as civilisation approached, in a manner not to be described, with her poor little blue-black hands. At the summit are the two usual grim little stone taverns, the steel-blue tarn, the snow-white peaks, the pause in the cold sunshine. Then we begin to rattle down with two horses. In five minutes we are swinging along the famous zigzags. Engineer, driver, horses—it’s very handsomely done by all of them. The road curves and curls and twists and plunges like the tail of a kite; sitting perched in the banquette, you see it making below you and in mid-air certain bold gyrations which bring you as near as possible, short of the actual experience, to the philosophy of that immortal Irishman who wished that his fall from the house-top would only last. But the zigzags last no more than Paddy’s fall, and in due time we were all coming to our senses over cafe au lait in the little inn at Faido. After Faido the valley, plunging deeper, began to take thick afternoon shadows from the hills, and at Airolo we were fairly in the twilight. But the pink and yellow houses shimmered through the gentle gloom, and Italy began in broken syllables to whisper that she was at hand. For the rest of the way to Bellinzona her voice was muffled in the grey of evening, and I was half vexed to lose the charming sight of the changing vegetation. But only half vexed, for the moon was climbing all the while nearer the edge of the crags that overshadowed us, and a thin magical light came trickling down into the winding, murmuring gorges. It was a most enchanting business. The chestnut-trees loomed up with double their daylight stature; the vines began to swing their low festoons like nets to trip up the fairies. At last the ruined towers of Bellinzona stood gleaming in the moonshine, and we rattled into the great post-yard. It was eleven o’clock and I had risen at four; moonshine apart I wasn’t sorry.
From Andermatt, through its high, cold, sunny valley, we made our way into the rugged little town of Hospenthal, and then up the final stretch of the ascent. From here, the road was all new to me. Among the peaks of the different Alpine passes, there isn't much to choose from. You wind and turn slowly into sharper cold and deeper silence; you put on your overcoat and flip up the collar; you count the snow patches and then stop counting them; you take a break as you walk in front of the clunky coach and listen to the last cowbell ringing softly below you in the friendlier meadows. The sky was incredibly blue, and the small, stunted bushes on the snow-streaked slopes were all colored with autumn purples and crimsons. It was a spectacular display of color. Purple and crimson, although not as vibrant, were also the faces peering at us from the grimy little double windows of a barrack beside the road where the horses paused before the final climb. There was one little girl in particular, starting to smooth her hair, as civilization approached, in an indescribable way, with her poor little blue-black hands. At the summit, there are the two usual grim little stone taverns, the steel-blue lake, the snow-white peaks, and the pause in the cold sunshine. Then we begin to rumble down with two horses. Within five minutes, we were maneuvering the famous zigzags. Engineer, driver, horses—everyone did it quite impressively. The road curves, twists, and plunges like a kite's tail; sitting perched on the seat, you see it making bold moves below you and in mid-air that bring you as close as possible, short of actual experience, to the philosophy of that immortal Irishman who wished that his fall from the rooftop would last forever. But the zigzags last no longer than Paddy’s fall, and soon we were all coming to our senses over café au lait in the little inn at Faido. After Faido, the valley, sinking deeper, started to take on thick afternoon shadows from the hills, and by Airolo, we were completely in the twilight. But the pink and yellow houses shimmered through the soft gloom, and Italy began to whisper, in broken syllables, that she was close by. For the rest of the way to Bellinzona, her voice was muffled in the gray of evening, and I was somewhat annoyed to miss the lovely sight of the changing vegetation. But only somewhat annoyed, because the moon was rising all the while closer to the edge of the cliffs that loomed over us, and a thin magical light poured down into the winding, murmuring gorges. It was a truly enchanting scene. The chestnut trees loomed up with double their daytime height; the vines started to swing their low vines like nets to catch fairies. Finally, the ruined towers of Bellinzona stood shining in the moonlight, and we rattled into the large post-yard. It was eleven o’clock and I had gotten up at four; aside from the moonlight, I wasn’t unhappy.
All that was very well; but the drive next day from Bellinzona to Como is to my mind what gives its supreme beauty to this great pass. One can’t describe the beauty of the Italian lakes, nor would one try if one could; the floweriest rhetoric can recall it only as a picture on a fireboard recalls a Claude. But it lay spread before me for a whole perfect day: in the long gleam of the Major, from whose head the diligence swerves away and begins to climb the bosky hills that divide it from Lugano; in the shimmering, melting azure of the southern slopes and masses; in the luxurious tangle of nature and the familiar amenity of man; in the lawn-like inclinations, where the great grouped chestnuts make so cool a shadow in so warm a light; in the rusty vineyards, the littered cornfields and the tawdry wayside shrines. But most of all it’s the deep yellow light that enchants you and tells you where you are. See it come filtering down through a vine-covered trellis on the red handkerchief with which a ragged contadina has bound her hair, and all the magic of Italy, to the eye, makes an aureole about the poor girl’s head. Look at a brown-breasted reaper eating his chunk of black bread under a spreading chestnut; nowhere is shadow so charming, nowhere is colour so charged, nowhere has accident such grace. The whole drive to Lugano was one long loveliness, and the town itself is admirably Italian. There was a great unlading of the coach, during which I wandered under certain brown old arcades and bought for six sous, from a young woman in a gold necklace, a hatful of peaches and figs. When I came back I found the young man holding open the door of the second diligence, which had lately come up, and beckoning to me with a despairing smile. The young man, I must note, was the most amiable of Ticinese; though he wore no buttons he was attached to the diligence in some amateurish capacity, and had an eye to the mail-bags and other valuables in the boot. I grumbled at Berne over the want of soft curves in the Swiss temperament; but the children of the tangled Tessin are cast in the Italian mould. My friend had as many quips and cranks as a Neapolitan; we walked together for an hour under the chestnuts, while the coach was plodding up from Bellinzona, and he never stopped singing till we reached a little wine-house where he got his mouth full of bread and cheese. I looked into his open door, a la Sterne, and saw the young woman sitting rigid and grim, staring over his head and with a great pile of bread and butter in her lap. He had only informed her most politely that she was to be transferred to another diligence and must do him the favour to descend; but she evidently knew of but one way for a respectable young insulary of her sex to receive the politeness of a foreign adventurer guilty of an eye betraying latent pleasantry. Heaven only knew what he was saying! I told her, and she gathered up her parcels and emerged. A part of the day’s great pleasure perhaps was my grave sense of being an instrument in the hands of the powers toward the safe consignment of this young woman and her boxes. When once you have really bent to the helpless you are caught; there is no such steel trap, and it holds you fast. My rather grim Abigail was a neophyte in foreign travel, though doubtless cunning enough at her trade, which I inferred to be that of making up those prodigious chignons worn mainly by English ladies. Her mistress had gone on a mule over the mountains to Cadenabbia, and she herself was coming up with the wardrobe, two big boxes and a bath-tub. I had played my part, under the powers, at Bellinzona, and had interposed between the poor girl’s frightened English and the dreadful Ticinese French of the functionaries in the post-yard. At the custom-house on the Italian frontier I was of peculiar service; there was a kind of fateful fascination in it. The wardrobe was voluminous; I exchanged a paternal glance with my charge as the douanier plunged his brown fists into it. Who was the lady at Cadenabbia? What was she to me or I to her? She wouldn’t know, when she rustled down to dinner next day, that it was I who had guided the frail skiff of her public basis of vanity to port. So unseen but not unfelt do we cross each other’s orbits. The skiff however may have foundered that evening in sight of land. I disengaged the young woman from among her fellow-travellers and placed her boxes on a hand-cart in the picturesque streets of Como, within a stone’s throw of that lovely striped and toned cathedral which has the facade of cameo medallions. I could only make the facchino swear to take her to the steamboat. He too was a jovial dog, but I hope he was polite with precautions.
All that was great, but the drive the next day from Bellinzona to Como is what really makes this beautiful pass stand out. You can’t describe the beauty of the Italian lakes, and you wouldn’t even try if you could; the most flowery language can only bring it to mind like a picture on a fireboard reminds you of a Claude. But it was laid out before me for an entire perfect day: in the long glow of the Major, where the coach veers away and starts to climb the leafy hills separating it from Lugano; in the shimmering, melting blue of the southern slopes and hills; in the luxurious mess of nature combined with the familiar comfort of human life; in the grassy slopes where the big clusters of chestnuts cast cool shadows in the warm light; in the rusty vineyards, the scattered cornfields, and the garish roadside shrines. But most of all, it’s the deep yellow light that captivates you and tells you where you are. Watch it filter down through a vine-covered trellis onto the red handkerchief tied around the hair of a ragged contadina, and all the magic of Italy creates a halo around the poor girl’s head. Look at a brown-breasted reaper enjoying his chunk of black bread under a sprawling chestnut; nowhere is shadow so charming, nowhere is color so vibrant, nowhere does coincidence have such grace. The entire drive to Lugano was a long stretch of beauty, and the town itself is distinctly Italian. There was a big unloading of the coach, during which I wandered under some old brown arcades and bought a hatful of peaches and figs for six sous from a young woman in a gold necklace. When I returned, I found the young man holding the door open for the second coach, which had just arrived, and gesturing to me with a desperate smile. I should note that the young man was the friendliest of Ticinese; though he wore no buttons, he was connected to the coach in some unofficial capacity and kept an eye on the mail bags and other valuables in the boot. I complained about the lack of soft touches in the Swiss temperament, but the people from the tangled Tessin are definitely in the Italian mold. My friend had as many jokes and quirks as a Neapolitan; we walked together for an hour under the chestnuts while the coach plodded along from Bellinzona, and he didn’t stop singing until we reached a little wine house where he stuffed his mouth with bread and cheese. I peeked into his open door, in a Sterne-like way, and saw the young woman sitting stiffly and grimly, staring over his head with a big pile of bread and butter in her lap. He had just politely informed her that she needed to switch to another coach and must kindly step down; but she clearly thought there was only one way for a respectable young woman of her kind to respond to the politeness of a foreign adventurer whose glance hinted at playful intentions. Who knows what he was saying! I told her, and she gathered up her things and stepped out. Part of the day’s pleasure was my serious sense of being a tool in the hands of fate for safely delivering this young woman and her luggage. Once you really commit to helping the vulnerable, you’re caught; there’s no trap like that, and it grips you tight. My rather serious Abigail was a novice at foreign travel, though probably skilled at her craft, which I guessed involved putting together those huge chignons mainly worn by English ladies. Her mistress had gone over the mountains on a mule to Cadenabbia, and she was bringing up the luggage, which included two large boxes and a bathtub. I had played my role, under the influence, at Bellinzona, and had served as a buffer between the frightened English girl and the terrifying Ticinese French of the officials in the post yard. At the customs house on the Italian border, I was especially useful; there was a kind of fateful thrill in it. The luggage was bulky; I exchanged a paternal glance with my charge as the douanier plunged his brown hands into it. Who was the lady at Cadenabbia? What was she to me or me to her? She wouldn’t know, when she came down for dinner the next day, that it was I who had guided the fragile craft of her public vanity safely to port. So unseen but not unfelt, we cross each other’s paths. However, the craft might have sunk that evening in sight of shore. I took the young woman away from her fellow travelers and put her boxes on a handcart in the picturesque streets of Como, just a stone’s throw from that lovely striped and toned cathedral with its cameo medallion facade. I could only get the facchino to promise to take her to the steamboat. He too was a cheerful fellow, but I hope he was polite while being cautious.
1873.
ITALY REVISITED
I
I waited in Paris until after the elections for the new Chamber (they took place on the 14th of October); as only after one had learned that the famous attempt of Marshal MacMahon and his ministers to drive the French nation to the polls like a flock of huddling sheep, each with the white ticket of an official candidate round his neck, had not achieved the success which the energy of the process might have promised—only then it was possible to draw a long breath and deprive the republican party of such support as might have been conveyed in one’s sympathetic presence. Seriously speaking too, the weather had been enchanting—there were Italian fancies to be gathered without leaving the banks of the Seine. Day after day the air was filled with golden light, and even those chalkish vistas of the Parisian beaux quartiers assumed the iridescent tints of autumn. Autumn weather in Europe is often such a very sorry affair that a fair-minded American will have it on his conscience to call attention to a rainless and radiant October.
I waited in Paris until after the elections for the new Chamber (they happened on October 14th); it was only after realizing that the famous attempt by Marshal MacMahon and his ministers to herd the French people to the polls like a bunch of sheep, each with an official candidate's white ticket around their neck, had not succeeded as strongly as the effort seemed to promise—only then was it possible to take a breath and withdraw any support I might have shown to the republican party just by being there. Honestly, the weather had been amazing—there were Italian-style delights to enjoy without leaving the banks of the Seine. Day after day, the air was filled with golden light, and even the chalky views of the Parisian beaux quartiers took on the shimmering colors of autumn. Autumn weather in Europe can often be quite disappointing, so a fair-minded American might feel compelled to point out a dry and sunny October.
The echoes of the electoral strife kept me company for a while after starting upon that abbreviated journey to Turin which, as you leave Paris at night, in a train unprovided with encouragements to slumber, is a singular mixture of the odious and the charming. The charming indeed I think prevails; for the dark half of the journey is the least interesting. The morning light ushers you into the romantic gorges of the Jura, and after a big bowl of cafe au lait at Culoz you may compose yourself comfortably for the climax of your spectacle. The day before leaving Paris I met a French friend who had just returned from a visit to a Tuscan country-seat where he had been watching the vintage. “Italy,” he said, “is more lovely than words can tell, and France, steeped in this electoral turmoil, seems no better than a bear-garden.” The part of the bear-garden through which you travel as you approach the Mont Cenis seemed to me that day very beautiful. The autumn colouring, thanks to the absence of rain, had been vivid and crisp, and the vines that swung their low garlands between the mulberries round about Chambery looked like long festoons of coral and amber. The frontier station of Modane, on the further side of the Mont Cenis Tunnel, is a very ill-regulated place; but even the most irritable of tourists, meeting it on his way southward, will be disposed to consider it good-naturedly. There is far too much bustling and scrambling, and the facilities afforded you for the obligatory process of ripping open your luggage before the officers of the Italian custom-house are much scantier than should be; but for myself there is something that deprecates irritation in the shabby green and grey uniforms of all the Italian officials who stand loafing about and watching the northern invaders scramble back into marching order. Wearing an administrative uniform doesn’t necessarily spoil a man’s temper, as in France one is sometimes led to believe; for these excellent under-paid Italians carry theirs as lightly as possible, and their answers to your inquiries don’t in the least bristle with rapiers, buttons and cockades. After leaving Modane you slide straight downhill into the Italy of your desire; from which point the road edges, after the grand manner, along those It precipices that stand shoulder to shoulder, in a prodigious perpendicular file, till they finally admit you to a distant glimpse he ancient capital of Piedmont.
The echoes of the election struggle stayed with me for a while after I set out on that short trip to Turin, which, as you leave Paris at night on a train that makes it hard to sleep, is a strange mix of the unpleasant and the delightful. The delightful part definitely stands out, because the darker part of the journey is the least interesting. Morning light leads you into the romantic valleys of the Jura, and after a big bowl of cafe au lait at Culoz, you can settle in comfortably for the highlight of your journey. The day before leaving Paris, I met a French friend who had just returned from visiting a Tuscan estate where he was watching the grape harvest. “Italy,” he said, “is more beautiful than words can express, and France, caught up in this election chaos, seems no better than a bear pit.” The bear pit you pass through as you approach Mont Cenis looked very beautiful to me that day. The autumn colors, thanks to the lack of rain, were vibrant and crisp, and the vines that draped their low garlands between the mulberry trees around Chambery resembled long strings of coral and amber. The border station of Modane, on the other side of the Mont Cenis Tunnel, is pretty chaotic; but even the most grumpy travelers heading south tend to view it with a sense of humor. There’s too much hustle and bustle, and the facilities provided for the mandatory luggage inspection by the Italian customs officers are much less than they should be; but for me, there's something that softens annoyance in the shabby green and gray uniforms of the Italian officials who are just hanging around, watching the northern travelers get back in line. Wearing a government uniform doesn’t always ruin a person’s mood, despite what you might think in France; these hardworking Italians carry theirs as lightly as they can, and their responses to your questions aren’t at all sharp or confrontational. After leaving Modane, you slide straight down into the Italy you’ve been dreaming of; from that point, the road winds dramatically along those cliffs that stand side by side, in an impressive vertical line, until you finally get a distant glimpse of the ancient capital of Piedmont.
Turin is no city of a name to conjure with, and I pay an extravagant tribute to subjective emotion in speaking of it as ancient, if the place is less bravely peninsular than Florence and Rome, at least it is more in the scenic tradition than New York Paris; and while I paced the great arcades and looked at the fourth-rate shop windows I didn’t scruple to cultivate a shameless optimism. Relatively speaking, Turin touches a chord; but there is after all no reason in a large collection of shabbily-stuccoed houses, disposed in a rigidly rectangular manner, for passing a day of deep, still gaiety. The only reason, I am afraid, is the old superstition of Italy—that property in the very look of the written word, the evocation of a myriad images, that makes any lover of the arts take Italian satisfactions on easier terms than any others. The written word stands for something that eternally tricks us; we juggle to our credulity even with such inferior apparatus as is offered to our hand at Turin. I roamed all the morning under the tall porticoes, thinking it sufficient joy to take note of the soft, warm air, of that local colour of things that is at once so broken and so harmonious, and of the comings and goings, the physiognomy and manners, of the excellent Turinese. I had opened the old book again; the old charm was in the style; I was in a more delightful world. I saw nothing surpassingly beautiful or curious; but your true taster of the most seasoned of dishes finds well-nigh the whole mixture in any mouthful. Above all on the threshold of Italy he knows again the solid and perfectly definable pleasure of finding himself among the traditions of the grand style in architecture. It must be said that we have still to go there to recover the sense of the domiciliary mass. In northern cities there are beautiful houses, picturesque and curious houses; sculptured gables that hang over the street, charming bay-windows, hooded doorways, elegant proportions, a profusion of delicate ornament; but a good specimen of an old Italian palazzo has a nobleness that is all its own. We laugh at Italian “palaces,” at their peeling paint, their nudity, their dreariness; but they have the great palatial quality—elevation and extent. They make of smaller things the apparent abode of pigmies; they round their great arches and interspace their huge windows with a proud indifference to the cost of materials. These grand proportions—the colossal basements, the doorways that seem meant for cathedrals, the far away cornices—impart by contrast a humble and bourgeois expression to interiors founded on the sacrifice of the whole to the part, and in which the air of grandeur depends largely on the help of the upholsterer. At Turin my first feeling was really one of renewed shame for our meaner architectural manners. If the Italians at bottom despise the rest of mankind and regard them as barbarians, disinherited of the tradition of form, the idea proceeds largely, no doubt, from our living in comparative mole-hills. They alone were really to build their civilisation.
Turin isn't exactly a city that stands out, and I give in to my feelings by calling it ancient. While it may lack the boldness of Florence and Rome, it definitely has more scenic charm than New York or Paris; as I walked through the grand arcades and glanced at the mediocre shop windows, I couldn't help but cultivate a shameless optimism. In relative terms, Turin strikes a chord; but honestly, there's no real reason to pass a day filled with deep, lasting joy in a collection of shabby, plastered houses arranged in a rigid grid. The only reason, I fear, is the old Italian superstition—that property in the very appearance of the written word, the evocation of countless images, that makes any art lover accept Italian experiences more easily than others. The written word represents something that always deceives us; we find ourselves tricked even by the lesser things we encounter in Turin. I wandered all morning under the tall porticoes, finding joy in the soft, warm air, in the unique local colors that are both fragmented and harmonious, and in observing the comings and goings, the faces and behaviors of the wonderful people of Turin. I reopened the old book; the charm was in the style; I was in a more delightful world. I didn’t see anything exceptionally beautiful or interesting; but someone who appreciates the most seasoned of dishes finds nearly the entire mixture in any single bite. Especially at the gateway to Italy, he remembers the solid and clearly defined pleasure of being among the traditions of great architectural style. It must be said that we still need to go there to regain a sense of substantial buildings. In northern cities, there are beautiful, picturesque, and interesting houses; sculpted gables that jut over the street, lovely bay windows, covered doorways, elegant proportions, and a wealth of delicate decoration; but a good example of an old Italian palazzo has a uniqueness that is unmatched. We may mock Italian “palaces,” with their peeling paint, their simplicity, and their gloom; but they possess a grand palatial quality—height and breadth. They make smaller things seem like the homes of tiny people; they round their massive arches and space their gigantic windows with a prideful disregard for material costs. These grand proportions—the colossal bases, doorways that seem designed for cathedrals, the distant cornices—create a humble, almost middle-class atmosphere in interiors that sacrifice the whole for the part, where the air of grandeur relies greatly on the upholsterer's touch. In Turin, my initial feeling was one of renewed embarrassment over our lesser architectural styles. If the Italians, at their core, look down on the rest of humanity and see them as barbarians, deprived of the tradition of form, that's likely because we live in relative molehills. They alone were meant to build their civilization.
{Illustration: UNDER THE ARCADES, TURIN.}
{Illustration: UNDER THE ARCADES, TURIN.}
An impression which on coming back to Italy I find even stronger than when it was first received is that of the contrast between the fecundity of the great artistic period and the vulgarity there of the genius of to-day. The first few hours spent on Italian soil are sufficient to renew it, and the question I allude to is, historically speaking, one of the oddest. That the people who but three hundred years ago had the best taste in the world should now have the worst; that having produced the noblest, loveliest, costliest works, they should now be given up to the manufacture of objects at once ugly and paltry; that the race of which Michael Angelo and Raphael, Leonardo and Titian were characteristic should have no other title to distinction than third-rate genre pictures and catchpenny statues—all this is a frequent perplexity to the observer of actual Italian life. The flower of “great” art in these latter years ceased to bloom very powerfully anywhere; but nowhere does it seem so drooping and withered as in the shadow of the immortal embodiments of the old Italian genius. You go into a church or a gallery and feast your fancy upon a splendid picture or an exquisite piece of sculpture, and on issuing from the door that has admitted you to the beautiful past are confronted with something that has the effect of a very bad joke. The aspect of your lodging—the carpets, the curtains, the upholstery in general, with their crude and violent colouring and their vulgar material—the trumpery things in the shops, the extreme bad taste of the dress of the women, the cheapness and baseness of every attempt at decoration in the cafes and railway-stations, the hopeless frivolity of everything that pretends to be a work of art—all this modern crudity runs riot over the relics of the great period.
An impression that I find even stronger now that I'm back in Italy is the sharp contrast between the creativity of the great artistic period and the tackiness of today's talent. Just a few hours on Italian soil is enough to remind me of this odd historical question. How is it that a people who, just three hundred years ago, had the best taste in the world now have the worst? They produced the most noble, beautiful, and expensive works, yet now they’re occupied with making things that are both ugly and cheap. The same people who gave us Michelangelo, Raphael, Leonardo, and Titian now seem to only be known for mediocre genre paintings and gimmicky statues. This often puzzles anyone observing contemporary Italian life. The pinnacle of “great” art has faded significantly in recent years, but nowhere does it seem so diminished and faded as it does in the shadow of the timeless masterpieces of the old Italian genius. You step into a church or a gallery and feast your eyes on a stunning painting or an exquisite sculpture, but when you leave that beautiful past, you're met with something that feels like a bad joke. The look of your lodging—the carpets, curtains, and overall upholstery, with their harsh and garish colors and cheap materials—the tacky items in the shops, the incredibly bad taste in women’s clothing, the cheapness and shoddiness of every attempt at decoration in cafes and train stations, and the hopeless frivolity of everything that claims to be art—all this modern crudity is rampant over the remnants of the great period.
We can do a thing for the first time but once; it is but once for all that we can have a pleasure in its freshness. This is a law not on the whole, I think, to be regretted, for we sometimes learn to know things better by not enjoying them too much. It is certain, however, at the same time, that a visitor who has worked off the immediate ferment for this inexhaustibly interesting country has by no means entirely drained the cup. After thinking of Italy as historical and artistic it will do him no great harm to think of her for a while as panting both for a future and for a balance at the bank; aspirations supposedly much at variance with the Byronic, the Ruskinian, the artistic, poetic, aesthetic manner of considering our eternally attaching peninsula. He may grant—I don’t say it is absolutely necessary—that its actual aspects and economics are ugly, prosaic, provokingly out of relation to the diary and the album; it is nevertheless true that, at the point things have come to, modern Italy in a manner imposes herself. I hadn’t been many hours in the country before that truth assailed me; and I may add that, the first irritation past, I found myself able to accept it. For, if we think, nothing is more easy to understand than an honest ire on the part of the young Italy of to-day at being looked at by all the world as a kind of soluble pigment. Young Italy, preoccupied with its economical and political future, must be heartily tired of being admired for its eyelashes and its pose. In one of Thackeray’s novels occurs a mention of a young artist who sent to the Royal Academy a picture representing “A Contadino dancing with a Trasteverina at the door of a Locanda, to the music of a Pifferaro.” It is in this attitude and with these conventional accessories that the world has hitherto seen fit to represent young Italy, and one doesn’t wonder that if the youth has any spirit he should at last begin to resent our insufferable aesthetic patronage. He has established a line of tram-cars in Rome, from the Porta del Popolo to the Ponte Molle, and it is on one of these democratic vehicles that I seem to see him taking his triumphant course down the vista of the future. I won’t pretend to rejoice with him any more than I really do; I won’t pretend, as the sentimental tourists say about it all, as if it were the setting of an intaglio or the border of a Roman scarf, to “like” it. Like it or not, as we may, it is evidently destined to be; I see a new Italy in the future which in many important respects will equal, if not surpass, the most enterprising sections of our native land. Perhaps by that time Chicago and San Francisco will have acquired a pose, and their sons and daughters will dance at the doors of locande.
We can experience something for the first time only once; it’s only once that we can enjoy its freshness. This is a rule that, overall, I don’t think is regrettable because sometimes we get to know things better by not enjoying them too much. However, it’s also true that a traveler who has explored the immediate excitement of this endlessly fascinating country hasn’t completely exhausted its offerings. After seeing Italy as historical and artistic, it won’t harm him to think of it for a moment as striving for a future and a stable economy; ambitions that seem very different from the Byronic, the Ruskinian, and the artistic, poetic, aesthetic perspectives we usually associate with our endlessly appealing peninsula. He might concede—I’m not saying it’s absolutely necessary—that its current conditions and economy are unappealing, mundane, and frustratingly disconnected from his journal and photographs; it’s nonetheless true that, at the stage things have reached, modern Italy imposes herself in a way. I hadn’t been in the country for long before this reality struck me; and I can add that, once the initial irritation faded, I found myself able to accept it. Because, honestly, nothing is easier to understand than young Italy’s honest frustration at being viewed as a mere exotic spectacle by the entire world. Young Italy, focused on its economic and political future, must be thoroughly tired of being admired only for its looks and style. In one of Thackeray’s novels, there’s a mention of a young artist who submitted to the Royal Academy a painting depicting “A Farmer dancing with a Trasteverina at the door of a Tavern, to the music of a Pifferaro.” It’s in this way—with these clichéd elements—that the world has previously chosen to portray young Italy, and it’s no surprise that if the youth has any spirit, they should begin to resent our unbearable aesthetic patronage. They’ve set up a tram line in Rome, from the Porta del Popolo to the Ponte Molle, and it’s on one of these democratic rides that I envision them confidently moving toward the future. I won’t pretend to share in their joy any more than I actually do; I won’t act, as sentimental tourists do, as if it were the backdrop of an artwork or a decorative Roman scarf, to “like” it. Like it or not, as we may, it’s clearly meant to be; I see a new Italy on the horizon that, in many important ways, will equal if not surpass the most ambitious parts of our homeland. By then, perhaps Chicago and San Francisco will have developed their own style, and their sons and daughters will dance at the doors of locande.
However this may be, the accomplished schism between the old order and the new is the promptest moral of a fresh visit to this ever-suggestive part of the world. The old has become more and more a museum, preserved and perpetuated in the midst of the new, but without any further relation to it—it must be admitted indeed that such a relation is considerable—than that of the stock on his shelves to the shopkeeper, or of the Siren of the South to the showman who stands before his booth. More than once, as we move about nowadays in the Italian cities, there seems to pass before our eyes a vision of the coming years. It represents to our satisfaction an Italy united and prosperous, but altogether scientific and commercial. The Italy indeed that we sentimentalise and romance about was an ardently mercantile country; though I suppose it loved not its ledgers less, but its frescoes and altar-pieces more. Scattered through this paradise regained of trade—this country of a thousand ports—we see a large number of beautiful buildings in which an endless series of dusky pictures are darkening, dampening, fading, failing, through the years. By the doors of the beautiful buildings are little turnstiles at which there sit a great many uniformed men to whom the visitor pays a tenpenny fee. Inside, in the vaulted and frescoed chambers, the art of Italy lies buried as in a thousand mausoleums. It is well taken care of; it is constantly copied; sometimes it is “restored”—as in the case of that beautiful boy-figure of Andrea del Sarto at Florence, which may be seen at the gallery of the Uffizi with its honourable duskiness quite peeled off and heaven knows what raw, bleeding cuticle laid bare. One evening lately, near the same Florence, in the soft twilight, I took a stroll among those encircling hills on which the massive villas are mingled with the vaporous olives. Presently I arrived where three roads met at a wayside shrine, in which, before some pious daub of an old-time Madonna, a little votive lamp glimmered through the evening air. The hour, the atmosphere, the place, the twinkling taper, the sentiment of the observer, the thought that some one had been rescued here from an assassin or from some other peril and had set up a little grateful altar in consequence, against the yellow-plastered wall of a tangled podere; all this led me to approach the shrine with a reverent, an emotional step. I drew near it, but after a few steps I paused. I became aware of an incongruous odour; it seemed to me that the evening air was charged with a perfume which, although to a certain extent familiar, had not hitherto associated itself with rustic frescoes and wayside altars. I wondered, I gently sniffed, and the question so put left me no doubt. The odour was that of petroleum; the votive taper was nourished with the essence of Pennsylvania. I confess that I burst out laughing, and a picturesque contadino, wending his homeward way in the dusk, stared at me as if I were an iconoclast. He noticed the petroleum only, I imagine, to snuff it fondly up; but to me the thing served as a symbol of the Italy of the future. There is a horse-car from the Porta del Popolo to the Ponte Molle, and the Tuscan shrines are fed with kerosene.
However this may be, the clear divide between the old ways and the new is the most obvious lesson from another visit to this endlessly intriguing part of the world. The old has turned into more of a museum, preserved and maintained alongside the new, yet it’s increasingly disconnected from it—though we have to admit that there is a significant connection—much like the stock on a store shelf to the shopkeeper, or the South's Siren to the showman outside his stall. As we wander through the Italian cities today, we can almost see a vision of the future passing before our eyes. It paints a picture of a united and prosperous Italy, but one that's completely scientific and commercial. The Italy we romanticize and dream about was actually a deeply mercantile nation; I suppose it didn’t love its ledgers any less, but rather cherished its frescoes and altarpieces more. Scattered throughout this regained paradise of trade—this land of a thousand ports—we notice many beautiful buildings filled with endless series of dull paintings that are darkening, dampening, fading, and failing over the years. By the entrances of these stunning structures are small turnstiles manned by uniformed guards, to whom visitors pay a small fee. Inside, in the vaulted and frescoed rooms, Italy's art lies buried like it’s in a thousand tombs. It is well-maintained; it's constantly copied; sometimes it’s “restored”—like that beautiful boy figure by Andrea del Sarto in Florence, which you can see at the Uffizi gallery, now stripped of its noble darkness to reveal who knows what raw, bleeding skin beneath. Recently, one evening near Florence, in the soft twilight, I took a walk among the surrounding hills dotted with grand villas and misty olive trees. I soon arrived at a point where three roads met at a wayside shrine, where a little votive lamp flickered in front of an old, pious painting of the Madonna. The hour, the mood, the location, the twinkling candle, the feelings of the observer, and the thought that someone had once been saved from an assassin or some other danger and had put up this little grateful altar against the yellow-plastered wall of a tangled farm; all this drew me to approach the shrine with a respectful and emotional step. I got close, but after a few steps, I paused. I became aware of a strange smell; it felt like the evening air was filled with a scent that, while somewhat familiar, hadn’t before been linked with rustic frescoes and roadside altars. I wondered, gently inhaled, and the realization left me in no doubt. The scent was that of petroleum; the votive candle was fueled by the essence of Pennsylvania. I have to admit that I burst out laughing, and a picturesque farmer, heading home in the dusk, stared at me as if I were a vandal. He likely noticed the petroleum merely to take in the smell fondly; for me, it symbolized the Italy of the future. There’s a streetcar from the Porta del Popolo to the Ponte Molle, and Tuscan shrines are now fueled by kerosene.
II
If it’s very well meanwhile to come to Turin first it’s better still to go to Genoa afterwards. Genoa is the tightest topographic tangle in the world, which even a second visit helps you little to straighten out. In the wonderful crooked, twisting, climbing, soaring, burrowing Genoese alleys the traveller is really up to his neck in the old Italian sketchability. The pride of the place, I believe, is a port of great capacity, and the bequest of the late Duke of Galliera, who left four millions of dollars for the purpose of improving and enlarging it, will doubtless do much toward converting it into one of the great commercial stations of Europe. But as, after leaving my hotel the afternoon I arrived, I wandered for a long time at hazard through the tortuous by-ways of the city, I said to myself, not without an accent of private triumph, that here at last was something it would be almost impossible to modernise. I had found my hotel, in the first place, extremely entertaining—the Croce di Malta, as it is called, established in a gigantic palace on the edge of the swarming and not over-clean harbour. It was the biggest house I had ever entered—the basement alone would have contained a dozen American caravansaries. I met an American gentleman in the vestibule who (as he had indeed a perfect right to be) was annoyed by its troublesome dimensions—one was a quarter of an hour ascending out of the basement—and desired to know if it were a “fair sample” of the Genoese inns. It appeared an excellent specimen of Genoese architecture generally; so far as I observed there were few houses perceptibly smaller than this Titanic tavern. I lunched in a dusky ballroom whose ceiling was vaulted, frescoed and gilded with the fatal facility of a couple of centuries ago, and which looked out upon another ancient housefront, equally huge and equally battered, separated from it only by a little wedge of dusky space—one of the principal streets, I believe, of Genoa—whence out of dim abysses the population sent up to the windows (I had to crane out very far to see it) a perpetual clattering, shuffling, chaffering sound. Issuing forth presently into this crevice of a street I found myself up to my neck in that element of the rich and strange—as to visible and reproducible “effect,” I mean—for the love of which one revisits Italy. It offered itself indeed in a variety of colours, some of which were not remarkable for their freshness or purity. But their combined charm was not to be resisted, and the picture glowed with the rankly human side of southern lowlife.
If it’s great to visit Turin first, it’s even better to go to Genoa afterward. Genoa is the most confusing city layout in the world, and even a second visit doesn't do much to help you figure it out. In the wonderfully crooked, twisting, climbing, soaring, and winding Genoese alleys, travelers really get immersed in the charm of old Italy. The pride of the city, I believe, is a large port, and the legacy of the late Duke of Galliera, who left four million dollars to improve and expand it, will certainly help make it one of Europe’s major commercial hubs. However, after leaving my hotel on the afternoon I arrived, I wandered for a long time through the city’s winding paths and thought, not without a sense of personal victory, that here was something almost impossible to modernize. I found my hotel, called the Croce di Malta, to be quite entertaining—it’s located in a massive palace at the edge of the busy and not-so-clean harbor. It was the largest place I had ever entered—the basement alone could fit a dozen American hotels. I met an American man in the lobby who, understandably, was annoyed by its overwhelming size—one had to spend a quarter of an hour just going up from the basement—and he wanted to know if it was a “typical example” of Genoese inns. It seemed to be a perfect representation of Genoese architecture; as far as I could tell, there were few buildings noticeably smaller than this enormous hotel. I had lunch in a dim ballroom with a vaulted, frescoed, and gilded ceiling made in the style of a couple of centuries ago, overlooking another massive, worn-down building, separated only by a narrow, shadowy space—one of Genoa’s main streets, I believe—where people from the depths of the city sent a constant noise of clattering, shuffling, and haggling up to the windows (I had to lean out quite far to see it). Stepping out into this narrow street, I found myself surrounded by the rich and strange atmosphere, which is what draws one back to Italy. It came in a variety of colors, some of which weren’t particularly fresh or clean. But their combined charm was irresistible, and the scene was alive with the gritty human side of southern life.
Genoa, as I have hinted, is the crookedest and most incoherent of cities; tossed about on the sides and crests of a dozen hills, it is seamed with gullies and ravines that bristle with those innumerable palaces for which we have heard from our earliest years that the place is celebrated. These great structures, with their mottled and faded complexions, lift their big ornamental cornices to a tremendous height in the air, where, in a certain indescribably forlorn and desolate fashion, overtopping each other, they seem to reflect the twinkle and glitter of the warm Mediterranean. Down about the basements, in the close crepuscular alleys, the people are for ever moving to and fro or standing in their cavernous doorways and their dusky, crowded shops, calling, chattering, laughing, lamenting, living their lives in the conversational Italian fashion. I had for a long time had no such vision of possible social pressure. I hadn’t for a long time seen people elbowing each other so closely or swarming so thickly out of populous hives. A traveller is often moved to ask himself whether it has been worth while to leave his home—whatever his home may have been—only to encounter new forms of human suffering, only to be reminded that toil and privation, hunger and sorrow and sordid effort, are the portion of the mass of mankind. To travel is, as it were, to go to the play, to attend a spectacle; and there is something heartless in stepping forth into foreign streets to feast on “character” when character consists simply of the slightly different costume in which labour and want present themselves. These reflections were forced upon me as I strolled as through a twilight patched with colour and charged with stale smells; but after a time they ceased to bear me company. The reason of this, I think, is because—at least to foreign eyes—the sum of Italian misery is, on the whole, less than the sum of the Italian knowledge of life. That people should thank you, with a smile of striking sweetness, for the gift of twopence, is a proof, certainly, of extreme and constant destitution; but (keeping in mind the sweetness) it also attests an enviable ability not to be depressed by circumstances. I know that this may possibly be great nonsense; that half the time we are acclaiming the fine quality of the Italian smile the creature so constituted for physiognomic radiance may be in a sullen frenzy of impatience and pain. Our observation in any foreign land is extremely superficial, and our remarks are happily not addressed to the inhabitants themselves, who would be sure to exclaim upon the impudence of the fancy-picture.
Genoa, as I’ve mentioned, is the most twisted and chaotic of cities; perched on the sides and peaks of a dozen hills, it's crisscrossed with gullies and ravines filled with the countless palaces that we've heard about since childhood. These grand buildings, with their mottled and faded facades, raise their impressive ornamental cornices high into the air, where they seem to reflect the twinkling and sparkling of the warm Mediterranean in a uniquely forlorn and desolate way, stacking up on one another. Down in the basements, in the narrow dusky alleys, people are constantly moving back and forth or standing in their deep doorways and crowded, dim shops, calling, chatting, laughing, and lamenting, living their lives in that typical conversational Italian style. I hadn't experienced such an intense sense of social pressure in a long time. It had been a while since I’d seen people jostling for space so closely or crowding out of bustling hives. A traveler often wonders if it was worth leaving home—whatever that home may have been—just to witness new forms of human suffering, just to be reminded that hard work, deprivation, hunger, sorrow, and struggle are the reality for most people. To travel is like going to a play, to attend a show; and there’s something callous about stepping into foreign streets to enjoy “character” when that character is simply a slightly different outfit through which labor and want are presented. These thoughts occupied my mind as I walked through a twilight filled with colors and stale smells; but over time, they faded away. I think this happened because—at least to foreign eyes—the overall Italian suffering is less significant than the overall Italian understanding of life. When people thank you, with a strikingly sweet smile, for a two-penny gift, it certainly reflects extreme and ongoing hardship; but (considering the sweetness) it also shows an admirable ability to remain hopeful despite their circumstances. I know this may sound ridiculous; that often when we praise the lovely quality of the Italian smile, the person capable of such radiant expression might actually be in a deep state of frustration and pain. Our observations in any foreign country are quite shallow, and our comments are fortunately not directed at the locals themselves, who would surely react with indignation at our romanticized view.
The other day I visited a very picturesque old city upon a mountain-top, where, in the course of my wanderings, I arrived at an old disused gate in the ancient town-wall. The gate hadn’t been absolutely forfeited; but the recent completion of a modern road down the mountain led most vehicles away to another egress. The grass-grown pavement, which wound into the plain by a hundred graceful twists and plunges, was now given up to ragged contadini and their donkeys, and to such wayfarers as were not alarmed at the disrepair into which it had fallen. I stood in the shadow of the tall old gateway admiring the scene, looking to right and left at the wonderful walls of the little town, perched on the edge of a shaggy precipice; at the circling mountains over against them; at the road dipping downward among the chestnuts and olives. There was no one within sight but a young man who slowly trudged upward with his coat slung over his shoulder and his hat upon his ear in the manner of a cavalier in an opera. Like an operatic performer too he sang as he came; the spectacle, generally, was operatic, and as his vocal flourishes reached my ear I said to myself that in Italy accident was always romantic and that such a figure had been exactly what was wanted to set off the landscape. It suggested in a high degree that knowledge of life for which I just now commended the Italians. I was turning back under the old gateway when the young man overtook me and, suspending his song, asked me if I could favour him with a match to light the hoarded remnant of a cigar. This request led, as I took my way again to the inn, to my falling into talk with him. He was a native of the ancient city, and answered freely all my inquiries as to its manners and customs and its note of public opinion. But the point of my anecdote is that he presently acknowledged himself a brooding young radical and communist, filled with hatred of the present Italian government, raging with discontent and crude political passion, professing a ridiculous hope that Italy would soon have, as France had had, her “‘89,” and declaring that he for his part would willingly lend a hand to chop off the heads of the king and the royal family. He was an unhappy, underfed, unemployed young man, who took a hard, grim view of everything and was operatic only quite in spite of himself. This made it very absurd of me to have looked at him simply as a graceful ornament to the prospect, an harmonious little figure in the middle distance. “Damn the prospect, damn the middle distance!” would have been all his philosophy. Yet but for the accident of my having gossipped with him I should have made him do service, in memory, as an example of sensuous optimism!
The other day, I visited a really picturesque old city on a mountaintop. While wandering around, I came across an old, unused gate in the ancient town wall. The gate hadn’t completely fallen out of use, but the new modern road built down the mountain led most vehicles to a different exit. The grass-covered pavement, winding gracefully with a hundred twists and turns into the plain, was now left to scruffy local farmers and their donkeys, as well as travelers who weren’t put off by its state of disrepair. I stood in the shadow of the tall, old gateway, admiring the view, looking left and right at the amazing walls of the little town perched on the edge of a rocky cliff; at the surrounding mountains opposite them; at the road that dipped down through the chestnut and olive trees. There was no one in sight except for a young man trudging up the hill slowly, with his coat slung over his shoulder and his hat tilted like a character from a play. Like a performer, he sang as he climbed; the whole scene felt theatrical, and as his vocal flourishes reached me, I thought to myself that in Italy, everything was always romantic, and that his figure was just what was needed to enhance the landscape. It highlighted the deep understanding of life that I just praised in the Italians. I was turning back under the old gateway when the young man caught up to me and, stopping his song, asked if I could spare a match to light the remnants of a cigar. This request led to a conversation as I headed back to the inn. He was a local from the ancient city and answered all my questions about its customs and public opinions with ease. But the main point of my story is that he soon admitted he was a troubled young radical and communist, filled with anger against the current Italian government, seething with discontent and raw political passion, expressing a ridiculous hope that Italy would soon have its own ‘89, like France had, and declared that he would gladly help to chop off the heads of the king and the royal family. He was an unhappy, undernourished, unemployed young man who had a harsh and grim perspective on everything and was dramatic only out of necessity. It was quite absurd of me to have seen him merely as a graceful addition to the view, a harmonious little figure in the background. “Forget the view, forget the background!” would have been all his philosophy. Yet, if it weren't for the chance of chatting with him, I would have remembered him as an example of carefree optimism!
I am bound to say however that I believe a great deal of the sensuous optimism observable in the Genoese alleys and beneath the low, crowded arcades along the port was very real. Here every one was magnificently sunburnt, and there were plenty of those queer types, mahogany-coloured, bare-chested mariners with earrings and crimson girdles, that seem to people a southern seaport with the chorus of “Masaniello.” But it is not fair to speak as if at Genoa there were nothing but low-life to be seen, for the place is the residence of some of the grandest people in the world. Nor are all the palaces ranged upon dusky alleys; the handsomest and most impressive form a splendid series on each side of a couple of very proper streets, in which there is plenty of room for a coach-and-four to approach the big doorways. Many of these doorways are open, revealing great marble staircases with couchant lions for balustrades and ceremonious courts surrounded by walls of sun-softened yellow. One of the great piles in the array is coloured a goodly red and contains in particular the grand people I just now spoke of. They live indeed on the third floor; but here they have suites of wonderful painted and gilded chambers, in which foreshortened frescoes also cover the vaulted ceilings and florid mouldings emboss the ample walls. These distinguished tenants bear the name of Vandyck, though they are members of the noble family of Brignole-Sale, one of whose children—the Duchess of Galliera—has lately given proof of nobleness in presenting the gallery of the red palace to the city of Genoa.
I have to say, though, that I think a lot of the vibrant energy you see in the Genoese alleys and under the low, crowded arcades by the port is very genuine. Everyone here has a fantastic tan, and there are plenty of those interesting characters—dark-skinned, bare-chested sailors with earrings and red sashes—that fill a southern seaport like the cast of “Masaniello.” But it's unfair to imply that Genoa is only about the lower classes, because the city is home to some of the most remarkable people in the world. Not all the palaces are hidden away in dark alleys; the most beautiful and impressive ones line both sides of a couple of well-kept streets, where there’s plenty of space for a coach-and-four to drive up to the grand doorways. Many of these doors are open, showcasing stunning marble staircases guarded by reclining lions and impressive courtyards surrounded by sun-warmed yellow walls. One of the notable buildings in this lineup is painted a lovely shade of red and is home to the distinguished people I just mentioned. They actually live on the third floor, but they enjoy suites of beautifully painted and gilded rooms, with foreshortened frescoes adorning the vaulted ceilings and ornate moldings embellishing the spacious walls. These prestigious residents go by the name of Vandyck, though they are part of the noble Brignole-Sale family. One of their family members—the Duchess of Galliera—has recently shown her nobility by donating the gallery of the red palace to the city of Genoa.
III
On leaving Genoa I repaired to Spezia, chiefly with a view of accomplishing a sentimental pilgrimage, which I in fact achieved in the most agreeable conditions. The Gulf of Spezia is now the headquarters of the Italian fleet, and there were several big iron-plated frigates riding at anchor in front of the town. The streets were filled with lads in blue flannel, who were receiving instruction at a schoolship in the harbour, and in the evening—there was a brilliant moon—the little breakwater which stretched out into the Mediterranean offered a scene of recreation to innumerable such persons. But this fact is from the point of view of the cherisher of quaintness of little account, for since it has become prosperous Spezia has grown ugly. The place is filled with long, dull stretches of dead wall and great raw expanses of artificial land. It wears that look of monstrous, of more than far-western newness which distinguishes all the creations of the young Italian State. Nor did I find any great compensation in an immense inn of recent birth, an establishment seated on the edge of the sea in anticipation of a passeggiata which is to come that way some five years hence, the region being in the meantime of the most primitive formation. The inn was filled with grave English people who looked respectable and bored, and there was of course a Church of England service in the gaudily-frescoed parlour. Neither was it the drive to Porto Venere that chiefly pleased me—a drive among vines and olives, over the hills and beside the Mediterranean, to a queer little crumbling village on a headland, as sweetly desolate and superannuated as the name it bears. There is a ruined church near the village, which occupies the site (according to tradition) of an ancient temple of Venus; and if Venus ever revisits her desecrated shrines she must sometimes pause a moment in that sunny stillness and listen to the murmur of the tideless sea at the base of the narrow promontory. If Venus sometimes comes there Apollo surely does as much; for close to the temple is a gateway surmounted by an inscription in Italian and English, which admits you to a curious, and it must be confessed rather cockneyfied, cave among the rocks. It was here, says the inscription, that the great Byron, swimmer and poet, “defied the waves of the Ligurian sea.” The fact is interesting, though not supremely so; for Byron was always defying something, and if a slab had been put up wherever this performance came off these commemorative tablets would be in many parts of Europe as thick as milestones.
Upon leaving Genoa, I headed to Spezia, mainly to fulfill a sentimental journey, which I actually completed under quite pleasant circumstances. The Gulf of Spezia is now the base of the Italian fleet, and there were several large ironclad frigates anchored in front of the town. The streets were busy with young boys in blue flannel, who were getting training on a school ship in the harbor, and in the evening—under a brilliant moon—the little breakwater extending into the Mediterranean provided a spot for countless people to enjoy. However, this point is of little interest to someone who appreciates quaintness, for since it became prosperous, Spezia has become unattractive. The area is filled with long, dull stretches of blank walls and vast, raw expanses of reclaimed land. It has that look of grotesque, more than far-western newness that characterizes many of the developments of the young Italian State. I didn’t find any significant offset in a massive new inn, which sits by the sea in anticipation of a promenade that’s expected to arrive in about five years, the area being still quite underdeveloped. The inn was crowded with serious English people who appeared respectable yet bored, and, of course, there was a Church of England service held in the brightly painted parlor. Nor was I particularly impressed by the drive to Porto Venere—a trip through vines and olive groves, over the hills and alongside the Mediterranean, to a quirky little crumbling village on a cliff, as charmingly desolate and outdated as its name. Near the village, there’s a ruined church that supposedly sits on the site of an ancient temple to Venus; and if Venus ever returns to her desecrated shrines, she must occasionally pause in that sunny tranquility to hear the soft murmur of the calm sea at the base of the narrow promontory. If Venus sometimes visits, Apollo must certainly do the same; for next to the temple stands a gateway topped with an inscription in both Italian and English, which leads you to an odd, I must admit somewhat pretentious, cave among the rocks. It is here, the inscription states, that the great Byron, swimmer and poet, “defied the waves of the Ligurian sea.” The fact is interesting, though not exceptionally so; Byron was always challenging something, and if a plaque had been placed wherever this feat occurred, these memorial tablets would be as numerous in many parts of Europe as milestones.
No; the great merit of Spezia, to my eye, is that I engaged a boat there of a lovely October afternoon and had myself rowed across the gulf—it took about an hour and a half—to the little bay of Lerici, which opens out of it. This bay of Lerici is charming; the bosky grey-green hills close it in, and on either side of the entrance, perched on a bold headland, a wonderful old crumbling castle keeps ineffectual guard. The place is classic to all English travellers, for in the middle of the curving shore is the now desolate little villa in which Shelley spent the last months of his short life. He was living at Lerici when he started on that short southern cruise from which he never returned. The house he occupied is strangely shabby and as sad as you may choose to find it. It stands directly upon the beach, with scarred and battered walls and a loggia of several arches opening to a little terrace with a rugged parapet, which, when the wind blows, must be drenched with the salt spray. The place is very lonely—all overwearied with sun and breeze and brine—very close to nature, as it was Shelley’s passion to be. I can fancy a great lyric poet sitting on the terrace of a warm evening and feeling very far from England in the early years of the century. In that place, and with his genius, he would as a matter of course have heard in the voice of nature a sweetness which only the lyric movement could translate. It is a place where an English-speaking pilgrim himself may very honestly think thoughts and feel moved to lyric utterance. But I must content myself with saying in halting prose that I remember few episodes of Italian travel more sympathetic, as they have it here, than that perfect autumn afternoon; the half-hour’s station on the little battered terrace of the villa; the climb to the singularly felicitous old castle that hangs above Lerici; the meditative lounge, in the fading light, on the vine-decked platform that looked out toward the sunset and the darkening mountains and, far below, upon the quiet sea, beyond which the pale-faced tragic villa stared up at the brightening moon.
No; the great appeal of Spezia, in my opinion, is that I rented a boat there on a beautiful October afternoon and had myself rowed across the gulf—it took about an hour and a half—to the picturesque bay of Lerici, which opens out from it. This bay of Lerici is lovely; the lush grey-green hills surround it, and on either side of the entrance, perched on a prominent headland, a magnificent old crumbling castle stands guard, albeit ineffectually. This spot is famous among English travelers, for right in the middle of the curving shore is the now-desolate little villa where Shelley spent the last months of his short life. He was living in Lerici when he set off on that brief southern cruise from which he never returned. The house he stayed in is oddly shabby and as melancholy as one might imagine. It sits right on the beach, with battered walls and a loggia of several arches leading to a small terrace with a rough parapet, which must get drenched with salt spray when the wind blows. The place feels very lonely—worn out by the sun, breeze, and salt water—very close to nature, which was Shelley’s passion. I can picture a great lyric poet sitting on the terrace on a warm evening, feeling very far from England in the early years of the century. In that spot, with his genius, he would have naturally heard in the voice of nature a sweetness that only lyricism could capture. It’s a place where an English-speaking traveler might honestly reflect and feel inspired to express lyrical thoughts. But I must settle for saying in imperfect prose that I remember few experiences of Italian travel more sympathetic, as they say here, than that perfect autumn afternoon; the half-hour spent on the little worn terrace of the villa; the climb to the remarkably fitting old castle that overlooks Lerici; the contemplative lounge, in the fading light, on the vine-covered platform that faced the sunset and the darkening mountains, and, far below, the calm sea, beyond which the pale-faced tragic villa gazed up at the rising moon.
IV
I had never known Florence more herself, or in other words more attaching, than I found her for a week in that brilliant October. She sat in the sunshine beside her yellow river like the little treasure-city she has always seemed, without commerce, without other industry than the manufacture of mosaic paper-weights and alabaster Cupids, without actuality or energy or earnestness or any of those rugged virtues which in most cases are deemed indispensable for civic cohesion; with nothing but the little unaugmented stock of her mediaeval memories, her tender-coloured mountains, her churches and palaces, pictures and statues. There were very few strangers; one’s detested fellow-pilgrim was infrequent; the native population itself seemed scanty; the sound of wheels in the streets was but occasional; by eight o’clock at night, apparently, every one had gone to bed, and the musing wanderer, still wandering and still musing, had the place to himself—had the thick shadow-masses of the great palaces, and the shafts of moonlight striking the polygonal paving-stones, and the empty bridges, and the silvered yellow of the Arno, and the stillness broken only by a homeward step, a step accompanied by a snatch of song from a warm Italian voice. My room at the inn looked out on the river and was flooded all day with sunshine. There was an absurd orange-coloured paper on the walls; the Arno, of a hue not altogether different, flowed beneath; and on the other side of it rose a line of sallow houses, of extreme antiquity, crumbling and mouldering, bulging and protruding over the stream. (I seem to speak of their fronts; but what I saw was their shabby backs, which were exposed to the cheerful flicker of the river, while the fronts stood for ever in the deep damp shadow of a narrow mediaeval street.) All this brightness and yellowness was a perpetual delight; it was a part of that indefinably charming colour which Florence always seems to wear as you look up and down at it from the river, and from the bridges and quays. This is a kind of grave radiance—a harmony of high tints—which I scarce know how to describe. There are yellow walls and green blinds and red roofs, there are intervals of brilliant brown and natural-looking blue; but the picture is not spotty nor gaudy, thanks to the distribution of the colours in large and comfortable masses, and to the washing-over of the scene by some happy softness of sunshine. The river-front of Florence is in short a delightful composition. Part of its charm comes of course from the generous aspect of those high-based Tuscan palaces which a renewal of acquaintance with them has again commended to me as the most dignified dwellings in the world. Nothing can be finer than that look of giving up the whole immense ground-floor to simple purposes of vestibule and staircase, of court and high-arched entrance; as if this were all but a massive pedestal for the real habitation and people weren’t properly housed unless, to begin with, they should be lifted fifty feet above the pavement. The great blocks of the basement; the great intervals, horizontally and vertically, from window to window (telling of the height and breadth of the rooms within); the armorial shield hung forward at one of the angles; the wide-brimmed roof, overshadowing the narrow street; the rich old browns and yellows of the walls: these definite elements put themselves together with admirable art.
I had never seen Florence more true to itself, or in other words, more charming, than I did during that brilliant week in October. She sat in the sunshine next to her yellow river like the little treasure city she has always been, without trade and with only the simple business of making mosaic paperweights and alabaster Cupids, lacking the hard-edged reality, energy, seriousness, or any of those tough qualities usually seen as essential for community spirit. She had nothing but a small, unchanging stock of her medieval memories, her softly-colored mountains, her churches and palaces, her pictures and statues. There were very few tourists; one’s obnoxious fellow traveler was rare; the local population seemed sparse; the sound of wheels in the streets was occasional; by eight o’clock at night, it seemed like everyone had gone to bed, leaving the thoughtful wanderer, still roaming and reflecting, alone in the place—surrounded by the thick shadows of the grand palaces, shafts of moonlight striking the polygonal paving stones, empty bridges, the silvery yellow of the Arno, and stillness interrupted only by a retreating footstep, a step accompanied by a snippet of song from a warm Italian voice. My room at the inn overlooked the river and was filled with sunlight all day. The walls were covered in ridiculous orange paper; the Arno, which wasn’t all that different in color, flowed below; and on the opposite bank stood a row of pale houses, ancient and crumbling, bulging over the stream. (I seem to refer to their fronts; but what I saw were their shabby backs, exposed to the cheerful flicker of the river, while the fronts remained forever in the deep damp shadow of a narrow medieval street.) All this brightness and yellowness was a constant pleasure; it was part of that indefinably charming color that Florence always seems to wear as you look at it from the river, and from the bridges and quays. This is a kind of serious radiance—a harmony of vibrant hues—which I can hardly describe. There are yellow walls and green shutters and red roofs, and patches of brilliant brown and realistic blue; but the scene is neither spotty nor gaudy, thanks to the arrangement of the colors in large, comfortable blocks, and the gentle warmth of the sunlight washing over everything. The riverfront of Florence is, in essence, a delightful composition. Part of its charm comes from the impressive appearance of those high-based Tuscan palaces, which a fresh look at them has reaffirmed for me as the most dignified homes in the world. Nothing could be finer than the way they dedicate the entire immense ground floor to simple purposes like vestibule and staircase, courtyard and grand entrance; as if this were just a massive pedestal for the real living spaces, and people weren’t truly settled unless they were fifty feet above the pavement to start. The large blocks of the basement; the vast spaces between windows, both horizontally and vertically (indicating the height and width of the rooms inside); the coat of arms hanging from an angle; the wide roof casting shade over the narrow street; the rich old browns and yellows of the walls: these distinct elements come together with remarkable artistry.
{Illustration: ROMAN GATEWAY, RIMINI.}
{Illustration: ROMAN GATEWAY, RIMINI.}
Take a Tuscan pile of this type out of its oblique situation in the town; call it no longer a palace, but a villa; set it down by a terrace on one of the hills that encircle Florence, place a row of high-waisted cypresses beside it, give it a grassy court-yard and a view of the Florentine towers and the valley of the Arno, and you will think it perhaps even more worthy of your esteem. It was a Sunday noon, and brilliantly warm, when I again arrived; and after I had looked from my windows a while at that quietly-basking river-front I have spoken of I took my way across one of the bridges and then out of one of the gates—that immensely tall Roman Gate in which the space from the top of the arch to the cornice (except that there is scarcely a cornice, it is all a plain massive piece of wall) is as great, or seems to be, as that from the ground to the former point. Then I climbed a steep and winding way—much of it a little dull if one likes, being bounded by mottled, mossy garden-walls—to a villa on a hill-top, where I found various things that touched me with almost too fine a point. Seeing them again, often, for a week, both by sunlight and moonshine, I never quite learned not to covet them; not to feel that not being a part of them was somehow to miss an exquisite chance. What a tranquil, contented life it seemed, with romantic beauty as a part of its daily texture!—the sunny terrace, with its tangled podere beneath it; the bright grey olives against the bright blue sky; the long, serene, horizontal lines of other villas, flanked by their upward cypresses, disposed upon the neighbouring hills; the richest little city in the world in a softly-scooped hollow at one’s feet, and beyond it the most appealing of views, the most majestic, yet the most familiar. Within the villa was a great love of art and a painting-room full of felicitous work, so that if human life there confessed to quietness, the quietness was mostly but that of the intent act. A beautiful occupation in that beautiful position, what could possibly be better? That is what I spoke just now of envying—a way of life that doesn’t wince at such refinements of peace and ease. When labour self-charmed presents itself in a dull or an ugly place we esteem it, we admire it, but we scarce feel it to be the ideal of good fortune. When, however, its votaries move as figures in an ancient, noble landscape, and their walks and contemplations are like a turning of the leaves of history, we seem to have before us an admirable case of virtue made easy; meaning here by virtue contentment and concentration, a real appreciation of the rare, the exquisite though composite, medium of life. You needn’t want a rush or a crush when the scene itself, the mere scene, shares with you such a wealth of consciousness.
Take a Tuscan building of this kind out of its awkward spot in the town; call it no longer a palace, but a villa; place it on a terrace on one of the hills surrounding Florence, add a row of tall cypresses next to it, give it a grassy courtyard and a view of the Florentine towers and the Arno valley, and you might find it even more deserving of your admiration. It was a warm Sunday noon when I arrived again; after taking in the peaceful riverside scene from my windows for a while, I crossed one of the bridges and then exited through one of the gates—specifically that incredibly tall Roman Gate where the distance from the top of the arch to the top (though there’s hardly a real cornice, it’s just a plain, solid wall) seems just as great as the distance from the ground to the top. Then I climbed a steep and winding path—some might find it a bit dull, lined as it is with mottled, mossy garden walls—to a villa on a hilltop, where I encountered various things that moved me deeply. Seeing them again, often, over a week, both in sunlight and moonlight, I never quite learned to not long for them; I felt that not being part of them meant missing out on something exquisite. What a calm, content life it appeared to be, infused with romantic beauty as a part of its daily rhythm!—the sunny terrace with its tangled podere below; the bright grey olives against the vivid blue sky; the long, tranquil lines of other villas, flanked by their upward-reaching cypresses, set upon the neighboring hills; the richest little city in the world nestled in a soft valley at one’s feet, and beyond it the most captivating views, both majestic and familiar. Inside the villa was a deep appreciation for art and a studio filled with wonderful works, so that while life there confessed to tranquility, that tranquility was mainly the result of focus and purpose. A beautiful endeavor in such a lovely setting, what could be better? That’s what I was just saying I envied—a way of life that embraces such layers of peace and comfort. When labor presents itself charmingly in a dull or ugly place, we value it, we admire it, but we hardly see it as the epitome of good fortune. However, when its practitioners move like figures in an ancient, noble landscape, and their walks and reflections resemble the turning pages of history, it seems we have a perfect example of virtue made easy; by virtue, I mean contentment and focus, a genuine appreciation for the rare and exquisite, though complex, medium of life. You don’t need a rush or a crowd when the scene itself, just the scene, offers you such a wealth of awareness.
It is true indeed that I might after a certain time grow weary of a regular afternoon stroll among the Florentine lanes; of sitting on low parapets, in intervals of flower-topped wall, and looking across at Fiesole or down the rich-hued valley of the Arno; of pausing at the open gates of villas and wondering at the height of cypresses and the depth of loggias; of walking home in the fading light and noting on a dozen westward-looking surfaces the glow of the opposite sunset. But for a week or so all this was delightful. The villas are innumerable, and if you’re an aching alien half the talk is about villas. This one has a story; that one has another; they all look as if they had stories—none in truth predominantly gay. Most of them are offered to rent (many of them for sale) at prices unnaturally low; you may have a tower and a garden, a chapel and an expanse of thirty windows, for five hundred dollars a year. In imagination you hire three or four; you take possession and settle and stay. Your sense of the fineness of the finest is of something very grave and stately; your sense of the bravery of two or three of the best something quite tragic and sinister. From what does this latter impression come? You gather it as you stand there in the early dusk, with your eyes on the long, pale-brown facade, the enormous windows, the iron cages fastened to the lower ones. Part of the brooding expression of these great houses comes, even when they have not fallen into decay, from their look of having outlived their original use. Their extraordinary largeness and massiveness are a satire on their present fate. They weren’t built with such a thickness of wall and depth of embrasure, such a solidity of staircase and superfluity of stone, simply to afford an economical winter residence to English and American families. I don’t know whether it was the appearance of these stony old villas, which seemed so dumbly conscious of a change of manners, that threw a tinge of melancholy over the general prospect; certain it is that, having always found this note as of a myriad old sadnesses in solution in the view of Florence, it seemed to me now particularly strong. “Lovely, lovely, but it makes me ‘blue,’” the sensitive stranger couldn’t but murmur to himself as, in the late afternoon, he looked at the landscape from over one of the low parapets, and then, with his hands in his pockets, turned away indoors to candles and dinner.
It’s true that after a while, I might get tired of taking a regular afternoon walk through the streets of Florence; of sitting on low walls, surrounded by flower-topped fences, and gazing at Fiesole or down the vibrant Arno valley; of stopping at open villa gates and marveling at the tall cypress trees and deep loggias; of heading home in the fading light and noticing the glow of the sunset on a dozen westward-facing surfaces. But for a week or so, all of this was fantastic. There are countless villas, and if you’re an outsider, half the conversation is about them. This one has a story; that one does too; they all seem like they have tales to tell—none of them particularly cheerful. Most of them are for rent (many are for sale) at surprisingly low prices; you can get a tower, a garden, a chapel, and thirty windows for just five hundred dollars a year. You can imagine renting three or four, moving in, and settling down. Your sense of what’s truly beautiful feels very serious and stately; your feeling about the grandeur of a select few feels somewhat tragic and eerie. Where does this latter feeling come from? You pick it up as you stand there in the early evening, your eyes on the long, pale-brown facade, the enormous windows, and the wrought-iron bars on the lower ones. Part of the somber aura of these grand houses, even when they haven’t fallen into ruin, comes from their look of having outlived their original purpose. Their extraordinary size and heft almost mock their current situation. They weren’t built with such thick walls and deep alcoves, such solid staircases and extra stone, just to provide an affordable winter home for English and American families. I’m not sure if it’s the sight of these ancient villas, which seem so silently aware of changing times, that casts a shadow of melancholy over the overall view; what I do know is that I’ve always sensed this note of countless old sorrows in the sight of Florence, and it felt particularly strong to me now. “Beautiful, beautiful, but it makes me feel ‘blue,’” the sensitive traveler couldn’t help but mutter to himself as he gazed at the landscape from a low wall in the late afternoon, then, hands in pockets, turned to go inside for candles and dinner.
V
Below, in the city, through all frequentation of streets and churches and museums, it was impossible not to have a good deal of the same feeling; but here the impression was more easy to analyse. It came from a sense of the perfect separateness of all the great productions of the Renaissance from the present and the future of the place, from the actual life and manners, the native ideal. I have already spoken of the way in which the vast aggregation of beautiful works of art in the Italian cities strikes the visitor nowadays—so far as present Italy is concerned—as the mere stock-in-trade of an impecunious but thrifty people. It is this spiritual solitude, this conscious disconnection of the great works of architecture and sculpture that deposits a certain weight upon the heart; when we see a great tradition broken we feel something of the pain with which we hear a stifled cry. But regret is one thing and resentment is another. Seeing one morning, in a shop-window, the series of Mornings in Florence published a few years since by Mr. Ruskin, I made haste to enter and purchase these amusing little books, some passages of which I remembered formerly to have read. I couldn’t turn over many pages without observing that the “separateness” of the new and old which I just mentioned had produced in their author the liveliest irritation. With the more acute phases of this condition it was difficult to sympathise, for the simple reason, it seems to me, that it savours of arrogance to demand of any people, as a right of one’s own, that they shall be artistic. “Be artistic yourselves!” is the very natural reply that young Italy has at hand for English critics and censors. When a people produces beautiful statues and pictures it gives us something more than is set down in the bond, and we must thank it for its generosity; and when it stops producing them or caring for them we may cease thanking, but we hardly have a right to begin and rail. The wreck of Florence, says Mr. Ruskin, “is now too ghastly and heart-breaking to any human soul that remembers the days of old”; and these desperate words are an allusion to the fact that the little square in front of the cathedral, at the foot of Giotto’s Tower, with the grand Baptistery on the other side, is now the resort of a number of hackney-coaches and omnibuses. This fact is doubtless lamentable, and it would be a hundred times more agreeable to see among people who have been made the heirs of so priceless a work of art as the sublime campanile some such feeling about it as would keep it free even from the danger of defilement. A cab-stand is a very ugly and dirty thing, and Giotto’s Tower should have nothing in common with such conveniences. But there is more than one way of taking such things, and the sensitive stranger who has been walking about for a week with his mind full of the sweetness and suggestiveness of a hundred Florentine places may feel at last in looking into Mr. Ruskin’s little tracts that, discord for discord, there isn’t much to choose between the importunity of the author’s personal ill-humour and the incongruity of horse-pails and bundles of hay. And one may say this without being at all a partisan of the doctrine of the inevitableness of new desecrations. For my own part, I believe there are few things in this line that the new Italian spirit isn’t capable of, and not many indeed that we aren’t destined to see. Pictures and buildings won’t be completely destroyed, because in that case the forestieri, scatterers of cash, would cease to arrive and the turn-stiles at the doors of the old palaces and convents, with the little patented slit for absorbing your half-franc, would grow quite rusty, would stiffen with disuse. But it’s safe to say that the new Italy growing into an old Italy again will continue to take her elbow-room wherever she may find it.
Below, in the city, as I wandered through the streets, churches, and museums, it was hard not to feel a strong sense of the past; but here, the impression was easier to dissect. It stemmed from the clear detachment of all the great works of the Renaissance from the present and future of the place, from the actual life and culture, the local ideal. I’ve already mentioned how the vast collection of beautiful art in Italian cities strikes today’s visitors—as far as modern Italy goes—as just the remnants of a poor but practical people. This sense of spiritual isolation, this awareness of the disconnect between the magnificent architecture and sculpture weighs heavily on the heart; when we witness a great tradition faltering, it feels like the pain of a muffled cry. But regret is one thing and resentment is another. One morning, while passing a shop window, I saw the series of Mornings in Florence published a few years ago by Mr. Ruskin, and I hurried in to buy these charming little books, some passages of which I recalled having read before. I could hardly flip through many pages without noticing that the “detachment” of the new and old I just mentioned had stirred a strong irritation in the author. It was hard to empathize with the more intense aspects of this feeling because, frankly, it seems arrogant to expect any people, as a matter of entitlement, to be artistic. “Be artistic yourselves!” is the very logical reply that young Italy would have for English critics and judges. When a society creates beautiful statues and paintings, they offer us something more than what’s merely expected, and we should appreciate their generosity; when they stop creating or caring about them, we can stop thanking them, but we hardly have the right to complain. The ruin of Florence, Mr. Ruskin states, “is now too ghastly and heart-breaking to any human soul that remembers the days of old,” and these desperate words refer to the fact that the little square in front of the cathedral, at the base of Giotto’s Tower, with the grand Baptistery across the way, is now filled with a number of hackney carriages and buses. This situation is undoubtedly regrettable, and it would be much nicer to see among people who have inherited such a priceless work of art as the magnificent bell tower a sense of responsibility that would protect it from defilement. A cab stand is ugly and dirty, and Giotto’s Tower shouldn’t be associated with such convenience. But there’s more than one way to interpret these things, and the sensitive onlooker who has been roaming for a week, filled with the charm and allure of a hundred Florentine spots, may finally realize while reading Mr. Ruskin’s little tracts that, for all the clamor, there’s not much difference between the annoyance of the author’s personal grumpiness and the awkwardness of horse troughs and piles of hay. And one can say this without being a supporter of the idea that new desecrations are unavoidable. Personally, I believe there are few things in this area that the new Italian spirit isn’t capable of, and not many that we won’t see. Pictures and buildings won’t be completely destroyed because, if that were to happen, the forestieri, the cash-spenders, would stop coming, and the turnstiles at the entrances of the old palaces and convents, with their little patented slots for collecting your half-franc, would become completely rusty and stiff from lack of use. But it’s safe to say that the new Italy, evolving back into an old Italy, will continue to carve out her space wherever she can find it.
{Illustration: SANTA MARIA NOVELLA, FLORENCE}
{Illustration: SANTA MARIA NOVELLA, FLORENCE}
I am almost ashamed to say what I did with Mr. Ruskin’s little books. I put them into my pocket and betook myself to Santa Maria Novella. There I sat down and, after I had looked about for a while at the beautiful church, drew them forth one by one and read the greater part of them. Occupying one’s self with light literature in a great religious edifice is perhaps as bad a piece of profanation as any of those rude dealings which Mr. Ruskin justly deplores; but a traveller has to make the most of odd moments, and I was waiting for a friend in whose company I was to go and look at Giotto’s beautiful frescoes in the cloister of the church. My friend was a long time coming, so that I had an hour with Mr. Ruskin, whom I called just now a light littérateur because in these little Mornings in Florence he is for ever making his readers laugh. I remembered of course where I was, and in spite of my latent hilarity felt I had rarely got such a snubbing. I had really been enjoying the good old city of Florence, but I now learned from Mr. Ruskin that this was a scandalous waste of charity. I should have gone about with an imprecation on my lips, I should have worn a face three yards long. I had taken great pleasure in certain frescoes by Ghirlandaio in the choir of that very church; but it appeared from one of the little books that these frescoes were as naught. I had much admired Santa Croce and had thought the Duomo a very noble affair; but I had now the most positive assurance I knew nothing about them. After a while, if it was only ill-humour that was needed for doing honour to the city of the Medici, I felt that I had risen to a proper level; only now it was Mr. Ruskin himself I had lost patience with, not the stupid Brunelleschi, not the vulgar Ghirlandaio. Indeed I lost patience altogether, and asked myself by what right this informal votary of form pretended to run riot through a poor charmed flaneur’s quiet contemplations, his attachment to the noblest of pleasures, his enjoyment of the loveliest of cities. The little books seemed invidious and insane, and it was only when I remembered that I had been under no obligation to buy them that I checked myself in repenting of having done so.
I’m almost embarrassed to admit what I did with Mr. Ruskin’s little books. I stuffed them in my pocket and made my way to Santa Maria Novella. There, I sat down and, after taking in the beautiful church for a bit, pulled them out one by one and read most of them. Engaging with light literature in such a grand religious place might be as disrespectful as the crude behaviors that Mr. Ruskin rightly criticizes; but a traveler has to make the most of spare moments, and I was waiting for a friend with whom I was supposed to view Giotto’s stunning frescoes in the church's cloister. My friend took a long time to arrive, so I spent an hour with Mr. Ruskin, whom I just referred to as a light writer because in these little *Mornings in Florence* he constantly makes his readers laugh. Of course, I remembered where I was and despite my hidden amusement, I felt like I was getting quite a lecture. I had genuinely been enjoying the lovely city of Florence, but now Mr. Ruskin made me feel like this was a shameful waste of appreciation. I should have been walking around grumbling, wearing a long face. I had really enjoyed some frescoes by Ghirlandaio in the choir of that very church, but it seemed from one of the little books that these frescoes were worthless. I had admired Santa Croce and thought the Duomo was quite impressive; now I had a solid assurance that I didn't know anything about them. Eventually, if all it took to honor the city of the Medici was some grumpiness, I felt like I had reached the right mindset; only now it was Mr. Ruskin himself that I had lost patience with, not the foolish Brunelleschi or the ordinary Ghirlandaio. In fact, I lost all patience and wondered what right this casual devotee of form had to disrupt a poor enchanted flâneur’s quiet reflections, his love for the highest pleasures, his enjoyment of the most beautiful city. The little books felt spiteful and crazy, and I only stopped myself from regretting buying them when I recalled that I had been under no obligation to do so.
Then at last my friend arrived and we passed together out of the church, and, through the first cloister beside it, into a smaller enclosure where we stood a while to look at the tomb of the Marchesa Strozzi-Ridolfi, upon which the great Giotto has painted four superb little pictures. It was easy to see the pictures were superb; but I drew forth one of my little books again, for I had observed that Mr. Ruskin spoke of them. Hereupon I recovered my tolerance; for what could be better in this case, I asked myself, than Mr. Ruskin’s remarks? They are in fact excellent and charming—full of appreciation of the deep and simple beauty of the great painter’s work. I read them aloud to my companion; but my companion was rather, as the phrase is, “put off” by them. One of the frescoes—it is a picture of the birth of the Virgin—contains a figure coming through a door. “Of ornament,” I quote, “there is only the entirely simple outline of the vase which the servant carries; of colour two or three masses of sober red and pure white, with brown and grey. That is all,” Mr. Ruskin continues. “And if you are pleased with this you can see Florence. But if not, by all means amuse yourself there, if you find it amusing, as long as you like; you can never see it.” You can never see it. This seemed to my friend insufferable, and I had to shuffle away the book again, so that we might look at the fresco with the unruffled geniality it deserves. We agreed afterwards, when in a more convenient place I read aloud a good many more passages from the precious tracts, that there are a great many ways of seeing Florence, as there are of seeing most beautiful and interesting things, and that it is very dry and pedantic to say that the happy vision depends upon our squaring our toes with a certain particular chalk-mark. We see Florence wherever and whenever we enjoy it, and for enjoying it we find a great many more pretexts than Mr. Ruskin seems inclined to allow. My friend and I convinced ourselves also, however, that the little books were an excellent purchase, on account of the great charm and felicity of much of their incidental criticism; to say nothing, as I hinted just now, of their being extremely amusing. Nothing in fact is more comical than the familiar asperity of the author’s style and the pedagogic fashion in which he pushes and pulls his unhappy pupils about, jerking their heads toward this, rapping their knuckles for that, sending them to stand in corners and giving them Scripture texts to copy. But it is neither the felicities nor the aberrations of detail, in Mr. Ruskin’s writings, that are the main affair for most readers; it is the general tone that, as I have said, puts them off or draws them on. For many persons he will never bear the test of being read in this rich old Italy, where art, so long as it really lived at all, was spontaneous, joyous, irresponsible. If the reader is in daily contact with those beautiful Florentine works which do still, in away, force themselves into notice through the vulgarity and cruelty of modern profanation, it will seem to him that this commentator’s comment is pitched in the strangest falsetto key. “One may read a hundred pages of this sort of thing,” said my friend, “without ever dreaming that he is talking about art. You can say nothing worse about him than that.” Which is perfectly true. Art is the one corner of human life in which we may take our ease. To justify our presence there the only thing demanded of us is that we shall have felt the representational impulse. In other connections our impulses are conditioned and embarrassed; we are allowed to have only so many as are consistent with those of our neighbours; with their convenience and well-being, with their convictions and prejudices, their rules and regulations. Art means an escape from all this. Wherever her shining standard floats the need for apology and compromise is over; there it is enough simply that we please or are pleased. There the tree is judged only by its fruits. If these are sweet the tree is justified—and not less so the consumer.
Then finally my friend showed up, and we left the church together, moving through the first cloister next to it into a smaller area where we paused for a bit to admire the tomb of the Marchesa Strozzi-Ridolfi, which features four stunning little paintings by the great Giotto. It was obvious that the paintings were magnificent, but I pulled out one of my little books again, since I noticed that Mr. Ruskin had mentioned them. This brought back my patience; after all, I wondered, what could be better in this situation than Mr. Ruskin's comments? They were indeed excellent and delightful—full of appreciation for the deep and simple beauty of the great painter's work. I read them aloud to my friend, but he seemed rather, as the saying goes, "put off" by them. One of the frescoes—a depiction of the Virgin's birth—features a figure coming through a door. “In terms of ornament,” I quoted, “there is only the very simple outline of the vase the servant carries; in terms of color, there are two or three masses of sober red and pure white, along with brown and gray. That's it,” Mr. Ruskin continues. “And if you enjoy this, you’ll see Florence. But if not, by all means entertain yourself there, if you find it entertaining, for as long as you want; you'll never see it.” You can never see it. This struck my friend as unbearable, so I had to put the book away again, so we could view the fresco with the calm enjoyment it deserved. Later, when we were in a better spot, I read aloud many more passages from the precious tracts, and we agreed that there are countless ways to experience Florence, just as there are for most beautiful and fascinating things, and that it's quite dry and pedantic to claim that the joyful experience relies solely on aligning our perspective with a specific chalk mark. We see Florence whenever and wherever we appreciate it, and we find many more excuses to enjoy it than Mr. Ruskin seems willing to acknowledge. My friend and I also assured ourselves that the little books were a great purchase due to the charm and grace of much of their incidental critique; not to mention, as I just hinted, they’re extremely entertaining. Nothing is quite as comical as the familiar sharpness of the author's style and the teacher-like way he guides his unfortunate students, directing their attention this way and that, rapping their knuckles for mistakes, sending them to corners, and handing out Scripture texts to copy. However, it's neither the delights nor the quirks of detail in Mr. Ruskin's writings that matter most to many readers; it's the overall tone that, as I've said, either pushes them away or pulls them in. For many, his work will never withstand being read in this rich, old Italy, where art—even when it truly existed—was spontaneous, joyful, and carefree. If the reader is constantly surrounded by those beautiful Florentine works that still manage to grab attention amid the vulgarity and brutality of modern desecration, it will seem to him that this commentator's commentary is pitched in the most absurd key. “One could read a hundred pages of this sort of thing,” said my friend, “without ever realizing he's talking about art. You can’t say anything worse about him than that.” Which is absolutely true. Art is the one area of human life where we can relax. To justify our presence there, all we need is to have felt the urge to represent. In other contexts, our impulses are constrained and restricted; we can only have as many as align with those of our neighbors, considering their convenience and well-being, their beliefs and biases, their rules and regulations. Art represents an escape from all that. Wherever her shining banner flies, the need for excuses and compromises disappears; there it’s enough that we either please or are pleased. There the tree is assessed solely by its fruit. If the fruit is sweet, the tree is justified—and so is the consumer.
One may read a great many pages of Mr. Ruskin without getting a hint of this delightful truth; a hint of the not unimportant fact that art after all is made for us and not we for art. This idea that the value of a work is in the amount of illusion it yields is conspicuous by its absence. And as for Mr. Ruskin’s world’s being a place—his world of art—where we may take life easily, woe to the luckless mortal who enters it with any such disposition. Instead of a garden of delight, he finds a sort of assize court in perpetual session. Instead of a place in which human responsibilities are lightened and suspended, he finds a region governed by a kind of Draconic legislation. His responsibilities indeed are tenfold increased; the gulf between truth and error is for ever yawning at his feet; the pains and penalties of this same error are advertised, in apocalyptic terminology, upon a thousand sign-posts; and the rash intruder soon begins to look back with infinite longing to the lost paradise of the artless. There can be no greater want of tact in dealing with those things with which men attempt to ornament life than to be perpetually talking about “error.” A truce to all rigidities is the law of the place; the only thing absolute there is that some force and some charm have worked. The grim old bearer of the scales excuses herself; she feels this not to be her province. Differences here are not iniquity and righteousness; they are simply variations of temperament, kinds of curiosity. We are not under theological government.
One can read a lot of pages by Mr. Ruskin without discovering this wonderful truth; the important fact that art is made for us, not the other way around. The idea that the value of a work lies in the level of illusion it creates is noticeably absent. And regarding Mr. Ruskin’s world of art being a place where life can be taken lightly, woe to anyone who enters it with that mindset. Rather than a garden of joy, they find a sort of courtroom in constant session. Instead of a space where human responsibilities are eased and put on hold, they discover a realm ruled by harsh laws. Their responsibilities are actually multiplied tenfold; the gap between truth and falsehood is always gaping at their feet; the consequences of this same falsehood are outlined, in dramatic language, on countless signposts; and the reckless newcomer quickly starts to long for the lost paradise of innocence. There’s no greater lack of sensitivity when dealing with things meant to beautify life than to constantly talk about “error.” A break from all rigidity is the rule here; the only absolute is that some force and charm have taken effect. The stern old figure of justice excuses herself; she feels this is not her area. Differences here aren’t about right or wrong; they are just variations in temperament and kinds of curiosity. We are not under the control of theological dictates.
VI
It was very charming, in the bright, warm days, to wander from one corner of Florence to another, paying one’s respects again to remembered masterpieces. It was pleasant also to find that memory had played no tricks and that the rarest things of an earlier year were as rare as ever. To enumerate these felicities would take a great deal of space; for I never had been more struck with the mere quantity of brilliant Florentine work. Even giving up the Duomo and Santa Croce to Mr. Ruskin as very ill-arranged edifices, the list of the Florentine treasures is almost inexhaustible. Those long outer galleries of the Uffizi had never beguiled me more; sometimes there were not more than two or three figures standing there, Baedeker in hand, to break the charming perspective. One side of this upstairs portico, it will be remembered, is entirely composed of glass; a continuity of old-fashioned windows, draped with white curtains of rather primitive fashion, which hang there till they acquire a perceptible tone. The light, passing through them, is softly filtered and diffused; it rests mildly upon the old marbles—chiefly antique Roman busts—which stand in the narrow intervals of the casements. It is projected upon the numerous pictures that cover the opposite wall and that are not by any means, as a general thing, the gems of the great collection; it imparts a faded brightness to the old ornamental arabesques upon the painted wooden ceiling, and it makes a great soft shining upon the marble floor, in which, as you look up and down, you see the strolling tourists and the motionless copyists almost reflected. I don’t know why I should find all this very pleasant, but in fact, I have seldom gone into the Uffizi without walking the length of this third-story cloister, between the (for the most part) third-rate canvases and panels and the faded cotton curtains. Why is it that in Italy we see a charm in things in regard to which in other countries we always take vulgarity for granted? If in the city of New York a great museum of the arts were to be provided, by way of decoration, with a species of verandah enclosed on one side by a series of small-paned windows draped in dirty linen, and furnished on the other with an array of pictorial feebleness, the place being surmounted by a thinly-painted wooden roof, strongly suggestive of summer heat, of winter cold, of frequent leakage, those amateurs who had had the advantage of foreign travel would be at small pains to conceal their contempt. Contemptible or respectable, to the judicial mind, this quaint old loggia of the Uffizi admitted me into twenty chambers where I found as great a number of ancient favourites. I don’t know that I had a warmer greeting for any old friend than for Andrea del Sarto, that most touching of painters who is not one of the first. But it was on the other side of the Arno that I found him in force, in those dusky drawing-rooms of the Pitti Palace to which you take your way along the tortuous tunnel that wanders through the houses of Florence and is supported by the little goldsmiths’ booths on the Ponte Vecchio. In the rich insufficient light of these beautiful rooms, where, to look at the pictures, you sit in damask chairs and rest your elbows on tables of malachite, the elegant Andrea becomes deeply effective. Before long he has drawn you close. But the great pleasure, after all, was to revisit the earlier masters, in those specimens of them chiefly that bloom so unfadingly on the big plain walls of the Academy. Fra Angelico and Filippo Lippi, Botticelli and Lorenzo di Credi are the clearest, the sweetest and best of all painters; as I sat for an hour in their company, in the cold great hall of the institution I have mentioned—there are shabby rafters above and an immense expanse of brick tiles below, and many bad pictures as well as good—it seemed to me more than ever that if one really had to choose one couldn’t do better than choose here. You may rest at your ease at the Academy, in this big first room—at the upper end especially, on the left—because more than many other places it savours of old Florence. More for instance, in reality, than the Bargello, though the Bargello makes great pretensions. Beautiful and masterful though the Bargello is, it smells too strongly of restoration, and, much of old Italy as still lurks in its furbished and renovated chambers, it speaks even more distinctly of the ill-mannered young kingdom that has—as “unavoidably” as you please—lifted down a hundred delicate works of sculpture from the convent-walls where their pious authors placed them. If the early Tuscan painters are exquisite I can think of no praise pure enough for the sculptors of the same period, Donatello and Luca della Robbia, Matteo Civitale and Mina da Fiesole, who, as I refreshed my memory of them, seemed to me to leave absolutely nothing to be desired in the way of straightness of inspiration and grace of invention. The Bargello is full of early Tuscan sculpture, most of the pieces of which have come from suppressed religious houses; and even if the visitor be an ardent liberal he is uncomfortably conscious of the rather brutal process by which it has been collected. One can hardly envy young Italy the number of odious things she has had to do.
It was really delightful, on those bright, warm days, to stroll from one corner of Florence to another, revisiting beloved masterpieces. It was also nice to see that my memories hadn’t misled me and that the rare things from earlier years were just as rare as I remembered. Listing these joys would take a lot of space; I had never been more impressed by the sheer number of brilliant Florentine works. Even conceding the Duomo and Santa Croce to Mr. Ruskin for being poorly arranged, the list of Florentine treasures seems endless. The long outer galleries of the Uffizi had never captivated me more; sometimes, there were only two or three people there, Baedeker in hand, to break the enchanting view. One side of this upstairs portico, as you may recall, is entirely made of glass; a series of old-fashioned windows, draped with simple white curtains, which hang there until they take on a noticeable tone. The light filtering through them is soft and diffuse; it gently falls on the old marbles—mainly antique Roman busts—standing in the narrow gaps of the windows. It shines on the many paintings that cover the opposite wall, which are generally not the highlights of the great collection; it gives a faded brightness to the old decorative arabesques on the painted wooden ceiling, and it causes a lovely soft glow on the marble floor, where you can almost see the strolling tourists and the still copyists reflected. I’m not sure why I find all this so pleasant, but honestly, I have rarely entered the Uffizi without walking the length of this third-floor cloister, surrounded by mostly mediocre canvases and panels and those faded cotton curtains. Why is it that we find charm in things in Italy that we would dismiss as vulgar anywhere else? If a major art museum in New York were decorated with a sort of veranda enclosed on one side by small-paned windows draped in dirty linens, and furnished on the other with weak paintings, topped by a poorly painted wooden roof suggestive of summer heat, winter cold, and frequent leaks, those who had traveled abroad would have little interest in hiding their disdain. Whether contemptible or respectable, to the discerning eye, this quaint old loggia of the Uffizi led me into twenty rooms where I rediscovered many ancient favorites. I can’t say I had a warmer welcome for any old friend than for Andrea del Sarto, that most touching of painters who isn’t one of the top names. But it was on the other side of the Arno that I found him in abundance, in the dim drawing rooms of the Pitti Palace, which you reach via the winding tunnel that runs through the buildings of Florence and is propped up by the little goldsmiths’ shops on the Ponte Vecchio. In the rich, dim light of these beautiful rooms, where you sit in damask chairs to view the paintings and rest your elbows on malachite tables, the elegant Andrea becomes incredibly effective. Before long, he draws you in. But the real pleasure, after all, was revisiting the earlier masters, especially those works that shine so vividly on the large plain walls of the Academy. Fra Angelico and Filippo Lippi, Botticelli and Lorenzo di Credi are the clearest, sweetest, and best of all painters; as I spent an hour in their company, in the cold vast hall of the institution I mentioned—where shabby rafters hover above and a vast expanse of brick tiles lies below, mixed with many bad paintings as well as good—it seemed to me more than ever that if one really had to choose, you couldn’t do better than to choose here. You can relax at the Academy, especially in this large first room—especially at the upper end, on the left—because it feels more like old Florence than many other places. More than the Bargello, in fact, even though the Bargello makes great claims. Beautiful and impressive as the Bargello is, it is also strongly reminiscent of restoration, and while much of old Italy remains in its refurbished and renovated rooms, it speaks even more clearly of the undisciplined young kingdom that has—“unavoidably” as you like—removed a hundred delicate works of sculpture from the convent walls where their devout creators placed them. If the early Tuscan painters are exquisite, I can think of no praise pure enough for the sculptors of the same period, like Donatello and Luca della Robbia, Matteo Civitale and Mina da Fiesole, who, as I refreshed my memory of them, seemed to leave nothing to be desired in terms of inspiration and grace. The Bargello is full of early Tuscan sculpture, most of which has come from dissolved religious houses; and even if the visitor is a passionate liberal, he is uncomfortably aware of the rather harsh methods by which it has been collected. One can hardly envy young Italy the number of unpleasant things she has had to do.
The railway journey from Florence to Rome has been altered both for the better and for the worse; for the better in that it has been shortened by a couple of hours; for the worse inasmuch as when about half the distance has been traversed the train deflects to the west and leaves the beautiful old cities of Assisi, Perugia, Terni, Narni, unvisited. Of old it was possible to call at these places, in a manner, from the window of the train; even if you didn’t stop, as you probably couldn’t, every time you passed, the immensely interesting way in which, like a loosened belt on an aged and shrunken person, their ample walls held them easily together was something well worth noting. Now, however, for compensation, the express train to Rome stops at Orvieto, and in consequence... In consequence what? What is the result of the stop of an express train at Orvieto? As I glibly wrote that sentence I suddenly paused, aware of the queer stuff I was uttering. That an express train would graze the base of the horrid purple mountain from the apex of which this dark old Catholic city uplifts the glittering front of its cathedral—that might have been foretold by a keen observer of contemporary manners. But that it would really have the grossness to hang about is a fact over which, as he records it, an inveterate, a perverse cherisher of the sense of the past order, the order still largely prevailing at the time of his first visit to Italy, may well make what is vulgarly called an ado. The train does stop at Orvieto, not very long, it is true, but long enough to let you out. The same phenomenon takes place on the following day, when, having visited the city, you get in again. I availed myself without scruple of both of these occasions, having formerly neglected to drive to the place in a post-chaise. But frankly, the railway-station being in the plain and the town on the summit of an extraordinary hill, you have time to forget the puffing indiscretion while you wind upwards to the city-gate. The position of Orvieto is superb—worthy of the “middle distance” of an eighteenth-century landscape. But, as every one knows, the splendid Cathedral is the proper attraction of the spot, which, indeed, save for this fine monument and for its craggy and crumbling ramparts, is a meanly arranged and, as Italian cities go, not particularly impressive little town. I spent a beautiful Sunday there and took in the charming church. I gave it my best attention, though on the whole I fear I found it inferior to its fame. A high concert of colour, however, is the densely carved front, richly covered with radiant mosaics. The old white marble of the sculptured portions is as softly yellow as ancient ivory; the large exceedingly bright pictures above them flashed and twinkled in the glorious weather. Very striking and interesting the theological frescoes of Luca Signorelli, though I have seen compositions of this general order that appealed to me more. Characteristically fresh, finally, the clear-faced saints and seraphs, in robes of pink and azure, whom Fra Angelico has painted upon the ceiling of the great chapel, along with a noble sitting figure—more expressive of movement than most of the creations of this pictorial peace-maker—of Christ in judgment. Yet the interest of the cathedral of Orvieto is mainly not the visible result, but the historical process that lies behind it; those three hundred years of the applied devotion of a people of which an American scholar has written an admirable account.{1}
The train ride from Florence to Rome has changed in both good and bad ways; it’s better because it’s now a couple of hours shorter, but worse because halfway through, the train veers west, skipping the beautiful historic cities of Assisi, Perugia, Terni, and Narni. In the past, you could catch a glimpse of these places from the train window, and even if you couldn’t stop, the fascinating way their thick walls fit together like a loose belt on an old, shriveled person was worth noticing. Now, though, the express train to Rome makes a stop at Orvieto, which begs the question... What’s the significance of the train stopping at Orvieto? As I casually wrote that, I suddenly realized how odd my words sounded. Sure, an express train might pass by the ugly purple mountain where this dark old Catholic city proudly displays its stunning cathedral—it’s something a sharp observer of modern life might have predicted. But the fact that it actually stops there is something that might frustrate someone who cherishes the past order, which was still very much alive when I first visited Italy. The train does stop at Orvieto, not for long, but just long enough for you to get off. The same thing happens the next day when you can board again after exploring the city. I took full advantage of both opportunities since I had previously missed the chance to drive there in a horse-drawn carriage. Honestly, since the train station is in the flatland and the town is perched high on an extraordinary hill, you have time to forget the awkwardness of huffing and puffing on your way up to the city gate. Orvieto has a fantastic location, perfect for the "middle distance" of an 18th-century painting. But as everyone knows, the magnificent Cathedral is the main draw here; beyond this remarkable structure and its crumbling old walls, the town itself is rather unimpressive compared to other Italian cities. I spent a lovely Sunday there and visited the beautiful church. I gave it my full attention, but overall, I found it didn’t live up to its reputation. The richly decorated facade, adorned with vibrant mosaics, is a breathtaking sight. The old white marble in the sculptures has a soft yellow hue, almost like ancient ivory; the bright paintings above sparkled in the lovely weather. The theological frescoes by Luca Signorelli were striking and interesting, although I’ve seen similar works that I found more appealing. The clear-faced saints and seraphs painted by Fra Angelico on the ceiling of the great chapel are refreshingly lifelike in their pink and blue robes, alongside a powerful image of Christ in judgment—more dynamic than many of his typical peaceful creations. However, the real interest of the Orvieto Cathedral lies less in the visible beauty and more in the rich historical journey behind it; those three hundred years of dedicated work from the community are thoroughly explored by an American scholar who wrote an excellent account.{1}
1877.
{1} Charles Eliot Norton, Notes of Travel and Study in Italy.
{1} Charles Eliot Norton, Notes of Travel and Study in Italy.
A ROMAN HOLIDAY
It is certainly sweet to be merry at the right moment; but the right moment hardly seems to me the ten days of the Roman Carnival. It was my rather cynical suspicion perhaps that they wouldn’t keep to my imagination the brilliant promise of legend; but I have been justified by the event and have been decidedly less conscious of the festal influences of the season than of the inalienable gravity of the place. There was a time when the Carnival was a serious matter—that is a heartily joyous one; but, thanks to the seven-league boots the kingdom of Italy has lately donned for the march of progress in quite other directions, the fashion of public revelry has fallen woefully out of step. The state of mind and manners under which the Carnival was kept in generous good faith I doubt if an American can exactly conceive: he can only say to himself that for a month in the year there must have been things—things considerably of humiliation—it was comfortable to forget. But now that Italy is made the Carnival is unmade; and we are not especially tempted to envy the attitude of a population who have lost their relish for play and not yet acquired to any striking extent an enthusiasm for work. The spectacle on the Corso has seemed to me, on the whole, an illustration of that great breach with the past of which Catholic Christendom felt the somewhat muffled shock in September, 1870. A traveller acquainted with the fully papal Rome, coming back any time during the past winter, must have immediately noticed that something momentous had happened—something hostile to the elements of picture and colour and “style.” My first warning was that ten minutes after my arrival I found myself face to face with a newspaper stand. The impossibility in the other days of having anything in the journalistic line but the Osservatore Romano and the Voce della Verità used to seem to me much connected with the extraordinary leisure of thought and stillness of mind to which the place admitted you. But now the slender piping of the Voice of Truth is stifled by the raucous note of eventide vendors of the Capitale, the Libertà and the Fanfulla; and Rome reading unexpurgated news is another Rome indeed. For every subscriber to the Libertà there may well be an antique masker and reveller less. As striking a sign of the new régime is the extraordinary increase of population. The Corso was always a well-filled street, but now it’s a perpetual crush. I never cease to wonder where the new-comers are lodged, and how such spotless flowers of fashion as the gentlemen who stare at the carriages can bloom in the atmosphere of those camere mobiliate of which I have had glimpses. This, however, is their own question, and bravely enough they meet it. They proclaimed somehow, to the first freshness of my wonder, as I say, that by force of numbers Rome had been secularised. An Italian dandy is a figure visually to reckon with, but these goodly throngs of them scarce offered compensation for the absent monsignori, treading the streets in their purple stockings and followed by the solemn servants who returned on their behalf the bows of the meaner sort; for the mourning gear of the cardinals’ coaches that formerly glittered with scarlet and swung with the weight of the footmen clinging behind; for the certainty that you’ll not, by the best of traveller’s luck, meet the Pope sitting deep in the shadow of his great chariot with uplifted fingers like some inaccessible idol in his shrine. You may meet the King indeed, who is as ugly, as imposingly ugly, as some idols, though not so inaccessible. The other day as I passed the Quirinal he drove up in a low carriage with a single attendant; and a group of men and women who had been waiting near the gate rushed at him with a number of folded papers. The carriage slackened pace and he pocketed their offerings with a business-like air—hat of a good-natured man accepting handbills at a street-corner. Here was a monarch at his palace gate receiving petitions from his subjects—being adjured to right their wrongs. The scene ought to have thrilled me, but somehow it had no more intensity than a woodcut in an illustrated newspaper. Homely I should call it at most; admirably so, certainly, for there were lately few sovereigns standing, I believe, with whom their people enjoyed these filial hand-to-hand relations. The King this year, however, has had as little to do with the Carnival as the Pope, and the innkeepers and Americans have marked it for their own.
It’s definitely nice to celebrate joyfully at the right time, but I'm not sure the Roman Carnival, which lasts for ten days, is that time. Maybe my cynical suspicion that it wouldn’t live up to my imagination of its legendary promise was justified; I've certainly felt more the weight of the place than the festive spirit of the season. There was a time when the Carnival was a serious yet genuinely joyful affair. However, the rapid progress Italy is making has left public festivities feeling out of touch. I doubt an American can fully understand the state of mind and customs that made the Carnival such a heartfelt event; they can only think that, for one month a year, people found it comforting to forget certain humiliations. But now that Italy has been unified, the Carnival has become less meaningful, and it's not particularly appealing to envy a population that has lost its taste for celebration but hasn’t yet developed a strong enthusiasm for work. The spectacle on the Corso has, for me, highlighted the significant break from the past that Catholic Christendom felt when it received a somewhat muffled shock in September 1870. A traveler familiar with the fully papal Rome, returning at any time during the past winter, would have noticed immediately that something major had changed—something adverse to the elements of art, color, and “style.” My first indication was just ten minutes after I arrived when I found myself in front of a newsstand. In the past, being able to read only the Osservatore Romano and the Voce della Verità seemed closely tied to the extraordinary calm and contemplative mindset that the place allowed. Now, though, the soft notes of the Voice of Truth are drowned out by the loud calls of evening vendors selling the Capitale, the Libertà, and the Fanfulla; and a Rome that reads uncensored news is truly a different Rome. For every subscriber to the Libertà, there might be one less antique mask-wearer and reveler. Another clear sign of the new regime is the massive increase in population. The Corso has always been busy, but now it’s a constant crush of people. I continually wonder where all the newcomers are staying and how the perfectly groomed gentlemen watching the carriages can thrive in the atmosphere of those camere mobiliate that I've glimpsed. However, that’s their own concern, and they handle it quite well. They somehow made it clear to me, as I was filled with wonder, that Rome had become secularized through sheer numbers. An Italian dandy certainly stands out visually, but these large crowds of them hardly compensate for the missing monsignori, who used to walk the streets in their purple stockings, accompanied by solemn servants bowing to the less fortunate. The cardinals' coaches, once vibrant with scarlet and burdened by footmen hanging on, are gone; and you no longer have the luck of encountering the Pope, who would sit deep in the shadows of his grand chariot, fingers raised like some unreachable idol in a shrine. You might see the King, though, who is as strikingly ugly as some idols, but much more accessible. Just the other day, as I walked past the Quirinal, he drove up in a low carriage with a single attendant. A group of men and women by the gate rushed toward him with folded papers. The carriage slowed, and he casually pocketed their requests—like a friendly guy accepting flyers at a street corner. Here was a king at his palace gate, taking petitions from his subjects—being urged to address their grievances. This scene should have thrilled me, but it felt as impactful as a woodcut in an illustrated newspaper. I’d call it homely at most, but certainly admirable; I believe few reigning monarchs these days enjoy such direct, familial interactions with their people. This year, however, the King has been as disconnected from the Carnival as the Pope has been, leaving innkeepers and Americans to claim it for themselves.
It was advertised to begin at half-past two o’clock of a certain Saturday, and punctually at the stroke of the hour, from my room across a wide court, I heard a sudden multiplication of sounds and confusion of tongues in the Corso. I was writing to a friend for whom I cared more than for any mere romp; but as the minutes elapsed and the hubbub deepened curiosity got the better of affection, and I remembered that I was really within eye-shot of an affair the fame of which had ministered to the daydreams of my infancy. I used to have a scrap-book with a coloured print of the starting of the bedizened wild horses, and the use of a library rich in keepsakes and annuals with a frontispiece commonly of a masked lady in a balcony, the heroine of a delightful tale further on. Agitated by these tender memories I descended into the street; but I confess I looked in vain for a masked lady who might serve as a frontispiece, in vain for any object whatever that might adorn a tale. Masked and muffled ladies there were in abundance; but their masks were of ugly wire, perfectly resembling the little covers placed upon strong cheese in German hotels, and their drapery was a shabby water-proof with the hood pulled over their chignons. They were armed with great tin scoops or funnels, with which they solemnly shovelled lime and flour out of bushel-baskets and down on the heads of the people in the street. They were packed into balconies all the way along the straight vista of the Corso, in which their calcareous shower maintained a dense, gritty, unpalatable fog. The crowd was compact in the street, and the Americans in it were tossing back confetti out of great satchels hung round their necks. It was quite the “you’re another” sort of repartee, and less seasoned than I had hoped with the airy mockery tradition hangs about this festival. The scene was striking, in a word; but somehow not as I had dreamed of its being. I stood regardful, I suppose, but with a peculiarly tempting blankness of visage, for in a moment I received half a bushel of flour on my too-philosophic head. Decidedly it was an ignoble form of humour. I shook my ears like an emergent diver, and had a sudden vision of how still and sunny and solemn, how peculiarly and undisturbedly themselves, how secure from any intrusion less sympathetic than one’s own, certain outlying parts of Rome must just then be. The Carnival had received its deathblow in my imagination; and it has been ever since but a thin and dusky ghost of pleasure that has flitted at intervals in and out of my consciousness.
It was advertised to start at two-thirty on a certain Saturday, and right on time, from my room across a wide courtyard, I heard a sudden surge of noises and chatter in the Corso. I was writing to a friend I cared about more than any casual fling; but as the minutes went by and the noise grew louder, curiosity took over, and I remembered I was actually close to an event that had fueled my childhood daydreams. I used to have a scrapbook with a colorful print of the flashy wild horses starting out, and I had access to a library filled with keepsakes and annuals featuring a front cover that often showed a masked lady on a balcony, the heroine of a delightful story inside. Stirred by these sweet memories, I went down to the street; but I have to admit I searched in vain for a masked lady to serve as a cover image, or any object that could embellish a story. There were plenty of masked and muffled ladies, but their masks were ugly wire, looking just like the little covers on strong cheese in German hotels, and their outfits were shabby raincoats with hoods pulled over their hairstyles. They were armed with large tin scoops or funnels, which they seriously used to throw lime and flour out of bushel baskets onto the heads of people in the street. They filled the balconies all along the straight view of the Corso, where their chalky shower created a dense, gritty, unappetizing fog. The crowd was tightly packed in the street, and the Americans in it were tossing back confetti from big satchels hanging around their necks. It was a classic “you’re another” type of banter, and less sharp than I had expected with the light-hearted mockery that usually surrounds this festival. The scene was striking, to put it simply; but somehow, it wasn’t what I had imagined. I stood there, I guess, but with an unusually blank expression, and in a moment, I got half a bushel of flour dumped on my too-philosophical head. Clearly, it was a pretty low form of humor. I shook my head like a diver emerging from the water and suddenly envisioned how quiet, sunny, and solemn certain parts of Rome must have been at that moment—how uniquely and peacefully themselves, and how safe from any intrusion less sympathetic than one’s own. The Carnival had lost its charm in my mind; since then, it has just been a thin and gloomy ghost of enjoyment that has flickered in and out of my thoughts.
I turned my back accordingly on the Corso and wandered away to the grass-grown quarters delightfully free even from the possibility of a fellow-countryman. And so having set myself an example I have been keeping Carnival by strolling perversely along the silent circumference of Rome. I have doubtless lost a great deal. The Princess Margaret has occupied a balcony opposite the open space which leads into Via Condotti and, I believe, like the discreet princess she is, has dealt in no missiles but bonbons, bouquets and white doves. I would have waited half an hour any day to see the Princess Margaret hold a dove on her forefinger; but I never chanced to notice any preparation for that effect. And yet do what you will you can’t really elude the Carnival. As the days elapse it filters down into the manners of the common people, and before the week is over the very beggars at the church-doors seem to have gone to the expense of a domino. When you meet these specimens of dingy drollery capering about in dusky back-streets at all hours of the day and night, meet them flitting out of black doorways between the greasy groups that cluster about Roman thresholds, you feel that a love of “pranks,” the more vivid the better, must from far back have been implanted in the Roman temperament with a strong hand. An unsophisticated American is wonderstruck at the number of persons, of every age and various conditions, whom it costs nothing in the nature of an ingenuous blush to walk up and down the streets in the costume of a theatrical supernumerary. Fathers of families do it at the head of an admiring progeniture; aunts and uncles and grandmothers do it; all the family does it, with varying splendour but with the same good conscience. “A pack of babies!” the doubtless too self-conscious alien pronounces it for its pains, and tries to imagine himself strutting along Broadway in a battered tin helmet and a pair of yellow tights. Our vices are certainly different; it takes those of the innocent sort to be so ridiculous. A self-consciousness lapsing so easily, in fine, strikes me as so near a relation to amenity, urbanity and general gracefulness that, for myself, I should be sorry to lay a tax on it, lest these other commodities should also cease to come to market.
I turned my back on the Corso and wandered off to the grassy areas that were blissfully free from the chance of running into a fellow countryman. Setting an example for myself, I've been enjoying Carnival by walking aimlessly around the quiet outskirts of Rome. I’ve definitely missed out on a lot. Princess Margaret has been on a balcony facing the open space that leads to Via Condotti, and, true to her discreet nature, she’s only been throwing bonbons, bouquets, and white doves. I would have waited half an hour any day just to see Princess Margaret hold a dove on her forefinger, but I never happened to catch any preparation for that. Yet, no matter what you do, you can’t really escape Carnival. As the days go by, it seeps into the behaviors of ordinary people, and by the end of the week, even the beggars at the church doors seem to have splurged on a costume. When you see these examples of shabby festivity dancing around in dark backstreets at any hour, darting out of black doorways among the greasy groups gathered at Roman doorsteps, you realize that a love for “pranks,” the more colorful the better, must have been deeply ingrained in the Roman spirit. An unpretentious American is amazed at how many people, of all ages and various backgrounds, can stroll the streets dressed as if they just came from a play without a hint of embarrassment. Dads lead their families in this parade, aunts, uncles, and grandmothers join in; the whole family gets involved, sporting different costumes but always with the same carefree attitude. “What a bunch of kids!” the possibly too self-aware outsider might think as he imagines himself strutting down Broadway in a battered tin helmet and yellow tights. Our vices are certainly different; it takes something innocent to appear so silly. A self-awareness that fades so easily seems to me closely related to friendliness, urbanity, and overall charm, to the point where I’d hate to impose on it, fearing that these other traits might also disappear from our world.
I was rewarded, when I had turned away with my ears full of flour, by a glimpse of an intenser life than the dingy foolery of the Corso. I walked down by the back streets to the steps mounting to the Capitol—that long inclined plane, rather, broken at every two paces, which is the unfailing disappointment, I believe, of tourists primed for retrospective raptures. Certainly the Capitol seen from this side isn’t commanding. The hill is so low, the ascent so narrow, Michael Angelo’s architecture in the quadrangle at the top so meagre, the whole place somehow so much more of a mole-hill than a mountain, that for the first ten minutes of your standing there Roman history seems suddenly to have sunk through a trap-door. It emerges however on the other side, in the Forum; and here meanwhile, if you get no sense of the sublime, you get gradually a sense of exquisite composition. Nowhere in Rome is more colour, more charm, more sport for the eye. The mild incline, during the winter months, is always covered with lounging sun-seekers, and especially with those more constantly obvious members of the Roman population—beggars, soldiers, monks and tourists. The beggars and peasants lie kicking their heels along that grandest of loafing-places the great steps of the Ara Coeli. The dwarfish look of the Capitol is intensified, I think, by the neighbourhood of this huge blank staircase, mouldering away in disuse, the weeds thick in its crevices, and climbing to the rudely solemn facade of the church. The sunshine glares on this great unfinished wall only to light up its featureless despair, its expression of conscious, irremediable incompleteness. Sometimes, massing its rusty screen against the deep blue sky, with the little cross and the sculptured porch casting a clear-cut shadow on the bricks, it seems to have even more than a Roman desolation, it confusedly suggests Spain and Africa—lands with no latent risorgimenti, with absolutely nothing but a fatal past. The legendary wolf of Rome has lately been accommodated with a little artificial grotto, among the cacti and the palms, in the fantastic triangular garden squeezed between the steps of the church and the ascent to the Capitol, where she holds a perpetual levee and “draws” apparently as powerfully as the Pope himself. Above, in the piazzetta before the stuccoed palace which rises so jauntily on a basement of thrice its magnitude, are more loungers and knitters in the sun, seated round the massively inscribed base of the statue of Marcus Aurelius. Hawthorne has perfectly expressed the attitude of this admirable figure in saying that it extends its arm with “a command which is in itself a benediction.” I doubt if any statue of king or captain in the public places of the world has more to commend it to the general heart. Irrecoverable simplicity—residing so in irrecoverable Style—has no sturdier representative. Here is an impression that the sculptors of the last three hundred years have been laboriously trying to reproduce; but contrasted with this mild old monarch their prancing horsemen suggest a succession of riding-masters taking out young ladies’ schools. The admirably human character of the figure survives the rusty decomposition of the bronze and the slight “debasement” of the art; and one may call it singular that in the capital of Christendom the portrait most suggestive of a Christian conscience is that of a pagan emperor.
I was rewarded, after turning away with my ears full of flour, by a glimpse of a more vibrant life than the dull nonsense of the Corso. I walked down the back streets to the steps leading up to the Capitol—this long ramp, broken every few feet, which is the constant letdown, I believe, for tourists hyped up for nostalgic awe. The Capitol seen from this side definitely isn’t impressive. The hill is so low, the path so narrow, and Michelangelo’s architecture in the courtyard at the top is so meager that the whole place feels much more like a molehill than a mountain. For the first ten minutes of standing there, it seems like Roman history has suddenly vanished. However, it comes back to life on the other side, in the Forum; and here, while you might not feel a sense of the sublime, you gradually get a sense of exquisite composition. Nowhere in Rome is there more color, more charm, or more visual delight. The gentle slope, during the winter months, is always filled with people soaking up the sun, especially the more visible members of the Roman population—beggars, soldiers, monks, and tourists. The beggars and peasants lounge around on the grandest of resting spots, the great steps of the Ara Coeli. I think the small appearance of the Capitol is intensified by the presence of this immense, crumbling staircase, overtaken by weeds, leading up to the somber façade of the church. The sunshine hits this great unfinished wall just to highlight its dull despair and its sense of irremediable incompleteness. Sometimes, casting its rusty outline against the deep blue sky, with the little cross and the sculpted porch creating a sharp shadow on the bricks, it seems to evoke not just a Roman desolation, but also suggests Spain and Africa—lands with no latent risorgimenti, with nothing left but a doomed past. Recently, the legendary she-wolf of Rome has been given a little artificial grotto, surrounded by cacti and palms, in the quirky triangular garden squeezed between the church's steps and the ascent to the Capitol, where she has a constant gathering and seemingly attracts as much attention as the Pope himself. Above, in the small piazza in front of the plaster palace that rises cheerfully on a three-times-larger base, are more sunbathers and knitters, sitting around the solidly inscribed base of the statue of Marcus Aurelius. Hawthorne perfectly captured the stance of this admirable figure, saying it extends its arm with “a command which is in itself a blessing.” I doubt any statue of a king or captain in public spaces around the world has more appeal to the general public. Irrecoverable simplicity—existing in an irrecoverable Style—has no stronger representative. Here is an impression that sculptors over the last three hundred years have been trying hard to replicate; but compared to this gentle old monarch, their energetic horsemen resemble instructors taking young ladies out riding. The wonderfully human character of the statue endures the rusting decay of the bronze and the slight “debasement” of the art; and it’s quite remarkable that in the capital of Christendom, the portrait that most resonates with a Christian conscience is that of a pagan emperor.
You recover in some degree your stifled hopes of sublimity as you pass beyond the palace and take your choice of either curving slope to descend into the Forum. Then you see that the little stuccoed edifice is but a modern excrescence on the mighty cliff of a primitive construction, whose great squares of porous tufa, as they underlie each other, seem to resolve themselves back into the colossal cohesion of unhewn rock. There are prodigious strangenesses in the union of this airy and comparatively fresh-faced superstructure and these deep-plunging, hoary foundations; and few things in Rome are more entertaining to the eye than to measure the long plumb-line which drops from the inhabited windows of the palace, with their little over-peeping balconies, their muslin curtains and their bird-cages, down to the rugged constructional work of the Republic. In the Forum proper the sublime is eclipsed again, though the late extension of the excavations gives a chance for it.
You start to regain some of your suppressed hopes for something extraordinary as you move past the palace and choose either sloping path down into the Forum. Then you notice that the small plastered building is just a modern addition to the impressive cliff of ancient construction, where large blocks of porous tufa, stacked on one another, seem to blend back into the massive unity of uncut stone. There’s a remarkable contrast between this light and relatively fresh-looking upper structure and the deep, ancient foundations; and few sights in Rome are more captivating than measuring the long vertical line that drops from the living windows of the palace, with their tiny balconies, muslin curtains, and bird cages, down to the rugged work from the Republic. In the Forum itself, the grandeur fades again, although the recent extension of the excavations offers a glimpse of it.
Nothing in Rome helps your fancy to a more vigorous backward flight than to lounge on a sunny day over the railing which guards the great central researches. It “says” more things to you than you can repeat to see the past, the ancient world, as you stand there, bodily turned up with the spade and transformed from an immaterial, inaccessible fact of time into a matter of soils and surfaces. The pleasure is the same—in kind—as what you enjoy of Pompeii, and the pain the same. It wasn’t here, however, that I found my compensation for forfeiting the spectacle on the Corso, but in a little church at the end of the narrow byway which diverges up the Palatine from just beside the Arch of Titus. This byway leads you between high walls, then takes a bend and introduces you to a long row of rusty, dusty little pictures of the stations of the cross. Beyond these stands a small church with a front so modest that you hardly recognise it till you see the leather curtain. I never see a leather curtain without lifting it; it is sure to cover a constituted scene of some sort—good, bad or indifferent. The scene this time was meagre—whitewash and tarnished candlesticks and mouldy muslin flowers being its principal features. I shouldn’t have remained if I hadn’t been struck with the attitude of the single worshipper—a young priest kneeling before one of the sidealtars, who, as I entered, lifted his head and gave me a sidelong look so charged with the languor of devotion that he immediately became an object of interest. He was visiting each of the altars in turn and kissing the balustrade beneath them. He was alone in the church, and indeed in the whole region. There were no beggars even at the door; they were plying their trade on the skirts of the Carnival. In the entirely deserted place he alone knelt for religion, and as I sat respectfully by it seemed to me I could hear in the perfect silence the far-away uproar of the maskers. It was my late impression of these frivolous people, I suppose, joined with the extraordinary gravity of the young priest’s face—his pious fatigue, his droning prayer and his isolation—that gave me just then and there a supreme vision of the religious passion, its privations and resignations and exhaustions and its terribly small share of amusement. He was young and strong and evidently of not too refined a fibre to enjoy the Carnival; but, planted there with his face pale with fasting and his knees stiff with praying, he seemed so stern a satire on it and on the crazy thousands who were preferring it to his way, that I half expected to see some heavenly portent out of a monastic legend come down and confirm his choice. Yet I confess that though I wasn’t enamoured of the Carnival myself, his seemed a grim preference and this forswearing of the world a terrible game—a gaining one only if your zeal never falters; a hard fight when it does. In such an hour, to a stout young fellow like the hero of my anecdote, the smell of incense must seem horribly stale and the muslin flowers and gilt candlesticks to figure no great bribe. And it wouldn’t have helped him much to think that not so very far away, just beyond the Forum, in the Corso, there was sport for the million, and for nothing. I doubt on the other hand whether my young priest had thought of this. He had made himself a temple out of the very elements of his innocence, and his prayers followed each other too fast for the tempter to slip in a whisper. And so, as I say, I found a solider fact of human nature than the love of coriandoli.
Nothing in Rome makes you daydream about the past quite like lounging on a sunny day over the railing that looks out onto the great central digs. It communicates more to you than you can possibly grasp, showing you the ancient world as you stand there, physically connected to the earth, transformed from a distant, unreachable point in time into something tangible and real. The pleasure is similar to what you get from exploring Pompeii, and the pain feels the same. However, I didn’t find my solace from missing the spectacle on the Corso here, but in a small church at the end of a narrow lane that branches off the Palatine next to the Arch of Titus. This lane takes you between tall walls, then curves to reveal a long line of rusty, dusty little pictures depicting the stations of the cross. Beyond these stands a small church so modest that you hardly recognize it until you see the leather curtain. I can never resist lifting a leather curtain; it’s always hiding some kind of scene—good, bad, or indifferent. This time, the scene was underwhelming—whitewashed walls, tarnished candlesticks, and moldy muslin flowers being its main features. I wouldn’t have stayed if I hadn’t been struck by the single worshipper—a young priest kneeling before one of the side altars who, as I entered, lifted his head and gave me a sidelong glance filled with a weary devotion that immediately caught my interest. He was visiting each altar in turn, kissing the balustrade beneath them. He was alone in the church, and really in the whole area. There were no beggars even at the door; they were busy working the fringes of the Carnival. In this completely deserted place, he was the only one kneeling in prayer, and as I sat respectfully nearby, it felt to me like I could hear, in the perfect silence, the distant clamor of the maskers. It was my recent impression of these frivolous people, I suppose, mixed with the striking seriousness of the young priest's face—his pious exhaustion, his monotone prayers, and his solitude—that gave me an intense vision of religious passion, its sacrifices, its calls for resignation, and its tiring little share of joy. He was young and strong, and clearly not too delicate to enjoy the Carnival; but there he was, with a pale face from fasting and stiff knees from praying, appearing as a stark critique of both the festivities and the thousands who preferred that to his way. I half expected to see a divine sign straight out of a monastic tale come down and validate his choice. Yet, I admit that while I wasn’t fond of the Carnival myself, his seemed like a grim choice, and this renunciation of the world felt like a sobering game—only rewarding if your zeal never wavers; a tough battle when it does. At such a moment, to a robust young man like the priest, the scent of incense must feel painfully stale, with the muslin flowers and gilt candlesticks offering little temptation. It wouldn’t have done him much good to think about the fact that not far away, just beyond the Forum, in the Corso, there was fun for the crowd, and for free. On the other hand, I doubt the young priest had considered this. He had created a sanctuary out of the very elements of his innocence, and his prayers flowed too quickly for temptation to sneak in even a whisper. And so, as I said, I discovered a more solid truth about human nature than the love of coriandoli.
One of course never passes the Colosseum without paying it one’s respects—without going in under one of the hundred portals and crossing the long oval and sitting down a while, generally at the foot of the cross in the centre. I always feel, as I do so, as if I were seated in the depths of some Alpine valley. The upper portions of the side toward the Esquiline look as remote and lonely as an Alpine ridge, and you raise your eyes to their rugged sky-line, drinking in the sun and silvered by the blue air, with much the same feeling with which you would take in a grey cliff on which an eagle might lodge. This roughly mountainous quality of the great ruin is its chief interest; beauty of detail has pretty well vanished, especially since the high-growing wild-flowers have been plucked away by the new government, whose functionaries, surely, at certain points of their task, must have felt as if they shared the dreadful trade of those who gather samphire. Even if you are on your way to the Lateran you won’t grudge the twenty minutes it will take you, on leaving the Colosseum, to turn away under the Arch of Constantine, whose noble battered bas-reliefs, with the chain of tragic statues—fettered, drooping barbarians—round its summit, I assume you to have profoundly admired, toward the piazzetta of the church of San Giovanni e Paolo, on the slope of Caelian. No spot in Rome can show a cluster of more charming accidents. The ancient brick apse of the church peeps down into the trees of the little wooded walk before the neighbouring church of San Gregorio, intensely venerable beneath its excessive modernisation; and a series of heavy brick buttresses, flying across to an opposite wall, overarches the short, steep, paved passage which leads into the small square. This is flanked on one side by the long mediaeval portico of the church of the two saints, sustained by eight time-blackened columns of granite and marble. On another rise the great scarce-windowed walls of a Passionist convent, and on the third the portals of a grand villa, whose tall porter, with his cockade and silver-topped staff, standing sublime behind his grating, seems a kind of mundane St. Peter, I suppose, to the beggars who sit at the church door or lie in the sun along the farther slope which leads to the gate of the convent. The place always seems to me the perfection of an out-of-the-way corner—a place you would think twice before telling people about, lest you should find them there the next time you were to go. It is such a group of objects, singly and in their happy combination, as one must come to Rome to find at one’s house door; but what makes it peculiarly a picture is the beautiful dark red campanile of the church, which stands embedded in the mass of the convent. It begins, as so many things in Rome begin, with a stout foundation of antique travertine, and rises high, in delicately quaint mediaeval brickwork—little tiers and apertures sustained on miniature columns and adorned with small cracked slabs of green and yellow marble, inserted almost at random. When there are three or four brown-breasted contadini sleeping in the sun before the convent doors, and a departing monk leading his shadow down over them, I think you will not find anything in Rome more sketchable.
One never passes the Colosseum without showing some respect—without stepping through one of its hundred entrances, crossing the long oval arena, and sitting down for a bit, usually at the foot of the cross in the center. I always feel, as I do this, as if I were sitting in the heart of some Alpine valley. The upper parts of the side facing the Esquiline look as distant and solitary as an Alpine ridge, and you lift your gaze to their rugged skyline, soaking in the sun and shimmering in the blue air, much like how you would appreciate a grey cliff where an eagle might rest. This roughly mountainous aspect of the grand ruin is its main allure; the beauty of detail has largely disappeared, especially since the tall wildflowers have been removed by the new government, whose officials, surely, at some points in their task, must have felt as if they were partaking in the grim trade of those who gather samphire. Even if you're on your way to the Lateran, you won't mind the twenty minutes it takes to leave the Colosseum, passing under the Arch of Constantine, whose noble, worn bas-reliefs, accompanied by the chain of tragic statues—bound, drooping barbarians—at its top, I assume you have greatly admired, heading towards the small square of the church of San Giovanni e Paolo, on the slope of Caelian. No place in Rome can showcase a collection of more delightful sights. The ancient brick apse of the church looks down into the trees of the little wooded path in front of the nearby church of San Gregorio, deeply venerable despite its excessive modernization; and a series of heavy brick buttresses, stretching across to an opposite wall, arches over the short, steep, paved pathway leading into the small square. This square is bordered on one side by the long medieval portico of the church of the two saints, supported by eight time-darkened columns of granite and marble. On another side rise the great, barely-windowed walls of a Passionist convent, and on the third side stand the doors of a grand villa, where a tall porter, with his cockade and silver-topped staff, looks grand behind his gate, resembling a kind of worldly St. Peter, I suppose, to the beggars who linger at the church door or sunbathe along the slope that leads to the convent gate. This place always seems to me to be the epitome of a hidden gem—a spot you’d think twice about sharing with others, for fear they might show up there the next time you visit. It’s such a collection of objects, both individually and in their joyful combination, that you must visit Rome to find them at your doorstep; but what makes it especially picturesque is the beautiful dark red campanile of the church, which is nestled within the convent's structure. It begins, like many things in Rome, with a solid foundation of ancient travertine and rises high, showcasing delicately charming medieval brickwork—little tiers and openings supported by tiny columns and decorated with small cracked slabs of green and yellow marble, placed almost haphazardly. When there are three or four brown-breasted peasants napping in the sun before the convent doors, and a departing monk casting his shadow over them, I think you won't find anything in Rome more sketchable.
If you stop, however, to observe everything worthy of your water-colours you will never reach St. John Lateran. My business was much less with the interior of that vast and empty, that cold clean temple, which I have never found peculiarly interesting, than with certain charming features of its surrounding precinct—the crooked old court beside it, which admits you to the Baptistery and to a delightful rear-view of the queer architectural odds and ends that may in Rome compose a florid ecclesiastical façade. There are more of these, a stranger jumble of chance detail, of lurking recesses and wanton projections and inexplicable windows, than I have memory or phrase for; but the gem of the collection is the oddly perched peaked turret, with its yellow travertine welded upon the rusty brickwork, which was not meant to be suspected, and the brickwork retreating beneath and leaving it in the odd position of a tower under which you may see the sky. As to the great front of the church overlooking the Porta San Giovanni, you are not admitted behind the scenes; the term is quite in keeping, for the architecture has a vastly theatrical air. It is extremely imposing—that of St. Peter’s alone is more so; and when from far off on the Campagna you see the colossal images of the mitred saints along the top standing distinct against the sky, you forget their coarse construction and their inflated draperies. The view from the great space which stretches from the church steps to the city wall is the very prince of views. Just beside you, beyond the great alcove of mosaic, is the Scala Santa, the marble staircase which (says the legend) Christ descended under the weight of Pilate’s judgment, and which all Christians must for ever ascend on their knees; before you is the city gate which opens upon the Via Appia Nuova, the long gaunt file of arches of the Claudian aqueduct, their jagged ridge stretching away like the vertebral column of some monstrous mouldering skeleton, and upon the blooming brown and purple flats and dells of the Campagna and the glowing blue of the Alban Mountains, spotted with their white, high-nestling towns; while to your left is the great grassy space, lined with dwarfish mulberry-trees, which stretches across to the damp little sister-basilica of Santa Croce in Gerusalemme. During a former visit to Rome I lost my heart to this idle tract,{1}
If you stop to take in everything worth painting, you'll never make it to St. John Lateran. I was much less focused on the inside of that vast, cold, empty temple, which I've never found particularly interesting, than on some charming features of the surrounding area—the crooked old courtyard next to it, which leads you to the Baptistery and offers a delightful view of the quirky architectural odds and ends that make up a colorful ecclesiastical façade in Rome. There are so many of these random details, hidden nooks, playful projections, and strange windows that I can't even fully describe them; but the highlight of the collection is the oddly positioned peaked turret, with its yellow travertine blended into the rusty brickwork, which was never meant to be seen, with the brick retreating underneath it so it seems like a tower under which you can see the sky. As for the grand facade of the church facing Porta San Giovanni, you can't go backstage; the term fits perfectly because the architecture has a very theatrical vibe. It's extremely impressive—only St. Peter's is more so; and when you catch a distant glimpse of the colossal figures of the mitred saints along the top against the sky, you forget their rough construction and exaggerated drapery. The view from the large space stretching from the church steps to the city wall is simply breathtaking. Right next to you, beyond the grand mosaic alcove, is the Scala Santa, the marble staircase that (according to legend) Christ descended under the weight of Pilate’s judgment, which all Christians must ascend on their knees; in front of you is the city gate that opens onto Via Appia Nuova, lined by the long, skeletal arches of the Claudian aqueduct, their jagged line stretching away like the spine of some ancient, decaying skeleton, and the blooming brown and purple fields and valleys of the Campagna set against the vibrant blue of the Alban Mountains, dotted with their white towns perched high. To your left is the vast grassy area, edged with small mulberry trees, extending to the damp little sister-basilica of Santa Croce in Gerusalemme. On a previous visit to Rome, I fell in love with this tranquil stretch.
{1} Utterly overbuilt and gone—1909.
Totally overbuilt and gone—1909.
and wasted much time in sitting on the steps of the church and watching certain white-cowled friars who were sure to be passing there for the delight of my eyes. There are fewer friars now, and there are a great many of the king’s recruits, who inhabit the ex-conventual barracks adjoining Santa Croce and are led forward to practise their goose-step on the sunny turf. Here too the poor old cardinals who are no longer to be seen on the Pincio descend from their mourning-coaches and relax their venerable knees. These members alone still testify to the traditional splendour of the princes of the Church; for as they advance the lifted black petticoat reveals a flash of scarlet stockings and makes you groan at the victory of civilisation over colour.
and wasted a lot of time sitting on the steps of the church, watching certain white-cowled friars who always passed by to please my eyes. There are fewer friars now, and many of the king’s recruits now occupy the former convent barracks next to Santa Croce, practicing their goose-step on the sunny grass. Here too, the poor old cardinals, no longer seen on the Pincio, get down from their mourning coaches and ease their weary knees. These members are the only ones left to show the traditional grandeur of the princes of the Church; as they walk, the lifted black petticoat reveals a glimpse of scarlet stockings, making you lament the triumph of civilization over color.
{Illustration: THE FAÇADE OF ST. JOHN LATERAN, ROME.}
{Illustration: THE FAÇADE OF ST. JOHN LATERAN, ROME.}
If St. John Lateran disappoints you internally, you have an easy compensation in pacing the long lane which connects it with Santa Maria Maggiore and entering the singularly perfect nave of that most delightful of churches. The first day of my stay in Rome under the old dispensation I spent in wandering at random through the city, with accident for my valet-de-place. It served me to perfection and introduced me to the best things; among others to an immediate happy relation with Santa Maria Maggiore. First impressions, memorable impressions, are generally irrecoverable; they often leave one the wiser, but they rarely return in the same form. I remember, of my coming uninformed and unprepared into the place of worship and of curiosity that I have named, only that I sat for half an hour on the edge of the base of one of the marble columns of the beautiful nave and enjoyed a perfect revel of—what shall I call it?—taste, intelligence, fancy, perceptive emotion? The place proved so endlessly suggestive that perception became a throbbing confusion of images, and I departed with a sense of knowing a good deal that is not set down in Murray. I have seated myself more than once again at the base of the same column; but you live your life only once, the parts as well as the whole. The obvious charm of the church is the elegant grandeur of the nave—its perfect shapeliness and its rich simplicity, its long double row of white marble columns and its high flat roof, embossed with intricate gildings and mouldings. It opens into a choir of an extraordinary splendour of effect, which I recommend you to look out for of a fine afternoon. At such a time the glowing western light, entering the high windows of the tribune, kindles the scattered masses of colour into sombre bright-ness, scintillates on the great solemn mosaic of the vault, touches the porphyry columns of the superb baldachino with ruby lights, and buries its shining shafts in the deep-toned shadows that hang about frescoes and sculptures and mouldings. The deeper charm even than in such things, however, is the social or historic note or tone or atmosphere of the church—I fumble, you see, for my right expression; the sense it gives you, in common with most of the Roman churches, and more than any of them, of having been prayed in for several centuries by an endlessly curious and complex society. It takes no great attention to let it come to you that the authority of Italian Catholicism has lapsed not a little in these days; not less also perhaps than to feel that, as they stand, these deserted temples were the fruit of a society leavened through and through by ecclesiastical manners, and that they formed for ages the constant background of the human drama. They are, as one may say, the churchiest churches in Europe—the fullest of gathered memories, of the experience of their office. There’s not a figure one has read of in old-world annals that isn’t to be imagined on proper occasion kneeling before the lamp-decked Confession beneath the altar of Santa Maria Maggiore. One sees after all, however, even among the most palpable realities, very much what the play of one’s imagination projects there; and I present my remarks simply as a reminder that one’s constant excursions into these places are not the least interesting episodes of one’s walks in Rome.
If St. John Lateran doesn't impress you, you can easily make up for it by walking down the long path connecting it to Santa Maria Maggiore and stepping into the beautifully perfect nave of that delightful church. On my first day in Rome, I wandered aimlessly around the city, letting chance be my guide. It led me to some amazing spots, including a wonderful connection with Santa Maria Maggiore. First impressions are usually unforgettable; they often teach us something, but they seldom come back the same way. I remember entering this place of worship, completely unprepared, and sitting for half an hour on the edge of one of the marble columns in the stunning nave, lost in a delightful mix of—what should I call it?—taste, intelligence, imagination, and emotional insight? The place was so full of inspiration that my thoughts became a whirlwind of images, and I left with a sense of understanding a lot that isn’t in the guidebooks. I've sat again at the base of that same column, but you only live your life once, both the individual moments and the bigger picture. The church’s clear charm comes from the elegant grandeur of the nave—its perfect shape and rich simplicity, highlighted by the long rows of white marble columns and the high flat ceiling adorned with intricate gold details. It leads into a choir that is stunningly beautiful, and I suggest you take a look on a nice afternoon. At that time, the warm western light pouring through the high windows of the tribune ignites the colors into a deep brightness, sparkles on the solemn mosaic of the ceiling, casts ruby lights on the porphyry columns of the magnificent baldachino, and buries its radiant beams in the rich shadows surrounding the frescoes, sculptures, and moldings. But even more enchanting than those sights is the social or historical essence of the church—I'm searching for the right word; it gives you the feeling that, like many Roman churches, it has been a place of prayer for centuries by a continually curious and complex society. It doesn’t take much effort to realize that the authority of Italian Catholicism has diminished somewhat in recent times; perhaps it’s also clear that these quiet churches are products of a society deeply influenced by ecclesiastical customs, serving as the backdrop for human drama for ages. They are, one might say, the most “churchy” churches in Europe—the richest in collected memories and experiences from their function. There’s not a figure from old-world history that you can’t picture kneeling in front of the lamp-lit Confession beneath the altar of Santa Maria Maggiore when the occasion calls for it. Yet, even amid the most tangible realities, much of what you see is shaped by your own imagination; I share these thoughts merely to remind you that your frequent visits to these places are some of the most interesting parts of walking in Rome.
I had meant to give a simple illustration of the church-habit, so to speak, but I have given it at such a length as leaves scant space to touch on the innumerable topics brushed by the pen that begins to take Roman notes. It is by the aimless flânerie which leaves you free to follow capriciously every hint of entertainment that you get to know Rome. The greater part of the life about you goes on in the streets; and for an observer fresh from a country in which town scenery is at the least monotonous incident and character and picture seem to abound. I become conscious with compunction, let me hasten to add, that I have launched myself thus on the subject of Roman churches and Roman walks without so much as a preliminary allusion to St. Peter’s. One is apt to proceed thither on rainy days with intentions of exercise—to put the case only at that—and to carry these out body and mind. Taken as a walk not less than as a church, St. Peter’s of course reigns alone. Even for the profane “constitutional” it serves where the Boulevards, where Piccadilly and Broadway, fall short, and if it didn’t offer to our use the grandest area in the world it would still offer the most diverting. Few great works of art last longer to the curiosity, to the perpetually transcended attention. You think you have taken the whole thing in, but it expands, it rises sublime again, and leaves your measure itself poor. You never let the ponderous leather curtain bang down behind you—your weak lift of a scant edge of whose padded vastness resembles the liberty taken in folding back the parchment corner of some mighty folio page—without feeling all former visits to have been but missed attempts at apprehension and the actual to achieve your first real possession. The conventional question is ever as to whether one hasn’t been “disappointed in the size,” but a few honest folk here and there, I hope, will never cease to say no. The place struck me from the first as the hugest thing conceivable—a real exaltation of one’s idea of space; so that one’s entrance, even from the great empty square which either glares beneath the deep blue sky or makes of the cool far-cast shadow of the immense front something that resembles a big slate-coloured country on a map, seems not so much a going in somewhere as a going out. The mere man of pleasure in quest of new sensations might well not know where to better his encounter there of the sublime shock that brings him, within the threshold, to an immediate gasping pause. There are days when the vast nave looks mysteriously vaster than on others and the gorgeous baldachino a longer journey beyond the far-spreading tessellated plain of the pavement, and when the light has yet a quality which lets things loom their largest, while the scattered figures—I mean the human, for there are plenty of others—mark happily the scale of items and parts. Then you have only to stroll and stroll and gaze and gaze; to watch the glorious altar-canopy lift its bronze architecture, its colossal embroidered contortions, like a temple within a temple, and feel yourself, at the bottom of the abysmal shaft of the dome, dwindle to a crawling dot.
I had intended to give a simple example of the church habit, so to speak, but I ended up writing so much that there's hardly any space left to touch on the countless topics mentioned by the pen starting to take Roman notes. It’s through aimless wandering that you can freely follow every hint of entertainment and get to know Rome. Most of life happens in the streets, and for someone fresh from a country where town scenery is at least monotonous, the character and pictures seem to flourish. I realize with some regret that I’ve jumped into discussing Roman churches and walks without even mentioning St. Peter’s. People tend to go there on rainy days for exercise, to put it simply, and to fulfill that intention in both body and mind. As both a walk and a church, St. Peter’s undoubtedly stands alone. Even for someone casually strolling, it offers more than the Boulevards, Piccadilly, or Broadway, and even if it didn’t provide the grandest space in the world, it would still be the most entertaining. Few great works of art hold curiosity like this, capturing attention over and over again. You think you’ve seen it all, but it expands, it rises in grandeur, leaving you feeling inadequate. You never let the heavy leather curtain drop behind you—your weak attempt to lift a tiny edge of its vastness feels like just folding back a tiny corner of some massive book—without feeling that every previous visit was just a failed attempt to truly understand, and that this moment is your first real engagement. The usual question is whether one is disappointed by its size, but I hope a few honest souls will always say no. From the very beginning, the place struck me as the largest thing imaginable—a true elevation of one’s sense of space; entering it, even from the vast empty square that either blazes under the deep blue sky or casts cool shadows of its immense front, feels less like going inside and more like stepping out into something grand. A person seeking new thrills might not know a better place for the sublime shock that leaves them gasping right at the entrance. There are days when the huge nave seems even more immense than usual, and the beautiful baldachino appears to stretch further across the extensive patterned pavement, with light taking on a quality that allows everything to seem larger, while the scattered figures—I mean the people, since there are plenty of others—happily illustrate the scale of everything. Then you can just walk around and look; watch the glorious altar canopy lift its bronze architecture, its gigantic, intricate curves, like a temple within a temple, and feel yourself shrinking to a tiny dot at the bottom of the vast dome.
Much of the constituted beauty resides in the fact that it is all general beauty, that you are appealed to by no specific details, or that these at least, practically never importunate, are as taken for granted as the lieutenants and captains are taken for granted in a great standing army—among whom indeed individual aspects may figure here the rather shifting range of decorative dignity in which details, when observed, often prove poor (though never not massive and substantially precious) and sometimes prove ridiculous. The sculptures, with the sole exception of Michael Angelo’s ineffable “Pieta,” which lurks obscurely in a side-chapel—this indeed to my sense the rarest artistic combination of the greatest things the hand of man has produced—are either bad or indifferent; and the universal incrustation of marble, though sumptuous enough, has a less brilliant effect than much later work of the same sort, that for instance of St. Paul’s without the Walls. The supreme beauty is the splendidly sustained simplicity of the whole. The thing represents a prodigious imagination extraordinarily strained, yet strained, at its happiest pitch, without breaking. Its happiest pitch I say, because this is the only creation of its strenuous author in presence of which you are in presence of serenity. You may invoke the idea of ease at St. Peter’s without a sense of sacrilege—which you can hardly do, if you are at all spiritually nervous, in Westminster Abbey or Notre Dame. The vast enclosed clearness has much to do with the idea. There are no shadows to speak of, no marked effects of shade; only effects of light innumerably—points at which this element seems to mass itself in airy density and scatter itself in enchanting gradations and cadences. It performs the office of gloom or of mystery in Gothic churches; hangs like a rolling mist along the gilded vault of the nave, melts into bright interfusion the mosaic scintillations of the dome, clings and clusters and lingers, animates the whole huge and otherwise empty shell. A good Catholic, I suppose, is the same Catholic anywhere, before the grandest as well as the humblest altars; but to a visitor not formally enrolled St. Peter’s speaks less of aspiration than of full and convenient assurance. The soul infinitely expands there, if one will, but all on its quite human level. It marvels at the reach of our dreams and the immensity of our resources. To be so impressed and put in our place, we say, is to be sufficiently “saved”; we can’t be more than the heaven itself; and what specifically celestial beauty such a show or such a substitute may lack it makes up for in certainty and tangibility. And yet if one’s hours on the scene are not actually spent in praying, the spirit seeks it again as for the finer comfort, for the blessing, exactly, of its example, its protection and its exclusion. When you are weary of the swarming democracy of your fellow-tourists, of the unremunerative aspects of human nature on Corso and Pincio, of the oppressively frequent combination of coronets on carriage panels and stupid faces in carriages, of addled brains and lacquered boots, of ruin and dirt and decay, of priests and beggars and takers of advantage, of the myriad tokens of a halting civilisation, the image of the great temple depresses the balance of your doubts, seems to rise above even the highest tide of vulgarity and make you still believe in the heroic will and the heroic act. It’s a relief, in other words, to feel that there’s nothing but a cab-fare between your pessimism and one of the greatest of human achievements.
Much of the beauty lies in its overall quality; it doesn’t rely on specific details, or at least those details are rarely intrusive and are taken for granted, much like the lieutenants and captains in a large standing army. Individual features may appear as part of a shifting array of decorative grace, where the details, when noticed, often seem inadequate (though they’re always impressive and significantly valuable) and sometimes even absurd. The sculptures, except for Michelangelo’s indescribable “Pieta,” which is tucked away in a side chapel—truly the rarest artistic blend of the finest achievements of humankind—are mostly unimpressive or average. The overall marble facade, while luxurious, is less striking than later works of a similar kind, such as St. Paul’s Outside the Walls. The ultimate beauty comes from the magnificently maintained simplicity of the whole. It showcases an immense imagination that is extraordinarily pushed to its limits yet holds together without collapsing. I say "happiest pitch" because this is the one creation of its dedicated author where you feel a sense of peace. You can think of ease at St. Peter’s without feeling sacrilegious—something you can hardly do if you’re spiritually sensitive in Westminster Abbey or Notre Dame. The vast, open brightness contributes significantly to this feeling. There are hardly any shadows, no strong contrasts; just countless effects of light—places where this element seems to gather in airy density and disperse in beautiful shades and rhythms. It serves the purpose of gloom or mystery in Gothic churches; it hangs like a rolling mist along the gilded ceiling of the nave, blends the bright mosaic sparkles of the dome, clings and clusters, and brings the entire large and otherwise empty structure to life. A good Catholic is likely to be the same person anywhere, before the grandest or humblest altars; but for a visitor not formally a part of the faith, St. Peter’s evokes more comfort than aspiration. The soul can expand there, if one chooses, but it remains grounded in human experience. It astonishes us with the scale of our dreams and the vastness of our capabilities. Feeling such awe and humility, we think, is enough to make us “saved”; after all, what more can we achieve than paradise itself? Any specific heavenly beauty this experience might lack is compensated for by its certainty and tangible nature. And yet, if your time spent there isn’t fully dedicated to prayer, your spirit longs for it again, seeking solace in the comfort of its example, its protection, and its embrace. When you grow weary of the crowded chaos of fellow tourists, the frustrating sides of human nature on Corso and Pincio, the incessant display of noble titles on carriage panels paired with dull faces, the confusion and pretentiousness, the decay and dirt, the priests, beggars, and opportunists, and the countless signs of a struggling civilization, the image of the great temple tips the scale of your doubts, seems to elevate even above the peak of vulgarity, and makes you still believe in human will and noble actions. In other words, it’s a relief to realize that there’s only a cab ride between your pessimism and one of humanity’s greatest achievements.
{Illustration: THE COLONNADE OF ST. PETER, ROME.}
{Illustration: THE COLONNADE OF ST. PETER, ROME.}
This might serve as a Lenten peroration to these remarks of mine which have strayed so woefully from their jovial text, save that I ought fairly to confess that my last impression of the Carnival was altogether Carnivalesque.. The merry-making of Shrove Tuesday had life and felicity; the dead letter of tradition broke out into nature and grace. I pocketed my scepticism and spent a long afternoon on the Corso. Almost every one was a masker, but you had no need to conform; the pelting rain of confetti effectually disguised you. I can’t say I found it all very exhilarating; but here and there I noticed a brighter episode—a capering clown inflamed with contagious jollity, some finer humourist forming a circle every thirty yards to crow at his indefatigable sallies. One clever performer so especially pleased me that I should have been glad to catch a glimpse of the natural man. You imagined for him that he was taking a prodigious intellectual holiday and that his gaiety was in inverse ratio to his daily mood. Dressed as a needy scholar, in an ancient evening-coat and with a rusty black hat and gloves fantastically patched, he carried a little volume carefully under his arm. His humours were in excellent taste, his whole manner the perfection of genteel comedy. The crowd seemed to relish him vastly, and he at once commanded a glee-fully attentive audience. Many of his sallies I lost; those I caught were excellent. His trick was often to begin by taking some one urbanely and caressingly by the chin and complimenting him on the intelligenza della sua fisionomia. I kept near him as long as I could; for he struck me as a real ironic artist, cherishing a disinterested, and yet at the same time a motived and a moral, passion for the grotesque. I should have liked, however—if indeed I shouldn’t have feared—to see him the next morning, or when he unmasked that night over his hard-earned supper in a smoky trattoria. As the evening went on the crowd thickened and became a motley press of shouting, pushing, scrambling, everything but squabbling, revellers. The rain of missiles ceased at dusk, but the universal deposit of chalk and flour was trampled into a cloud made lurid by flaring pyramids of the gas-lamps that replaced for the occasion the stingy Roman luminaries. Early in the evening came off the classic exhibition of the moccoletti, which I but half saw, like a languid reporter resigned beforehand to be cashiered for want of enterprise. From the mouth of a side-street, over a thousand heads, I caught a huge slow-moving illuminated car, from which blue-lights and rockets and Roman candles were in course of discharge, meeting all in a dim fuliginous glare far above the house-tops. It was like a glimpse of some public orgy in ancient Babylon. In the small hours of the morning, walking homeward from a private entertainment, I found Ash Wednesday still kept at bay. The Corso, flaring with light, smelt like a circus. Every one was taking friendly liberties with every one else and using up the dregs of his festive energy in convulsive hootings and gymnastics. Here and there certain indefatigable spirits, clad all in red after the manner of devils and leaping furiously about with torches, were supposed to affright you. But they shared the universal geniality and bequeathed me no midnight fears as a pretext for keeping Lent, the carnevale dei preti, as I read in that profanely radical sheet the Capitale. Of this too I have been having glimpses. Going lately into Santa Francesca Romana, the picturesque church near the Temple of Peace, I found a feast for the eyes—a dim crimson-toned light through curtained windows, a great festoon of tapers round the altar, a bulging girdle of lamps before the sunken shrine beneath, and a dozen white-robed Dominicans scattered in the happiest composition on the pavement. It was better than the moccoletti.
This might serve as a Lenten conclusion to my comments, which have strayed so far from their cheerful intent, except I should admit that my last impression of the Carnival was entirely in the spirit of celebration. The festivities of Shrove Tuesday were full of life and happiness; the rigid traditions burst into nature and grace. I set aside my skepticism and spent a long afternoon on the Corso. Almost everyone was in costume, but you didn't have to conform; the shower of confetti effectively disguised you. I can't say I found it all that exciting; but here and there, I noticed a more lively moment—a dancing clown filled with infectious joy, some witty performer gathering a crowd every thirty yards to enjoy his never-ending jokes. One clever performer impressed me so much that I would have liked to see his true self. You could imagine he was taking an immense intellectual break and that his joy was the opposite of his usual mood. Dressed as a struggling scholar in an old evening coat, with a worn black hat and gloves absurdly patched, he carried a small book carefully under his arm. His humor was of excellent taste, and his entire demeanor was the epitome of refined comedy. The crowd seemed to really enjoy him, and he quickly gained a joyfully attentive audience. I missed many of his jokes; those I heard were brilliant. His trick was often to start by gently taking someone by the chin and complimenting them on their "intelligence of features." I stuck close to him for as long as I could; he struck me as a true ironic artist, nurturing a selfless yet motivated and moral passion for the grotesque. However, I would have liked—if I weren't afraid—to see him the next morning, or when he unmasked that night over his hard-earned supper in a smoky trattoria. As the evening progressed, the crowd thickened into a colorful mass of shouting, pushing, scrambling, everything but bickering, revelers. The rain of confetti stopped at dusk, but the universal covering of chalk and flour was trampled into a cloud lit by the bright gas lamps that replaced the usual stingy Roman lights. Early in the evening, the classic display of the moccoletti took place, which I only half saw, like a tired journalist already resigned to being dismissed for lack of initiative. From the mouth of a side street, over a thousand heads, I caught sight of a huge, slowly moving illuminated float, from which blue lights, rockets, and Roman candles were being launched, merging into a dim, smoky glow far above the rooftops. It was like a glimpse of some public celebration in ancient Babylon. In the early hours of the morning, walking home from a private event, I found Ash Wednesday still held off. The Corso, ablaze with light, smelled like a circus. Everyone was taking friendly liberties with each other, using up the last of their festive energy in loud cheers and gymnastics. Here and there, some tireless spirits, dressed entirely in red like devils and jumping around wildly with torches, were meant to scare you. But they shared the universal cheerfulness and left me with no midnight fears as an excuse to keep Lent, the carnevale dei preti, as I read in that provocatively radical paper, the Capitale. I've glimpsed this too. Recently, when I went into Santa Francesca Romana, the picturesque church near the Temple of Peace, I found a visual feast—a soft crimson glow through curtained windows, a grand garland of candles around the altar, a heavy band of lamps before the sunken shrine beneath, and a dozen white-robed Dominicans scattered joyfully on the pavement. It was better than the moccoletti.
1873.
ROMAN RIDES
I shall always remember the first I took: out of the Porta del Popolo, to where the Ponte Molle, whose single arch sustains a weight of historic tradition, compels the sallow Tiber to flow between its four great-mannered ecclesiastical statues, over the crest of the hill and along the old posting-road to Florence. It was mild midwinter, the season peculiarly of colour on the Roman Campagna; and the light was full of that mellow purple glow, that tempered intensity, which haunts the after-visions of those who have known Rome like the memory of some supremely irresponsible pleasure. An hour away I pulled up and at the edge of a meadow gazed away for some time into remoter distances. Then and there, it seemed to me, I measured the deep delight of knowing the Campagna. But I saw more things in it than I can easily tell. The country rolled away around me into slopes and dells of long-drawn grace, chequered with purple and blue and blooming brown. The lights and shadows were at play on the Sabine Mountains—an alternation of tones so exquisite as to be conveyed only by some fantastic comparison to sapphire and amber. In the foreground a contadino in his cloak and peaked hat jogged solitary on his ass; and here and there in the distance, among blue undulations, some white village, some grey tower, helped deliciously to make the picture the typical “Italian landscape” of old-fashioned art. It was so bright and yet so sad, so still and yet so charged, to the supersensuous ear, with the murmur of an extinguished life, that you could only say it was intensely and adorably strange, could only impute to the whole overarched scene an unsurpassed secret for bringing tears of appreciation to no matter how ignorant—archaeologically ignorant—eyes. To ride once, in these conditions, is of course to ride again and to allot to the Campagna a generous share of the time one spends in Rome.
I will always remember the first ride I took: out of the Porta del Popolo, toward the Ponte Molle, whose single arch carries a heavy weight of history, forcing the murky Tiber to flow between its four grand ecclesiastical statues, over the hill and along the old posting road to Florence. It was a mild midwinter, a season particularly vibrant on the Roman Campagna; and the light was filled with that soft purple glow, that gentle intensity, which lingers in the memories of those who have known Rome like a memory of some wonderfully carefree pleasure. An hour later, I stopped and, at the edge of a meadow, gazed into the distant horizon for a while. At that moment, it felt like I measured the profound joy of experiencing the Campagna. But I noticed more than I can easily describe. The landscape rolled around me into graceful slopes and valleys, patterned with shades of purple, blue, and blooming brown. The light and shadows danced on the Sabine Mountains—an alternation of colors so exquisite it could only be compared to sapphire and amber. In the foreground, a farmer in his cloak and peaked hat rode alone on his donkey; and here and there in the distance, among the blue hills, some white village, some grey tower, beautifully added to the typical “Italian landscape” of classic art. It was so bright yet so melancholic, so still yet so resonant, to the hypersensitive ear, with the murmur of a lost life, that all you could say was that it was intensely and adorably strange. You could only attribute to the entire magnificent scene an unmatched power to bring tears of appreciation to even the most uninformed—archaeologically ignorant—eyes. To ride once under these conditions is, of course, to ride again and to give the Campagna a generous share of the time one spends in Rome.
It is a pleasure that doubles one’s horizon, and one can scarcely say whether it enlarges or limits one’s impression of the city proper. It certainly makes St. Peter’s seem a trifle smaller and blunts the edge of one’s curiosity in the Forum. It must be the effect of the experience, at all extended, that when you think of Rome afterwards you will think still respectfully and regretfully enough of the Vatican and the Pincio, the streets and the picture-making street life; but will even more wonder, with an irrepressible contraction of the heart, when again you shall feel yourself bounding over the flower-smothered turf, or pass from one framed picture to another beside the open arches of the crumbling aqueducts. You look back at the City so often from some grassy hill-top—hugely compact within its walls, with St. Peter’s overtopping all things and yet seeming small, and the vast girdle of marsh and meadow receding on all sides to the mountains and the sea—that you come to remember it at last as hardly more than a respectable parenthesis in a great sweep of generalisation. Within the walls, on the other hand, you think of your intended ride as the most romantic of all your possibilities; of the Campagna generally as an illimitable experience. One’s rides certainly give Rome an inordinate scope for the reflective—by which I suppose I mean after all the aesthetic and the “esoteric”—life. To dwell in a city which, much as you grumble at it, is after all very fairly a modern city; with crowds and shops and theatres and cafes and balls and receptions and dinner-parties, and all the modern confusion of social pleasures and pains; to have at your door the good and evil of it all; and yet to be able in half an hour to gallop away and leave it a hundred miles, a hundred years, behind, and to look at the tufted broom glowing on a lonely tower-top in the still blue air, and the pale pink asphodels trembling none the less for the stillness, and the shaggy-legged shepherds leaning on their sticks in motionless brotherhood with the heaps of ruin, and the scrambling goats and staggering little kids treading out wild desert smells from the top of hollow-sounding mounds; and then to come back through one of the great gates and a couple of hours later find yourself in the “world,” dressed, introduced, entertained, inquiring, talking about “Middlemarch” to a young English lady or listening to Neapolitan songs from a gentleman in a very low-cut shirt—all this is to lead in a manner a double life and to gather from the hurrying hours more impressions than a mind of modest capacity quite knows how to dispose of.
It’s a joy that expands your perspective, and it’s hard to say if it enhances or restricts your view of the city itself. It definitely makes St. Peter’s seem a bit smaller and dulls your curiosity about the Forum. It must be the overall experience that, when you think of Rome later, you’ll still think fondly and nostalgically about the Vatican and the Pincio, the streets, and the lively street scene; but even more, you'll be amazed, with an uncontainable ache in your heart, when you find yourself wandering over the flower-covered fields or moving from one beautiful scene to another beside the open arches of the crumbling aqueducts. You often look back at the City from some grassy hill—solidly contained within its walls, with St. Peter’s towering over everything yet appearing small, and the vast circle of marsh and meadow stretching out to the mountains and the sea—such that you eventually recall it as little more than a respectable aside in a larger narrative. Inside the walls, however, you see your intended ride as the most romantic of all your options; the Campagna in general feels like an endless adventure. Your rides definitely give Rome an extraordinary depth for reflection—by which I mean ultimately the aesthetic and the “esoteric”—life. To live in a city that, even if you grumble about it, is quite modern; with crowds and shops and theaters and cafes and parties and receptions and dinner gatherings, along with all the contemporary chaos of social pleasures and pains; to have both its good and bad at your doorstep; and yet to be able to gallop away in half an hour and leave it a hundred miles, a hundred years behind, and to see the blooming broom shining on a lonely tower top in the calm blue sky, and the pale pink asphodels quivering despite the stillness, and the shaggy shepherds resting on their sticks in silent camaraderie with the ruins, and the climbing goats and staggering kids kicking up wild desert scents from the tops of echoing mounds; and then to return through one of the grand gates and find yourself back in the “world” a couple of hours later, dressed up, introduced, entertained, discussing “Middlemarch” with a young English lady or enjoying Neapolitan songs from a guy in a very low-cut shirt—all of this creates the feeling of living a double life and collecting more impressions from the passing hours than a person of modest understanding knows how to manage.
I touched lately upon this theme with a friend who, I fancied, would understand me, and who immediately assured me that he had just spent a day that this mingled diversity of sensation made to the days one spends elsewhere what an uncommonly good novel may be to the daily paper. “There was an air of idleness about it, if you will,” he said, “and it was certainly pleasant enough to have been wrong. Perhaps, being after all unused to long stretches of dissipation, this was why I had a half-feeling that I was reading an odd chapter in the history of a person very much more of a héros de roman than myself.” Then he proceeded to relate how he had taken a long ride with a lady whom he extremely admired. “We turned off from the Tor di Quinto Road to that castellated farm-house you know of—once a Ghibelline fortress—whither Claude Lorraine used to come to paint pictures of which the surrounding landscape is still so artistically, so compositionally, suggestive. We went into the inner court, a cloister almost, with the carven capitals of its loggia columns, and looked at a handsome child swinging shyly against the half-opened door of a room whose impenetrable shadow, behind her, made her, as it were, a sketch in bituminous water-colours. We talked with the farmer, a handsome, pale, fever-tainted fellow with a well-to-do air that didn’t in the least deter his affability from a turn compatible with the acceptance of small coin; and then we galloped away and away over the meadows which stretch with hardly a break to Veii. The day was strangely delicious, with a cool grey sky and just a touch of moisture in the air stirred by our rapid motion. The Campagna, in the colourless even light, was more solemn and romantic than ever; and a ragged shepherd, driving a meagre straggling flock, whom we stopped to ask our way of, was a perfect type of pastoral, weather-beaten misery. He was precisely the shepherd for the foreground of a scratchy etching. There were faint odours of spring in the air, and the grass here and there was streaked with great patches of daisies; but it was spring with a foreknowledge of autumn, a day to be enjoyed with a substrain of sadness, the foreboding of regret, a day somehow to make one feel as if one had seen and felt a great deal—quite, as I say, like a heros de roman. Touching such characters, it was the illustrious Pelham, I think, who, on being asked if he rode, replied that he left those violent exercises to the ladies. But under such a sky, in such an air, over acres of daisied turf, a long, long gallop is certainly a supersubtle joy. The elastic bound of your horse is the poetry of motion; and if you are so happy as to add to it not the prose of companionship riding comes almost to affect you as a spiritual exercise. My gallop, at any rate,” said my friend, “threw me into a mood which gave an extraordinary zest to the rest of the day.” He was to go to a dinner-party at a villa on the edge of Rome, and Madam X—, who was also going, called for him in her carriage. “It was a long drive,” he went on, “through the Forum, past the Colosseum. She told me a long story about a most interesting person. Toward the end my eyes caught through the carriage window a slab of rugged sculptures. We were passing under the Arch of Constantine. In the hall pavement of the villa is a rare antique mosaic—one of the largest and most perfect; the ladies on their way to the drawing-room trail over it the flounces of Worth. We drove home late, and there’s my day.”
I recently talked about this theme with a friend whom I thought would understand me. He immediately told me that he had just spent a day where the mix of sensations made it as significant as a really good novel compared to a daily newspaper. “There was definitely a sense of idleness about it,” he said, “and it was certainly nice to be proven wrong. Maybe, since I’m not used to long stretches of carefree enjoyment, that’s why I felt like I was reading an unusual chapter in the life of someone who is much more of a hero in a novel than I am.” Then he went on to describe how he took a long ride with a lady he admired. “We turned off from the Tor di Quinto Road to that castle-like farmhouse you know about—once a Ghibelline fortress—where Claude Lorraine used to come to paint pictures that are still so artistically and compositionally inspiring. We went into the inner courtyard, almost like a cloister, with the carved capitals of its loggia columns, and saw a beautiful child swinging shyly against the half-open door of a room, the deep shadow behind her making her look like a sketch in dark watercolors. We chatted with the farmer, a handsome, pale guy with a well-to-do air that didn’t stop him from being friendly enough to accept small change; and then we galloped away over the meadows that stretch almost uninterrupted to Veii. The day felt oddly delightful, with a cool gray sky and just a hint of moisture in the air stirring from our quick pace. The Campagna, in the flat even light, looked more serious and romantic than ever; and a scruffy shepherd, herding a thin, scattered flock, whom we stopped to ask for directions, was a perfect example of weary pastoral life. He was exactly the kind of shepherd for the foreground of a rough etching. There were faint scents of spring in the air, and patches of daisies splashed across the grass here and there; but it was spring with a hint of autumn, a day to enjoy with an underlying sadness, a feeling of regret, a day that made you feel as if you’d experienced a lot—just like I mentioned, like a hero in a novel. Speaking of such characters, I think it was the distinguished Pelham who, when asked if he rode, replied that he left those strenuous activities to the ladies. But under such a sky, in such air, over fields of daisied grass, a long gallop truly is a subtle joy. The springy bounce of your horse is the poetry of movement; and if you’re lucky enough not to have the prose of companionship, riding can almost feel like a spiritual experience. My gallop, at least,” said my friend, “put me in a mood that added an extraordinary zest to the rest of the day.” He was heading to a dinner party at a villa on the edge of Rome, and Madam X—, who was also going, picked him up in her carriage. “It was a long drive,” he continued, “through the Forum, past the Colosseum. She told me an interesting story about a fascinating person. Toward the end, my eyes caught a glimpse of some rough sculptures through the carriage window. We were passing under the Arch of Constantine. In the hall of the villa is a rare antique mosaic—one of the largest and most perfect; the ladies on their way to the drawing room trail their Worth gowns over it. We drove home late, and that’s my day.”
On your exit from most of the gates of Rome you have generally half-an-hour’s progress through winding lanes, many of which are hardly less charming than the open meadows. On foot the walls and high hedges would vex you and spoil your walk; but in the saddle you generally overtop them, to an endless peopling of the minor vision. Yet a Roman wall in the springtime is for that matter almost as interesting as anything it conceals. Crumbling grain by grain, coloured and mottled to a hundred tones by sun and storm, with its rugged structure of brick extruding through its coarse complexion of peeling stucco, its creeping lacework of wandering ivy starred with miniature violets, and its wild fringe of stouter flowers against the sky—it is as little as possible a blank partition; it is practically a luxury of landscape. At the moment at which I write, in mid-April, all the ledges and cornices are wreathed with flaming poppies, nodding there as if they knew so well what faded greys and yellows are an offset to their scarlet. But the best point in a dilapidated enclosing surface of vineyard or villa is of course the gateway, lifting its great arch of cheap rococo scroll-work, its balls and shields and mossy dish-covers—as they always perversely figure to me—and flanked with its dusky cypresses. I never pass one without taking out my mental sketch-book and jotting it down as a vignette in the insubstantial record of my ride. They are as sad and dreary as if they led to the moated grange where Mariana waited in desperation for something to happen; and it’s easy to take the usual inscription over the porch as a recommendation to those who enter to renounce all hope of anything but a glass of more or less agreeably acrid vino romano. For what you chiefly see over the walls and at the end of the straight short avenue of rusty cypresses are the appurtenances of a vigna—a couple of acres of little upright sticks blackening in the sun, and a vast sallow-faced, scantily windowed mansion, whose expression denotes little of the life of the mind beyond what goes to the driving of a hard bargain over the tasted hogsheads. If Mariana is there she certainly has no pile of old magazines to beguile her leisure. The life of the mind, if the term be in any application here not ridiculous, appears to any asker of curious questions, as he wanders about Rome, the very thinnest deposit of the past. Within the rococo gateway, which itself has a vaguely esthetic self-consciousness, at the end of the cypress walk, you will probably see a mythological group in rusty marble—a Cupid and Psyche, a Venus and Paris, an Apollo and Daphne—the relic of an age when a Roman proprietor thought it fine to patronise the arts. But I imagine you are safe in supposing it to constitute the only allusion savouring of culture that has been made on the premises for three or four generations.
On your way out of most of the gates of Rome, you typically have about half an hour of winding paths, many of which are nearly as lovely as the open fields. Walking, the walls and tall hedges can be annoying and ruin your stroll; but on horseback, you usually rise above them, giving you an endless view of the smaller details. Still, a Roman wall in springtime is almost as interesting as anything it hides. Slowly breaking down, painted in dozens of shades by sun and rain, with its rugged brick structure poking through the peeling stucco, its intricate lace of wandering ivy dotted with tiny violets, and its wild fringe of sturdier flowers against the sky—it is far from just a blank barrier; it’s practically a visual delight. Right now, in mid-April, all the ledges and edges are adorned with bright poppies, bobbing as if they know exactly what dull greys and yellows contrast with their vivid red. But the most striking feature of a run-down vineyard or villa is, of course, the gateway, with its grand arch of cheap rococo scrolls, its balls and shields and mossy dish covers—those always whimsical elements in my mind—and flanked by dark cypress trees. I never pass one without pulling out my mental sketchbook to note it down as a vignette in the fleeting record of my ride. They seem as sad and gloomy as if they led to the moated grange where Mariana waited desperately for something to happen; and it’s easy to interpret the usual inscription over the entrance as a warning to anyone entering to give up all hope of anything beyond a glass of more or less bitter vino romano. What you mostly see over the walls and at the end of the short, straight avenue of rusty cypress trees are fixtures of a vigna—a couple of acres of little upright sticks darkening in the sun, and a large, pale-faced mansion with few windows, whose expression suggests little of intellectual life beyond negotiating hard deals over the tasted barrels. If Mariana is there, she certainly has no stack of old magazines to pass the time. The life of the mind, if we can even call it that here without sounding ridiculous, seems to any curious wanderer around Rome to be just a thin layer of the past. Inside the rococo gateway, which has a vaguely artistic self-awareness, at the end of the cypress path, you’ll likely see a mythological group in rusty marble—a Cupid and Psyche, a Venus and Paris, an Apollo and Daphne—the remains of an era when a Roman owner thought it was classy to support the arts. But I believe it’s safe to say that this is the only nod to culture that has taken place on the premises in three or four generations.
There is a franker cheerfulness—though certainly a proper amount of that forlornness which lurks about every object to which the Campagna forms a background—in the primitive little taverns where, on the homeward stretch, in the waning light, you are often glad to rein up and demand a bottle of their best. Their best and their worst are indeed the same, though with a shifting price, and plain vino bianco or vino rosso (rarely both) is the sole article of refreshment in which they deal. There is a ragged bush over the door, and within, under a dusky vault, on crooked cobble-stones, sit half-a-dozen contadini in their indigo jackets and goatskin breeches and with their elbows on the table. There is generally a rabble of infantile beggars at the door, pretty enough in their dusty rags, with their fine eyes and intense Italian smile, to make you forget your private vow of doing your individual best I to make these people, whom you like so much, unlearn their old vices. Was Porta Pia bombarded three years ago that Peppino should still grow up to whine for a copper? But the Italian shells had no direct message for Peppino’s stomach—and you are going to a dinner-party at a villa. So Peppino “points” an instant for the copper in the dust and grows up a Roman beggar. The whole little place represents the most primitive form of hostelry; but along any of the roads leading out of the city you may find establishments of a higher type, with Garibaldi, superbly mounted and foreshortened, painted on the wall, or a lady in a low-necked dress opening a fictive lattice with irresistible hospitality, and a yard with the classic vine-wreathed arbour casting thin shadows upon benches and tables draped and cushioned with the white dust from which the highways from the gates borrow most of their local colour. None the less, I say, you avoid the highroads, and, if you are a person of taste, don’t grumble at the occasional need of following the walls of the city. City walls, to a properly constituted American, can never be an object of indifference; and it is emphatically “no end of a sensation” to pace in the shadow of this massive cincture of Rome. I have found myself, as I skirted its base, talking of trivial things, but never without a sudden reflection on the deplorable impermanence of first impressions. A twelvemonth ago the raw plank fences of a Boston suburb, inscribed with the virtues of healing drugs, bristled along my horizon: now I glance with idle eyes at a compacted antiquity in which a more learned sense may read portentous dates and signs—Servius, Aurelius, Honorius. But even to idle eyes the prodigious, the continuous thing bristles with eloquent passages. In some places, where the huge brickwork is black with time and certain strange square towers look down at you with still blue eyes, the Roman sky peering through lidless loopholes, and there is nothing but white dust in the road and solitude in the air, I might take myself for a wandering Tartar touching on the confines of the Celestial Empire. The wall of China must have very much such a gaunt robustness. The colour of the Roman ramparts is everywhere fine, and their rugged patchwork has been subdued by time and weather into a mellow harmony that the brush only asks to catch up. On the northern side of the city, behind the Vatican, St. Peter’s and the Trastevere, I have seen them glowing in the late afternoon with the tones of ancient bronze and rusty gold. Here at various points they are embossed with the Papal insignia, the tiara with its flying bands and crossed keys; to the high style of which the grace that attaches to almost any lost cause—even if not quite the “tender” grace of a day that is dead—considerably adds a style. With the dome of St. Peter’s resting on their cornice and the hugely clustered architecture of the Vatican rising from them as from a terrace, they seem indeed the valid bulwark of an ecclesiastical city. Vain bulwark, alas! sighs the sentimental tourist, fresh from the meagre entertainment of this latter Holy Week. But he may find monumental consolation in this neighbourhood at a source where, as I pass, I never fail to apply for it. At half-an-hour’s walk beyond Porta San Pancrazio, beneath the wall of the Villa Doria, is a delightfully pompous ecclesiastical gateway of the seventeenth century, erected by Paul V to commemorate his restoration of the aqueducts through which the stream bearing his name flows towards the fine florid portico protecting its clear-sheeted outgush on the crest of the Janiculan. It arches across the road in the most ornamental manner of the period, and one can hardly pause before it without seeming to assist at a ten minutes’ revival of old Italy—without feeling as if one were in a cocked hat and sword and were coming up to Rome, in another mood than Luther’s, with a letter of recommendation to the mistress of a cardinal.
There’s a more straightforward cheerfulness—though certainly a fair amount of that sadness that hangs around every object in the Campagna— in the little taverns where, during the homeward stretch, in the fading light, you often feel glad to stop and ask for a bottle of their best. Their best and their worst are really the same, just at different prices, and plain vino bianco or vino rosso (rarely both) is the only drink they offer. There’s a ragged bush over the door, and inside, under a dim ceiling, on uneven cobblestones, sit half a dozen farmers in their blue jackets and leather breeches, with their elbows on the table. There’s usually a group of young beggars at the door, looking charming in their tattered clothes, with their bright eyes and warm Italian smiles, making you forget your personal vow to do your best to help these people, whom you like so much, unlearn their old habits. Did the bombardment of Porta Pia three years ago just for Peppino to grow up asking for spare change? But the Italian shells didn’t offer anything for Peppino’s hunger—and you’re off to a dinner party at a villa. So Peppino quickly points to a coin in the dust and grows up into a Roman beggar. The whole little place represents the most basic form of inn; however, along the roads leading out of the city, you might find establishments of a higher sort, with Garibaldi, majestically posed and foreshortened, painted on the wall, or a lady in a low-cut dress opening a fictional window with irresistible hospitality, and a yard with a classic vine-covered arbor casting thin shadows on benches and tables draped and cushioned with white dust that the highways borrow most of their local color from. Still, I say, you avoid the main roads, and if you have taste, don’t complain about having to follow the city walls occasionally. City walls can never be indifferent to a true American; and it’s definitely “no end of a sensation” to walk in the shadow of this massive embrace of Rome. As I walked along its base, I found myself talking about trivial things, but never without a sudden thought on the sad impermanence of first impressions. A year ago, the raw wooden fences of a Boston suburb, covered with ads for healing drugs, filled my view: now I glance with indifferent eyes at a dense history in which a more educated eye can read significant dates and signs—Servius, Aurelius, Honorius. But even to casual observers, the immense, continuous wall is filled with striking details. In some areas, where the huge brickwork is dark with age and certain odd square towers gaze down at you with still blue eyes, the Roman sky peering through open loopholes, and there’s only white dust on the road and solitude in the air, I might think of myself as a wandering Tartar at the edges of the Celestial Empire. The Great Wall of China must have a similar stark sturdiness. The color of the Roman ramparts is always stunning, and their rugged patchwork has been softened by time and weather into a warm harmony that begs to be captured by a painter's brush. On the northern side of the city, behind the Vatican, St. Peter’s, and Trastevere, I’ve seen them glowing in the late afternoon with tones of ancient bronze and rusty gold. Here, at various points, they are adorned with the Papal insignia, the tiara with its waving ribbons and crossed keys; to which the elegance that comes with almost any lost cause—even if not exactly the “tender” elegance of a bygone day—adds quite a bit of style. With the dome of St. Peter’s resting on their ledge and the massive architecture of the Vatican rising from them like a terrace, they truly seem like the solid defense of a religious city. A vain defense, alas! sighs the sentimental tourist, just back from the meager entertainment of this last Holy Week. But he may find monumental comfort in this area at a spot where, as I pass by, I never fail to stop for it. Half an hour's walk beyond Porta San Pancrazio, under the wall of the Villa Doria, is a delightfully grand ecclesiastical gateway from the seventeenth century, built by Paul V to celebrate his repair of the aqueducts through which the stream named after him flows toward the elegant portico that protects its clear outflow at the top of the Janiculan. It arches over the road in the most decorative style of the era, and you can hardly pause before it without feeling like you’re part of a ten-minute revival of old Italy—without feeling like you’re in a cocked hat and sword coming to Rome, in a different mood than Luther’s, with a letter of recommendation to the mistress of a cardinal.
The Campagna differs greatly on the two sides of the Tiber; and it is hard to say which, for the rider, has the greater charm. The half-dozen rides you may take from Porta San Giovanni possess the perfection of traditional Roman interest and lead you through a far-strewn wilderness of ruins—a scattered maze of tombs and towers and nameless fragments of antique masonry. The landscape here has two great features; close before you on one side is the long, gentle swell of the Alban Hills, deeply, fantastically blue in most weathers, and marbled with the vague white masses of their scattered towns and villas. It would be difficult to draw the hard figure to a softer curve than that with which the heights sweep from Albano to the plain; this a perfect example of the classic beauty of line in the Italian landscape—that beauty which, when it fills the background of a picture, makes us look in the foreground for a broken column couched upon flowers and a shepherd piping to dancing nymphs. At your side, constantly, you have the broken line of the Claudian Aqueduct, carrying its broad arches far away into the plain. The meadows along which it lies are not the smoothest in the world for a gallop, but there is no pleasure greater than to wander near it. It stands knee-deep in the flower-strewn grass, and its rugged piers are hung with ivy as the columns of a church are draped for a festa. Every archway is a picture, massively framed, of the distance beyond—of the snow-tipped Sabines and lonely Soracte. As the spring advances the whole Campagna smiles and waves with flowers; but I think they are nowhere more rank and lovely than in the shifting shadow of the aqueducts, where they muffle the feet of the columns and smother the half-dozen brooks which wander in and out like silver meshes between the legs of a file of giants. They make a niche for themselves too in every crevice and tremble on the vault of the empty conduits. The ivy hereabouts in the springtime is peculiarly brilliant and delicate; and though it cloaks and muffles these Roman fragments far less closely than the castles and abbeys of England it hangs with the light elegance of all Italian vegetation. It is partly doubtless because their mighty outlines are still unsoftened that the aqueducts are so impressive. They seem the very source of the solitude in which they stand; they look like architectural spectres and loom through the light mists of their grassy desert, as you recede along the line, with the same insubstantial vastness as if they rose out of Egyptian sands. It is a great neighbourhood of ruins, many of which, it must be confessed, you have applauded in many an album. But station a peasant with sheepskin coat and bandaged legs in the shadow of a tomb or tower best known to drawing-room art, and scatter a dozen goats on the mound above him, and the picture has a charm which has not yet been sketched away.
The Campagna varies significantly on either side of the Tiber, making it hard to decide which side is more appealing for a rider. The rides you can take from Porta San Giovanni offer a perfect blend of classic Roman interest, leading you through an expansive landscape of ruins—a scattered maze of tombs, towers, and unnamed remnants of ancient stonework. The landscape has two main features: on one side, you have the long, gentle rise of the Alban Hills, a deep and fantastical blue in most weather, speckled with the white outlines of towns and villas. It's tough to find a sharper angle than the smooth curve of the heights transitioning from Albano to the plains; this exemplifies the classic beauty of Italian landscape lines, that beauty which, when filling a painting's background, draws our attention to the foreground where a broken column rests amidst flowers while a shepherd plays for dancing nymphs. Alongside you, continually, is the broken line of the Claudian Aqueduct, with its wide arches stretching far into the plain. The meadows around it aren't the smoothest for a gallop, but wandering near it brings immense joy. It stands knee-deep in flower-covered grass, and its rugged supports are draped in ivy like church columns festooned for a festival. Each arch frames a stunning view of the distant snow-capped Sabines and solitary Soracte. As spring unfolds, the entire Campagna bursts into color and blooms with flowers, yet they appear most vibrant and beautiful in the shifting shadow of the aqueducts, where they blanket the feet of the columns and conceal the half-dozen streams meandering like silver threads between the legs of these towering giants. They also find a place in every crevice and shimmer on the tops of the empty conduits. The ivy around here in spring is particularly vivid and delicate; though it covers these Roman fragments less densely than the castles and abbeys of England, it hangs with the light elegance typical of Italian flora. It’s partly because their impressive outlines remain unsoftened that the aqueducts feel so commanding. They seem to embody the solitude of the landscape they inhabit; they appear like architectural phantoms, emerging through the misty light of their grassy expanse, exuding the same ethereal grandeur as if they were rising from Egyptian sands. This area is rich in ruins, many of which you’ve admired in various albums. But place a peasant dressed in a sheepskin coat with bandaged legs in the shade of a well-known tomb or tower from drawing-room art, and scatter a dozen goats on the mound above him, and the scene possesses a charm that hasn’t yet been captured on canvas.
The other quarter of the Campagna has wider fields and smoother turf and perhaps a greater number of delightful rides; the earth is sounder, and there are fewer pitfalls and ditches. The land for the most part lies higher and catches more wind, and the grass is here and there for great stretches as smooth and level as a carpet. You have no Alban Mountains before you, but you have in the distance the waving ridge of the nearer Apennines, and west of them, along the course of the Tiber, the long seaward level of deep-coloured fields, deepening as they recede to the blue and purple of the sea itself. Beyond them, of a very clear day, you may see the glitter of the Mediterranean. These are the occasions perhaps to remember most fondly, for they lead you to enchanting nooks, and the landscape has details of the highest refinement. Indeed when my sense reverts to the lingering impressions of so blest a time, it seems a fool’s errand to have attempted to express them, and a waste of words to do more than recommend the reader to go citywards at twilight of the end of March, making for Porta Cavalleggieri, and note what he sees. At this hour the Campagna is to the last point its melancholy self, and I remember roadside “effects” of a strange and intense suggestiveness. Certain mean, mouldering villas behind grass-grown courts have an indefinably sinister look; there was one in especial of which it was impossible not to argue that a despairing creature must have once committed suicide there, behind bolted door and barred window, and that no one has since had the pluck to go in and see why he never came out. Every wayside mark of manners, of history, every stamp of the past in the country about Rome, touches my sense to a thrill, and I may thus exaggerate the appeal of very common things. This is the more likely because the appeal seems ever to rise out of heaven knows what depths of ancient trouble. To delight in the aspects of sentient ruin might appear a heartless pastime, and the pleasure, I confess, shows the note of perversity. The sombre and the hard are as common an influence from southern things as the soft and the bright, I think; sadness rarely fails to assault a northern observer when he misses what he takes for comfort. Beauty is no compensation for the loss, only making it more poignant. Enough beauty of climate hangs over these Roman cottages and farm-houses—beauty of light, of atmosphere and of vegetation; but their charm for the maker-out of the stories in things is the way the golden air shows off their desolation. Man lives more with Nature in Italy than in New or than in Old England; she does more work for him and gives him more holidays than in our short-summered climes, and his home is therefore much more bare of devices for helping him to do without her, forget her and forgive her. These reflections are perhaps the source of the character you find in a moss-coated stone stairway climbing outside of a wall; in a queer inner court, befouled with rubbish and drearily bare of convenience; in an ancient quaintly carven well, worked with infinite labour from an overhanging window; in an arbour of time-twisted vines under which you may sit with your feet in the dirt and remember as a dim fable that there are races for which the type of domestic allurement is the parlour hearth-rug. For reasons apparent or otherwise these things amuse me beyond expression, and I am never weary of staring into gateways, of lingering by dreary, shabby, half-barbaric farm-yards, of feasting a foolish gaze on sun-cracked plaster and unctuous indoor shadows. I mustn’t forget, however, that it’s not for wayside effects that one rides away behind St. Peter’s, but for the strong sense of wandering over boundless space, of seeing great classic lines of landscape, of watching them dispose themselves into pictures so full of “style” that you can think of no painter who deserves to have you admit that they suggest him—hardly knowing whether it is better pleasure to gallop far and drink deep of air and grassy distance and the whole delicious opportunity, or to walk and pause and linger, and try and grasp some ineffaceable memory of sky and colour and outline. Your pace can hardly help falling into a contemplative measure at the time, everywhere so wonderful, but in Rome so persuasively divine, when the winter begins palpably to soften and quicken. Far out on the Campagna, early in February, you feel the first vague earthly emanations, which in a few weeks come wandering into the heart of the city and throbbing through the close, dark streets. Springtime in Rome is an immensely poetic affair; but you must stand often far out in the ancient waste, between grass and sky, to measure its deep, full, steadily accelerated rhythm. The winter has an incontestable beauty, and is pre-eminently the time of colour—the time when it is no affectation, but homely verity, to talk about the “purple” tone of the atmosphere. As February comes and goes your purple is streaked with green and the rich, dark bloom of the distance begins to lose its intensity. But your loss is made up by other gains; none more precious than that inestimable gain to the ear—the disembodied voice of the lark. It comes with the early flowers, the white narcissus and the cyclamen, the half-buried violets and the pale anemones, and makes the whole atmosphere ring like a vault of tinkling glass. You never see the source of the sound, and are utterly unable to localise his note, which seems to come from everywhere at once, to be some hundred-throated voice of the air. Sometimes you fancy you just catch him, a mere vague spot against the blue, an intenser throb in the universal pulsation of light. As the weeks go on the flowers multiply and the deep blues and purples of the hills, turning to azure and violet, creep higher toward the narrowing snow-line of the Sabines. The temperature rises, the first hour of your ride you feel the heat, but you beguile it with brushing the hawthorn-blossoms as you pass along the hedges, and catching at the wild rose and honeysuckle; and when you get into the meadows there is stir enough in the air to lighten the dead weight of the sun. The Roman air, however, is not a tonic medicine, and it seldom suffers exercise to be all exhilarating. It has always seemed to me indeed part of the charm of the latter that your keenest consciousness is haunted with a vague languor. Occasionally when the sirocco blows that sensation becomes strange and exquisite. Then, under the grey sky, before the dim distances which the south-wind mostly brings with it, you seem to ride forth into a world from which all hope has departed and in which, in spite of the flowers that make your horse’s footfalls soundless, nothing is left save some queer probability that your imagination is unable to measure, but from which it hardly shrinks. This quality in the Roman element may now and then “relax” you almost to ecstasy; but a season of sirocco would be an overdose of morbid pleasure. You may at any rate best feel the peculiar beauty of the Campagna on those mild days of winter when the mere quality and temper of the sunshine suffice to move the landscape to joy, and you pause on the brown grass in the sunny stillness and, by listening long enough, almost fancy you hear the shrill of the midsummer cricket. It is detail and ornament that vary from month to month, from week to week even, and make your returns to the same places a constant feast of unexpectedness; but the great essential features of the prospect preserve throughout the year the same impressive serenity. Soracte, be it January or May, rises from its blue horizon like an island from the sea and with an elegance of contour which no mood of the year can deepen or diminish. You know it well; you have seen it often in the mellow backgrounds of Claude; and it has such an irresistibly classic, academic air that while you look at it you begin to take your saddle for a faded old arm-chair in a palace gallery. A month’s rides in different directions will show you a dozen prime Claudes. After I had seen them all I went piously to the Doria gallery to refresh my memory of its two famous specimens and to enjoy to the utmost their delightful air of reference to something that had become a part of my personal experience. Delightful it certainly is to feel the common element in one’s own sensibility and those of a genius whom that element has helped to do great things. Claude must have haunted the very places of one’s personal preference and adjusted their divine undulations to his splendid scheme of romance, his view of the poetry of life. He was familiar with aspects in which there wasn’t a single uncompromising line. I saw a few days ago a small finished sketch from his hand, in the possession of an American artist, which was almost startling in its clear reflection of forms unaltered by the two centuries that have dimmed and cracked the paint and canvas.
The other part of the Campagna has wider fields and smoother ground, and probably more enjoyable riding paths; the soil is better, and there are fewer holes and ditches. The land is mostly higher and catches more wind, with stretches of grass that are as smooth and flat as a carpet. You don’t see the Alban Mountains in front of you, but in the distance, there's the undulating ridge of the nearby Apennines, and west of them, along the Tiber River, the long expanse of colorful fields deepens as they stretch toward the blue and purple of the sea. On very clear days, you can catch a glimpse of the Mediterranean's sparkle. These are the moments to cherish most, as they lead you to enchanting spots, and the landscape has details of exquisite beauty. When I think back to the lingering memories of such a blessed time, it feels pointless to try to express them, and a waste of words to do anything other than suggest that readers head toward the city at twilight at the end of March, aiming for Porta Cavalleggieri, and see what they encounter. At this hour, the Campagna embodies its melancholy nature, and I remember “effects” along the roadside that evoke a strange and intense emotion. Certain shabby, crumbling villas behind overgrown courtyards have an indescribably sinister appearance; there was one in particular where you couldn’t help but conclude that a despairing person must have once taken their life there, behind locked doors and barred windows, and that no one since has had the guts to enter and discover why they never came out. Every roadside reminder of manners, history, and the past in the countryside around Rome sends a thrill through me, and I may be exaggerating the appeal of these ordinary things. This is especially true because the appeal seems to rise from unknown depths of ancient troubles. Finding joy in the aspects of decaying ruins might seem a heartless pastime, and I admit that the pleasure carries a hint of perversion. The somber and harsh realities of southern life are as common an influence as the soft and bright; sadness often hits a northern observer when they miss what they regard as comfort. Beauty can't make up for the loss; it only sharpens it. There’s plenty of beauty in the climate surrounding these Roman cottages and farmhouses—beauty in light, atmosphere, and vegetation; but their appeal to someone looking to unearth stories lies in how the golden air accentuates their desolation. People connect with nature more in Italy than in New or Old England; nature does more for them and provides more relief than in our shorter summers, and thus homes are much less equipped to help them live without, forget, or forgive her. These thoughts might explain the character you find in a moss-covered stone staircase climbing outside a wall; in a quirky inner courtyard littered with trash and sadly lacking convenience; in an ancient, oddly carved well, intricately worked from an overhanging window; in a trellis of twisted vines where you can sit with your feet in the dirt, remembering as a distant fable that there are cultures for whom the embodiment of domestic charm is the hearth rug. For any number of reasons, these things amuse me beyond words, and I never tire of gazing into gateways, lingering by dreary, shabby, half-barbaric farmyards, or feasting my foolish eyes on sun-cracked plaster and cozy indoor shadows. However, I shouldn't forget that it’s not for roadside spectacles that one rides away behind St. Peter’s, but for the exhilarating feeling of wandering across endless space, of seeing great classic lines of landscape, and watching them arrange themselves into pictures so artistically styled that you can hardly think of any painter worthy of linking to them—hardly knowing if it’s more pleasurable to gallop far and deeply inhale the fresh air and grassy expanse, or to walk slowly, pause, and linger, trying to capture some unforgettable memory of the sky, colors, and outlines. Your tempo inevitably becomes contemplative at such times, everywhere so astonishing, but in Rome so irresistibly divine, when winter begins to noticeably warm and enliven. Far out on the Campagna, early in February, you feel the first vague earthy scents, which in a few weeks start drifting into the heart of the city and pulsing through its narrow, shadowy streets. Springtime in Rome is an immensely poetic affair; but you must often stand far out in the old ruins between grass and sky to truly grasp its deep, full, steadily quickening rhythm. Winter has an undeniable beauty, and is especially a time for color—the time when it’s not merely a pretense, but a sincere truth, to speak about the “purple” tone of the air. As February passes, your purple is tinged with green and the rich, dark hues of the distance begin to fade. But your loss is balanced by other gains; none more precious than the invaluable addition to the ear—the ethereal song of the lark. It arrives with the first flowers, the white narcissus and cyclamen, the half-buried violets and pale anemones, filling the air with a sound like a vault of tinkling glass. You never see the source of the sound, and cannot pinpoint its note, which seems to come from everywhere at once, like a hundred-voiced echo of the air. Sometimes you think you catch a glimpse of it, just a vague dot against the blue, a more intense pulse in the universal glow of light. As the weeks pass, the flowers multiply, and the deep blues and purples of the hills, shifting to azure and violet, rise higher toward the narrowing snow line of the Sabines. The temperature climbs; during the first hour of your ride, you feel the heat, but you lighten the burden by brushing against hawthorn blossoms as you pass the hedges and reaching for wild roses and honeysuckle; and once you reach the meadows, there’s enough movement in the air to ease the heavy weight of the sun. However, the Roman air isn’t invigorating, and exercise seldom feels wholly exhilarating. I’ve always thought that part of its charm lies in how your sharpest awareness is accompanied by a vague languor. Occasionally when the sirocco winds blow, that feeling becomes strangely exquisite. Under the gray sky, before the muted distances that the south wind often brings, you feel as though you’re riding into a world from which all hope has vanished, and in which, despite the flowers that make your horse's footfalls soundless, only some odd sense of uncertainty remains—one that your imagination can’t quite grasp, but from which it hardly recoils. This quality in the Roman atmosphere may sometimes “relax” you almost to ecstasy; but a prolonged sirocco season would constitute an overdose of morbid pleasure. You can best appreciate the unique allure of the Campagna on those mild winter days when the very quality and mood of the sunshine is enough to fill the landscape with joy, and you stop on the brown grass in the sunny stillness, and by listening long enough, almost imagine you can hear the shrill of the midsummer cricket. It’s the details and ornaments that change from month to month, even week to week, making your returns to the same places an unending feast of surprises; but the main features of the view remain consistently serene throughout the year. Soracte, whether it’s January or May, rises from its blue horizon like an island from the sea, with a graceful outline that no season can alter. You know it well; you have seen it often in the warm backdrops of Claude’s paintings; and it has such an irresistibly classic, academic vibe that while you gaze at it, you begin to feel as though your saddle is an old, faded armchair in a palace gallery. A month’s rides in various directions will reveal a dozen prime Claudes. After I had seen them all, I went thoughtfully to the Doria gallery to refresh my memory of its two famous examples and to fully enjoy their delightful connection to something that had become part of my personal experience. It’s certainly delightful to feel the commonality between one’s own sensitivity and that of a genius who has channeled that shared element into greatness. Claude must have frequented the very places you hold dear and adapted their divine contours to his grand vision of romance, his interpretation of life’s poetry. He was familiar with landscapes where there wasn’t a single harsh line. A few days ago, I saw a small finished sketch by him, owned by an American artist, which was almost shocking in how clearly it reflected forms unchanged by the two centuries that have faded and cracked the paint and canvas.
This unbroken continuity of the impressions I have tried to indicate is an excellent example of the intellectual background of all enjoyment in Rome. It effectually prevents pleasure from becoming vulgar, for your sensation rarely begins and ends with itself; it reverberates—it recalls, commemorates, resuscitates something else. At least half the merit of everything you enjoy must be that it suits you absolutely; but the larger half here is generally that it has suited some one else and that you can never flatter yourself you have discovered it. It has been addressed to some use a million miles out of your range, and has had great adventures before ever condescending to please you. It was in admission of this truth that my discriminating friend who showed me the Claudes found it impossible to designate a certain delightful region which you enter at the end of an hour’s riding from Porta Cavalleggieri as anything but Arcadia. The exquisite correspondence of the term in this case altogether revived its faded bloom; here veritably the oaten pipe must have stirred the windless air and the satyrs have laughed among the brookside reeds. Three or four long grassy dells stretch away in a chain between low hills over which delicate trees are so discreetly scattered that each one is a resting place for a shepherd. The elements of the scene are simple enough, but the composition has extraordinary refinement. By one of those happy chances which keep observation in Italy always in her best humour a shepherd had thrown himself down under one of the trees in the very attitude of Meliboeus. He had been washing his feet, I suppose, in the neighbouring brook, and had found it pleasant afterwards to roll his short breeches well up on his thighs. Lying thus in the shade, on his elbow, with his naked legs stretched out on the turf and his soft peaked hat over his long hair crushed back like the veritable bonnet of Arcady, he was exactly the figure of the background of this happy valley. The poor fellow, lying there in rustic weariness and ignorance, little fancied that he was a symbol of old-world meanings to new-world eyes.
This unbroken flow of impressions I've tried to describe is a great example of the intellectual background of all enjoyment in Rome. It effectively keeps pleasure from feeling cheap, because your experience rarely starts and ends on its own; it echoes—it calls to mind, commemorates, brings back something else. At least half the value of everything you enjoy must be that it fits you perfectly; but more often here, it's the case that it has suited someone else first, and you can never convince yourself you discovered it. It's been made for a purpose far beyond your reach and has had remarkable experiences long before it bothered to please you. It was acknowledging this truth that my discerning friend, who showed me the Claudes, found it impossible to call a certain lovely area you enter after an hour's ride from Porta Cavalleggieri anything but Arcadia. The perfect fit of the term in this case truly revived its faded charm; here, the oaten pipe must have stirred the still air and satyrs must have laughed among the brookside reeds. Three or four long grassy valleys stretch out in a chain between low hills, over which delicate trees are so carefully spaced that each one is a resting place for a shepherd. The elements of the scene are simple enough, but the arrangement has extraordinary elegance. By one of those lucky moments that always keep observation in Italy cheerful, a shepherd had laid down under one of the trees in the very position of Meliboeus. He must have been washing his feet in the nearby brook and then found it nice to roll his short pants up on his thighs. Lying like this in the shade, on his elbow, with his bare legs stretched out on the grass and his soft pointed hat crushed back over his long hair like the genuine cap of Arcadia, he was exactly the figure for the backdrop of this joyful valley. The poor guy, lying there in rural fatigue and ignorance, hardly realized he was a symbol of old-world meanings to new-world eyes.
Such eyes may find as great a store of picturesque meanings in the cork-woods of Monte Mario, tenderly loved of all equestrians. These are less severely pastoral than our Arcadia, and you might more properly lodge there a damosel of Ariosto than a nymph of Theocritus. Among them is strewn a lovely wilderness of flowers and shrubs, and the whole place has such a charming woodland air, that, casting about me the other day for a compliment, I declared that it reminded me of New Hampshire. My compliment had a double edge, and I had no sooner uttered it than I smiled—or sighed—to perceive in all the undiscriminated botany about me the wealth of detail, the idle elegance and grace of Italy alone, the natural stamp of the land which has the singular privilege of making one love her unsanctified beauty all but as well as those features of one’s own country toward which nature’s small allowance doubles that of one’s own affection. For this effect of casting a spell no rides have more value than those you take in Villa Doria or Villa Borghese; or don’t take, possibly, if you prefer to reserve these particular regions—the latter in especial—for your walking hours. People do ride, however, in both villas, which deserve honourable mention in this regard. Villa Doria, with its noble site, its splendid views, its great groups of stone-pines, so clustered and yet so individual, its lawns and flowers and fountains, its altogether princely disposition, is a place where one may pace, well mounted, of a brilliant day, with an agreeable sense of its being rather a more elegant pastime to balance in one’s stirrups than to trudge on even the smoothest gravel. But at Villa Borghese the walkers have the best of it; for they are free of those adorable outlying corners and bosky byways which the rumble of barouches never reaches. In March the place becomes a perfect epitome of the spring. You cease to care much for the melancholy greenness of the disfeatured statues which has been your chief winter’s intimation of verdure; and before you are quite conscious of the tender streaks and patches in the great quaint grassy arena round which the Propaganda students, in their long skirts, wander slowly, like dusky seraphs revolving the gossip of Paradise, you spy the brave little violets uncapping their azure brows beneath the high-stemmed pines. One’s walks here would take us too far, and one’s pauses detain us too long, when in the quiet parts under the wall one comes across a group of charming small school-boys in full-dress suits and white cravats, shouting over their play in clear Italian, while a grave young priest, beneath a tree, watches them over the top of his book. It sounds like nothing, but the force behind it and the frame round it, the setting, the air, the chord struck, make it a hundred wonderful things.
Such eyes can find just as many picturesque sights in the cork trees of Monte Mario, which all equestrians adore. This place feels less strictly pastoral than our Arcadia, and you could more fittingly host a damsel from Ariosto here than a nymph from Theocritus. Among the cork trees lies a beautiful wild expanse of flowers and shrubs, and the entire area has such a charming woodland vibe that, while searching for a compliment the other day, I said it reminded me of New Hampshire. My comment had a double meaning, and as soon as I said it, I smiled—or sighed—realizing that amidst all the unrefined flora around me, I could see the detailed richness, the effortless elegance, and the grace of Italy alone, the natural mark of the land that has the unique gift of making one love her raw beauty almost as much as those aspects of one’s own country that nature allows us to cherish even more. For the enchanting effect of casting a spell, no rides are more valuable than those in Villa Doria or Villa Borghese; or even the choice not to ride, particularly if you prefer to save these areas—especially the latter—for your walking hours. However, people do ride in both villas, which definitely deserve honorable mention. Villa Doria, with its impressive location, stunning views, its grand clusters of stone pines—both grouped and individual—its lawns, flowers, and fountains, and its overall regal feel, is a place to ride proudly on a bright day, enjoying the elegance of balancing in your stirrups rather than trudging along even the smoothest gravel. But at Villa Borghese, the walkers have the advantage; they can enjoy those delightful hidden corners and leafy paths that remain untouched by the rolling carriages. In March, it captures the essence of spring perfectly. You stop caring about the melancholy green of the oddly shaped statues that have been your main indication of greenery throughout the winter; before you fully notice the soft patches and streaks across the large, quirky grassy circle where Propaganda students wander slowly in their long skirts, resembling dark angels discussing the chatter of Paradise, you spot brave little violets peeking out with their azure heads beneath the tall pines. Wandering here could take us too far, and pausing too long, especially when in the quiet spots near the wall, you come across a group of charming little schoolboys in their formal suits and white cravats, shouting in clear Italian over their games, while a serious young priest watches them from under a tree, peering over his book. It may sound trivial, but the depth behind it combined with the surroundings, the atmosphere, and the note struck create something wonderfully significant.
1873.
ROMAN NEIGHBOURHOODS
I made a note after my first stroll at Albano to the effect that I had been talking of the “picturesque” all my life, but that now for a change I beheld it. I had been looking all winter across the Campagna at the free-flowing outline of the Alban Mount, with its half-dozen towns shining on its purple side even as vague sun-spots in the shadow of a cloud, and thinking it simply an agreeable incident in the varied background of Rome. But now that during the last few days I have been treating it as a foreground, have been suffering St. Peter’s to play the part of a small mountain on the horizon, with the Campagna swimming mistily through the ambiguous lights and shadows of the interval, I find the interest as great as in the best of the by-play of Rome. The walk I speak of was just out of the village, to the south, toward the neighbouring town of L’Ariccia, neighbouring these twenty years, since the Pope (the late Pope, I was on the point of calling him) threw his superb viaduct across the deep ravine which divides it from Albano. At the risk of seeming to fantasticate I confess that the Pope’s having built the viaduct—in this very recent antiquity—made me linger there in a pensive posture and marvel at the march of history and at Pius the Ninth’s beginning already to profit by the sentimental allowances we make to vanished powers. An ardent nero then would have had his own way with me and obtained a frank admission that the Pope was indeed a father to his people. Far down into the charming valley which slopes out of the ancestral woods of the Chigis into the level Campagna winds the steep stone-paved road at the bottom of which, in the good old days, tourists in no great hurry saw the mules and oxen tackled to their carriage for the opposite ascent. And indeed even an impatient tourist might have been content to lounge back in his jolting chaise and look out at the mouldy foundations of the little city plunging into the verdurous flank of the gorge. Questioned, as a cherisher of quaintness, as to the best “bit” hereabouts, I should certainly name the way in which the crumbling black houses of these ponderous villages plant their weary feet on the flowery edges of all the steepest chasms. Before you enter one of them you invariably find yourself lingering outside its pretentious old gateway to see it clutched and stitched to the stony hillside by this rank embroidery of the wildest and bravest things that grow. Just at this moment nothing is prettier than the contrast between their dusky ruggedness and the tender, the yellow and pink and violet fringe of that mantle. All this you may observe from the viaduct at the Ariccia; but you must wander below to feel the full force of the eloquence of our imaginary papalino. The pillars and arches of pale grey peperino arise in huge tiers with a magnificent spring and solidity. The older Romans built no better; and the work has a deceptive air of being one of their sturdy bequests which help one to drop another sigh over the antecedents the Italians of to-day are so eager to repudiate. Will those they give their descendants be as good?
I made a note after my first walk at Albano that I had been discussing the “picturesque” all my life, but now I was actually seeing it. All winter, I had been looking across the Campagna at the flowing outline of Alban Mount, with its half-dozen towns glimmering on its purple side like faint sunspots in the shadow of a cloud, thinking it was just a pleasant detail in the diverse backdrop of Rome. But now that I've been viewing it as a foreground, allowing St. Peter’s to appear like a small mountain on the horizon, while the Campagna floats mistily through the changing lights and shadows in between, I find the interest just as great as in the best of Rome's side scenes. The walk I’m referring to was just outside the village, heading south toward the nearby town of L’Ariccia, which has been nearby for the past twenty years since the Pope (the late Pope, I almost called him) built his stunning viaduct across the deep ravine that separates it from Albano. I confess that, at the risk of sounding fanciful, the fact that the Pope built the viaduct—in this very recent past—made me pause there thoughtfully, marveling at the course of history and noticing how Pius the Ninth is already benefiting from the sentimental allowances we give to fallen powers. An enthusiastic outsider at that moment might have easily convinced me that the Pope truly is a father to his people. Far down in the charming valley, which slopes from the ancestral woods of the Chigis into the flat Campagna, winds the steep stone-paved road at the bottom where, in the good old days, tourists in no rush saw mules and oxen harnessed to their carriages for the climb ahead. Indeed, even an impatient tourist might have relaxed back in their jolting carriage and looked out at the mossy foundations of the little town descending into the lush side of the gorge. When asked, as someone who appreciates quaintness, about the best “spot” around here, I would definitely mention how the crumbling black houses of these heavy villages make their weary stand on the flowery edges of the steepest cliffs. Before you enter one, you always find yourself pausing outside its grand old gate to see how it clings to the rocky hillside, entwined with the wildest and bravest plants that grow. Right now, nothing is prettier than the contrast between their dark ruggedness and the gentle yellow, pink, and violet edges of that natural covering. You can see all this from the viaduct at Ariccia, but you need to stroll below to truly grasp the full impact of our imagined papalino. The columns and arches of pale grey peperino rise in large tiers with impressive strength and solidity. The older Romans didn’t build any better; the structure has a deceptive quality as if it’s one of their sturdy legacies, making one sigh over the past that modern Italians are so eager to reject. Will what they give their descendants be as good?
At the Ariccia, in any case, I found a little square with a couple of mossy fountains, occupied on one side by a vast dusky-faced Palazzo Chigi and on the other by a goodly church with an imposing dome. The dome, within, covers the whole edifice and is adorned with some extremely elegant stucco-work of the seventeenth century. It gave a great value to this fine old decoration that preparations were going forward for a local festival and that the village carpenter was hanging certain mouldy strips of crimson damask against the piers of the vaults. The damask might have been of the seventeenth century too, and a group of peasant-women were seeing it unfurled with evident awe. I regarded it myself with interest—it seemed so the tattered remnant of a fashion that had gone out for ever. I thought again of the poor disinherited Pope, wondering whether, when such venerable frippery will no longer bear the carpenter’s nails, any more will be provided. It was hard to fancy anything but shreds and patches in that musty tabernacle. Wherever you go in Italy you receive some such intimation as this of the shrunken proportions of Catholicism, and every church I have glanced into on my walks hereabouts has given me an almost pitying sense of it. One finds one’s self at last—without fatuity, I hope—feeling sorry for the solitude of the remaining faithful. It’s as if the churches had been made so for the world, in its social sense, and the world had so irrevocably moved away. They are in size out of all modern proportion to the local needs, and the only thing at all alive in the melancholy waste they collectively form is the smell of stale incense. There are pictures on all the altars by respectable third-rate painters; pictures which I suppose once were ordered and paid for and criticised by worshippers who united taste with piety. At Genzano, beyond the Ariccia, rises on the grey village street a pompous Renaissance temple whose imposing nave and aisles would contain the population of a capital. But where is the taste of the Ariccia and Genzano? Where are the choice spirits for whom Antonio Raggi modelled the garlands of his dome and a hundred clever craftsmen imitated Guido and Caravaggio? Here and there, from the pavement, as you pass, a dusky crone interlards her devotions with more profane importunities, or a grizzled peasant on rusty-jointed knees, tilted forward with his elbows on a bench, reveals the dimensions of the patch in his blue breeches. But where is the connecting link between Guido and Caravaggio and those poor souls for whom an undoubted original is only a something behind a row of candlesticks, of no very clear meaning save that you must bow to it? You find a vague memory of it at best in the useless grandeurs about you, and you seem to be looking at a structure of which the stubborn earth-scented foundations alone remain, with the carved and painted shell that bends above them, while the central substance has utterly crumbled away.
At Ariccia, I stumbled upon a small square featuring a couple of mossy fountains, flanked on one side by a large, dark-faced Palazzo Chigi and on the other by a lovely church with a striking dome. Inside, the dome encompasses the entire building and is decorated with some very elegant 17th-century stucco work. The impressive old decor was accentuated by the preparations for a local festival, with the village carpenter hanging some worn strips of crimson damask against the supporting pillars of the vaults. The damask might have been from the 17th century as well, and a group of peasant women watched it unfurl with evident wonder. I couldn't help but find it interesting—it seemed like a faded remnant of a style that was now long gone. I thought again about the unfortunate pope, wondering if, when such venerable frippery can no longer withstand the carpenter’s nails, any more will be provided. It was hard to imagine anything other than tatters and patches in that musty place. Everywhere you go in Italy, you get a hint of the dwindling presence of Catholicism, and every church I’ve peeked into during my walks here has filled me with a nearly pitying sense of it. You find yourself, hopefully without being naive, feeling sorry for the loneliness of the remaining faithful. It’s as if the churches were built for the world in its social sense, but the world has moved away irrevocably. They are so much larger than what the local community currently needs, and the only thing alive in the melancholy emptiness they collectively create is the smell of stale incense. There are paintings on all the altars by respectable, second-rate artists—pictures that I assume were once commissioned, paid for, and critiqued by worshippers who combined taste with devotion. At Genzano, just beyond Ariccia, there’s an impressive Renaissance temple rising on the grey village street, whose grand nave and aisles could accommodate the population of a capital city. But where is the taste of Ariccia and Genzano? Where are the discerning individuals for whom Antonio Raggi created the garlands of his dome and a hundred skilled craftsmen imitated Guido and Caravaggio? Occasionally, as you walk past, you might see an old crone mixing her prayers with more worldly requests, or a weathered peasant on rusty knees, leaning forward with his elbows on a bench, revealing the size of the hole in his blue trousers. But what is the connection between Guido and Caravaggio and those poor souls for whom a genuine original is just something behind a row of candlesticks, with no clear significance other than that you must bow to it? At best, you find only a vague memory of it in the grand but pointless structures around you, and it feels like you’re looking at a building where only the stubborn, earth-scented foundations remain, with a carved and painted shell bending above them, while the core has completely crumbled away.
I shall seem to have adopted a more meditative pace than befits a brisk constitutional if I say that I also fell a-thinking before the shabby façade of the old Chigi Palace. But it seemed somehow in its grey forlornness to respond to the sadly superannuated expression of the opposite church; and indeed in any condition what self-respecting cherisher of quaintness can forbear to do a little romancing in the shadow of a provincial palazzo? On the face of the matter, I know, there is often no very salient peg to hang a romance on. A sort of dusky blankness invests the establishment, which has often a rather imbecile old age. But a hundred brooding secrets lurk in this inexpressive mask, and the Chigi Palace did duty for me in the suggestive twilight as the most haunted of houses. Its basement walls sloped outward like the beginning of a pyramid, and its lower windows were covered with massive iron cages. Within the doorway, across the court, I saw the pale glimmer of flowers on a terrace, and I made much, for the effect of the roof, of a great covered loggia or belvedere with a dozen window-panes missing or mended with paper. Nothing gives one a stronger impression of old manners than an ancestral palace towering in this haughty fashion over a shabby little town; you hardly stretch a point when you call it an impression of feudalism. The scene may pass for feudal to American eyes, for which a hundred windows on a facade mean nothing more exclusive than a hotel kept (at the most invidious) on the European plan. The mouldy grey houses on the steep crooked street, with their black cavernous archways pervaded by bad smells, by the braying of asses and by human intonations hardly more musical, the haggard and tattered peasantry staring at you with hungry-heavy eyes, the brutish-looking monks (there are still enough to point a moral), the soldiers, the mounted constables, the dirt, the dreariness, the misery, and the dark over-grown palace frowning over it all from barred window and guarded gateway—what more than all this do we dimly descry in a mental image of the dark ages? For all his desire to keep the peace with the vivid image of things if it be only vivid enough, the votary of this ideal may well occasionally turn over such values with the wonder of what one takes them as paying for. They pay sometimes for such sorry “facts of life.” At Genzano, out of the very midst of the village squalor, rises the Palazzo Cesarini, separated from its gardens by a dirty lane. Between peasant and prince, the contact is unbroken, and one would suppose Italian good-nature sorely taxed by their mutual allowances; that the prince in especial must cultivate a firm impervious shell. There are no comfortable townsfolk about him to remind him of the blessings of a happy mediocrity of fortune. When he looks out of his window he sees a battered old peasant against a sunny wall sawing off his dinner from a hunch of black bread.
I know it might sound like I've slowed down my pace more than what's normal for a quick walk if I say that I started thinking in front of the rundown facade of the old Chigi Palace. But somehow, in its grey sadness, it seemed to mirror the weary look of the church across the street; and honestly, what self-respecting lover of charm can resist a little daydreaming in the shadow of a provincial palace? On the surface, I realize there often isn't a clear reason for romantic thoughts. There's a sort of dull emptiness surrounding the place, which sometimes feels like one of those clueless, aging structures. But a hundred hidden secrets linger behind this plain exterior, and in the dim light, the Chigi Palace felt like one of the most haunted houses around. Its basement walls slanted outwards like the start of a pyramid, and its lower windows were covered with heavy iron bars. Through the doorway, across the courtyard, I spotted a faint shimmer of flowers on a terrace, and I was captivated by the sight of a large covered loggia or belvedere with several window panes missing or patched with paper. Nothing gives a stronger feeling of old traditions than an ancestral palace rising impressively over a shabby little town; you hardly stretch your imagination when you call it a sign of feudalism. To American eyes, the scene might seem feudal, where a hundred windows on a facade mean nothing more exclusive than a hotel that happens to be run in the European style. The moldy grey houses on the steep, winding street, with their dark, cavernous archways filled with unpleasant smells, the braying of donkeys, and human voices barely more melodic, the worn and ragged peasants staring at you with tired, hungry eyes, the brutish-looking monks (there are still enough to offer a lesson), the soldiers, the mounted constables, the dirt, the gloom, the misery, and the dark, overgrown palace looming over it all from barred windows and guarded gates—what more do we vaguely perceive in our mental image of the dark ages? Even though he longs to keep the peace with the vivid image of things, as long as it's vivid enough, the believer in this ideal might occasionally ponder whether they’re really worth what they seem to be. They sometimes pay a price for such grim "facts of life." In Genzano, right in the middle of the village's squalor, stands the Palazzo Cesarini, separated from its gardens by a filthy path. There’s an unbroken connection between peasant and prince, and one might think that the good-natured Italians are sorely tested by their interactions; the prince, in particular, must cultivate a tough, unyielding exterior. There are no comfortable townspeople around him to remind him of the joys that come with a modest fortune. When he looks out of his window, he sees a weathered old peasant leaning against a sunny wall, cutting off a piece of his dinner from a hunk of black bread.
I must confess, however, that “feudal” as it amused me to find the little piazza of the Ariccia, it appeared to threaten in no manner an exasperated rising. On the contrary, the afternoon being cool, many of the villagers were contentedly muffled in those ancient cloaks, lined with green baize, which, when tossed over the shoulder and surmounted with a peaked hat, form one of the few lingering remnants of “costume” in Italy; others were tossing wooden balls light-heartedly enough on the grass outside the town. The egress on this side is under a great stone archway thrown out from the palace and surmounted with the family arms. Nothing could better confirm your theory that the townsfolk are groaning serfs. The road leads away through the woods, like many of the roads hereabouts, among trees less remarkable for their size than for their picturesque contortions and posturings. The woods, at the moment at which I write, are full of the raw green light of early spring, a jour vastly becoming to the various complexions of the wild flowers that cover the waysides. I have never seen these untended parterres in such lovely exuberance; the sturdiest pedestrian becomes a lingering idler if he allows them to catch his eye. The pale purple cyclamen, with its hood thrown back, stands up in masses as dense as tulip-beds; and here and there in the duskier places great sheets of forget-me-not seem to exhale a faint blue mist. These are the commonest plants; there are dozens more I know no name for—a rich profusion in especial of a beautiful five-petalled flower whose white texture is pencilled with hair-strokes certain fair copyists I know of would have to hold their breath to imitate. An Italian oak has neither the girth nor the height of its English brothers, but it contrives in proportion to be perhaps even more effective. It crooks its back and twists its arms and clinches its hundred fists with the queerest extravagance, and wrinkles its bark into strange rugosities from which its first scattered sprouts of yellow green seem to break out like a morbid fungus. But the tree which has the greatest charm to northern eyes is the cold grey-green ilex, whose clear crepuscular shade drops against a Roman sun a veil impenetrable, yet not oppressive. The ilex has even less colour than the cypress, but it is much less funereal, and a landscape in which it is frequent may still be said to smile faintly, though by no means to laugh. It abounds in old Italian gardens, where the boughs are trimmed and interlocked into vaulted corridors in which, from point to point, as in the niches of some dimly frescoed hall, you see mildewed busts stare at you with a solemnity which the even grey light makes strangely intense. A humbler relative of the ilex, though it does better things than help broken-nosed emperors to look dignified, is the olive, which covers many of the neighbouring hillsides with its little smoky puffs of foliage. A stroke of composition I never weary of is that long blue stretch of the Campagna which makes a high horizon and rests on this vaporous base of olive-tops. A reporter intent upon a simile might liken it to the ocean seen above the smoke of watch-fires kindled on the strand.
I have to admit, though, that while I found the little piazza in Ariccia amusingly “feudal,” it didn’t seem to threaten an exasperated uprising at all. In fact, with the cool afternoon, many villagers were happily wrapped in those old cloaks lined with green baize, which, when draped over the shoulder and topped with a pointed hat, are one of the few remaining pieces of “costume” in Italy. Others were casually tossing wooden balls on the grass outside the town. The exit on this side is through a large stone archway that juts out from the palace and is topped with the family crest. Nothing could better support your theory that the townspeople are groaning serfs. The road leads off through the woods, like many nearby roads, among trees that aren't remarkable for size but for their picturesque twists and turns. At the moment I'm writing, the woods are bright with the fresh green light of early spring, a day that greatly enhances the various colors of the wildflowers lining the roads. I've never seen these untended flower beds so beautifully lush; the sturdiest walker becomes a lingering idler if he lets them catch his eye. The pale purple cyclamen, with its hood thrown back, stands thickly like tulip beds; and here and there in the shadier spots, large patches of forget-me-nots seem to release a faint blue mist. These are the most common plants; there are many others I don’t know the names of—a rich abundance, especially of a beautiful five-petaled flower whose white texture is marked with fine strokes that some skilled artists I know would need to hold their breath to replicate. An Italian oak may not have the girth or height of its English cousins, but it somehow manages to be even more striking. It twists its branches, contorts its trunk, and clenches its numerous limbs in the oddest ways, with bark creased into strange patterns from which its first sprouts of yellow-green seem to burst out like a strange fungus. But the tree that is most charming to northern eyes is the cool grey-green ilex, whose clear twilight shade casts an impenetrable yet not oppressive veil against the Roman sun. The ilex has even less color than the cypress, but it feels far less somber, and a landscape where it’s common may still be said to faintly smile, although it certainly doesn’t laugh. It thrives in old Italian gardens, where the branches are shaped and intertwined into vaulted corridors where, from point to point, as in the alcoves of a softly frescoed hall, you see weathered busts staring at you with a solemnity that the soft grey light makes strangely intense. A humbler cousin of the ilex, though it does more than just help broken-nosed emperors appear dignified, is the olive, which blankets many of the nearby hillsides with its little smoky clusters of leaves. A composition I never tire of is that long blue stretch of the Campagna that creates a high horizon and rests on this misty foundation of olive treetops. A reporter looking for a simile might compare it to the ocean seen above the smoke from campfires lit on the shore.
To do perfect justice to the wood-walk away from the Ariccia I ought to touch upon the birds that were singing vespers as I passed. But the reader would find my rhapsody as poor entertainment as the programme of a concert he had been unable to attend. I have no more learning about bird-music than would help me to guess that a dull dissyllabic refrain in the heart of the wood came from the cuckoo; and when at moments I heard a twitter of fuller tone, with a more suggestive modulation, I could only hope it was the nightingale. I have listened for the nightingale more than once in places so charming that his song would have seemed but the articulate expression of their beauty, and have never heard much beyond a provoking snatch or two—a prelude that came to nothing. In spite of a natural grudge, however, I generously believe him a great artist or at least a great genius—a creature who despises any prompting short of absolute inspiration. For the rich, the multitudinous melody around me seemed but the offering to my ear of the prodigal spirit of tradition. The wood was ringing with sound because it was twilight, spring and Italy. It was also because of these good things and various others besides that I relished so keenly my visit to the Capuchin convent upon which I emerged after half-an-hour in the wood. It stands above the town on the slope of the Alban Mount, and its wild garden climbs away behind it and extends its melancholy influence. Before it is a small stiff avenue of trimmed live-oaks which conducts you to a grotesque little shrine beneath the staircase ascending to the church. Just here, if you are apt to grow timorous at twilight, you may take a very pretty fright; for as you draw near you catch behind the grating of the shrine the startling semblance of a gaunt and livid monk. A sickly lamplight plays down upon his face, and he stares at you from cavernous eyes with a dreadful air of death in life. Horror of horrors, you murmur, is this a Capuchin penance? You discover of course in a moment that it is only a Capuchin joke, that the monk is a pious dummy and his spectral visage a matter of the paint-brush. You resent his intrusion on the surrounding loveliness; and as you proceed to demand entertainment at their convent you pronounce the Capuchins very foolish fellows. This declaration, as I made it, was supported by the conduct of the simple brother who opened the door of the cloister in obedience to my knock and, on learning my errand, demurred about admitting me at so late an hour. If I would return on the morrow morning he’d be most happy. He broke into a blank grin when I assured him that this was the very hour of my desire and that the garish morning light would do no justice to the view. These were mysteries beyond his ken, and it was only his good-nature (of which he had plenty) and not his imagination that was moved. So that when, passing through the narrow cloister and out upon the grassy terrace, I saw another cowled brother standing with folded hands profiled against the sky, in admirable harmony with the scene, I questioned his knowing the uses for which he is still most precious. This, however, was surely too much to ask of him, and it was cause enough for gratitude that, though he was there before me, he was not a fellow-tourist with an opera-glass slung over his shoulder. There was support to my idea of the convent in the expiring light, for the scene was in its way unsurpassable. Directly below the terrace lay the deep-set circle of the Alban Lake, shining softly through the light mists of evening. This beautiful pool—it is hardly more—occupies the crater of a prehistoric volcano, a perfect cup, shaped and smelted by furnace-fires. The rim of the cup, rising high and densely wooded round the placid stone-blue water, has a sort of natural artificiality. The sweep and contour of the long circle are admirable; never was a lake so charmingly lodged. It is said to be of extraordinary depth; and though stone-blue water seems at first a very innocent substitute for boiling lava, it has a sinister look which betrays its dangerous antecedents. The winds never reach it and its surface is never ruffled; but its deep-bosomed placidity seems to cover guilty secrets, and you fancy it in communication with the capricious and treacherous forces of nature. Its very colour is of a joyless beauty, a blue as cold and opaque as a solidified sheet of lava. Streaked and wrinkled by a mysterious motion of its own, it affects the very type of a legendary pool, and I could easily have believed that I had only to sit long enough into the evening to see the ghosts of classic nymphs and naiads cleave its sullen flood and beckon me with irresistible arms. Is it because its shores are haunted with these vague Pagan influences that two convents have risen there to purge the atmosphere? From the Capuchin terrace you look across at the grey Franciscan monastery of Palazzuola, which is not less romantic certainly than the most obstinate myth it may have exorcised. The Capuchin garden is a wild tangle of great trees and shrubs and clinging, trembling vines which in these hard days are left to take care of themselves; a weedy garden, if there ever was one, but none the less charming for that, in the deepening dusk, with its steep grassy vistas struggling away into impenetrable shadow. I braved the shadow for the sake of climbing upon certain little flat-roofed crumbling pavilions that rise from the corners of the further wall and give you a wider and lovelier view of lake and hills and sky.
To really appreciate the wood-walk away from Ariccia, I should mention the birds that were singing evening songs as I walked by. But the reader would probably find my musings as boring as the program for a concert he couldn't attend. I know just enough about bird songs to guess that a dull two-syllable sound in the woods came from the cuckoo; and when I occasionally heard a richer sound with a more interesting tune, I could only hope it was the nightingale. I've listened for the nightingale more than once in places so beautiful that its song would have seemed like the perfect expression of that beauty, yet all I've ever heard were a few frustrating snippets—a tease that led nowhere. Despite this natural annoyance, I choose to believe he's a great artist or at least a brilliant genius—a being who looks down on anything less than total inspiration. To me, the lush, abundant melodies surrounding me felt like the generous offering of tradition. The woods were alive with sound because it was twilight, it was spring, and it was Italy. It was also because of these good things, among others, that I enjoyed my visit to the Capuchin convent, which I reached after half an hour in the woods. It sits on a hillside above the town on Alban Mount, with its wild garden climbing up behind it, adding a touch of melancholy. In front of it, a small, neatly trimmed row of live oaks leads to a quirky little shrine beneath the staircase leading up to the church. Right here, if you’re prone to feeling nervous at dusk, you might get a pretty good scare; because as you approach, you catch sight of a gaunt, ghostly-looking monk behind the shrine’s grating. A sickly lamplight shines down on his face, and he stares at you with cavernous eyes, giving off a terrifying vibe of death in life. Horror of horrors, you gasp, is this a Capuchin penance? But you quickly realize it’s just a Capuchin prank, and that the monk is a pious dummy, his spectral face simply painted. You feel annoyed that he disrupts the surrounding beauty; and as you go inside to seek entertainment from the convent, you declare the Capuchins quite silly. This statement was reinforced by the simple brother who answered the door of the cloister when I knocked. Upon learning my purpose, he hesitated to let me in so late. He would be more than happy to welcome me the next morning. He broke into a blank grin when I insisted that this was the exact hour I wanted, and that the harsh morning light wouldn’t do the view justice. These ideas were beyond his understanding, and it was only his good-nature (which he had plenty of) and not his imagination that were stirred. So when, walking through the narrow cloister and stepping out onto the grassy terrace, I saw another monk in a hood standing with folded hands against the sky, perfectly fitting into the scene, I wondered if he knew the true purpose for which he was still so valuable. However, that was probably asking too much of him, and it was enough to be grateful that, even though he was there before me, he wasn't another tourist with an opera-glass slung over his shoulder. The sight supported my notion of the convent in the fading light, as the view was truly breathtaking. Directly below the terrace lay the deep-set circle of the Alban Lake, shimmering softly through the evening mist. This beautiful pool—it's hardly more than that—sits in the crater of a prehistoric volcano, a perfect cup shaped by fiery furnaces. The rim of the cup, rising high and densely wooded around the calm, stone-blue water, has a kind of natural artificiality. The sweep and shape of the long circle are remarkable; never was a lake so beautifully nestled. It’s said to be incredibly deep; and while stone-blue water may seem like a harmless substitute for boiling lava, it has a sinister look that reveals its dangerous history. Winds never reach it, and its surface is always calm; but its deep, serene stillness seems to hide guilty secrets, and you can imagine it being connected to the unpredictable, treacherous forces of nature. Its very color exudes a joyless beauty, a blue as cold and opaque as solidified lava. Streaked and wrinkled by a mysterious motion of its own, it closely resembles a legendary pool, and I could easily believe that if I sat long enough into the evening, I would see the ghosts of classic nymphs and naiads part its gloomy waters and beckon me with irresistible arms. Is it because its shores are haunted by these vague Pagan influences that two convents have sprung up to cleanse the atmosphere? From the Capuchin terrace, you can see the grey Franciscan monastery of Palazzuola across the way, which is certainly no less romantic than the most stubborn myth it may have banished. The Capuchin garden is a wild tangle of big trees, shrubs, and clinging, quivering vines that nowadays are left to fend for themselves; it’s the weediest garden you could imagine, but none the less charming for it, in the deepening dusk, with its steep grassy paths fading into impenetrable shadows. I braved the shadows to climb onto certain small, flat-roofed, crumbling pavilions that rise from the corners of the back wall, offering a wider and more beautiful view of the lake, hills, and sky.
I have perhaps justified to the reader the mild proposition with which I started—convinced him, that is, that Albano is worth a walk. It may be a different walk each day, moreover, and not resemble its predecessors save by its keeping in the shade. “Galleries” the roads are prettily called, and with the justice that they are vaulted and draped overhead and hung with an immense succession of pictures. As you follow the few miles from Genzano to Frascati you have perpetual views of the Campagna framed by clusters of trees; the vast iridescent expanse of which completes the charm and comfort of your verdurous dusk. I compared it just now to the sea, and with a good deal of truth, for it has the same incalculable lights and shades, the same confusion of glitter and gloom. But I have seen it at moments—chiefly in the misty twilight—when it resembled less the waste of waters than something more portentous, the land itself in fatal dissolution. I could believe the fields to be dimly surging and tossing and melting away into quicksands, and that one’s very last chance of an impression was taking place. A view, however, which has the merit of being really as interesting as it seems, is that of the Lake of Nemi; which the enterprising traveller hastens to compare with its sister sheet of Albano. Comparison in this case is particularly odious, for in order to prefer one lake to the other you have to discover faults where there are none. Nemi is a smaller circle, but lies in a deeper cup, and if with no grey Franciscan pile to guard its woody shores, at least, in the same position, the little high-perched black town to which it gives its name and which looks across at Genzano on the opposite shore as Palazzuola regards Castel Gandolfo. The walk from the Ariccia to Genzano is charming, most of all when it reaches a certain grassy piazza from which three public avenues stretch away under a double row of stunted and twisted elms. The Duke Cesarini has a villa at Genzano—I mentioned it just now—whose gardens overhang the lake; but he has also a porter in a faded rakish-looking livery who shakes his head at your proffered franc unless you can reinforce it with a permit countersigned at Rome. For this annoying complication of dignities he is justly to be denounced; but I forgive him for the sake of that ancestor who in the seventeenth century planted this shady walk. Never was a prettier approach to a town than by these low-roofed light-chequered corridors. Their only defect is that they prepare you for a town of rather more rustic coquetry than Genzano exhibits. It has quite the usual allowance, the common cynicism, of accepted decay, and looks dismally as if its best families had all fallen into penury together and lost the means of keeping anything better than donkeys in their great dark, vaulted basements and mending their broken window-panes with anything better than paper. It was on the occasion of this drear Genzano that I had a difference of opinion with a friend who maintained that there was nothing in the same line so pretty in Europe as a pretty New England village. The proposition seemed to a cherisher of quaintness on the face of it inacceptable; but calmly considered it has a measure of truth. I am not fond of chalk-white painted planks, certainly; I vastly prefer the dusky tones of ancient stucco and peperino; but I succumb on occasion to the charms of a vine-shaded porch, of tulips and dahlias glowing in the shade of high-arching elms, of heavy-scented lilacs bending over a white paling to brush your cheek.
I’ve probably convinced the reader of the mild suggestion I started with—showing that Albano is worth a stroll. Each day can have a different walk, and while they might not resemble each other except for the shade they offer, the roads are nicely called “galleries,” which is fitting since they’re vaulted and draped overhead and adorned with an endless succession of pictures. As you walk the few miles from Genzano to Frascati, you’re treated to constant views of the Campagna framed by clusters of trees, the vast iridescent expanse adding to the charm and comfort of your lush dusk. I mentioned earlier that it reminded me of the sea, which is quite accurate since it has the same unpredictable lights and shadows, the same mixture of sparkle and darkness. However, there have been moments—mainly during the misty twilight—when it resembled something more ominous than a vast body of water, like the land itself facing a fatal decline. I could imagine the fields subtly surging, tossing, and disappearing into quicksands, with the last chance for an impression slipping away. One view that is genuinely as interesting as it appears is that of the Lake of Nemi, which savvy travelers eagerly compare to its sister lake, Albano. This comparison is particularly frustrating because, to favor one lake over the other, you have to pinpoint flaws where there are none. Nemi is a smaller circle but sits in a deeper basin, and although it lacks a grey Franciscan building to overlook its wooded shores, it still has the little high-perched black town that shares its name and gazes across at Genzano on the opposite shore, just as Palazzuola looks at Castel Gandolfo. The walk from Ariccia to Genzano is delightful, especially when it reaches a certain grassy piazza from which three main paths stretch under a double row of stunted and twisted elms. The Duke Cesarini has a villa in Genzano—I mentioned it earlier—whose gardens overlook the lake; however, he also employs a porter in a faded, stylish-looking uniform who shakes his head at your offered franc unless you can back it up with a permit signed in Rome. For this irritating complication of hierarchies, he deserves to be criticized; but I forgive him for the sake of the ancestor who planted this shady walk back in the seventeenth century. There’s never been a prettier way to approach a town than through these low-roofed, light-patterned corridors. Their only flaw is that they lead you to expect a town that’s more rustic and charming than the reality of Genzano. It has the typical share of the common cynicism of accepted decay and looks sadly like its best families have all fallen on hard times together, losing the means to maintain anything better than donkeys in their large, dark, vaulted basements, and mending their broken windowpanes with nothing better than paper. It was during this gloomy visit to Genzano that I had a disagreement with a friend who claimed that no village in Europe was as pretty as a charming New England village. On the surface, that assertion seems hard to accept for someone who cherishes quaintness; but upon reflection, it holds some truth. I’m not particularly fond of chalk-white painted planks; I much prefer the dusky tones of ancient stucco and peperino; but occasionally, I find myself succumbing to the allure of a vine-covered porch, tulips and dahlias glowing in the shade of tall elms, and heavily-scented lilacs leaning over a white fence to brush against my cheek.
“I prefer Siena to Lowell,” said my friend; “but I prefer Farmington to such a thing as this.” In fact an Italian village is simply a miniature Italian city, and its various parts imply a town of fifty times the size. At Genzano are neither dahlias nor lilacs, and no odours but foul ones. Flowers and other graces are all confined to the high-walled precincts of Duke Cesarini, to which you must obtain admission twenty miles away. The houses on the other hand would generally lodge a New England cottage, porch and garden and high-arching elms included, in one of their cavernous basements. These vast grey dwellings are all of a fashion denoting more generous social needs than any they serve nowadays. They speak of better days and of a fabulous time when Italy was either not shabby or could at least “carry off” her shabbiness. For what follies are they doing penance? Through what melancholy stages have their fortunes ebbed? You ask these questions as you choose the shady side of the long blank street and watch the hot sun glare upon the dust-coloured walls and pause before the fetid gloom of open doors.
“I like Siena more than Lowell,” my friend said, “but I like Farmington more than anything like this.” In reality, an Italian village is just a smaller version of an Italian city, and its parts suggest a town fifty times its size. At Genzano, there are no dahlias or lilacs, and only unpleasant smells. Flowers and other nice things are all locked away within the high walls of Duke Cesarini, and you have to get access to it twenty miles away. The houses, on the other hand, could easily fit a New England cottage, complete with porch, garden, and tall elms, in one of their vast basements. These huge grey buildings are all designed to meet social needs that they don’t serve anymore. They tell of better times and a fantastical era when Italy wasn’t worn out or at least could “pull off” its weariness. What foolishness are they paying for? Through what sad stages have their fortunes declined? You ponder these questions as you choose the shady side of the long, empty street and watch the hot sun shine harshly on the dusty walls while pausing before the stinking darkness of open doors.
I should like to spare a word for mouldy little Nemi, perched upon a cliff high above the lake, at the opposite side; but after all, when I had climbed up into it from the water-side, passing beneath a great arch which I suppose once topped a gateway, and counted its twenty or thirty apparent inhabitants peeping at me from black doorways, and looked at the old round tower at whose base the village clusters, and declared that it was all queer, queer, desperately queer, I had said all that is worth saying about it. Nemi has a much better appreciation of its lovely position than Genzano, where your only view of the lake is from a dunghill behind one of the houses. At the foot of the round tower is an overhanging terrace, from which you may feast your eyes on the only freshness they find in these dusky human hives—the blooming seam, as one may call it, of strong wild flowers which binds the crumbling walls to the face of the cliff. Of Rocca di Papa I must say as little, It consorted generally with the bravery of its name; but the only object I made a note of as I passed through it on my way to Monte Cavo, which rises directly above it, was a little black house with a tablet in its face setting forth that Massimo d’ Azeglio had dwelt there. The story of his sojourn is not the least attaching episode in his delightful Ricordi. From the summit of Monte Cavo is a prodigious view, which you may enjoy with whatever good-nature is left you by the reflection that the modern Passionist convent occupying this admirable site was erected by the Cardinal of York (grandson of James II) on the demolished ruins of an immemorial temple of Jupiter: the last foolish act of a foolish race. For me I confess this folly spoiled the convent, and the convent all but spoiled the view; for I kept thinking how fine it would have been to emerge upon the old pillars and sculptures from the lava pavement of the Via Triumphalis, which wanders grass-grown and untrodden through the woods. A convent, however, which nothing spoils is that of Palazzuola, to which I paid my respects on this same occasion. It rises on a lower spur of Monte Cavo, on the edge, as we have seen, of the Alban Lake, and though it occupies a classic site, that of early Alba Longa, it displaced nothing more precious than memories and legends so dim that the antiquarians are still quarrelling about them. It has a meagre little church and the usual sham Perugino with a couple of tinsel crowns for the Madonna and the Infant inserted into the canvas; and it has also a musty old room hung about with faded portraits and charts and queer ecclesiastical knick-knacks, which borrowed a mysterious interest from the sudden assurance of the simple Franciscan brother who accompanied me that it was the room of the Son of the King of Portugal. But my peculiar pleasure was the little thick-shaded garden which adjoins the convent and commands from its massive artificial foundations an enchanting view of the lake. Part of it is laid out in cabbages and lettuce, over which a rubicund brother, with his frock tucked up, was bending with a solicitude which he interrupted to remove his skullcap and greet me with the unsophisticated sweet-humoured smile that every now and then in Italy does so much to make you forget the ambiguities of monachism. The rest is occupied by cypresses and other funereal umbrage, making a dank circle round an old cracked fountain black with water-moss. The parapet of the terrace is furnished with good stone seats where you may lean on your elbows to gaze away a sunny half-hour and, feeling the general charm of the scene, declare that the best mission of such a country in the world has been simply to produce, in the way of prospect and picture, these masterpieces of mildness. Mild here as a dream the whole attained effect, mild as resignation, mild as one’s thoughts of another life. Such a session wasn’t surely an experience of the irritable flesh; it was the deep degustation, on a summer’s day, of something immortally expressed by a man of genius.
I want to mention the rundown little Nemi, sitting on a cliff high above the lake on the other side; but honestly, after I climbed up from the water, went under a huge arch that I assume once marked a gateway, counted about twenty or thirty residents peeking out of dark doorways, and looked at the old round tower with the village clustered around its base, I had already said everything worth saying about it. Nemi knows how to appreciate its beautiful location much better than Genzano, where the only view of the lake is from a garbage heap behind one of the houses. At the foot of the round tower is a terrace that hangs over, where you can enjoy the only bit of freshness you find in these gloomy human hives—the bright patch of strong wildflowers that ties the crumbling walls to the cliff face. I won’t say much about Rocca di Papa; it generally lived up to its brave name, but the only thing I noted while passing through on my way to Monte Cavo, which rises directly above it, was a little black house with a plaque saying that Massimo d'Azeglio had lived there. His time there is a particularly engaging story in his delightful Ricordi. From the top of Monte Cavo, there's an incredible view, which you can enjoy with whatever good mood is left after reflecting that the modern Passionist convent taking up this wonderful spot was built by the Cardinal of York (grandson of James II) on the ruins of an ancient temple of Jupiter: the last foolish act of a foolish people. Honestly, for me, this folly ruined the convent, and the convent nearly ruined the view; I kept thinking how amazing it would have been to stand among the old pillars and sculptures from the lava path of the Via Triumphalis, which winds through the grass-grown and unused woods. However, there is a convent that nothing can spoil, and that’s Palazzuola, which I visited on the same trip. It sits on a lower slope of Monte Cavo, on the edge of the Alban Lake, and even though it occupies a historical site, the early Alba Longa, it replaced nothing more valuable than memories and legends so vague that scholars are still arguing over them. It has a small church and the usual fake Perugino with a couple of tinsel crowns for the Madonna and the Infant stuck into the painting; it also has a dusty old room filled with faded portraits and charts and odd ecclesiastical trinkets, which gained a mysterious interest from the sudden claim of the simple Franciscan brother who accompanied me that it was the room of the Son of the King of Portugal. But my real enjoyment was the little shaded garden next to the convent that offers a stunning view of the lake from its sturdy artificial foundations. Part of it is planted with cabbages and lettuce, and a rosy-cheeked brother, with his robe hiked up, was tending to them with a care that he paused to interrupt and remove his skullcap, greeting me with the unpretentious, warm smile that, now and then in Italy, helps you forget the complexities of monastic life. The rest of the garden is filled with cypresses and other somber greenery, creating a damp circle around an old, cracked fountain, darkened with water moss. The terrace wall has nice stone seats where you can lean and spend a sunny half-hour gazing away, feeling the overall charm of the scene, and declaring that the greatest mission of such a country in the world has simply been to create, in terms of views and images, these masterpieces of tranquility. Everything felt mild, like a dream, mild as acceptance, mild as thoughts of another life. Such a time surely wasn’t an experience of irritable flesh; it was the deep savoring, on a summer day, of something eternally expressed by a genius.
{Illustration: CASTEL GANDOLFO.}
{Illustration: CASTEL GANDOLFO.}
From Albano you may take your way through several ancient little cities to Frascati, a rival centre of villeggiatura, the road following the hillside for a long morning’s walk and passing through alternations of denser and clearer shade—the dark vaulted alleys of ilex and the brilliant corridors of fresh-sprouting oak. The Campagna is beneath you continually, with the sea beyond Ostia receiving the silver arrows of the sun upon its chased and burnished shield, and mighty Rome, to the north, lying at no great length in the idle immensity around it. The highway passes below Castel Gandolfo, which stands perched on an eminence behind a couple of gateways surmounted with the Papal tiara and twisted cordon; and I have more than once chosen the roundabout road for the sake of passing beneath these pompous insignia. Castel Gandolfo is indeed an ecclesiastical village and under the peculiar protection of the Popes, whose huge summer-palace rises in the midst of it like a rural Vatican. In speaking of the road to Frascati I necessarily revert to my first impressions, gathered on the occasion of the feast of the Annunziata, which falls on the 25th of March and is celebrated by a peasants’ fair. As Murray strongly recommends you to visit this spectacle, at which you are promised a brilliant exhibition of all the costumes of modern Latium, I took an early train to Frascati and measured, in company with a prodigious stream of humble pedestrians, the half-hour’s interval to Grotta Ferrata, where the fair is held. The road winds along the hillside, among the silver-sprinkled olives and through a charming wood where the ivy seemed tacked upon the oaks by women’s fingers and the birds were singing to the late anemones. It was covered with a very jolly crowd of vulgar pleasure-takers, and the only creatures not in a state of manifest hilarity were the pitiful little overladen, overbeaten donkeys (who surely deserve a chapter to themselves in any description of these neighbourhoods) and the horrible beggars who were thrusting their sores and stumps at you from under every tree. Every one was shouting, singing, scrambling, making light of dust and distance and filling the air with that childlike jollity which the blessed Italian temperament never goes roundabout to conceal. There is no crowd surely at once so jovial and so gentle as an Italian crowd, and I doubt if in any other country the tightly packed third-class car in which I went out from Rome would have introduced me to so much smiling and so little swearing. Grotta Ferrata is a very dirty little village, with a number of raw new houses baking on the hot hillside and nothing to charm the fond gazer but its situation and its old fortified abbey. After pushing about among the shabby little booths and declining a number of fabulous bargains in tinware, shoes and pork, I was glad to retire to a comparatively uninvaded corner of the abbey and divert myself with the view. This grey ecclesiastical stronghold is a thoroughly scenic affair, hanging over the hillside on plunging foundations which bury themselves among the dense olives. It has massive round towers at the corners and a grass-grown moat, enclosing a church and a monastery. The fore-court, within the abbatial gateway, now serves as the public square of the village and in fair-time of course witnesses the best of the fun. The best of the fun was to be found in certain great vaults and cellars of the abbey, where wine was in free flow from gigantic hogsheads. At the exit of these trickling grottos shady trellises of bamboo and gathered twigs had been improvised, and under them a grand guzzling proceeded. All of which was so in the fine old style that I was roughly reminded of the wedding-feast of Gamacho. The banquet was far less substantial of course, but it had a note as of immemorial manners that couldn’t fail to suggest romantic analogies to a pilgrim from the land of no cooks. There was a feast of reason close at hand, however, and I was careful to visit the famous frescoes of Domenichino in the adjoining church. It sounds rather brutal perhaps to say that, when I came back into the clamorous little piazza, the sight of the peasants swilling down their sour wine appealed to me more than the masterpieces—Murray calls them so—of the famous Bolognese. It amounts after all to saying that I prefer Teniers to Domenichino; which I am willing to let pass for the truth. The scene under the rickety trellises was the more suggestive of Teniers that there were no costumes to make it too Italian. Murray’s attractive statement on this point was, like many of his statements, much truer twenty years ago than to-day. Costume is gone or fast going; I saw among the women not a single crimson bodice and not a couple of classic head-cloths. The poorer sort, dressed in vulgar rags of no fashion and colour, and the smarter ones in calico gowns and printed shawls of the vilest modern fabric, had honoured their dusky tresses but with rich applications of grease. The men are still in jackets and breeches, and, with their slouched and pointed hats and open-breasted shirts and rattling leather leggings, may remind one sufficiently of the Italian peasant as he figured in the woodcuts familiar to our infancy. After coming out of the church I found a delightful nook—a queer little terrace before a more retired and tranquil drinking-shop—where I called for a bottle of wine to help me to guess why I “drew the line” at Domenichino.
From Albano, you can take a journey through several ancient small towns to Frascati, a competing hub for vacationing, with the road following the hillside on a long morning walk and shifting between denser and lighter shade—the dark, vaulted paths of holm oaks and the bright corridors of fresh oak. The Campagna lies below you the entire time, with the sea beyond Ostia reflecting the silver rays of the sun on its shiny surface, and mighty Rome to the north, not far off in the vastness surrounding it. The main road passes beneath Castel Gandolfo, which sits on a hill behind a couple of gates topped with the Papal tiara and twisted cord; I’ve often taken the longer route just to pass under these grand symbols. Castel Gandolfo is indeed a religious village and under the unique protection of the Popes, whose large summer palace rises in the middle of it like a rural Vatican. When I talk about the road to Frascati, I can’t help but recall my first impressions gathered during the feast of the Annunziata, celebrated on March 25th with a fair for the locals. Since Murray strongly recommends this spectacle, where you can expect a vibrant display of all the modern Latium costumes, I took an early train to Frascati and joined a huge stream of humble pedestrians making the half-hour trek to Grotta Ferrata, where the fair takes place. The road winds along the hillside, dotted with silver-sprinkled olive trees and charming woods where the ivy seemed to hang on the oaks like it was placed by women’s hands, and the birds were singing to the late anemones. It was packed with a cheerful crowd of commoners enjoying themselves, and the only creatures not obviously having a great time were the poor little overburdened, beaten donkeys (who definitely deserve their own chapter in any description of these areas) and the wretched beggars displaying their sores and stumps from under every tree. Everyone was shouting, singing, scrambling, making light of the dust and distance, and filling the air with that childlike joy which the blessed Italian spirit never hides. There’s no crowd that is both so cheerful and so gentle as an Italian crowd, and I doubt any other country would have a tightly packed third-class train car like the one I rode out of Rome that introduced me to so many smiles and so little swearing. Grotta Ferrata is a very dirty little village, with a number of rough new houses baking on the hot hillside and nothing charming to catch the eye except its location and its old fortified abbey. After wandering around the shabby little stalls and declining several outrageous deals on tinware, shoes, and pork, I was glad to find a relatively unbothered spot in the abbey and enjoy the view. This gray ecclesiastical fortress is quite scenic, perched on the hillside with plunging foundations buried among the dense olives. It features massive round towers at the corners and a grass-covered moat that encloses a church and a monastery. The front courtyard, within the abbey's gate, now serves as the public square of the village and, during the fair, obviously sees the best of the fun. The most enjoyable moments were found in certain large vaults and cellars of the abbey, where wine flowed freely from huge barrels. At the exit of these dripping grottos, shady trellises made of bamboo and collected twigs had been set up, and underneath them, a grand guzzling was taking place. All of this was so in the traditional style that it roughly reminded me of Gamacho's wedding feast. The banquet was certainly less substantial, but it had a vibe of ancient customs that couldn’t help but evoke a romantic nostalgia for a traveler from the land of no cooks. There was a feast of culture close at hand, though, and I made sure to visit the famous frescoes of Domenichino in the nearby church. It might sound a bit harsh to say that when I returned to the noisy little piazza, the sight of the peasants downing their sour wine appealed to me more than the masterpieces—Murray calls them that—by the famous Bolognese. Essentially, I'm admitting I prefer Teniers to Domenichino; I’m willing to accept that as the truth. The scene under the rickety trellises felt more like Teniers because there were no costumes to make it overly Italian. Murray’s enticing description on this subject was, like many of his claims, much more accurate twenty years ago than it is today. Traditional costumes are disappearing or already gone; I didn’t see a single red bodice among the women and not even a couple of classic headscarves. The poorer folks wore ragged clothes with no particular style or color, while the better-off wore calico dresses and patterned shawls made from the worst modern fabric, their dark hair only adorned with generous applications of grease. The men still wore jackets and breeches, and, with their slouched and pointed hats and open shirts and noisy leather leggings, they might remind one of the Italian peasant as depicted in familiar old woodcuts. After leaving the church, I found a lovely little spot—a quirky terrace in front of a quieter and more peaceful tavern—where I ordered a bottle of wine to help me figure out why I “drew the line” at Domenichino.
This little terrace was a capricious excrescence at the end of the piazza, itself simply a greater terrace; and one reached it, picturesquely, by ascending a short inclined plane of grass-grown cobble-stones and passing across a little dusky kitchen through whose narrow windows the light of the mighty landscape beyond touched up old earthen pots. The terrace was oblong and so narrow that it held but a single small table, placed lengthwise; yet nothing could be pleasanter than to place one’s bottle on the polished parapet. Here you seemed by the time you had emptied it to be swinging forward into immensity—hanging poised above the Campagna. A beautiful gorge with a twinkling stream wandered down the hill far below you, beyond which Marino and Castel Gandolfo peeped above the trees. In front you could count the towers of Rome and the tombs of the Appian Way. I don’t know that I came to any very distinct conclusion about Domenichino; but it was perhaps because the view was perfection that he struck me as more than ever mediocrity. And yet I don’t think it was one’s bottle of wine, either, that made one after all maudlin about him; it was the sense of the foolishly usurped in his tenure of fame, of the derisive in his ever having been put forward. To say so indeed savours of flogging a dead horse, but it is surely an unkind stroke of fate for him that Murray assures ten thousand Britons every winter in the most emphatic manner that his Communion of St. Jerome is the second finest picture in the world. If this were so one would certainly here in Rome, where such institutions are convenient, retire into the very nearest convent; with such a world one would have a standing quarrel. And yet this sport of destiny is an interesting case, in default of being an interesting painter, and I would take a moderate walk, in most moods, to see one of his pictures. He is so supremely good an example of effort detached from inspiration and school-merit divorced from spontaneity, that one of his fine frigid performances ought to hang in a conspicuous place in every academy of design. Few things of the sort contain more urgent lessons or point a more precious moral; and I would have the head-master in the drawing-school take each ingenuous pupil by the hand and lead him up to the Triumph of David or the Chase of Diana or the red-nosed Persian Sibyl and make him some such little speech as the following: “This great picture, my son, was hung here to show you how you must never paint; to give you a perfect specimen of what in its boundless generosity the providence of nature created for our fuller knowledge—an artist whose development was a negation. The great thing in art is charm, and the great thing in charm is spontaneity. Domenichino, having talent, is here and there an excellent model—he was devoted, conscientious, observant, industrious; but now that we’ve seen pretty well what can simply be learned do its best, these things help him little with us, because his imagination was cold. It loved nothing, it lost itself in nothing, its efforts never gave it the heartache. It went about trying this and that, concocting cold pictures after cold receipts, dealing in the second-hand, in the ready-made, and putting into its performances a little of everything but itself. When you see so many things in a composition you might suppose that among them all some charm might be born; yet they’re really but the hundred mouths through which you may hear the unhappy thing murmur ‘I’m dead!’ It’s by the simplest thing it has that a picture lives—by its temper. Look at all the great talents, Domenichino as well as at Titian; but think less of dogma than of plain nature, and I can almost promise you that yours will remain true.” This is very little to what the aesthetic sage I have imagined might say; and we are after all unwilling to let our last verdict be an unkind one on any great bequest of human effort. The faded frescoes in the chapel at Grotta Ferrata leave us a memory the more of man’s effort to dream beautifully; and they thus mingle harmoniously enough with our multifold impressions of Italy, where dreams and realities have both kept such pace and so strangely diverged. It was absurd—that was the truth—to be critical at all among the appealing old Italianisms round me and to treat the poor exploded Bolognese more harshly than, when I walked back to Frascati, I treated the charming old water-works of the Villa Aldobrandini. I confound these various products of antiquated art in a genial absolution, and should like especially to tell how fine it was to watch this prodigious fountain come tumbling down its channel of mouldy rock-work, through its magnificent vista of ilex, to the fantastic old hemicycle where a dozen tritons and naiads sit posturing to receive it. The sky above the ilexes was incredibly blue and the ilexes themselves incredibly black; and to see the young white moon peeping above the trees you could easily have fancied it was midnight. I should like furthermore to expatiate on Villa Mondragone, the most grandly impressive hereabouts, of all such domestic monuments. The Casino in the midst is as big as the Vatican, which it strikingly resembles, and it stands perched on a terrace as vast as the parvise of St. Peter’s, looking straight away over black cypress-tops into the shining vastness of the Campagna. Everything somehow seemed immense and solemn; there was nothing small but certain little nestling blue shadows on the Sabine Mountains, to which the terrace seems to carry you wonderfully near. The place been for some time lost to private uses, since it figures fantastically in a novel of George Sand—La Daniella—and now, in quite another way, as a Jesuit college for boys. The afternoon was perfect, and as it waned it filled the dark alleys with a wonderful golden haze. Into this came leaping and shouting a herd of little collegians with a couple of long-skirted Jesuits striding at their heels. We all know—I make the point for my antithesis—the monstrous practices of these people; yet as I watched the group I verily believe I declared that if I had a little son he should go to Mondragone and receive their crooked teachings for the sake of the other memories, the avenues of cypress and ilex, the view of the Campagna, the atmosphere of antiquity. But doubtless when a sense of “mere character,” shameless incomparable character, has brought one to this it is time one should pause.
This little terrace was a quirky extension at the end of the piazza, which was just a bigger terrace; you reached it charmingly by going up a short, sloped path of grassy cobblestones and passing through a small dark kitchen, where the light from the stunning landscape outside illuminated old earthenware pots. The terrace was rectangular and so narrow that it could only fit one small table placed lengthwise; yet nothing was more enjoyable than placing your bottle on the polished railing. By the time you finished it, you felt like you were leaning out into infinity—suspended above the Campagna. A beautiful gorge with a sparkling stream meandered down the hill far below, beyond which Marino and Castel Gandolfo peeked above the trees. In front of you, you could count the towers of Rome and the tombs along the Appian Way. I can’t say I came to any clear conclusion about Domenichino; maybe it was because the view was flawless that he seemed to me more than ever like mediocrity. However, I don't think it was just the wine that made me sentimental about him; it was the feeling that he had unjustly taken up a space in fame, of the ridiculousness of him having been promoted at all. To say so does seem like beating a dead horse, but it’s certainly an unkind twist of fate for him that Murray tells ten thousand Britons every winter in the most emphatic way that his Communion of St. Jerome is the second finest painting in the world. If that were the case, one would surely just retire to the nearest convent in Rome, where such places are convenient; in such a world, you’d be in a constant argument. Yet this cruel twist of fate is an interesting situation, even if he’s not an interesting painter, and I would take a moderate walk, in most moods, to see one of his paintings. He is such a perfect example of effort detached from inspiration and school merit divorced from spontaneity that one of his fine, cold artworks should hang prominently in every design academy. Few things like it offer more urgent lessons or convey more precious morals; I would have the headmaster in the art school take each eager student by the hand and lead him up to the Triumph of David, or the Hunt of Diana, or the red-nosed Persian Sibyl and give him a little speech like this: “This great painting, my son, was hung here to show you how you must never paint; to give you a perfect example of what in its boundless generosity nature created for our deeper understanding—an artist whose growth was a negation. The key thing in art is charm, and the key thing in charm is spontaneity. Domenichino, who had talent, is here and there an excellent model—he was dedicated, conscientious, observant, industrious; but now that we’ve seen pretty much what can simply be learned be done, these attributes matter little to us because his imagination was tepid. It loved nothing, it lost itself in nothing, and its efforts never gave it the heartache. It wandered around trying this and that, creating cold paintings from cold formulas, dealing in the second-hand, in the ready-made, and injecting a little of everything but itself into its work. When you see so many things in a composition, you might think that among them all, some charm could be born; yet they’re really just the hundred mouths through which you might hear the unfortunate thing whisper, ‘I’m dead!’ A picture lives by the simplest thing it has—its spirit. Look at all the great talents, including Domenichino and Titian; but think less of rules than of plain nature, and I can almost promise you that yours will stay true.” This is very little compared to what the aesthetic sage I’ve imagined might say; and we ultimately don’t want to make our final judgment an unkind one on any great gift of human effort. The faded frescoes in the chapel at Grotta Ferrata leave us with even more memories of man’s effort to dream beautifully; they blend harmoniously enough with our many impressions of Italy, where dreams and realities have both moved in stride and divergently. It was silly—that’s the truth—to be critical at all among the appealing old Italian buildings around me and to treat the poor, long-outdated Bolognese more harshly than, when I walked back to Frascati, I treated the lovely old fountains of the Villa Aldobrandini. I mix these various products of outdated art in a warm absolution, and I especially want to mention how wonderful it was to watch this amazing fountain tumble down its channel of worn rockwork, through its magnificent vista of holm oaks, toward the fantastical old semi-circle where a dozen tritons and naiads sit striking poses to welcome it. The sky above the holm oaks was incredibly blue, and the holm oaks themselves incredibly dark; seeing the young white moon peeking above the trees, you could easily have thought it was midnight. I’d also love to elaborate on Villa Mondragone, the most grandly impressive place in the area, among all such domestic monuments. The Casino in the middle is as big as the Vatican, which it strikingly resembles, and it stands on a terrace as vast as the parvise of St. Peter’s, looking directly over black cypress tops into the shining expanse of the Campagna. Everything seemed somehow enormous and solemn; there was nothing small but a few little cozy blue shadows on the Sabine Mountains, which the terrace seems to bring you wonderfully close to. The place has been long lost to private use, since it appears fantastically in a novel by George Sand—La Daniella—and now, in quite another way, as a Jesuit college for boys. The afternoon was perfect, and as it faded, it filled the dark alleys with a marvelous golden haze. Into this came a herd of little students leaping and shouting with a couple of long-skirted Jesuits striding after them. We all know—I make this point for my contrast—the monstrous practices of these people; yet as I watched the group, I truly believed I’d say that if I had a little son, he should go to Mondragone and receive their twisted teachings for the sake of other memories, the cypress and holm avenues, the view of the Campagna, the feeling of antiquity. But surely when a sense of “mere character,” shameless incomparable character, has brought one to this, it’s time to pause.
THE AFTER-SEASON IN ROME
One may at the blest end of May say without injustice to anybody that the state of mind of many a forestiero in Rome is one of intense impatience for the moment when all other forestieri shall have taken themselves off. One may confess to this state of mind and be no misanthrope. The place has passed so completely for the winter months into the hands of the barbarians that that estimable character the passionate pilgrim finds it constantly harder to keep his passion clear. He has a rueful sense of impressions perverted and adulterated; the all-venerable visage disconcerts us by a vain eagerness to see itself mirrored in English, American, German eyes. It isn’t simply that you are never first or never alone at the classic or historic spots where you have dreamt of persuading the shy genius loci into confidential utterance; it isn’t simply that St. Peter’s, the Vatican, the Palatine, are for ever ringing with the false note of the languages without style: it is the general oppressive feeling that the city of the soul has become for the time a monstrous mixture of watering-place and curiosity-shop and that its most ardent life is that of the tourists who haggle over false intaglios and yawn through palaces and temples. But you are told of a happy time when these abuses begin to pass away, when Rome becomes Rome again and you may have her all to yourself. “You may like her more or less now,” I was assured at the height of the season; “but you must wait till the month of May, when she’ll give you all she has, to love her. Then the foreigners, or the excess of them, are gone; the galleries and ruins are empty, and the place,” said my informant, who was a happy Frenchman of the Académie de France, “renait a ellememe.” Indeed I was haunted all winter by an irresistible prevision of what Rome must be in declared spring. Certain charming places seemed to murmur: “Ah, this is nothing! Come back at the right weeks and see the sky above us almost black with its excess of blue, and the new grass already deep, but still vivid, and the white roses tumble in odorous spray and the warm radiant air distil gold for the smelting-pot that the genius loci then dips his brush into before making play with it, in his inimitable way, for the general effect of complexion.”
At the blessed end of May, one can honestly say that many visitors in Rome are eagerly waiting for the moment when all the other tourists leave. You can admit to feeling this way without being a misanthrope. The city has become so overrun by crowds during the winter months that the passionate traveler finds it increasingly difficult to keep his enthusiasm intact. There’s a bittersweet awareness that his experiences have been twisted and compromised; the revered sights confuse us with an anxious desire to be seen through the eyes of the English, American, or German visitors. It’s not just that you’re never alone at the historic sites you’ve longed to persuade into intimate conversation; it’s not just that St. Peter’s, the Vatican, and the Palatine echo with the clamor of languages that lack style; it’s the overall oppressive feeling that the spiritual city has turned into a bizarre mix of a tourist trap and a gift shop, with its vibrant life dominated by tourists haggling over fake antiques and yawning through palaces and temples. However, you hear about a wonderful time when these problems start to fade, when Rome becomes Rome again and you can enjoy it all by yourself. “You might like her more or less now,” I was told during the peak season; “but you need to wait until May, when she’ll give you everything she has to love her. Then the tourists, or at least the overabundance of them, are gone; the galleries and ruins are empty, and the city,” said my informant, a cheerful Frenchman from the Académie de France, “is reborn.” Indeed, all winter long, I was consumed by an irresistible vision of what Rome would be in full spring. Certain lovely spots seemed to whisper: “Ah, this is nothing! Come back at the right time and see the sky above us almost black with its deep blue, the new grass lush yet bright, the white roses cascading in fragrant sprays, and the warm, radiant air transforming into gold for the artist who then dips his brush into it, showcasing it in his unique style for the perfect effect.”
A month ago I spent a week in the country, and on my return, the first time I approached the Corso, became conscious of a change. Something delightful had happened, to which at first I couldn’t give a name, but which presently shone out as the fact that there were but half as many people present and that these were chiefly the natural or the naturalised. We had been docked of half our irrelevance, our motley excess, and now physically, morally, æesthetically there was elbow-room. In the afternoon I went to the Pincio, and the Pincio was almost dull. The band was playing to a dozen ladies who lay in landaus poising their lace-fringed parasols; but they had scarce more than a light-gloved dandy apiece hanging over their carriage doors. By the parapet to the great terrace that sweeps the city stood but three or four interlopers looking at the sunset and with their Baedekers only just showing in their pockets—the sunsets not being down among the tariffed articles in these precious volumes. I went so far as to hope for them that, like myself, they were, under every precaution, taking some amorous intellectual liberty with the scene.
A month ago, I spent a week in the countryside, and upon my return, the first time I walked towards the Corso, I noticed a change. Something wonderful had occurred, which at first I couldn't quite identify, but soon became clear: there were only half as many people around, and those who were present were mostly locals or those who had settled here. We had been relieved of half our distractions, our chaotic crowd, and now there was room to breathe, both physically and in terms of atmosphere. In the afternoon, I visited the Pincio, and it felt almost boring. The band was playing for a dozen ladies lounging in their carriages, balancing their lace-trimmed parasols; but each lady had barely more than a dapper gentleman hanging over her carriage door. By the railing of the grand terrace overlooking the city, there were only three or four outsiders watching the sunset, their guidebooks just barely peeking out of their pockets—since the sunsets were not listed among the attractions in those cherished books. I even dared to hope that, like me, they were, in their own way and with some caution, indulging in a romantic intellectual freedom with the view.
Practically I violate thus the instinct of monopoly, since it’s a shame not to publish that Rome in May is indeed exquisitely worth your patience. I have just been so gratified at finding myself in undisturbed possession for a couple of hours of the Museum of the Lateran that I can afford to be magnanimous. It’s almost as if the old all-papal paradise had come back. The weather for a month has been perfect, the sky an extravagance of blue, the air lively enough, the nights cool, nippingly cool, and the whole ancient greyness lighted with an irresistible smile. Rome, which in some moods, especially to new-comers, seems a place of almost sinister gloom, has an occasional art, as one knows her better, of brushing away care by the grand gesture with which some splendid impatient mourning matron—just the Niobe of Nations, surviving, emerging and looking about her again—might pull off and cast aside an oppression of muffling crape. This admirable power still temperamentally to react and take notice lurks in all her darkness and dirt and decay—a something more careless and hopeless than our thrifty northern cheer, and yet more genial and urbane than the Parisian spirit of blague. The collective Roman nature is a healthy and hearty one, and you feel it abroad in the streets even when the sirocco blows and the medium of life seems to proceed more or less from the mouth of a furnace. But who shall analyse even the simplest Roman impression? It is compounded of so many things, it says so much, it involves so much, it so quickens the intelligence and so flatters the heart, that before we fairly grasp the case the imagination has marked it for her own and exposed us to a perilous likelihood of talking nonsense about it.
Practically, I go against the instinct of keeping things to myself because it's a shame not to share that Rome in May is truly worth your patience. I’ve just been so pleased to have a couple of hours alone in the Museum of the Lateran that I can afford to be generous. It’s almost like the old papal paradise has returned. The weather for the past month has been perfect, with a vibrant blue sky, lively air, cool nights, refreshingly cool, and the entire ancient grey backdrop lit up with an irresistible smile. Rome, which can sometimes feel quite gloomy, especially to newcomers, has a unique way, as you get to know it better, of sweeping away worries with the grand gesture of a splendid, impatient mourning matron—like the Niobe of Nations, surviving, emerging, and looking around again—who might dramatically remove an oppressive layer of black fabric. This admirable ability to still react and notice lurks in all its darkness, dirt, and decay—something more carefree and hopeless than our practical northern cheer, yet more welcoming and sophisticated than the Parisian vibe of blague. The collective Roman spirit is healthy and vibrant, and you can feel it in the streets even when the sirocco blows, and life seems to come straight out of a furnace. But who can really analyze even the simplest Roman impression? It’s made up of so many elements, conveys so much, involves so much, stimulates the mind, and flatters the heart that before we truly understand it, our imagination has claimed it as her own, putting us at risk of saying something foolish about it.
The smile of Rome, as I have called it, and its insidious message to those who incline to ramble irresponsibly and take things as they come, is ushered in with the first breath of spring, and then grows and grows with the advancing season till it wraps the whole place in its tenfold charm. As the process develops you can do few better things than go often to Villa Borghese and sit on the grass—on a stout bit of drapery—and watch its exquisite stages. It has a frankness and a sweetness beyond any relenting of our clumsy climates even when ours leave off their damnable faces and begin. Nature departs from every reserve with a confidence that leaves one at a loss where, as it were, to look—leaves one, as I say, nothing to do but to lay one’s head among the anemones at the base of a high-stemmed pine and gaze up crestward and sky-ward along its slanting silvery column. You may watch the whole business from a dozen of these choice standpoints and have a different villa for it every day in the week. The Doria, the Ludovisi, the Medici, the Albani, the Wolkonski, the Chigi, the Mellini, the Massimo—there are more of them, with all their sights and sounds and odours and memories, than you have senses for. But I prefer none of them to the Borghese, which is free to all the world at all times and yet never crowded; for when the whirl of carriages is great in the middle regions you may find a hundred untrodden spots and silent corners, tenanted at the worst by a group of those long-skirted young Propagandists who stalk about with solemn angularity, each with a book under his arm, like silhouettes from a medieval missal, and “compose” so extremely well with the still more processional cypresses and with stretches of golden-russet wall overtopped by ultramarine. And yet if the Borghese is good the Medici is strangely charming, and you may stand in the little belvedere which rises with such surpassing oddity out of the dusky heart of the Boschetto at the latter establishment—a miniature presentation of the wood of the Sleeping Beauty—and look across at the Ludovisi pines lifting their crooked parasols into a sky of what a painter would call the most morbid blue, and declare that the place where they grow is the most delightful in the world. Villa Ludovisi has been all winter the residence of the lady familiarly known in Roman society as “Rosina,” Victor Emmanuel’s morganatic wife, the only familiarity it would seem, that she allows, for the grounds were rigidly closed, to the inconsolable regret of old Roman sojourners. Just as the nightingales began to sing, however, the quasi-august padrona departed, and the public, with certain restrictions, have been admitted to hear them. The place takes, where it lies, a princely ease, and there could be no better example of the expansive tendencies of ancient privilege than the fact that its whole vast extent is contained by the city walls. It has in this respect very much the same enviable air of having got up early that marks the great intramural demesne of Magdalen College at Oxford. The stern old ramparts of Rome form the outer enclosure of the villa, and hence a series of “striking scenic effects” which it would be unscrupulous flattery to say you can imagine. The grounds are laid out in the formal last-century manner; but nowhere do the straight black cypresses lead off the gaze into vistas of a melancholy more charged with associations—poetic, romantic, historic; nowhere are there grander, smoother walls of laurel and myrtle.
The smile of Rome, as I've called it, and its sneaky message to those who like to wander carelessly and take things as they come, comes with the first breath of spring and then grows and grows as the season advances until it wraps the whole place in its incredible charm. As this unfolds, you can't do much better than go to Villa Borghese often, sit on the grass—on a sturdy piece of fabric—and watch its beautiful changes. It has a brightness and a sweetness that surpasses any thaw of our clumsy climates, even when ours finally shake off their grim moods and begin anew. Nature sheds all restraint with a confidence that leaves you unsure where to look—leaves you, as I say, with nothing to do but lay your head among the anemones at the base of a tall pine and gaze up its slanting silvery trunk toward the sky. You can watch the whole scene from a dozen of these great spots and have a different villa experience every day of the week. The Doria, the Ludovisi, the Medici, the Albani, the Wolkonski, the Chigi, the Mellini, the Massimo—there are so many, with all their sights, sounds, scents, and memories, that you can't fully appreciate them all. But I prefer none of them to Borghese, which is open to everyone all the time yet never feels crowded; when the carriages are swirling heavily in the lower areas, you may find a hundred untouched spots and quiet corners, often inhabited by a group of those long-skirted young Propagandists who walk around solemnly, each with a book under their arm, like silhouettes from a medieval manuscript, and they "compose" perfectly with the even more ceremonial cypress trees and stretches of golden-russet walls topped with deep blue. And yet, while the Borghese is lovely, the Medici is strangely charming, and you can stand in the little belvedere that rises in such a wonderfully odd way out of the dark heart of the Boschetto at the latter place—a miniature version of the Sleeping Beauty's wood—and look across at the Ludovisi pines lifting their crooked umbrellas into a sky that a painter would call the most morbid blue, declaring that the place where they grow is the most delightful in the world. Villa Ludovisi has all winter been the home of the lady affectionately known in Roman society as “Rosina,” Victor Emmanuel’s morganatic wife, the only familiarity she seems to allow, since the grounds were strictly closed, much to the sorrow of long-term Roman visitors. Just as the nightingales started to sing, however, the semi-august padrona left, and the public, with certain restrictions, began to be allowed in to hear them. The place, where it sits, has a regal ease, and there's no better example of the expansive nature of ancient privilege than the fact that its vast grounds are contained by the city walls. In this way, it has a similar enviable air of having gotten up early that marks the great intramural estate of Magdalen College at Oxford. The imposing old walls of Rome form the outer boundary of the villa, producing a series of “striking scenic effects” that would be downright dishonest to say you can merely imagine. The grounds are designed in a formal last-century style; yet nowhere do the straight black cypress trees lead the gaze into views filled with more melancholy associations—poetic, romantic, historic; nowhere are there grander, smoother walls of laurel and myrtle.
I recently spent an afternoon hour at the little Protestant cemetery close to St. Paul’s Gate, where the ancient and the modern world are insidiously contrasted. They make between them one of the solemn places of Rome—although indeed when funereal things are so interfused it seems ungrateful to call them sad. Here is a mixture of tears and smiles, of stones and flowers, of mourning cypresses and radiant sky, which gives us the impression of our looking back at death from the brighter side of the grave. The cemetery nestles in an angle of the city wall, and the older graves are sheltered by a mass of ancient brickwork, through whose narrow loopholes you peep at the wide purple of the Campagna. Shelley’s grave is here, buried in roses—a happy grave every way for the very type and figure of the Poet. Nothing could be more impenetrably tranquil than this little corner in the bend of the protecting rampart, where a cluster of modern ashes is held tenderly in the rugged hand of the Past. The past is tremendously embodied in the hoary pyramid of Caius Cestius, which rises hard by, half within the wall and half without, cutting solidly into the solid blue of the sky and casting its pagan shadow upon the grass of English graves—that of Keats, among them—with an effect of poetic justice. It is a wonderful confusion of mortality and a grim enough admonition of our helpless promiscuity in the crucible of time. But the most touching element of all is the appeal of the pious English inscriptions among all these Roman memories; touching because of their universal expression of that trouble within trouble, misfortune in a foreign land. Something special stirs the heart through the fine Scriptural language in which everything is recorded. The echoes of massive Latinity with which the atmosphere is charged suggest nothing more majestic and monumental. I may seem unduly to refine, but the injunction to the reader in the monument to Miss Bathurst, drowned in the Tiber in 1824, “If thou art young and lovely, build not thereon, for she who lies beneath thy feet in death was the loveliest flower ever cropt in its bloom,” affects us irresistibly as a case for tears on the spot. The whole elaborate inscription indeed says something over and beyond all it does say. The English have the reputation of being the most reticent people in the world, and as there is no smoke without fire I suppose they have done something to deserve it; yet who can say that one doesn’t constantly meet the most startling examples of the insular faculty to “gush”? In this instance the mother of the deceased takes the public into her confidence with surprising frankness and omits no detail, seizing the opportunity to mention by the way that she had already lost her husband by a most mysterious visitation. The appeal to one’s attention and the confidence in it are withal most moving. The whole record has an old-fashioned gentility that makes its frankness tragic. You seem to hear the garrulity of passionate grief.
I recently spent an hour in the small Protestant cemetery near St. Paul’s Gate, where the ancient and modern worlds are subtly contrasted. Together, they create one of the most solemn places in Rome—even though, when mourning elements are so intertwined, it feels a bit ungrateful to call them sad. Here, there's a mix of tears and smiles, stones and flowers, mourning cypresses, and a bright sky, all giving us the feeling of looking back at death from a more hopeful perspective. The cemetery is tucked in a corner of the city wall, with the older graves sheltered by a mass of ancient brick, through whose narrow openings you can glimpse the expansive purple of the Campagna. Shelley’s grave is here, buried in roses—a fitting resting place for the quintessential Poet. Nothing could be more peacefully serene than this little spot within the protective rampart, where a group of modern ashes is lovingly held in the rugged embrace of the Past. The Past is powerfully represented by the ancient pyramid of Caius Cestius, which stands nearby, half within the wall and half outside, sharply against the solid blue sky and casting its pagan shadow on the grass of English graves—like Keats’s—creating an effect of poetic justice. It’s a remarkable blend of mortality and a stark reminder of our helplessness in the face of time. Yet the most poignant part is the heartfelt English inscriptions among all these Roman memories; these are touching due to their universal expression of sorrow and hardship in a foreign land. There’s something special that tugs at the heartstrings through the beautiful Scriptural language in which everything is written. The resonances of grand Latin that fill the atmosphere suggest nothing more majestic and monumental. I may seem overly critical, but the plea to readers on the monument of Miss Bathurst, who drowned in the Tiber in 1824, “If you are young and lovely, do not tread here, for she who lies beneath your feet in death was the loveliest flower ever cut in its bloom,” is powerfully emotional and moved me to tears right on the spot. The entire elaborate inscription conveys something beyond its words. The English are known for being the most reserved people in the world, and since there’s no smoke without fire, they must have done something to earn this reputation; yet who can deny that you continuously encounter surprising instances of their ability to “gush”? In this case, the mother of the deceased shares her grief with unexpected openness and spares no details, taking the chance to mention that she had already lost her husband in a mysterious way. The heartfelt appeal for attention and the trust placed in it are, in themselves, quite moving. The entire inscription carries an old-fashioned genteel quality that makes its openness feel tragic. You can almost hear the overflow of passionate grief.
To be choosing these positive commonplaces of the Roman tone for a theme when there are matters of modern moment going on may seem none the less to require an apology. But I make no claim to your special correspondent’s faculty for getting an “inside” view of things, and I have hardly more than a pictorial impression of the Pope’s illness and of the discussion of the Law of the Convents. Indeed I am afraid to speak of the Pope’s illness at all, lest I should say something egregiously heartless about it, recalling too forcibly that unnatural husband who was heard to wish that his wife would “either” get well—! He had his reasons, and Roman tourists have theirs in the shape of a vague longing for something spectacular at St. Peter’s. If it takes the sacrifice of somebody to produce it let somebody then be sacrificed. Meanwhile we have been having a glimpse of the spectacular side of the Religious Corporations Bill. Hearing one morning a great hubbub in the Corso I stepped forth upon my balcony. A couple of hundred men were strolling slowly down the street with their hands in their pockets, shouting in unison “Abbasso il ministero!” and huzzaing in chorus. Just beneath my window they stopped and began to murmur “Al Quirinale, al Quirinale!” The crowd surged a moment gently and then drifted to the Quirinal, where it scuffled harmlessly with half-a-dozen of the king’s soldiers. It ought to have been impressive, for what was it, strictly, unless the seeds of revolution? But its carriage was too gentle and its cries too musical to send the most timorous tourist to packing his trunk. As I began with saying: in Rome, in May, everything has an amiable side, even popular uprisings.
Choosing these optimistic clichés of the Roman tone for a topic, while modern issues are unfolding, may still need some justification. However, I don’t claim to have the special correspondent’s ability to get an “inside” perspective, and I only have a general impression of the Pope’s illness and the discussions surrounding the Law of the Convents. In fact, I hesitate to mention the Pope's illness at all, fearing I might say something truly heartless, recalling that unnatural husband who once wished his wife would “either” get better—! He had his reasons, and Roman tourists have theirs, fueled by a vague desire for something dramatic at St. Peter’s. If it takes sacrificing someone to create that spectacle, then let someone be sacrificed. Meanwhile, we've caught a glimpse of the dramatic element of the Religious Corporations Bill. One morning, I heard a commotion in the Corso and stepped out onto my balcony. A couple of hundred men were casually strolling down the street, hands in their pockets, shouting in unison “Down with the ministry!” and cheering together. Just beneath my window, they stopped and started murmuring “To the Quirinale, to the Quirinale!” The crowd surged gently for a moment and then drifted toward the Quirinal, where they harmlessly tussled with a handful of the king’s soldiers. It should have been impressive because, strictly speaking, what was it but the seeds of revolution? But the way it played out was too gentle, and their chants too melodic to scare even the most timid tourist into packing their bags. As I began by saying: in Rome, in May, everything has a pleasant side, even popular uprisings.
FROM A ROMAN NOTE-BOOK
December 28, 1872.—In Rome again for the last three days—that second visit which, when the first isn’t followed by a fatal illness in Florence, the story goes that one is doomed to pay. I didn’t drink of the Fountain of Trevi on the eve of departure the other time; but I feel as if I had drunk of the Tiber itself. Nevertheless as I drove from the station in the evening I wondered what I should think of it at this first glimpse hadn’t I already known it. All manner of evil perhaps. Paris, as I passed along the Boulevards three evenings before to take the train, was swarming and glittering as befits a great capital. Here, in the black, narrow, crooked, empty streets, I saw nothing I would fain regard as eternal. But there were new gas-lamps round the spouting Triton in Piazza Barberini and a newspaper stall on the corner of the Condotti and the Corso—salient signs of the emancipated state. An hour later I walked up to Via Gregoriana by Piazza di Spagna. It was all silent and deserted, and the great flight of steps looked surprisingly small. Everything seemed meagre, dusky, provincial. Could Rome after all really be a world-city? That queer old rococo garden gateway at the top of the Gregoriana stirred a dormant memory; it awoke into a consciousness of the delicious mildness of the air, and very soon, in a little crimson drawing-room, I was reconciled and re-initiated.... Everything is dear (in the way of lodgings), but it hardly matters, as everything is taken and some one else paying for it. I must make up my mind to a bare perch. But it seems poorly perverse here to aspire to an “interior” or to be conscious of the economic side of life. The æesthetic is so intense that you feel you should live on the taste of it, should extract the nutritive essence of the atmosphere. For positively it’s such an atmosphere! The weather is perfect, the sky as blue as the most exploded tradition fames it, the whole air glowing and throbbing with lovely colour.... The glitter of Paris is now all gaslight. And oh the monotonous miles of rain-washed asphalte!
December 28, 1872.—I’m back in Rome for the last three days—my second visit, which, according to the story, means I’m doomed to pay if the first one isn’t followed by a serious illness in Florence. I didn’t drink from the Fountain of Trevi before I left the last time; but it feels like I’ve already drunk from the Tiber itself. Still, as I drove from the station in the evening, I wondered what I’d think of it at this first look if I hadn’t already known it. Possibly all kinds of bad thoughts. Paris, as I walked along the Boulevards three evenings ago to catch the train, was bustling and shining like a major capital. Here, in the dark, narrow, winding, empty streets, I found nothing I could call eternal. But there were new gas lamps around the spouting Triton in Piazza Barberini and a newspaper stand at the corner of the Condotti and the Corso—clear signs of progress. An hour later, I walked up Via Gregoriana by Piazza di Spagna. It was completely quiet and deserted, and the grand staircase looked surprisingly small. Everything felt sparse, gloomy, and provincial. Could Rome really still be a world-city? That strange old rococo garden gate at the top of the Gregoriana triggered a buried memory; it brought back a sense of the lovely mildness of the air, and before long, in a little crimson drawing room, I felt reconciled and re-initiated.... Everything is expensive (in terms of lodgings), but it hardly matters since it’s all taken care of and someone else is paying for it. I’ll have to settle for a cramped space. However, it feels oddly wrong here to strive for an “interior” or to think about the financial side of life. The aesthetic is so intense that you feel like you should live off its beauty, like you should absorb the nourishing essence of the atmosphere. Because it’s such an atmosphere! The weather is perfect, the sky as blue as the most celebrated tales say, the whole air glowing and pulsing with beautiful color.... The sparkle of Paris now comes solely from gaslight. And oh, those endless miles of rain-soaked asphalt!
December 30th.—I have had nothing to do with the “ceremonies.” In fact I believe there have hardly been any—no midnight mass at the Sistine chapel, no silver trumpets at St. Peter’s. Everything is remorselessly clipped and curtailed—the Vatican in deepest mourning. But I saw it in its superbest scarlet in ‘69.... I went yesterday with L. to the Colonna gardens—an adventure that would have reconverted me to Rome if the thing weren’t already done. It’s a rare old place—rising in mouldy bosky terraces and mossy stairways and winding walks from the back of the palace to the top of the Quirinal. It’s the grand style of gardening, and resembles the present natural manner as a chapter of Johnsonian rhetoric resembles a piece of clever contemporary journalism. But it’s a better style in horticulture than in literature; I prefer one of the long-drawn blue-green Colonna vistas, with a maimed and mossy-coated garden goddess at the end, to the finest possible quotation from a last-century classic. Perhaps the best thing there is the old orangery with its trees in fantastic terra-cotta tubs. The late afternoon light was gilding the monstrous jars and suspending golden chequers among the golden-fruited leaves. Or perhaps the best thing is the broad terrace with its mossy balustrade and its benches; also its view of the great naked Torre di Nerone (I think), which might look stupid if the rosy brickwork didn’t take such a colour in the blue air. Delightful, at any rate, to stroll and talk there in the afternoon sunshine.
December 30th.—I haven’t participated in the “ceremonies.” Honestly, I don’t think there have been any—no midnight mass at the Sistine Chapel, no silver trumpets at St. Peter’s. Everything feels harshly trimmed back—the Vatican in deep mourning. But I saw it in its stunning scarlet in ‘69.... I went yesterday with L. to the Colonna gardens—an experience that would have made me fall in love with Rome again if that hadn’t already happened. It’s a unique old place—rising with creepy, overgrown terraces, mossy staircases, and winding paths from the back of the palace to the top of the Quirinal. It represents an impressive style of gardening, and looks like how gardening used to be compared to how people do it today, much like a chapter of Johnsonian rhetoric compares to a piece of smart contemporary journalism. But it’s a better style in gardening than in writing; I’d rather take in one of the long, blue-green Colonna views, with a half-destroyed, moss-covered garden goddess at the end, than read the best possible quote from a classic of the last century. Maybe the best part there is the old orangery with its trees in bizarre terra-cotta pots. The late afternoon light was shining on the huge jars and highlighting golden patterns among the golden-fruited leaves. Or maybe the best part is the wide terrace with its mossy railing and benches; also its view of the great naked Torre di Nerone (I think), which might seem silly if the rosy brick didn’t look so good against the blue sky. It’s delightful, either way, to walk and chat there in the afternoon sun.
January 2nd, 1873.—Two or three drives with A.—one to St. Paul’s without the Walls and back by a couple of old churches on the Aventine. I was freshly struck with the rare distinction of the little Protestant cemetery at the Gate, lying in the shadow of the black sepulchral Pyramid and the thick-growing black cypresses. Bathed in the clear Roman light the place is heartbreaking for what it asks you—in such a world as this—to renounce. If it should “make one in love with death to lie there,” that’s only if death should be conscious. As the case stands, the weight of a tremendous past presses upon the flowery sod, and the sleeper’s mortality feels the contact of all the mortality with which the brilliant air is tainted.... The restored Basilica is incredibly splendid. It seems a last pompous effort of formal Catholicism, and there are few more striking emblems of later Rome—the Rome foredoomed to see Victor Emmanuel in the Quirinal, the Rome of abortive councils and unheeded anathemas. It rises there, gorgeous and useless, on its miasmatic site, with an air of conscious bravado—a florid advertisement of the superabundance of faith. Within it’s magnificent, and its magnificence has no shabby spots—a rare thing in Rome. Marble and mosaic, alabaster and malachite, lapis and porphyry, incrust it from pavement to cornice and flash back their polished lights at each other with such a splendour of effect that you seem to stand at the heart of some immense prismatic crystal. One has to come to Italy to know marbles and love them. I remember the fascination of the first great show of them I met in Venice—at the Scalzi and Gesuiti. Colour has in no other form so cool and unfading a purity and lustre. Softness of tone and hardness of substance—isn’t that the sum of the artist’s desire? G., with his beautiful caressing, open-lipped Roman utterance, so easy to understand and, to my ear, so finely suggestive of genuine Latin, not our horrible Anglo-Saxon and Protestant kind, urged upon us the charms of a return by the Aventine and the sight of a couple of old churches. The best is Santa Sabina, a very fine old structure of the fifth century, mouldering in its dusky solitude and consuming its own antiquity. What a massive heritage Christianity and Catholicism are leaving here! What a substantial fact, in all its decay, this memorial Christian temple outliving its uses among the sunny gardens and vineyards! It has a noble nave, filled with a stale smell which (like that of the onion) brought tears to my eyes, and bordered with twenty-four fluted marble columns of Pagan origin. The crudely primitive little mosaics along the entablature are extremely curious. A Dominican monk, still young, who showed us the church, seemed a creature generated from its musty shadows I odours. His physiognomy was wonderfully de l’emploi, and his voice, most agreeable, had the strangest jaded humility. His lugubrious salute and sanctimonious impersonal appropriation of my departing franc would have been a master-touch on the stage. While we were still in the church a bell rang that he had to go and answer, and as he came back and approached us along the nave he made with his white gown and hood and his cadaverous face, against the dark church background, one of those pictures which, thank the Muses, have not yet been reformed out of Italy. It was the exact illustration, for insertion in a text, of heaven knows how many old romantic and conventional literary Italianisms—plays, poems, mysteries of Udolpho. We got back into the carriage and talked of profane things and went home to dinner—drifting recklessly, it seemed to me, from aesthetic luxury to social.
January 2nd, 1873.—I had a couple of drives with A.—one to St. Paul’s Outside the Walls and back past some old churches on the Aventine. I was struck again by the unique charm of the small Protestant cemetery at the gate, nestled in the shadow of the dark sepulchral Pyramid and the thick black cypresses. Bathed in the clear Roman light, the place is heartbreaking for what it asks you to give up—in such a world as this. If lying there makes one love death, that’s only if death is aware. As it is, the weight of a vast past presses down on the floral ground, and the resting one's mortality feels all the other mortalities tainting the bright air... The restored Basilica is unbelievably grand. It seems to be a final grand gesture of formal Catholicism, and there are few more striking symbols of later Rome—the Rome destined to see Victor Emmanuel in the Quirinal, the Rome of failed councils and ignored anathemas. It towers there, beautiful and pointless, on its unhealthy site, with an air of bold defiance—a showy advertisement of an excess of faith. Inside, it’s magnificent, and its beauty has no shabby corners—a rare thing in Rome. Marble and mosaic, alabaster and malachite, lapis and porphyry, coat it from floor to ceiling, reflecting their polished lights off one another in such a vibrant way that you feel you’re at the center of an incredible prismatic crystal. You have to come to Italy to truly appreciate marbles and learn to love them. I remember the allure of the first grand display I encountered in Venice—at the Scalzi and Gesuiti. Color has no other form with such a cool and lasting purity and shine. Softness of tone and hardness of substance—isn’t that the ultimate goal for an artist? G., with his beautiful, easy-to-understand Roman accent, so pleasing to my ear and so evocative of true Latin—not our awful Anglo-Saxon and Protestant version—encouraged us to take a detour back through the Aventine to see a couple of old churches. The best is Santa Sabina, a stunning old structure from the fifth century, decaying in its shadowy solitude and fading into its own history. What a powerful legacy Christianity and Catholicism are leaving here! What a significant artifact, even in its decline, this memorial Christian temple is, outlasting its purpose among sunny gardens and vineyards! It has a grand nave, filled with a stale odor that (like an onion) brought tears to my eyes, bordered by twenty-four fluted marble columns from pagan times. The crudely primitive little mosaics along the entablature are quite fascinating. A young Dominican monk who showed us the church seemed like a being born from its musty shadows and smells. His features were wonderfully de l’emploi, and his very pleasant voice carried a strange, weary humility. His mournful greeting and sanctimonious, detached way of accepting my departing franc would make for a great stage performance. While we were still in the church, a bell rang, and he had to go answer it. When he returned and approached us along the nave, his white gown and hood, combined with his gaunt face against the dark church background, created one of those images that thankfully haven’t been erased from Italy. It was the perfect illustration for who knows how many old romantic and conventional literary Italianisms—plays, poems, mysteries of Udolpho. We got back in the carriage, talked about mundane things, and headed home for dinner—seemingly drifting carelessly from aesthetic pleasure to social life.
On the 31st we went to the musical vesper-service at the Gesu—hitherto done so splendidly before the Pope and the cardinals. The manner of it was eloquent of change—no Pope, no cardinals, and indifferent music; but a great mise-en-scène nevertheless. The church is gorgeous; late Renaissance, of great proportions, and full, like so many others, but in a pre-eminent degree, of seventeenth and eighteenth century Romanism. It doesn’t impress the imagination, but richly feeds the curiosity, by which I mean one’s sense of the curious; suggests no legends, but innumerable anecdotes à la Stendhal. There is a vast dome, filled with a florid concave fresco of tumbling foreshortened angels, and all over the ceilings and cornices a wonderful outlay of dusky gildings and mouldings. There are various Bernini saints and seraphs in stucco-sculpture, astride of the tablets and door-tops, backing against their rusty machinery of coppery nimbi and egg-shaped cloudlets. Marble, damask and tapers in gorgeous profusion. The high altar a great screen of twinkling chandeliers. The choir perched in a little loft high up in the right transept, like a balcony in a side-scene at the opera, and indulging in surprising roulades and flourishes.... Near me sat a handsome, opulent-looking nun—possibly an abbess or prioress of noble lineage. Can a holy woman of such a complexion listen to a fine operatic barytone in a sumptuous temple and receive none but ascetic impressions? What a cross-fire of influences does Catholicism provide!
On the 31st, we attended the musical evening service at the Gesu—previously performed so wonderfully before the Pope and the cardinals. The vibe was clearly different—no Pope, no cardinals, and lackluster music; but it still had a great mise-en-scène. The church is stunning; late Renaissance, grand in size, and filled, like many others, with a significant presence of seventeenth and eighteenth-century Romanism. It doesn’t capture the imagination but definitely sparks curiosity—what I mean is, it piques one’s sense of the unusual; it doesn’t suggest any legends, but endless anecdotes like in Stendhal’s stories. There’s a huge dome adorned with a lavish concave fresco of angels in dynamic poses, and the ceilings and cornices feature beautiful dark gilding and moldings. There are various Bernini saints and seraphs in stucco sculptures, perched on the lintels and above doors, leaning against their rusty coppery nimbi and egg-shaped clouds. Marble, damask, and candles are lavishly displayed. The high altar is a large screen of sparkling chandeliers. The choir is situated in a small loft high in the right transept, resembling a balcony in an opera set, performing surprising runs and flourishes.... Next to me sat an attractive, affluent-looking nun—possibly an abbess or prioress of noble descent. Can a holy woman with such a complexion listen to a talented operatic baritone in such a lavish space and take away only pious thoughts? What a mix of influences Catholicism offers!
January 4th.—A drive with A. out of Porta San Giovanni and along Via Appia Nuova. More and more beautiful as you get well away from the walls and the great view opens out before you—the rolling green-brown dells and flats of the Campagna, the long, disjointed arcade of the aqueducts, the deep-shadowed blue of the Alban Hills, touched into pale lights by their scattered towns. We stopped at the ruined basilica of San Stefano, an affair of the fifth century, rather meaningless without a learned companion. But the perfect little sepulchral chambers of the Pancratii, disinterred beneath the church, tell their own tale—in their hardly dimmed frescoes, their beautiful sculptured coffin and great sepulchral slab. Better still the tomb of the Valerii adjoining it—a single chamber with an arched roof, covered with stucco mouldings perfectly intact, exquisite figures and arabesques as sharp and delicate as if the plasterer’s scaffold had just been taken from under them. Strange enough to think of these things—so many of them as there are—surviving their immemorial eclipse in this perfect shape and coming up like long-lost divers on the sea of time.
January 4th.—A drive with A. out of Porta San Giovanni and along Via Appia Nuova. It gets more beautiful the farther you get from the walls and the stunning view opens up before you—the rolling green-brown hills and plains of the Campagna, the long, broken line of the aqueducts, the deep-blue shadows of the Alban Hills, highlighted by their scattered towns. We stopped at the ruined basilica of San Stefano, a structure from the fifth century, which feels a bit pointless without a knowledgeable companion. But the small burial chambers of the Pancratii, uncovered beneath the church, share their own story—with their barely faded frescoes, beautiful sculpted coffin, and large burial slab. Even better is the tomb of the Valerii next to it—a single chamber with an arched ceiling, adorned with perfectly preserved stucco moldings, exquisite figures, and intricate designs as sharp and delicate as if the plasterer's scaffold had just been removed. It's strange to think about these many things—surviving their ancient obscurity in this perfect form and emerging like long-lost divers from the sea of time.
January 16th.—A delightful walk last Sunday with F. to Monte Mario. We drove to Porta Angelica, the little gate hidden behind the right wing of Bernini’s colonnade, and strolled thence up the winding road to the Villa Mellini, where one of the greasy peasants huddled under the wall in the sun admits you for half franc into the finest old ilex-walk in Italy. It is all vaulted grey-green shade with blue Campagna stretches in the interstices. The day was perfect; the still sunshine, as we sat at the twisted base of the old trees, seemed to have the drowsy hum of mid-summer—with that charm of Italian vegetation that comes to us as its confession of having scenically served, to weariness at last, for some pastoral these many centuries a classic. In a certain cheapness and thinness of substance—as compared with the English stoutness, never left athirst—it reminds me of our own, and it is relatively dry enough and pale enough to explain the contempt of many unimaginative Britons. But it has an idle abundance and wantonness, a romantic shabbiness and dishevelment. At the Villa Mellini is the famous lonely pine which “tells” so in the landscape from other points, bought off from the axe by (I believe) Sir George Beaumont, commemorated in a like connection in Wordsworth’s great sonnet. He at least was not an unimaginative Briton. As you stand under it, its far-away shallow dome, supported on a single column almost white enough to be marble, seems to dwell in the dizziest depths of the blue. Its pale grey-blue boughs and its silvery stem make a wonderful harmony with the ambient air. The Villa Mellini is full of the elder Italy of one’s imagination—the Italy of Boccaccio and Ariosto. There are twenty places where the Florentine story-tellers might have sat round on the grass. Outside the villa walls, beneath the over-crowding orange-boughs, straggled old Italy as well—but not in Boccaccio’s velvet: a row of ragged and livid contadini, some simply stupid in their squalor, but some downright brigands of romance, or of reality, with matted locks and terribly sullen eyes.
January 16th.—I had a delightful walk last Sunday with F. to Monte Mario. We drove to Porta Angelica, the little gate hidden behind the right side of Bernini’s colonnade, and then wandered up the winding road to the Villa Mellini, where a greasy peasant sitting in the sun lets you in for half a franc to see the finest old ilex walk in Italy. It's all vaulted in grey-green shade with stretches of blue Campagna in between. The day was perfect; the warm sunshine, as we sat at the gnarled base of the old trees, felt like the lazy hum of mid-summer—carrying that charm of Italian vegetation that reveals its long history of serving pastoral scenes over many centuries. In some ways, it has a certain cheapness and thinness, especially compared to the robust English scenery that never leaves you thirsty, which explains why many unimaginative Britons might look down on it. But it’s full of an idle abundance and a whimsical charm, a romantic kind of wear and tear. At the Villa Mellini stands the famous lonely pine that stands out in the landscape from other points; it was saved from being cut down by (I believe) Sir George Beaumont, who is mentioned in a similar context in Wordsworth’s great sonnet. He certainly wasn’t an unimaginative Briton. When you stand under it, its distant, shallow dome, supported by a single column almost white enough to be marble, seems to float in the depths of the blue sky. Its pale grey-blue branches and its silvery trunk create a wonderful harmony with the surrounding air. The Villa Mellini is full of the old Italy of your imagination—the Italy of Boccaccio and Ariosto. There are twenty spots where the Florentine storytellers could have gathered on the grass. Outside the villa walls, beneath the overgrown orange branches, the old Italy sprawls as well—but not in Boccaccio’s lush style: a row of ragged and ghostly peasant workers, some simply dull in their poverty, but some true romantic brigands, or maybe just reality, with tangled hair and terribly gloomy eyes.
A couple of days later I walked for old acquaintance’ sake over to San Onofrio on the Janiculan. The approach is one of the dirtiest adventures in Rome, and though the view is fine from the little terrace, the church and convent are of a meagre and musty pattern. Yet here—almost like pearls in a dunghill—are hidden mementos of two of the most exquisite of Italian minds. Torquato Tasso spent the last months of his life here, and you may visit his room and various warped and faded relics. The most interesting is a cast of his face taken after death—looking, like all such casts, almost more than mortally gallant and distinguished. But who should look all ideally so if not he? In a little shabby, chilly corridor adjoining is a fresco of Leonardo, a Virgin and Child with the donatorio. It is very small, simple and faded, but it has all the artist’s magic, that mocking, illusive refinement and hint of a vague arriere-pensee which mark every stroke of Leonardo’s brush. Is it the perfection of irony or the perfection of tenderness? What does he mean, what does he affirm, what does he deny? Magic wouldn’t be magic, nor the author of such things stand so absolutely alone, if we were ready with an explanation. As I glanced from the picture to the poor stupid little red-faced brother at my side I wondered if the thing mightn’t pass for an elegant epigram on monasticism. Certainly, at any rate, there is more intellect in it than under all the monkish tonsures it has seen coming and going these three hundred years.
A couple of days later, I walked over to San Onofrio on the Janiculan for old times' sake. The journey is one of the dirtiest experiences in Rome, and although the view from the small terrace is nice, the church and convent are pretty shabby and stale. Yet here—almost like pearls in a dungheap—are hidden mementos of two of the most extraordinary Italian minds. Torquato Tasso spent the last months of his life here, and you can visit his room and various warped and faded relics. The most interesting item is a cast of his face taken after his death—looking, like all such casts, almost more gallant and distinguished than mortal. But who should look so ideally if not he? In a small, shabby, chilly hallway nearby is a fresco by Leonardo, depicting a Virgin and Child with the donatorio. It’s very small, simple, and faded, but it has all the artist’s magic— that mocking, illusive refinement and hint of a vague arriere-pensee that mark every stroke of Leonardo’s brush. Is it the ultimate irony or the ultimate tenderness? What does he mean, what does he affirm, what does he deny? Magic wouldn’t be magic, nor would the creator of such things stand so absolutely alone if we were ready with an explanation. As I glanced from the picture to the poor, clueless little red-faced brother next to me, I wondered if this might just be an elegant epigram on monasticism. Certainly, there is more intellect in it than under all the monkish tonsures it has seen come and go over the past three hundred years.
January 21st.—The last three or four days I have regularly spent a couple of hours from noon baking myself in the sun of the Pincio to get rid of a cold. The weather perfect and the crowd (especially to-day) amazing. Such a staring, lounging, dandified, amiable crowd! Who does the vulgar stay-at-home work of Rome? All the grandees and half the foreigners are there in their carriages, the bourgeoisie on foot staring at them and the beggars lining all the approaches. The great difference between public places in America and Europe is in the number of unoccupied people of every age and condition sitting about early and late on benches and gazing at you, from your hat to your boots, as you pass. Europe is certainly the continent of the practised stare. The ladies on the Pincio have to run the gauntlet; but they seem to do so complacently enough. The European woman is brought up to the sense of having a definite part in the way of manners or manner to play in public. To lie back in a barouche alone, balancing a parasol and seeming to ignore the extremely immediate gaze of two serried ranks of male creatures on each side of her path, save here and there to recognise one of them with an imperceptible nod, is one of her daily duties. The number of young men here who, like the coenobites of old, lead the purely contemplative life is enormous. They muster in especial force on the Pincio, but the Corso all day is thronged with them. They are well-dressed, good-humoured, good-looking, polite; but they seem never to do a harder stroke of work than to stroll from the Piazza Colonna to the Hotel de Rome or vice versa. Some of them don’t even stroll, but stand leaning by the hour against the doorways, sucking the knobs of their canes, feeling their back hair and settling their shirt-cuffs. At my cafe in the morning several stroll in already (at nine o’clock) in light, in “evening” gloves. But they order nothing, turn on their heels, glance at the mirrors and stroll out again. When it rains they herd under the portes-cochères and in the smaller cafes.... Yesterday Prince Humbert’s little primogenito was on the Pincio in an open landau with his governess. He’s a sturdy blond little man and the image of the King. They had stopped to listen to the music, and the crowd was planted about the carriage-wheels, staring and criticising under the child’s snub little nose. It appeared bold cynical curiosity, without the slightest manifestation of “loyalty,” and it gave me a singular sense of the vulgarisation of Rome under the new regime. When the Pope drove abroad it was a solemn spectacle; even if you neither kneeled nor uncovered you were irresistibly impressed. But the Pope never stopped to listen to opera tunes, and he had no little popelings, under the charge of superior nurse-maids, whom you might take liberties with. The family at the Quirinal make something of a merit, I believe, of their modest and inexpensive way of life. The merit is great; yet, representationally, what a change for the worse from an order which proclaimed stateliness a part of its essence! The divinity that doth hedge a king must be pretty well on the wane. But how many more fine old traditions will the extremely sentimental traveller miss in the Italians over whom that little jostled prince in the landau will have come into his kinghood? ... The Pincio continues to beguile; it’s a great resource. I am for ever being reminded of the “aesthetic luxury,” as I called it above, of living in Rome. To be able to choose of an afternoon for a lounge (respectfully speaking) between St. Peter’s and the high precinct you approach by the gate just beyond Villa Medici—counting nothing else—is a proof that if in Rome you may suffer from ennui, at least your ennui has a throbbing soul in it. It is something to say for the Pincio that you don’t always choose St. Peter’s. Sometimes I lose patience with its parade of eternal idleness, but at others this very idleness is balm to one’s conscience. Life on just these terms seems so easy, so monotonously sweet, that you feel it would be unwise, would be really unsafe, to change. The Roman air is charged with an elixir, the Roman cup seasoned with some insidious drop, of which the action is fatally, yet none the less agreeably, “lowering.”
January 21st.—For the last three or four days, I’ve been spending a couple of hours around noon soaking up the sun on the Pincio to shake off a cold. The weather is perfect and the crowd (especially today) is incredible. What a staring, lounging, stylish, friendly crowd! Who is left to do the mundane work in Rome? All the socialites and half the tourists are there in their carriages, while the locals on foot gape at them, and beggars line the pathways. The main difference between public spaces in America and Europe is the number of idle people of all ages just sitting around on benches, staring at you from your hat to your shoes as you walk by. Europe is definitely the continent of the practiced stare. The ladies on the Pincio have to put up with it; yet they seem to handle it quite well. European women are raised to play a defined role when it comes to manners in public. Sitting back in a carriage alone, balancing a parasol and pretending to ignore the intense scrutiny of two lines of men on either side of her path—except for an occasional slight nod to recognize one—is part of her daily routine. There’s a huge number of young men here who, like ancient monks, lead a purely contemplative life. They particularly gather on the Pincio, but the Corso is also packed with them all day long. They are well-dressed, cheerful, handsome, and polite; but they never seem to do anything more strenuous than wandering from Piazza Colonna to the Hotel de Rome or vice versa. Some of them don’t even walk, just lounge for hours against doorways, fiddling with their canes, adjusting their hair, and fixing their cuffs. At my café in the morning, several stroll in early (around nine o’clock) wearing light, “evening” gloves. But they don't order anything, turn around, check their reflection in the mirrors, and leave again. When it rains, they huddle under the portes-cochères and in the smaller cafés.... Yesterday, Prince Humbert’s young primogenito was on the Pincio in an open carriage with his governess. He’s a sturdy little blond who looks just like the King. They stopped to listen to the music, and a crowd gathered around the carriage wheels, staring and commenting under the child’s little nose. It seemed like bold, cynical curiosity, completely lacking any sign of “loyalty,” and it gave me a strange impression of the vulgarity of Rome under the new regime. When the Pope would go out, it was always a grand spectacle; even if you didn’t kneel or take off your hat, you were still struck by the moment. But the Pope never stopped to listen to opera tunes, and he certainly didn’t have little popelings in the care of superior nursemaids that you could take liberties with. I believe the family at the Quirinal pride themselves on their modest and simple lifestyle. The merit is significant; yet, representationally, it’s a significant downgrade from the era that made grandeur part of its identity! The awe that surrounds a king seems to be fading. But how many more treasured traditions will the overly sentimental traveler notice missing in the Italians among whom that little bumped prince in the carriage will soon be king? ... The Pincio continues to charm; it’s a fantastic retreat. I’m constantly reminded of the “aesthetic luxury,” as I called it earlier, of living in Rome. The ability to choose to lounge (respectfully speaking) between St. Peter’s and the beautiful grounds you enter through the gate just past Villa Medici—without worrying about anything else—proves that while you might suffer from boredom in Rome, at least your boredom has a vibrant soul. It’s worth noting that you don’t always have to choose St. Peter’s on the Pincio. Sometimes I find myself frustrated with its ongoing display of endless laziness, but at other times, that very idleness feels comforting to my conscience. Life under these circumstances seems so easy, so sweetly monotonous, that you feel it would be unwise, even dangerous, to change things up. The Roman air is infused with an elixir, and the Roman experience is tinged with some subtle drop that acts fatally, yet still pleasantly, “lowering.”
January 26th.—With S. to the Villa Medici—perhaps on the whole the most enchanting place in Rome. The part of the garden called the Boschetto has an incredible, impossible charm; an upper terrace, behind locked gates, covered with a little dusky forest of evergreen oaks. Such a dim light as of a fabled, haunted place, such a soft suffusion of tender grey-green tones, such a company of gnarled and twisted little miniature trunks—dwarfs playing with each other at being giants—and such a shower of golden sparkles drifting in from the vivid west! At the end of the wood is a steep, circular mound, up which the short trees scramble amain, with a long mossy staircase climbing up to a belvedere. This staircase, rising suddenly out of the leafy dusk to you don’t see where, is delightfully fantastic. You expect to see an old woman in a crimson petticoat and with a distaff come hobbling down and turn into a fairy and offer you three wishes. I should name for my own first wish that one didn’t have to be a Frenchman to come and live and dream and work at the Académie de France. Can there be for a while a happier destiny than that of a young artist conscious of talent and of no errand but to educate, polish and perfect it, transplanted to these sacred shades? One has fancied Plato’s Academy—his gleaming colonnades, his blooming gardens and Athenian sky; but was it as good as this one, where Monsieur Hebert does the Platonic? The blessing in Rome is not that this or that or the other isolated object is so very unsurpassable; but that the general air so contributes to interest, to impressions that are not as any other impressions anywhere in the world. And from this general air the Villa Medici has distilled an essence of its own—walled it in and made it delightfully private. The great façade on the gardens is like an enormous rococo clock-face all incrusted with images and arabesques and tablets. What mornings and afternoons one might spend there, brush in hand, unpreoccupied, untormented, pensioned, satisfied—either persuading one’s self that one would be “doing something” in consequence or not caring if one shouldn’t be.
January 26th.—I went to the Villa Medici with S.—possibly the most enchanting place in Rome overall. The part of the garden known as the Boschetto has an incredible, almost magical charm; there's an upper terrace, behind locked gates, covered with a small, shadowy forest of evergreen oaks. It casts such a soft light like a mythical, enchanted place, with gentle shades of grey-green, clusters of gnarled and twisted little trunks—like dwarfs pretending to be giants—and a sprinkle of golden sparkles drifting in from the bright west! At the end of the woods, there's a steep, circular mound where the short trees scramble up, along a long mossy staircase leading to a lookout point. This stairs, rising suddenly from the leafy shadows to an unknown destination, is wonderfully whimsical. You'd expect to see an old woman in a red skirt with a spindle hobbling down, transforming into a fairy and offering you three wishes. For my first wish, I'd wish that you didn’t have to be a Frenchman to come and live, dream, and work at the Académie de France. Could there be a happier fate than that of a young artist aware of their talent, with no other obligation but to nurture, refine, and perfect it, transplanted to these hallowed grounds? One might imagine Plato’s Academy—with its shining colonnades, blooming gardens, and Athenian sky—but was it as wonderful as this one, where Monsieur Hebert channels Plato? The beauty of Rome isn't just that individual objects are unmatched; it's that the overall atmosphere contributes to unique impressions that you can’t find anywhere else in the world. From this atmosphere, the Villa Medici has cultivated its own essence—enclosed it and made it delightfully private. The grand façade facing the gardens resembles a massive rococo clock face, covered in images, arabesques, and plaques. What mornings and afternoons one could spend there, brush in hand, carefree, without worries, feeling satisfied—either convincing oneself that they’d be “doing something” as a result or not caring if they didn't.
At a later date—middle of March.—A ride with S. W. out of the Porta Pia to the meadows beyond the Ponte Nomentana—close to the site of Phaon’s villa where Nero in hiding had himself stabbed. It all spoke as things here only speak, touching more chords than one can now really know or say. For these are predestined memories and the stuff that regrets are made of; the mild divine efflorescence of spring, the wonderful landscape, the talk suspended for another gallop.... Returning, we dismounted at the gate of the Villa Medici and walked through the twilight of the vaguely perfumed, bird-haunted alleys to H.‘s studio, hidden in the wood like a cottage in a fairy tale. I spent there a charming half-hour in the fading light, looking at the pictures while my companion discoursed of her errand. The studio is small and more like a little salon; the painting refined, imaginative, somewhat morbid, full of consummate French ability. A portrait, idealised and etherealised, but a likeness of Mme. de—-(from last year’s Salon) in white satin, quantities of lace, a coronet, diamonds and pearls; a striking combination of brilliant silvery tones. A “Femme Sauvage,” a naked dusky girl in a wood, with a wonderfully clever pair of shy, passionate eyes. The author is different enough from any of the numerous American artists. They may be producers, but he’s a product as well—a product of influences of a sort of which we have as yet no general command. One of them is his charmed lapse of life in that unprofessional-looking little studio, with his enchanted wood on one side and the plunging wall of Rome on the other.
At a later date—mid-March.—A ride with S. W. out of the Porta Pia to the meadows beyond the Ponte Nomentana—close to where Phaon’s villa used to be, where Nero hid and ended up getting stabbed. Everything felt unique here, stirring more emotions than one can now truly understand or express. These are memories we’re destined to have and the essence of regrets; the gentle, divine blooming of spring, the beautiful landscape, and the conversation paused for another ride.... On our way back, we got off our horses at the gate of the Villa Medici and walked through the dusk of the lightly scented, bird-filled paths to H.'s studio, tucked away in the woods like a cottage from a fairy tale. I spent a delightful half-hour there in the dimming light, admiring the artwork while my companion talked about her purpose for being there. The studio is small, more like a cozy salon; the paintings are refined, imaginative, somewhat dark, showcasing incredible French skill. There’s a portrait, idealized and etherealized, yet clearly a likeness of Mme. de—-(from last year’s Salon) dressed in white satin, with lots of lace, a coronet, diamonds, and pearls; it’s a striking mix of bright silvery hues. A “Femme Sauvage,” a naked dark-skinned girl in the woods, with a wonderfully clever pair of shy, passionate eyes. The artist is quite different from the many American painters. They might be creators, but he’s a complete package—a product of influences we're still trying to understand fully. One of these influences is his charmed life in that unassuming little studio, with an enchanted forest on one side and the dramatic wall of Rome on the other.
January 30th.—A drive the other day with a friend to Villa Madama, on the side of Monte Mario; a place like a page out of one of Browning’s richest evocations of this clime and civilisation. Wondrous in its haunting melancholy, it might have inspired half “The Ring and the Book” at a stroke. What a grim commentary on history such a scene—what an irony of the past! The road up to it through the outer enclosure is almost impassable with mud and stones. At the end, on a terrace, rises the once elegant Casino, with hardly a whole pane of glass in its façade, reduced to its sallow stucco and degraded ornaments. The front away from Rome has in the basement a great loggia, now walled in from the weather, preceded by a grassy be littered platform with an immense sweeping view of the Campagna; the sad-looking, more than sad-looking, evil-looking, Tiber beneath (the colour of gold, the sentimentalists say, the colour of mustard, the realists); a great vague stretch beyond, of various complexions and uses; and on the horizon the ever-iridescent mountains. The place has become the shabbiest farm-house, with muddy water in the old pièces d’eau and dunghills on the old parterres. The “feature” is the contents of the loggia: a vaulted roof and walls decorated by Giulio Romano; exquisite stucco-work and still brilliant frescoes; arabesques and figurini, nymphs and fauns, animals and flowers—gracefully lavish designs of every sort. Much of the colour—especially the blues—still almost vivid, and all the work wonderfully ingenious, elegant and charming. Apartments so decorated can have been meant only for the recreation of people greater than any we know, people for whom life was impudent ease and success. Margaret Farnese was the lady of the house, but where she trailed her cloth of gold the chickens now scamper between your legs over rotten straw. It is all inexpressibly dreary. A stupid peasant scratching his head, a couple of critical Americans picking their steps, the walls tattered and befouled breast-high, dampness and decay striking in on your heart, and the scene overbowed by these heavenly frescoes, moulering there in their airy artistry! It’s poignant; it provokes tears; it tells so of the waste of effort. Something human seems to pant beneath the grey pall of time and to implore you to rescue it, to pity it, to stand by it somehow. But you leave it to its lingering death without compunction, almost with pleasure; for the place seems vaguely crime-haunted—paying at least the penalty of some hard immorality. The end of a Renaissance pleasure-house. Endless for the didactic observer the moral, abysmal for the storyseeker the tale.
January 30th.—The other day I took a drive with a friend to Villa Madama, located on the side of Monte Mario; it's a place that feels like a scene from one of Browning’s most vivid depictions of this region and culture. Wonderfully steeped in haunting sadness, it could have inspired half of “The Ring and the Book” all at once. What a grim commentary on history such a place offers—what irony from the past! The road leading up to it through the outer enclosure is nearly impassable due to mud and rocks. At the top, on a terrace, stands the once-elegant Casino, with hardly a single intact pane of glass in its front, now reduced to its pale stucco and decayed decorations. The side facing away from Rome has a large loggia in its basement, now sealed off from the elements, preceded by a grassy platform that's littered and offers a sweeping view of the Campagna; the Tiber below looks sad—more than just sad, it has an ominous appearance—with some saying it’s the color of gold, while realists would call it the color of mustard; beyond that, a vast stretch of land of various hues and uses; and on the horizon, the ever-changing mountains. The place has turned into a run-down farmhouse, with muddy water in the old pièces d’eau and dung heaps on the former flower beds. The main attraction is the loggia: it has a vaulted ceiling and walls adorned by Giulio Romano; exquisite plaster work and still vibrant frescoes; arabesques and little figures—nymphs and fauns, animals and flowers—beautifully extravagant designs of every kind. Much of the color—especially the blues—still looks almost vivid, and the craftsmanship is wonderfully clever, elegant, and charming. Such lavishly decorated rooms must have been meant for the enjoyment of people far greater than anyone we know, individuals for whom life was filled with easy luxury and success. Margaret Farnese once ruled the house, but now chickens scurry between your legs over rotten straw where she once walked in her cloth of gold. It all feels indescribably bleak. A dumb peasant scratching his head, a couple of discerning Americans carefully picking their way, the walls soiled and torn to waist-height, dampness and decay weighing on your spirit, while the scene is overshadowed by these stunning frescoes, slowly deteriorating yet still airy in their artistry! It’s moving; it brings tears; it speaks volumes about the futility of effort. Something human seems to struggle beneath the grey shroud of time, pleading for you to save it, to sympathize with it, to stand by it in some way. But you leave it to its slow demise without remorse, almost with relief; because the place feels vaguely tainted by crime—paying at least the price for some deep immorality. It’s the end of a Renaissance pleasure palace. For the didactic observer, there are endless morals, but for the seeker of stories, it’s a profound tale.
February 12th.—Yesterday to the Villa Albani. Over-formal and (as my companion says) too much like a tea-garden; but with beautiful stairs and splendid geometrical lines of immense box-hedge, intersected with high pedestals supporting little antique busts. The light to-day magnificent; the Alban Hills of an intenser broken purple than I had yet seen them—their white towns blooming upon it like vague projected lights. It was like a piece of very modern painting, and a good example of how Nature has at times a sort of mannerism which ought to make us careful how we condemn out of hand the more refined and affected artists. The collection of marbles in the Casino (Winckelmann’s) admirable and to be seen again. The famous Antinous crowned with lotus a strangely beautiful and impressive thing. The “Greek manner,” on the showing of something now and again encountered here, moves one to feel that even for purely romantic and imaginative effects it surpasses any since invented. If there be not imagination, even in our comparatively modern sense of the word, in the baleful beauty of that perfect young profile there is none in “Hamlet” or in “Lycidas.” There is five hundred times as much as in “The Transfiguration.” With this at any rate to point to it’s not for sculpture not professedly to produce any emotion producible by painting. There are numbers of small and delicate fragments of bas-reliefs of exquisite grace, and a huge piece (two combatants—one, on horseback, beating down another—murder made eternal and beautiful) attributed to the Parthenon and certainly as grandly impressive as anything in the Elgin marbles. S. W. suggested again the Roman villas as a “subject.” Excellent if one could find a feast of facts à la Stendhal. A lot of vague ecstatic descriptions and anecdotes wouldn’t at all pay. There have been too many already. Enough facts are recorded, I suppose; one should discover them and soak in them for a twelvemonth. And yet a Roman villa, in spite of statues, ideas and atmosphere, affects me as of a scanter human and social portee, a shorter, thinner reverberation, than an old English country-house, round which experience seems piled so thick. But this perhaps is either hair-splitting or “racial” prejudice.
February 12th.—Yesterday at the Villa Albani. Overly formal and (as my companion says) too much like a tea garden; but with beautiful stairs and stunning geometric lines of immense box hedges, marked by tall pedestals supporting small antique busts. The light today is magnificent; the Alban Hills are a deeper broken purple than I’ve ever seen—their white towns standing out against it like soft projected lights. It felt like a piece of very modern painting, and it's a great example of how nature can sometimes have a kind of mannerism, which should make us cautious about dismissing the more refined and affected artists too quickly. The collection of marbles in the Casino (Winckelmann’s) is amazing and deserves another look. The famous Antinous crowned with lotus is a strangely beautiful and striking piece. The “Greek manner,” as seen here from time to time, makes one feel that even for purely romantic and imaginative effects, it beats any style that has been created since. If there isn’t imagination, even in our more modern understanding of the word, in the haunting beauty of that perfect young profile, then it’s lacking in “Hamlet” or “Lycidas.” There is five hundred times more in it than in “The Transfiguration.” With this to reference, it’s not about sculpture not explicitly aiming to evoke any emotion that could be produced by painting. There are many small and delicate fragments of bas-reliefs with exquisite grace, and a large piece (two fighters—one on horseback, beating down another—murder made eternal and beautiful) attributed to the Parthenon, which is undoubtedly as grandly impressive as anything in the Elgin marbles. S. W. suggested again the Roman villas as a “subject.” Excellent if one could find an abundance of facts à la Stendhal. A lot of vague ecstatic descriptions and anecdotes wouldn’t really work. There have been too many of those already. I suppose enough facts are recorded; one should discover them and immerse oneself in them for a year. And yet, despite the statues, ideas, and atmosphere, a Roman villa strikes me as having a less rich human and social portee, a shorter, thinner echo compared to an old English country house, around which experience seems to pile up so densely. But perhaps that’s either nitpicking or “racial” bias.
{Illustration: ENTRANCE TO THE VATICAN, ROME}
{Illustration: ENTRANCE TO THE VATICAN, ROME}
March 9th.—The Vatican is still deadly cold; a couple of hours there yesterday with R. W. E. Yet he, illustrious and enviable man, fresh from the East, had no overcoat and wanted none. Perfect bliss, I think, would be to live in Rome without thinking of overcoats. The Vatican seems very familiar, but strangely smaller than of old. I never lost the sense before of confusing vastness. Sancta simplicitas! All my old friends however stand there in undimmed radiance, keeping most of them their old pledges. I am perhaps more struck now with the enormous amount of padding—the number of third-rate, fourth-rate things that weary the eye desirous to approach freshly the twenty and thirty best. In spite of the padding there are dozens of treasures that one passes regretfully; but the impression of the whole place is the great thing—the feeling that through these solemn vistas flows the source of an incalculable part of our present conception of Beauty.
March 9th.—The Vatican is still freezing cold; I spent a few hours there yesterday with R. W. E. Yet he, a remarkable and enviable man, fresh from the East, didn’t wear an overcoat and didn't want one. I think true bliss would be to live in Rome without needing to think about overcoats. The Vatican feels very familiar, but oddly smaller than I remember. I’ve never had that sense of overwhelming vastness before. Sancta simplicitas! All my old friends are still there, shining just as bright, most of them keeping their old commitments. I’m perhaps more aware now of the overwhelming amount of unnecessary stuff—the many mediocre things that distract the eye from appreciating the twenty or thirty best. Despite the clutter, there are still dozens of treasures that one passes by with regret; but the overall impression of the place is what truly matters—the feeling that through these solemn corridors flows the source of an immeasurable part of our current understanding of Beauty.
April 10th.—Last night, in the rain, to the Teatro Valle to see a comedy of Goldoni in Venetian dialect—“I Quattro Rustighi.” I could but half follow it; enough, however, to be sure that, for all its humanity of irony, it wasn’t so good as Molière. The acting was capital—broad, free and natural; the play of talk easier even than life itself; but, like all the Italian acting I have seen, it was wanting in finesse, that shade of the shade by which, and by which alone, one really knows art. I contrasted the affair with the evening in December last that I walked over (also in the rain) to the Odeon and saw the “Plaideurs” and the “Malade lmaginaire.” There, too, was hardly more than a handful of spectators; but what rich, ripe, fully representational and above all intellectual comedy, and what polished, educated playing! These Venetians in particular, however, have a marvellous entrain of their own; they seem even less than the French to recite. In some of the women—ugly, with red hands and shabby dresses—an extraordinary gift of natural utterance, of seeming to invent joyously as they go.
April 10th.—Last night, in the rain, I went to the Teatro Valle to see a Goldoni comedy in Venetian dialect—“I Quattro Rustighi.” I could only partially follow it; enough to be sure that, despite its human irony, it wasn't as good as Molière. The acting was outstanding—broad, free, and natural; the dialogue flowed even more easily than real life itself; but, like all the Italian acting I've seen, it lacked finesse, that subtle nuance that truly defines art. I compared this experience to an evening last December when I walked over (also in the rain) to the Odeon to see “Plaideurs” and “Malade Imaginaire.” There were hardly more than a handful of spectators there, but the comedy was rich, fully realized, and above all intellectual, with polished and sophisticated performances! These Venetians, in particular, have a marvelous entrain of their own; they seem even less than the French to recite. In some of the women—who were unattractive, with red hands and shabby dresses—there was an extraordinary talent for natural expression, as if they were joyfully inventing their lines on the spot.
Later.—Last evening in H.‘s box at the Apollo to hear Ernesto Rossi in “Othello.” He shares supremacy with Salvini in Italian tragedy. Beautiful great theatre with boxes you can walk about in; brilliant audience. The Princess Margaret was there—I have never been to the theatre that she was not—and a number of other princesses in neighbouring boxes. G. G. came in and instructed us that they were the M., the L., the P., &c. Rossi is both very bad and very fine; bad where anything like taste and discretion is required, but “all there,” and more than there, in violent passion. The last act reduced too much, however, to mere exhibitional sensibility. The interesting thing to me was to observe the Italian conception of the part—to see how crude it was, how little it expressed the hero’s moral side, his depth, his dignity—anything more than his being a creature terrible in mere tantrums. The great point was his seizing Iago’s head and whacking it half-a-dozen times on the floor, and then flinging him twenty yards away. It was wonderfully done, but in the doing of it and in the evident relish for it in the house there was I scarce knew what force of easy and thereby rather cheap expression.
Later.—Last night in H.'s box at the Apollo to watch Ernesto Rossi in “Othello.” He shares the spotlight with Salvini in Italian tragedy. It’s a beautiful theater with boxes you can walk around in; the audience was lively. Princess Margaret was there—I’ve never been to the theater without her—and several other princesses in nearby boxes. G. G. came in and let us know that they were the M., the L., the P., etc. Rossi is both really bad and really good; he lacks taste and discretion in some areas, but he’s completely captivating and even more so in intense moments. However, the last act felt too much like an emotional display without depth. What interested me most was seeing the Italian interpretation of the character—it was so raw, barely reflecting the hero’s moral side, his complexity, or his dignity—just a guy reacting explosively. The key moment was when he grabbed Iago’s head and slammed it down on the floor several times, then threw him twenty feet away. It was incredibly well done, but in the performance and the crowd’s clear enjoyment of it, there was a strange sense of easy, and therefore somewhat cheap, expression.
April 27th.—A morning with L. B. at Villa Ludovisi, which we agreed that we shouldn’t soon forget. The villa now belongs to the King, who has lodged his morganatic wife there. There is nothing so blissfully right in Rome, nothing more consummately consecrated to style. The grounds and gardens are immense, and the great rusty-red city wall stretches away behind them and makes the burden of the seven hills seem vast without making them seem small. There is everything—dusky avenues trimmed by the clippings of centuries, groves and dells and glades and glowing pastures and reedy fountains and great flowering meadows studded with enormous slanting pines. The day was delicious, the trees all one melody, the whole place a revelation of what Italy and hereditary pomp can do together. Nothing could be more in the grand manner than this garden view of the city ramparts, lifting their fantastic battlements above the trees and flowers. They are all tapestried with vines and made to serve as sunny fruit-walls—grim old defence as they once were; now giving nothing but a splendid buttressed privacy. The sculptures in the little Casino are few, but there are two great ones—the beautiful sitting Mars and the head of the great Juno, the latter thrust into a corner behind a shutter. These things it’s almost impossible to praise; we can only mark them well and keep them clear, as we insist on silence to hear great music.... If I don’t praise Guercino’s Aurora in the greater Casino, it’s for another reason; this is certainly a very muddy masterpiece. It figures on the ceiling of a small low hall; the painting is coarse and the ceiling too near. Besides, it’s unfair to pass straight from the Greek mythology to the Bolognese. We were left to roam at will through the house; the custode shut us in and went to walk in the park. The apartments were all open, and I had an opportunity to reconstruct, from its milieu at least, the character of a morganatic queen. I saw nothing to indicate that it was not amiable; but I should have thought more highly of the lady’s discrimination if she had had the Juno removed from behind her shutter. In such a house, girdled about with such a park, me thinks I could be amiable—and perhaps discriminating too. The Ludovisi Casino is small, but the perfection of the life of ease might surely be led there. There are English houses enough in wondrous parks, but they expose you to too many small needs and observances—to say nothing of a red-faced butler dropping his h’s. You are oppressed with the detail of accommodation. Here the billiard-table is old-fashioned, perhaps a trifle crooked; but you have Guercino above your head, and Guercino, after all, is almost as good as Guido. The rooms, I noticed, all pleased by their shape, by a lovely proportion, by a mass of delicate ornamentation on the high concave ceilings. One might live over again in them some deliciously benighted life of a forgotten type—with graceful old sale, and immensely thick walls, and a winding stone staircase, and a view from the loggia at the top; a view of twisted parasol-pines balanced, high above a wooden horizon, against a sky of faded sapphire.
April 27th.—A morning with L. B. at Villa Ludovisi, which we agreed we wouldn’t soon forget. The villa now belongs to the King, who has put his morganatic wife there. There’s nothing so blissfully right in Rome, nothing more perfectly dedicated to style. The grounds and gardens are vast, and the great rusty-red city wall stretches back behind them, making the weight of the seven hills seem immense without making them seem small. There’s everything—shadowy avenues shaped by centuries of pruning, groves, valleys, glades, bright pastures, grassy fountains, and huge flowering meadows scattered with enormous leaning pines. The day was delightful; the trees all made one melody, the whole place was a revelation of what Italy and royal elegance can achieve together. Nothing could be more grand than this garden view of the city walls, elevating their fantastic battlements above the trees and flowers. They’re all draped in vines and serve as sunny fruit walls—grim old defenses as they once were; now offering nothing but splendid secluded privacy. The sculptures in the little Casino are few, but there are two great ones—the beautiful sitting Mars and the head of the great Juno, the latter shoved into a corner behind a shutter. It’s nearly impossible to do these justice; we can only note them well and keep them clear, like being still to hear great music.... If I don’t praise Guercino’s Aurora in the greater Casino, it’s for another reason; this is definitely a rather muddy masterpiece. It’s painted on the ceiling of a small low hall; the artwork is rough, and the ceiling is too close. Plus, it’s unfair to jump straight from Greek mythology to Bolognese art. We were free to wander around the house; the custodian locked us in and went for a walk in the park. All the rooms were open, and I had the chance to gather, from its milieu, the character of a morganatic queen. I saw nothing to suggest it wasn’t pleasant; however, I would have thought more highly of the lady’s taste if she had moved the Juno from behind her shutter. In such a house, surrounded by such a park, I think I could be pleasant—and maybe discerning too. The Ludovisi Casino is small, but surely one could lead a perfect laid-back life there. There are plenty of English houses set in amazing parks, but they come with too many little needs and formalities—not to mention a red-faced butler dropping his h’s. You’re burdened with the details of comfort. Here the billiard table is old-fashioned, maybe a bit crooked; but you have Guercino above your head, and Guercino, after all, is almost as good as Guido. I noticed all the rooms were pleasing in shape, with lovely proportions and a lot of delicate decorations on the high concave ceilings. One might relive some deliciously outdated life of a bygone era in them—with elegant old sale, incredibly thick walls, a winding stone staircase, and a view from the loggia at the top; a view of twisted parasol pines balanced high above a wooden horizon against a sky of faded sapphire.
May 17th.—It was wonderful yesterday at St. John Lateran. The spring now has turned to perfect summer; there are cascades of verdure over all the walls; the early flowers are a fading memory, and the new grass knee-deep in the Villa Borghese. The winter aspect of the region about the Lateran is one of the best things in Rome; the sunshine is nowhere so golden and the lean shadows nowhere so purple as on the long grassy walk to Santa Croce. But yesterday I seemed to see nothing but green and blue. The expanse before Santa Croce was vivid green; the Campagna rolled away in great green billows, which seemed to break high about the gaunt aqueducts; and the Alban Hills, which in January and February keep shifting and melting along the whole scale of azure, were almost monotonously fresh, and had lost some of their finer modelling. But the sky was ultramarine and everything radiant with light and warmth—warmth which a soft steady breeze kept from excess. I strolled some time about the church, which has a grand air enough, though I don’t seize the point of view of Miss——, who told me the other day how vastly finer she thought it than St. Peter’s. But on Miss——‘s lips this seemed a very pretty paradox. The choir and transepts have a sombre splendour, and I like the old vaulted passage with its slabs and monuments behind the choir. The charm of charms at St. John Lateran is the admirable twelfth-century cloister, which was never more charming than yesterday. The shrubs and flowers about the ancient well were blooming away in the intense light, and the twisted pillars and chiselled capitals of the perfect little colonnade seemed to enclose them like the sculptured rim of a precious vase. Standing out among the flowers you may look up and see a section of the summit of the great façade of the church. The robed and mitred apostles, bleached and rain-washed by the ages, rose into the blue air like huge snow figures. I spent at the incorporated museum a subsequent hour of fond vague attention, having it quite to myself. It is rather scantily stocked, but the great cool halls open out impressively one after the other, and the wide spaces between the statues seem to suggest at first that each is a masterpiece. I was in the loving mood of one’s last days in Rome, and when I had nothing else to admire I admired the magnificent thickness of the embrasures of the doors and windows. If there were no objects of interest at all in the Lateran the palace would be worth walking through every now and then, to keep up one’s idea of solid architecture. I went over to the Scala Santa, where was no one but a very shabby priest sitting like a ticket-taker at the door. But he let me pass, and I ascended one of the profane lateral stairways and treated myself to a glimpse of the Sanctum Sanctorum. Its threshold is crossed but once or twice a year, I believe, by three or four of the most exalted divines, but you may look into it freely enough through a couple of gilded lattices. It is very sombre and splendid, and conveys the impression of a very holy place. And yet somehow it suggested irreverent thoughts; it had to my fancy—perhaps on account of the lattice—an Oriental, a Mahometan note. I expected every moment to see a sultana appear in a silver veil and silken trousers and sit down on the crimson carpet.
May 17th.—It was amazing yesterday at St. John Lateran. Spring has now turned into perfect summer; lush greenery cascades over all the walls; the early flowers are just a fading memory, and the grass is knee-deep in the Villa Borghese. The winter vibe around the Lateran is one of the best things in Rome; the sunshine is nowhere as golden, and the shadows are nowhere as purple as on the long grassy path to Santa Croce. But yesterday, all I seemed to notice was green and blue. The area before Santa Croce was a bright green; the Campagna rolled away in massive green waves, seeming to break high around the stark aqueducts; and the Alban Hills, which in January and February shift and blend into various shades of blue, appeared almost monotonously fresh and had lost some of their finer details. But the sky was ultramarine, and everything glowed with light and warmth—warmth that a gentle, steady breeze kept from becoming overwhelming. I wandered around the church for a while, which has quite a grand presence, though I don’t understand Miss——’s viewpoint, who recently told me how much better she thought it was than St. Peter’s. But on Miss——’s lips, this sounded like a pretty paradox. The choir and transepts have a somber grandeur, and I like the old vaulted corridor with its slabs and monuments behind the choir. The real charm at St. John Lateran is the beautiful twelfth-century cloister, which was more enchanting than ever yesterday. The shrubs and flowers around the ancient well were blooming in the bright light, and the twisted pillars and carved capitals of the perfect little colonnade seemed to embrace them like the sculpted edge of a precious vase. Amid the flowers, you can look up and see a section of the top of the church’s grand façade. The robed and mitred apostles, faded and weathered by the ages, rose into the blue sky like giant snow figures. I spent an enjoyable hour in the connected museum, having it all to myself. It’s somewhat sparsely filled, but the large cool halls unfold impressively, and the wide spaces between the statues initially suggest that each is a masterpiece. I was in that sentimental mood typical of one’s last days in Rome, and when I had nothing else to admire, I appreciated the impressive thickness of the door and window frames. Even if there were no interesting objects at all in the Lateran, the palace would still be worth visiting now and then to appreciate solid architecture. I headed over to the Scala Santa, where only a very shabby priest was sitting like a ticket-taker at the entrance. But he let me pass, and I climbed one of the lesser stairways and treated myself to a glimpse of the Sanctum Sanctorum. I believe its threshold is crossed only once or twice a year by a few of the highest-ranking clergy, but you can look into it freely enough through a couple of gilded grilles. It is very somber and magnificent, giving the impression of a very sacred place. And yet somehow it suggested irreverent thoughts; it had, to my imagination—perhaps because of the grille—an Oriental, almost Muslim feel. I half-expected to see a sultana appear in a silver veil and silk trousers and sit down on the crimson carpet.
Farewell, packing, the sharp pang of going. One would like to be able after five months in Rome to sum up for tribute and homage, one’s experience, one’s gains, the whole adventure of one’s sensibility. But one has really vibrated too much—the addition of so many items isn’t easy. What is simply clear is the sense of an acquired passion for the place and of an incalculable number of gathered impressions. Many of these have been intense and momentous, but one has trodden on the other—there are always the big fish that swallow up the little—and one can hardly say what has become of them. They store themselves noiselessly away, I suppose, in the dim but safe places of memory and “taste,” and we live in a quiet faith that they will emerge into vivid relief if life or art should demand them. As for the passion we needn’t perhaps trouble ourselves about that. Fifty swallowed palmfuls of the Fountain of Trevi couldn’t make us more ardently sure that we shall at any cost come back.
Farewell, packing, the sharp ache of leaving. After five months in Rome, you'd think one could summarize their experiences, their takeaways, the entire adventure of their emotions. But it's been so overwhelming—adding up all those moments isn’t easy. What stands out is the newfound love for the city and the countless impressions gathered. Many of these have been powerful and significant, but they've overshadowed one another—big moments tend to drown out the small ones—and it’s tough to say what’s happened to them. They likely sit quietly in the back of our memories, tucked away in safe, shadowy spots, and we trust that they’ll come back into focus if life or art calls for them. As for the passion, maybe we don’t need to worry about that. Fifty sips of water from the Fountain of Trevi won’t make us any more determined to return, no matter what.
1873.
A FEW OTHER ROMAN NEIGHBOURHOODS
If I find my old notes, in all these Roman connections, inevitably bristle with the spirit of the postscript, so I give way to this prompting to the extent of my scant space and with the sense of other occasions awaiting me on which I shall have to do no less. The impression of Rome was repeatedly to renew itself for the author of these now rather antique and artless accents; was to overlay itself again and again with almost heavy thicknesses of experience, the last of which is, as I write, quite fresh to memory; and he has thus felt almost ashamed to drop his subject (though it be one that tends so easily to turn to the infinite) as if the law of change had in all the years had nothing to say to his case. It’s of course but of his case alone that he speaks—wondering little what he may make of it for the profit of others by an attempt, however brief, to point the moral of the matter, or in other words compare the musing mature visitor’s “feeling about Rome” with that of the extremely agitated, even if though extremely inexpert, consciousness reflected in the previous pages. The actual, the current Rome affects him as a world governed by new conditions altogether and ruefully pleading that sorry fact in the ear of the antique wanderer wherever he may yet mournfully turn for some re-capture of what he misses. The city of his first unpremeditated rapture shines to memory, on the other hand, in the manner of a lost paradise the rustle of whose gardens is still just audible enough in the air to make him wonder if some sudden turn, some recovered vista, mayn’t lead him back to the thing itself. My genial, my helpful tag, at this point, would doubtless properly resolve itself, for the reader, into a clue toward some such successful ingenuity of quest; a remark I make, I may add, even while reflecting that the Paradise isn’t apparently at all “lost” to visitors not of my generation. It is the seekers of that remote and romantic tradition who have seen it, from one period of ten, or even of five, years to another, systematically and remorselessly built out from their view. Their helpless plaint, their sense of the generally irrecoverable and unspeakable, is not, however, what I desire here most to express; I should like, on the contrary, with ampler opportunity, positively to enumerate the cases, the cases of contact, impression, experience, in which the cold ashes of a long-chilled passion may fairly feel themselves made to glow again. No one who has ever loved Rome as Rome could be loved in youth and before her poised basketful of the finer appeals to fond fancy was actually upset, wants to stop loving her; so that our bleeding and wounded, though perhaps not wholly moribund, loyalty attends us as a hovering admonitory, anticipatory ghost, one of those magnanimous life-companions who before complete extinction designate to the other member of the union their approved successor. So it is at any rate that I conceive the pilgrim old enough to have become aware in all these later years of what he misses to be counselled and pacified in the interest of recognitions that shall a little make up for it.
If I find my old notes, all these Roman connections, inevitably reflect the spirit of the postscript, so I give in to this urge as much as my limited space allows, knowing that there will be other moments where I’ll have to do the same. The impression of Rome keeps renewing itself for the author of these now somewhat outdated and simple thoughts; it layers itself over and over with almost heavy layers of experience, the last of which is, as I write, still fresh in my mind. He feels almost embarrassed to drop the subject (though it easily tends to lead into infinity) as if the law of change had nothing to say about his case over the years. He speaks only of his own experience—wondering little about what profit he may offer others by attempting, even briefly, to draw a moral from it, or in other words, comparing the thoughtful visitor’s “feelings about Rome” with those of the extremely agitated, though very inexperienced, consciousness reflected in the earlier pages. The current Rome feels to him like a world ruled by completely new conditions, sadly pleading that unfortunate fact in the ear of the antique traveler wherever he may turn in hopes of recapturing what he longs for. The city that once filled him with unplanned joy shines in his memory like a lost paradise, the rustling of whose gardens is still just audible enough in the air to make him wonder if some sudden turn or recovered view might lead him back to it. My friendly, helpful note here would likely serve as a clue for the reader toward some creative quest for success; a point I make even while reflecting that the paradise isn’t really “lost” to visitors from generations that aren’t my own. It is the seekers of that distant and romantic tradition who have seen it, systematically and ruthlessly built away from their view over a span of ten or even five years. However, their helpless lament, their sense of what is generally irrecoverable and unexpressable, is not what I want to express here the most; I would instead like, given more opportunity, to positively list the instances of contact, impression, and experience where the cold ashes of a long-dormant passion can truly feel themselves reignited. No one who has ever loved Rome as she can be loved in youth, before her exquisite charms were actually disrupted, wants to stop loving her; so our wounded loyalty, though not entirely dead, lingers on as a hovering, anticipatory ghost, one of those noble life-companions who, before complete extinction, designate a successor to the other member of the union. So it is, at any rate, that I imagine the traveler old enough to have become aware of what he misses to be counseled and pacified in the interest of recognitions that will help make up for it.
It was this wisdom I was putting into practice, no doubt, for instance, when I lately resigned myself to motoring of a splendid June day “out to” Subiaco; as a substitute for a resignation that had anciently taken, alas, but the form of my never getting there at all. Everything that day, moreover, seemed right, surely; everything on certain other days that were like it through their large indebtedness, at this, that and the other point, to the last new thing, seemed so right that they come back to me now, after a moderate interval, in the full light of that unchallenged felicity. I couldn’t at all gloriously recall, for instance, as I floated to Subiaco on vast brave wings, how on the occasion of my first visit to Rome, thirty-eight years before, I had devoted certain evenings, evenings of artless “preparation” in my room at the inn, to the perusal of Alphonse Dantier’s admirable Monastères Bénédictins d’ltalie, taking piously for granted that I should get myself somehow conveyed to Monte Cassino and to Subiaco at least: such an affront to the passion of curiosity, the generally infatuated state then kindled, would any suspicion of my foredoomed, my all but interminable, privation during visits to come have seemed to me. Fortune, in the event, had never favoured my going, but I was to give myself up at last to the sense of her quite taking me by the hand, and that is how I now think of our splendid June day at Subiaco. The note of the wondrous place itself is conventional “wild” Italy raised to the highest intensity, the ideally, the sublimely conventional and wild, complete and supreme in itself, without a disparity or a flaw; which character of perfect picturesque orthodoxy seemed more particularly to begin for me, I remember, as we passed, on our way, through that indescribable and indestructible Tivoli, where the jumble of the elements of the familiarly and exploitedly, the all too notoriously fair and queer, was more violent and vociferous than ever—so the whole spectacle there seemed at once to rejoice in cockneyfication and to resist it. There at least I had old memories to renew—including that in especial, from a few years back, of one of the longest, hottest, dustiest return-drives to Rome that the Campagna on a sirocco day was ever to have treated me to.
It was this wisdom I was putting into practice, no doubt, when I recently accepted a drive on a beautiful June day “out to” Subiaco, instead of the resignation I had felt in the past when I never made it there at all. Everything that day seemed just right; everything on other days that were similar, deeply connected to this, that, and the other new experience, also felt so perfect that they come back to me now, after a brief interval, in the bright light of that undeniable joy. I couldn't quite gloriously remember, as I floated to Subiaco on expansive wings, how during my first visit to Rome, thirty-eight years earlier, I had spent certain evenings, evenings of simple “preparation” in my inn room, reading Alphonse Dantier’s admirable Monastères Bénédictins d’Italie, assuming that I would somehow make it to Monte Cassino and Subiaco at least: to even think that such an affront to my curiosity—an all-consuming passion that had been ignited then—would have felt like a punishment if I had suspected my near-perpetual deprivation during future visits. In reality, luck had never been on my side to visit, but I was finally allowing myself to feel her taking me by the hand, and that's how I now remember our beautiful June day at Subiaco. The character of that amazing place is like a conventional “wild” Italy taken to its peak, ideally, beautifully conventional and wild, complete and whole without any disparity or flaw; this sense of perfect picturesque essence seemed to begin for me, I recall, as we passed through that indescribable and enduring Tivoli, where the mix of familiar and well-known sights clashed in a more intense and loud way than ever—thus the entire scene seemed to both revel in its quirks and resist them. There, at least, I had old memories to revisit—including one particularly from a few years back, of one of the longest, hottest, dustiest drives back to Rome that the Campagna on a sirocco day could ever give me.
{Illustration: VILLA D’ESTE, TIVOLI}
{Illustration: VILLA D’ESTE, TIVOLI}
That was to be more than made up on this later occasion by an hour of early evening, snatched on the run back to Rome, that remains with me as one of those felicities we are wise to leave for ever, just as they are, just, that is, where they fell, never attempting to renew or improve them. So happy a chance was it that ensured me at the afternoon’s end a solitary stroll through the Villa d’ Este, where the day’s invasion, whatever it might have been, had left no traces and where I met nobody in the great rococo passages and chambers, and in the prodigious alleys and on the repeated flights of tortuous steps, but the haunting Genius of Style, into whose noble battered old face, as if it had come out clearer in the golden twilight and on recognition of response so deeply moved, I seemed to exhale my sympathy. This was truly, amid a conception and order of things all mossed over from disuse, but still without a form abandoned or a principle disowned, one of the hours that one doesn’t forget. The ruined fountains seemed strangely to wait, in the stillness and under cover of the approaching dusk, not to begin ever again to play, also, but just only to be tenderly imagined to do so; quite as everything held its breath, at the mystic moment, for the drop of the cruel and garish exposure, for the Spirit of the place to steal forth and go his round. The vistas of the innumerable mighty cypresses ranged themselves, in their files and companies, like beaten heroes for their captain’s, review; the great artificial “works” of every description, cascades, hemicycles, all graded and grassed and stone-seated as for floral games, mazes and bowers and alcoves and grottos, brave indissoluble unions of the planted and the builded symmetry, with the terraces and staircases that overhang and the arcades and cloisters that underspread, made common cause together as for one’s taking up a little, in kindly lingering wonder, the “feeling” out of which they have sprung. One didn’t see it, under the actual influence, one wouldn’t for the world have seen it, as that they longed to be justified, during a few minutes in the twenty-four hours, of their absurdity of pomp and circumstance—but only that they asked for company, once in a way, as they were so splendidly formed to give it, and that the best company, in a changed world, at the end of time, what could they hope it to be but just the lone, the dawdling person of taste, the visitor with a flicker of fancy, not to speak of a pang of pity, to spare for them? It was in the flicker of fancy, no doubt, that as I hung about the great top-most terrace in especial, and then again took my way through the high gaunt corridors and the square and bare alcoved and recessed saloons, all overscored with such a dim waste of those painted, those delicate and capricious decorations which the loggie of the Vatican promptly borrowed from the ruins of the Palatine, or from whatever other revealed and inspiring ancientries, and which make ghostly confession here of that descent, I gave the rein to my sense of the sinister too, of that vague after-taste as of evil things that lurks so often, for a suspicious sensibility, wherever the terrible game of the life of the Renaissance was played as the Italians played it; wherever the huge tessellated chessboard seems to stretch about us; swept bare, almost always violently swept bare, of its chiselled and shifting figures, of every value and degree, but with this echoing desolation itself representing the long gasp, as it were, of overstrained time, the great after-hush that follows on things too wonderful or dreadful.
That was more than compensated for later by an hour of early evening I managed to snatch on the way back to Rome, which has remained with me as one of those moments of happiness that are best left untouched, just as they are, exactly where they occurred, without trying to recreate or improve them. It was such a fortunate opportunity that allowed me, at the end of the afternoon, to take a solitary walk through the Villa d’Este, where the day's happenings had left no traces, and where I encountered no one in the grand rococo halls and chambers, or in the vast paths and the winding stone staircases, but the lingering Genius of Style, into whose noble, weathered face, illuminated by the golden twilight, I felt my empathy escaping. This truly was one of those unforgettable hours, even amidst an atmosphere that felt overgrown with disuse, yet still held onto a sense of form and principle. The ruined fountains seemed to strangely wait in the quiet under the looming dusk, not to start flowing again, but merely to be tenderly imagined as doing so; just like everything held its breath at that mystical moment, anticipating the harsh and gaudy exposure, for the Spirit of the place to emerge and wander. The rows of countless majestic cypress trees stood like humbled heroes lining up for their captain's review; the grand artificial creations of all kinds—cascades, semi-circles, all landscaped and designed for floral gatherings, mazes, arbors, alcoves, and grottos—formed a remarkable, inseparable blend of nature and architecture, with the terraces and staircases above, and the arcades and cloisters below, uniting to create a space where one could pause in kind wonder and feel the essence from which they originated. One didn't really see it, under the current impression; you wouldn’t for anything have noticed it, as if they longed for validation, even for just a few minutes in twenty-four hours, for their absurdity of grandeur and show—but instead, they seemed to seek companionship, now and then, as they were so lavishly designed to provide it, and in a transformed world at the end of time, what could they hope for but the solitary, meandering person of taste, the visitor with a flicker of imagination, not to mention a twinge of compassion, to spare for them? It was indeed in that flicker of imagination that, as I lingered around the high topmost terrace in particular, and then made my way through the tall, stark corridors and the square, bare alcoves and set-back spaces, all awash in the dim remnants of those painted, delicate, and whimsical decorations which the loggie of the Vatican had quickly borrowed from the ruins of the Palatine or from whatever other revealing and inspirational ancient sources, and which here hauntingly confess that heritage, I also let myself acknowledge the sinister undertones, that vague aftertaste of dark things that so often lingers for those with a suspicious sensibility, wherever the intense drama of Renaissance life unfolded as the Italians portrayed it; wherever the massive tessellated chessboard seems to extend around us, almost always being violently stripped of its carved and shifting figures of every value and degree, yet with this echoing desolation itself representing the long sigh, as it were, of stretched time, the profound silence that follows after experiences that are too incredible or too terrifying.
I am putting here, however, my cart before my horse, for the hour just glanced at was but a final tag to a day of much brighter curiosity, and which seemed to take its baptism, as we passed through prodigious perched and huddled, adorably scattered and animated and even crowded Tivoli, from the universal happy spray of the drumming Anio waterfalls, all set in their permanent rainbows and Sibylline temples and classic allusions and Byronic quotations; a wondrous romantic jumble of such things and quite others—heterogeneous inns and clamorous guingettes and factories grabbing at the torrent, to say nothing of innumerable guides and donkeys and white-tied, swallow-tailed waiters dashing out of grottos and from under cataracts, and of the air, on the part of the whole population, of standing about, in the most characteristic contadino manner, to pounce on you and take you somewhere, snatch you from somebody else, shout something at you, the aqueous and other uproar permitting, and then charge you for it, your innocence aiding. I’m afraid our run the rest of the way to Subiaco remains with me but as an after-sense of that exhilaration, in spite of our rising admirably higher, all the while, and plunging constantly deeper into splendid solitary gravities, supreme romantic solemnities and sublimities, of landscape. The Benedictine convent, which clings to certain more or less vertiginous ledges and slopes of a vast precipitous gorge, constitutes, with the whole perfection of its setting, the very ideal of the tradition of that extraordinary in the romantic handed down to us, as the most attaching and inviting spell of Italy, by all the old academic literature of travel and art of the Salvator Rosas and Claudes. This is the main tribute I may pay in a few words to an impression of which a sort of divine rightness of oddity, a pictorial felicity that was almost not of this world, but of a higher degree of distinction altogether, affected me as the leading note; yet about the whole exquisite complexity of which I can’t pretend to be informing.
I'm putting the cart before the horse here, because the hour I just mentioned was just a final touch to a day filled with much brighter curiosity. It felt like we were baptized in the joyful mist of the Anio waterfalls, with their permanent rainbows, ancient temples, classic references, and Byronic quotes. It was a marvelous, romantic mix of everything—diverse inns, loud guingettes, and factories reaching for the rushing water, not to mention countless guides, donkeys, and waiters in tails darting out from caves and under waterfalls. The whole local population seemed to be casually hanging around, ready to pounce on you, whisk you away somewhere, pull you from someone else, shout something at you amid the chaos, and then charge you for it, with your innocence working against you. I’m afraid that the rest of our journey to Subiaco only left me with a faint echo of that exhilaration, even though we kept climbing higher and plunging deeper into breathtaking, solitary landscapes filled with supreme romantic solemnity and beauty. The Benedictine convent, perched on steep ledges of a dramatic gorge, embodies the ideal of the remarkable romantic tradition passed down to us. It is the most enchanting and inviting aspect of Italy, as depicted in the old travel and art literature by figures like Salvator Rosa and Claude. This is my main tribute in a few words to an impression that struck me with a divine rightness of oddity, a visual beauty that seemed almost otherworldly, yet I can't claim to fully capture the entire exquisite complexity of it.
All the elements of the scene melted for me together; even from the pause for luncheon on a grassy wayside knoll, over heaven knows what admirable preparatory headlong slopes and ravines and iridescent distances, under spreading chestnuts and in the high air that was cool and sweet, to the final pedestrian climb of sinuous mountain-paths that the shining limestone and the strong green of shrub and herbage made as white as silver. There the miraculous home of St. Benedict awaited us in the form of a builded and pictured-over maze of chapels and shrines, cells and corridors, stupefying rock-chambers and caves, places all at an extraordinary variety of different levels and with labyrinthine intercommunications; there the spirit of the centuries sat like some invisible icy presence that only permits you to stare and wonder. I stared, I wondered, I went up and down and in and out and lost myself in the fantastic fable of the innumerable hard facts themselves; and whenever I could, above all, I peeped out of small windows and hung over chance terraces for the love of the general outer picture, the splendid fashion in which the fretted mountains of marble, as they might have been, round about, seemed to inlay themselves, for the effect of the “distinction” I speak of, with vegetations of dark emerald. There above all—or at least in what such aspects did further for the prodigy of the Convent, whatever that prodigy might for do them—was, to a life-long victim of Italy, almost verily as never before, the operation of the old love-philtre; there were the inexhaustible sources of interest and charm.
All the elements of the scene blended together for me; even during the break for lunch on a grassy knoll, surrounded by who knows how many amazing steep slopes, ravines, and shimmering distances, beneath the expansive chestnut trees and in the cool, sweet air, leading to the final uphill hike along winding mountain paths that the shiny limestone and vibrant green of shrubs and grass made glimmer like silver. There awaited us the miraculous home of St. Benedict, a built and intricately decorated maze of chapels and shrines, cells and corridors, astonishing rock chambers and caves, all at an extraordinary variety of levels with complex pathways connecting them; there the spirit of the centuries lingered like an invisible, chilly presence that only allows you to gaze and marvel. I gazed, I marveled, I wandered in and out and lost myself in the surreal narrative of countless hard facts; and whenever I could, especially, I peeked out of small windows and leaned over random terraces, captivated by the overall view, the magnificent way the intricately carved marble mountains around seemed to integrate, to achieve the “distinctiveness” I mentioned, with lush dark green vegetation. There above all—or at least in the way such views contributed to the wonder of the Convent, whatever that wonder might do for them—was, for someone who has loved Italy all my life, almost truly like never before, the magic of the old love potion; there were endless sources of interest and charm.
{Illustration: SUBIACO}
{Illustration: SUBIACO}
These mystic fountains broke out for me elsewhere, again and again, I rejoice to say—and perhaps more particularly, to be frank about it, where the ground about them was pressed with due emphasis of appeal by the firm wheels of the great winged car. I motored, under invitation and protection, repeatedly back into the sense of the other years, that sense of the “old” and comparatively idle Rome of my particular infatuated prime which I was living to see superseded, and this even when the fond vista bristled with innumerable “signs of the times,” unmistakable features of the new era, that, by I scarce know what perverse law, succeeded in ministering to a happy effect. Some of these false notes proceed simply from the immense growth of every sort of facilitation—so that people are much more free than of old to come and go and do, to inquire and explore, to pervade and generally “infest”; with a consequent loss, for the fastidious individual, of his blest earlier sense, not infrequent, of having the occasion and the impression, as he used complacently to say, all to himself. We none of us had anything quite all to ourselves during an afternoon at Ostia, on a beautiful June Sunday; it was a different affair, rather, from the long, the comparatively slow and quite unpeopled drive that I was to remember having last taken early in the autumn thirty years before, and which occupied the day—with the aid of a hamper from once supreme old Spillman, the provider for picnics to a vanished world (since I suspect the antique ideal of “a picnic in the Campagna,” the fondest conception of a happy day, has lost generally much of its glamour). Our idyllic afternoon, at any rate, left no chord of sensibility that could possibly have been in question untouched—not even that of tea on the shore at Fiumincino, after we had spent an hour among the ruins of Ostia and seen our car ferried across the Tiber, almost saffron-coloured here and swirling towards its mouth, on a boat that was little more than a big rustic raft and that yet bravely resisted the prodigious weight. What shall I say, in the way of the particular, of the general felicity before me, for the sweetness of the hour to which the incident just named, with its strange and amusing juxtapositions of the patriarchally primitive and the insolently supersubtle, the earliest and the latest efforts of restless science, were almost immediately to succeed?
These mystical fountains kept appearing to me in different places, time and time again, and I’m happy to say—especially to be honest about it—where the ground around them was pressed into the right shape by the solid wheels of the grand winged car. I drove, invited and protected, repeatedly back into the feeling of the past years, that sense of the “old” and relatively idle Rome of my passionate youth, which I lived to see replaced, even when the beloved view was filled with countless “signs of the times,” unmistakable features of the new era that, by some strange twist of fate, managed to create a pleasing atmosphere. Some of these off-key notes come simply from the huge increase in every type of convenience—so that people are much freer now to come and go and do, to ask questions and explore, to wander around and generally “invade”; this results in a loss, for the discerning individual, of that blessed earlier feeling, not infrequent, of having the occasion and the impression, as he used to say complacently, all to himself. None of us had anything really to ourselves during an afternoon at Ostia on a beautiful June Sunday; it was quite different from the long, relatively slow, and almost deserted drive that I remembered taking in early autumn thirty years earlier, which filled the day—with the help of a picnic basket from the once-great Spillman, the provider for picnics of a vanished era (since I suspect the ideal of “a picnic in the Campagna,” the fondest idea of a perfect day, has generally lost much of its charm). Our idyllic afternoon, in any case, touched every chord of sensitivity that could possibly be questioned—not even that of having tea on the shore at Fiumicino, after we spent an hour among the ruins of Ostia and saw our car carried across the Tiber, almost saffron-colored here and swirling towards its mouth, on a boat that was just a big rustic raft but valiantly resisted the tremendous weight. What can I say, in terms of the particular, of the general joy in front of me, for the sweetness of the hour that the mentioned incident, with its strange and amusing contrasts of the patriarchally primitive and the boldly intricate, the earliest and the latest efforts of restless science, were about to follow?
We had but skirted the old gold-and-brown walls of Castel Fusano, where the massive Chigi tower and the immemorial stone-pines and the afternoon sky and the desolate sweetness and concentrated rarity of the picture all kept their appointment, to fond memory, with that especial form of Roman faith, the fine aesthetic conscience in things, that is never, never broken. We had wound through tangled lanes and met handsome sallow country-folk lounging at leisure, as became the Sunday, and ever so pleasantly and garishly clothed, if not quite consistently costumed, as just on purpose to feed our wanton optimism; and then we had addressed ourselves with a soft superficiality to the open, the exquisite little Ostian reliquary, an exhibition of stony vaguenesses half straightened out. The ruins of the ancient port of Rome, the still recoverable identity of streets and habitations and other forms of civil life, are a not inconsiderable handful, though making of the place at best a very small sister to Pompeii; but a soft superficiality is ever the refuge of my shy sense before any ghost of informed reconstitution, and I plead my surrender to it with the less shame that I believe I “enjoy” such scenes even on such futile pretexts as much as it can be appointed them by the invidious spirit of History to be enjoyed. It may be said, of course, that enjoyment, question-begging term at best, isn’t in these austere connections designated—but rather some principle of appreciation that can at least give a coherent account of itself. On that basis then—as I could, I profess, but revel in the looseness of my apprehension, so wide it seemed to fling the gates of vision and divination—I won’t pretend to dot, as it were, too many of the i’s of my incompetence. I was competent only to have been abjectly interested. On reflection, moreover, I see that no impression of over-much company invaded the picture till the point was exactly reached for its contributing thoroughly to character and amusement; across at Fiumincino, which the age of the bicycle has made, in a small way, the handy Gravesend or Coney Island of Rome, the cafés and birrerie were at high pressure, and the bustle all motley and friendly beside the melancholy river, where the water-side life itself had twenty quaint and vivid notes and where a few upstanding objects, ancient or modern, looked eminent and interesting against the delicate Roman sky that dropped down and down to the far-spreading marshes of malaria. Besides which “company” is ever intensely gregarious, hanging heavily together and easily outwitted; so that we had but to proceed a scant distance further and meet the tideless Mediterranean, where it tumbled in a trifle breezily on the sands, to be all to ourselves with our tea-basket, quite as in the good old fashion—only in truth with the advantage that the contemporary tea-basket is so much improved.
We had just grazed the old gold-and-brown walls of Castel Fusano, where the massive Chigi tower and the timeless stone pines, the afternoon sky, and the bittersweet beauty of the scene all kept their appointment with lovely memories and that unique form of Roman faith, the fine aesthetic conscience in things, that is never, ever broken. We had meandered through tangled lanes and encountered handsome, sun-kissed locals lounging at leisure, as was fitting for a Sunday, and dressed in a pleasantly vibrant and sometimes mismatched way, seemingly just to indulge our carefree optimism; then we had approached the open, exquisite little Ostian reliquary, an exhibit of stony ambiguities half straightened out. The ruins of the ancient port of Rome, the still recoverable identity of streets, homes, and other forms of civil life, are quite a notable handful, even if they make the place, at best, a very small sister to Pompeii; yet a sense of lightness is always my refuge in the presence of any ghost of knowledgeable reconstruction, and I admit my surrender to it with less shame because I believe I "enjoy" such scenes, even for reasons as flimsy as those appointed by the spiteful spirit of History for them to be enjoyed. It could be said, of course, that enjoyment—though a question-begging term—isn’t really designated in these serious contexts, but rather some principle of appreciation that at least provides a coherent explanation of itself. Based on that, I confess I could only revel in the carefree nature of my perception; it seemed to fling open the gates of vision and understanding—I won’t pretend to dot too many of the i’s of my incompetence. I was only competent enough to be deeply interested. On reflection, I see that no sense of overcrowding intruded on the scene until the moment exactly arrived for it to contribute fully to the character and amusement; across at Fiumicino, which the age of the bicycle has turned, in a small way, into the convenient Gravesend or Coney Island of Rome, the cafés and birrerie were bustling, and the atmosphere was lively and friendly beside the melancholic river, where the riverside life itself had twenty quaint and vivid notes, and where a few prominent objects, whether ancient or modern, stood out as interesting against the delicate Roman sky that dropped down toward the far-spreading marshes of malaria. Besides, "company" is always intensely social, clustering together and easily outsmarted; so we only had to walk a little further to reach the tideless Mediterranean, where the waves lapped breezily on the sands for us to enjoy our tea-basket, just like in the good old days—only, in truth, with the benefit that today’s tea-basket is much improved.
I jumble my memories as a tribute to the whole idyll—I give the golden light in which they come back to me for what it is worth; worth, I mean, as allowing that the possibilities of charm of the Witch of the Seven Hills, as we used to call her in magazines, haven’t all been vulgarised away. It was precisely there, on such an occasion and in such a place, that this might seem signally to have happened; whereas in fact the mild suburban riot, in which the so gay but so light potations before the array of little houses of entertainment were what struck one as really making most for mildness, was brushed over with a fabled grace, was harmonious, felicitous, distinguished, quite after the fashion of some thoroughly trained chorus or phalanx of opera or ballet. Bicycles were stacked up by the hundred; the youth of Rome are ardent cyclists, with a great taste for flashing about in more or less denuded or costumed athletic and romantic bands and guilds, and on our return cityward, toward evening, along the right bank of the river, the road swarmed with the patient wheels and bent backs of these budding cives Romani quite to the effect of its finer interest. Such at least, I felt, could only be one’s acceptance of almost any feature of a scene bathed in that extraordinarily august air that the waning Roman day is so insidiously capable of taking on when any other element of style happens at all to contribute. Weren’t they present, these other elements, in the great classic lines and folds, the fine academic or historic attitudes of the darkening land itself as it hung about the old highway, varying its vague accidents, but achieving always perfect “composition”? I shamelessly add that cockneyfied impression, at all events, to what I have called my jumble; Rome, to which we all swept on together in the wondrous glowing medium, saved everything, spreading afar her wide wing and applying after all but her supposed grand gift of the secret of salvation. We kept on and on into the great dim rather sordidly papal streets that approach the quarter of St. Peter’s; to the accompaniment, finally, of that markedly felt provocation of fond wonder which had never failed to lie in wait for me under any question of a renewed glimpse of the huge unvisited rear of the basilica. There was no renewed glimpse just then, in the gloaming; but the region I speak of had been for me, in fact, during the previous weeks, less unvisited than ever before, so that I had come to count an occasional walk round and about it as quite of the essence of the convenient small change with which the heterogeneous City may still keep paying you. These frequentations in the company of a sculptor friend had been incidental to our reaching a small artistic foundry of fine metal, an odd and interesting little establishment placed, as who should say in the case of such a mere left-over scrap of a large loose margin, nowhere: it lurked so unsuspectedly, that is, among the various queer things that Rome comprehensively refers to as “behind St. Peter’s.”
I mix up my memories as a tribute to the entire experience—I acknowledge the warm golden light in which they return to me for what it’s worth; I mean worth in the sense that the enchanting possibilities of the Witch of the Seven Hills, as we used to call her in magazines, haven’t all been cheapened. It was specifically at such a moment and in such a place that this might seem to have happened; yet, in reality, the mild suburban excitement, where the cheerful but light drinks in front of the array of little entertainment venues seemed to contribute most to the gentleness, was enhanced by a legendary charm, appearing harmonious, delightful, and classy, much like a well-trained opera or ballet troupe. Bicycles were stacked up by the hundreds; the youth of Rome are passionate cyclists, eager to show off in various degrees of undress or costumes in athletic and romantic groups. As we made our way back to the city in the evening along the river’s right bank, the road was filled with the patient wheels and hunched backs of these budding Romans, adding to its finer appeal. So I felt, one could only embrace almost any aspect of a scene bathed in that extraordinarily majestic air that the fading Roman day can deceptively adopt when any other stylistic element happens to contribute. Were these other elements present in the grand classic lines and folds, the elegant academic or historical postures of the darkening land itself as it gathered around the old road, varying its subtle details but always achieving perfect “composition”? I unapologetically add that impression, at least, to what I’ve called my mix; Rome, to which we all traveled together in that wondrous glowing atmosphere, saved everything, spreading her wide wings and applying what was assumed to be her grand gift of salvation. We continued on into the large, somewhat shabby papal streets approaching St. Peter’s quarter, accompanied finally by that familiar urge of fond wonder that had always awaited me whenever I thought of catching a glimpse of the massive, unvisited back of the basilica. There was no renewed glimpse at that moment in the twilight; but that area had actually been less unvisited for me in the previous weeks than ever before, so much so that I had come to consider an occasional walk around it as an essential part of the convenient small change that the diverse City can still give you. These visits, alongside a sculptor friend, had come about as we sought a small artistic foundry of fine metal, a quirky little establishment located—so to speak—in the case of such a mere leftover scrap of a large loose margin, nowhere: it was hidden unexpectedly among the various unusual things that Rome generally refers to as “behind St. Peter’s.”
We had passed then, on the occasion of our several pilgrimages, in beneath the great flying, or at least straddling buttresses to the left of the mighty façade, where you enter that great idle precinct of fine dense pavement and averted and sacrificed grandeur, the reverse of the monstrous medal of the front. Here the architectural monster rears its back and shoulders on an equal scale and this whole unregarded world of colossal consistent symmetry and hidden high finish gives you the measure of the vast total treasure of items and features. The outward face of all sorts of inward majesties of utility and ornament here above all correspondingly reproduces itself; the expanses of golden travertine—the freshness of tone, the cleanness of surface, in the sunny air, being extraordinary—climb and soar and spread under the crushing weight of a scheme carried out in every ponderous particular. Never was such a show of wasted art, of pomp for pomp’s sake, as where all the chapels bulge and all the windows, each one a separate constructional masterpiece, tower above almost grassgrown vacancy; with the full and immediate effect, of course, of reading us a lesson on the value of lawful pride. The pride is the pride of indifference as to whether a greatness so founded be gaped at in all its features or not. My friend and I were alone to gape at them most often while, for the unfailing impression of them, on our way to watch the casting of our figure, we extended our circuit of the place. To which I may add, as another example of that tentative, that appealing twitch of the garment of Roman association of which one kept renewing one’s consciousness, the half-hour at the little foundry itself was all charming—with its quite shabby and belittered and ramshackle recall of the old Roman “art-life” of one’s early dreams. Everything was somehow in the picture, the rickety sheds, the loose paraphernalia, the sunny, grassy yard where a goat was browsing; then the queer interior gloom of the pits, frilled with little overlooking scaffoldings and bridges, for the sinking fireward of the image that was to take on hardness; and all the pleasantness and quickness, the beguiling refinement, of the three or four light fine “hands” of whom the staff consisted and into whose type and tone one liked to read, with whatever harmless extravagance, so many signs that a lively sense of stiff processes, even in humble life, could still leave untouched the traditional rare feeling for the artistic. How delightful such an occupation in such a general setting—those of my friend, I at such moments irrepressibly moralised; and how one might after such a fashion endlessly go and come and ask nothing better; or if better, only so to the extent of another impression I was to owe to him: that of an evening meal spread, in the warm still darkness that made no candle flicker, on the wide high space of an old loggia that overhung, in one quarter, the great obelisked Square preceding one of the Gates, and in the other the Tiber and the far Trastevere and more things than I can say—above all, as it were, the whole backward past, the mild confused romance of the Rome one had loved and of which one was exactly taking leave under protection of the friendly lanterned and garlanded feast and the commanding, all-embracing roof-garden. It was indeed a reconciling, it was an altogether penetrating, last hour.
We had passed, during our various pilgrimages, beneath the great flying, or at least straddling buttresses to the left of the massive façade, where you enter that large, unused area of fine, dense pavement and ignored, sacrificed grandeur, the opposite of the imposing front. Here, the architectural giant towers with equal force, and this entire overlooked realm of colossal, consistent symmetry and hidden high craftsmanship gives you a sense of the vast overall treasure of details and features. The outward face of all kinds of inward majesty, both practical and decorative, closely reproduces itself here; the expanses of golden travertine—the freshness of color, the smoothness of surface, in the sunny air, is remarkable—rise and spread under the heavy weight of a plan executed in every considerable detail. There has never been such a display of wasted art, of grandeur for grandeur’s sake, as where all the chapels bulge and all the windows, each a unique architectural masterpiece, tower above almost vacant patches of grass; creating an immediate effect of reminding us of the value of rightful pride. This pride reflects a sense of indifference to whether such a foundational greatness is gazed upon in all its features or not. My friend and I were often alone to admire them, while, to capture their unwavering impression, we expanded our exploration of the area on our way to observe the casting of our figure. To add to this experience, the half hour spent at the little foundry itself was charming—with its quite shabby and cluttered, ramshackle reminder of the old Roman “art-life” of our youthful dreams. Everything fit into the scene—the rickety sheds, the loose equipment, the sunny, grassy yard where a goat was grazing; then the strange dimness of the pits, decorated with small scaffoldings and bridges, where the image that was to take on strength would descend toward the fire; and all the pleasantness and liveliness, the charming finesse, of the three or four skilled “hands” that made up the staff, into whose type and style one found joy in reading, with harmless exaggeration, so many signs that a vibrant sense of rigorous processes—even in humble life—could still preserve the traditional rare feel for the artistic. How delightful such a pursuit would be in such a general setting—those moments inspired me morally, and how one might endlessly enjoy going back and forth without wanting anything more; or if anything more, only from another experience I owed to him: that of an evening meal spread out, in the warm, still darkness that didn’t flicker a candle, across the wide high space of an old loggia that overlooked, on one side, the grand obelisked Square leading to one of the Gates, and on the other, the Tiber and the distant Trastevere and so many more things than I can mention—above all, it was as if the whole backward past, the gentle, confused romance of the Rome one had loved, was exactly being left behind under the protection of the friendly lantern-lit and garlanded feast and the commanding, all-encompassing rooftop garden. It was indeed a reconciling, a deeply moving last hour.
1909.
A CHAIN OF CITIES
One day in midwinter, some years since, during a journey from Rome to Florence perforce too rapid to allow much wayside sacrifice to curiosity, I waited for the train at Narni. There was time to stroll far enough from the station to have a look at the famous old bridge of Augustus, broken short off in mid-Tiber. While I stood admiring the measure of impression was made to overflow by the gratuitous grace of a white-cowled monk who came trudging up the road that wound to the gate of the town. Narni stood, in its own presented felicity, on a hill a good space away, boxed in behind its perfect grey wall, and the monk, to oblige me, crept slowly along and disappeared within the aperture. Everything was distinct in the clear air, and the view exactly as like the bit of background by an Umbrian master as it ideally should have been. The winter is bare and brown enough in southern Italy and the earth reduced to more of a mere anatomy than among ourselves, for whom the very crânerie of its exposed state, naked and unashamed, gives it much of the robust serenity, not of a fleshless skeleton, but of a fine nude statue. In these regions at any rate, the tone of the air, for the eye, during the brief desolation, has often an extraordinary charm: nature still smiles as with the deputed and provisional charity of colour and light, the duty of not ceasing to cheer man’s heart. Her whole behaviour, at the time, cast such a spell on the broken bridge, the little walled town and the trudging friar, that I turned away with the impatient vow and the fond vision of how I would take the journey again and pause to my heart’s content at Narni, at Spoleto, at Assisi, at Perugia, at Cortona, at Arezzo. But we have generally to clip our vows a little when we come to fulfil them; and so it befell that when my blest springtime arrived I had to begin as resignedly as possible, yet with comparative meagreness, at Assisi.
One midwinter day, a few years ago, during a journey from Rome to Florence that was too rushed to indulge my curiosity, I waited for the train at Narni. I had enough time to walk away from the station and see the famous old bridge of Augustus, which is broken off in the middle of the Tiber. While I stood admiring it, my feelings were further stirred by a white-cowled monk who was trudging up the road leading to the town gate. Narni sat contentedly on a hill not far away, enclosed by its perfect grey wall, and the monk, to oblige me, slowly made his way and disappeared through the opening. Everything was clear in the crisp air, and the view looked just like a piece of background from an Umbrian master, as it should be. Winter in southern Italy can be quite bare and brown, and the landscape seems more exposed than it does back home, where even the starkness of its nakedness lends a certain serene strength, not of a lifeless skeleton, but of a beautiful nude statue. In these regions, at least, the air's quality holds an extraordinary charm during this brief desolation: nature still manages to smile with the temporary kindness of color and light, fulfilling its role of keeping human hearts uplifted. Everything around me at that moment cast a spell on the broken bridge, the little walled town, and the trudging friar, making me vow impulsively that I would return and take my time enjoying Narni, Spoleto, Assisi, Perugia, Cortona, and Arezzo. But we often have to scale back our promises when it comes time to keep them, and so it turned out that when my blessed spring finally arrived, I had to start as resignedly as possible, but with little else to see, at Assisi.
{Illustration: ASSISI.}
{Illustration: ASSISI.}
I suppose enjoyment would have a simple zest which it often lacks if we always did things at the moment we want to, for it’s mostly when we can’t that we’re thoroughly sure we would, and we can answer too little for moods in the future conditional. Winter at least seemed to me to have put something into these seats of antiquity that the May sun had more or less melted away—a desirable strength of tone, a depth upon depth of queerness and quaintness. Assisi had been in the January twilight, after my mere snatch at Narni, a vignette out of some brown old missal. But you’ll have to be a fearless explorer now to find of a fine spring day any such cluster of curious objects as doesn’t seem made to match before anything else Mr. Baedeker’s polyglot estimate of its chief recommendations. This great man was at Assisi in force, and a brand-new inn for his accommodation has just been opened cheek by jowl with the church of St. Francis. I don’t know that even the dire discomfort of this harbourage makes it seem less impertinent; but I confess I sought its protection, and the great view seemed hardly less beautiful from my window than from the gallery of the convent. This view embraces the whole wide reach of Umbria, which becomes as twilight deepens a purple counterfeit of the misty sea. The visitor’s first errand is with the church; and it’s fair furthermore to admit that when he has crossed that threshold the position and quality of his hotel cease for the time to be matters of moment. This two-fold temple of St. Francis is one of the very sacred places of Italy, and it would be hard to breathe anywhere an air more heavy with holiness. Such seems especially the case if you happen thus to have come from Rome, where everything ecclesiastical is, in aspect, so very much of this world—so florid, so elegant, so full of accommodations and excrescences. The mere site here makes for authority, and they were brave builders who laid the foundation-stones. The thing rises straight from a steep mountain-side and plunges forward on its great substructure of arches even as a crowned headland may frown over the main. Before it stretches a long, grassy piazza, at the end of which you look up a small grey street, to see it first climb a little way the rest of the hill and then pause and leave a broad green slope, crested, high in the air, with a ruined castle. When I say before it I mean before the upper church; for by way of doing something supremely handsome and impressive the sturdy architects of the thirteenth century piled temple upon temple and bequeathed a double version of their idea. One may imagine them to have intended perhaps an architectural image of the relation between heart and head. Entering the lower church at the bottom of the great flight of steps which leads from the upper door, you seem to push at least into the very heart of Catholicism.
I think enjoyment would have a simple excitement that it often lacks if we always did things when we wanted to, because it’s usually when we can’t do something that we’re completely sure we would, and we can’t respond adequately for future moods. Winter, at least, seemed to have added something to these old seats that the May sun has mostly melted away—a desired strength of tone, and a depth of oddness and charm. Assisi had been, in the January twilight, after my brief visit to Narni, a scene from some old brown prayer book. But you really have to be a fearless explorer to find on a beautiful spring day a collection of unique objects that doesn’t seem designed to match Mr. Baedeker’s summary of its main highlights. This great man was fully present in Assisi, and a brand-new hotel has just opened right next to the church of St. Francis for his convenience. I’m not sure that even the uncomfortable stay there makes it feel any less out of place; but I admit I sought shelter there, and the stunning view seemed hardly less beautiful from my window than from the convent’s balcony. This view spans the entire expanse of Umbria, which, as twilight deepens, becomes a purple reflection of the misty sea. The visitor’s first task is to visit the church, and it’s fair to say that once he crosses that threshold, the location and quality of his hotel become irrelevant for the time being. This two-part temple of St. Francis is one of the most sacred places in Italy, and it would be hard to find a place filled with more holiness. This feels especially true if you happen to have just come from Rome, where everything related to the church is much more worldly in appearance—so extravagant, so elegant, so full of modifications and excesses. The mere location here adds to its authority, and the builders who laid its foundation were truly courageous. The structure rises straight from a steep mountainside and juts forward on its massive base of arches, much like a crowned headland overlooking the sea. Before it lies a long, grassy square, at the end of which you can look up a small gray street and see it first climb a little way up the hill, then pause to reveal a broad green slope adorned with a ruined castle high in the air. When I say "before it," I mean before the upper church; because to create something truly beautiful and impressive, the sturdy architects of the thirteenth century stacked temple upon temple, leaving a double version of their vision. One might imagine they intended an architectural representation of the relationship between heart and mind. Entering the lower church at the bottom of the grand staircase leading from the upper door, you seem to push into the very heart of Catholicism.
For the first minutes after leaving the clearer gloom you catch nothing but a vista of low black columns closed by the great fantastic cage surrounding the altar, which is thus placed, by your impression, in a sort of gorgeous cavern. Gradually you distinguish details, become accustomed to the penetrating chill, and even manage to make out a few frescoes; but the general effect remains splendidly sombre and subterranean. The vaulted roof is very low and the pillars dwarfish, though immense in girth, as befits pillars supporting substantially a cathedral. The tone of the place is a triumph of mystery, the richest harmony of lurking shadows and dusky corners, all relieved by scattered images and scintillations. There was little light but what came through the windows of the choir over which the red curtains had been dropped and were beginning to glow with the downward sun. The choir was guarded by a screen behind which a dozen venerable voices droned vespers; but over the top of the screen came the heavy radiance and played among the ornaments of the high fence round the shrine, casting the shadow of the whole elaborate mass forward into the obscured nave. The darkness of vaults and side-chapels is overwrought with vague frescoes, most of them by Giotto and his school, out of which confused richness the terribly distinct little faces characteristic of these artists stare at you with a solemn formalism. Some are faded and injured, and many so ill-lighted and ill-placed that you can only glance at them with decent conjecture; the great group, however—four paintings by Giotto on the ceiling above the altar—may be examined with some success. Like everything of that grim and beautiful master they deserve examination; but with the effect ever of carrying one’s appreciation in and in, as it were, rather than of carrying it out and out, off and off, as happens for us with those artists who have been helped by the process of “evolution” to grow wings. This one, “going in” for emphasis at any price, stamps hard, as who should say, on the very spot of his idea—thanks to which fact he has a concentration that has never been surpassed. He was in other words, in proportion to his means, a genius supremely expressive; he makes the very shade of an intended meaning or a represented attitude so unmistakable that his figures affect us at moments as creatures all too suddenly, too alarmingly, too menacingly met. Meagre, primitive, undeveloped, he yet is immeasurably strong; he even suggests that if he had lived the due span of years later Michael Angelo might have found a rival. Not that he is given, however, to complicated postures or superhuman flights. The something strange that troubles and haunts us in his work springs rather from a kind of fierce familiarity.
For the first few moments after leaving the clearer gloom, all you see is a view of low black columns blocked by the huge, fantastical cage surrounding the altar, which makes it feel like it's placed in a sort of beautiful cave. Gradually, you start to pick out details, get used to the biting chill, and even manage to see some frescoes; but the overall effect still remains impressively dark and underground. The vaulted ceiling is quite low, and the pillars, while massive in width, seem small, fitting for the support of a grand cathedral. The atmosphere here is a triumph of mystery, a rich blend of hidden shadows and dark corners, all highlighted by scattered images and glimmers. There was little light apart from what came through the choir windows, which were draped with red curtains that were beginning to glow with the setting sun. The choir was shielded by a screen, behind which a dozen aged voices droned evening prayers; but the heavy light spilled over the top of the screen and played among the decorations of the high fence around the shrine, casting the shadow of the entire intricate structure into the dim nave. The darkness of the vaults and side chapels is filled with vague frescoes, most of them by Giotto and his followers, from which the distinct little faces typical of these artists look at you with a solemn seriousness. Some are faded and damaged, and many are poorly lit and positioned, so you can only glance at them with respectful guesswork; however, the main group—four paintings by Giotto on the ceiling above the altar—can be observed with some success. Like everything from that somber and beautiful master, they deserve attention; but they always create the feeling of drawing your appreciation inward rather than outward, unlike those artists who, due to "evolution," have developed wings. This one, focusing on depth at any cost, tightly stamps down on the very heart of his idea—which gives him a concentration that has never been surpassed. In other words, in relation to his resources, he was an extraordinarily expressive genius; he makes even the slightest shade of an intended meaning or represented attitude so clear that his figures sometimes feel like creatures suddenly, alarmingly, and menacingly encountered. Lean, primitive, and raw, he remains immensely powerful; he even suggests that if he had lived a few years longer, Michelangelo might have found a rival. Not that he indulges in complicated poses or superhuman feats. The unsettling quality that troubles and follows us in his work comes more from a kind of fierce familiarity.
It is part of the wealth of the lower church that it contains an admirable primitive fresco by an artist of genius rarely encountered, Pietro Cavallini, pupil of Giotto. This represents the Crucifixion; the three crosses rising into a sky spotted with the winged heads of angels while a dense crowd presses below. You will nowhere see anything more direfully lugubrious, or more approaching for direct force, though not of course for amplitude of style, Tintoretto’s great renderings of the scene in Venice. The abject anguish of the crucified and the straddling authority and brutality of the mounted guards in the foreground are contrasted in a fashion worthy of a great dramatist. But the most poignant touch is the tragic grimaces of the little angelic heads that fall like hailstones through the dark air. It is genuine realistic weeping, the act of irrepressible “crying,” that the painter has depicted, and the effect is pitiful at the same time as grotesque. There are many more frescoes besides; all the chapels on one side are lined with them, but these are chiefly interesting in their general impressiveness—as they people the dim recesses with startling presences, with apparitions out of scale. Before leaving the place I lingered long near the door, for I was sure I shouldn’t soon again enjoy such a feast of scenic composition. The opposite end glowed with subdued colour; the middle portion was vague and thick and brown, with two or three scattered worshippers looming through the obscurity; while, all the way down, the polished pavement, its uneven slabs glittering dimly in the obstructed light, was of the very essence of expensive picture. It is certainly desirable, if one takes the lower church of St. Francis to represent the human heart, that one should find a few bright places there. But if the general effect is of brightness terrorised and smothered, is the symbol less valid? For the contracted, prejudiced, passionate heart let it stand.
It’s part of the charm of the lower church that it features an amazing early fresco by a rarely seen talented artist, Pietro Cavallini, a student of Giotto. This piece depicts the Crucifixion; the three crosses rise against a sky filled with the winged heads of angels, while a large crowd presses in below. You won’t find anything more intensely dark, or as powerful in its directness, though not quite as expansive in style, as Tintoretto’s famous interpretations of the scene in Venice. The deep anguish of the crucified and the commanding brutality of the mounted guards in the foreground are contrasted in a way that a great playwright would admire. But the most emotional detail is the tragic expressions of the little angelic heads that fall like hail through the darkened air. The painter has captured genuine, uncontrollable crying, and the result is both heartbreaking and somewhat absurd. There are many more frescoes as well; all the chapels on one side are lined with them, but these are mainly interesting for their overall impact—as they fill the dim spaces with striking figures, with larger-than-life apparitions. Before leaving, I lingered by the door, knowing I likely wouldn’t have another chance to enjoy such a rich visual experience soon. The far end shimmered with muted colors; the middle section was hazy and dark brown, with a few scattered worshippers appearing through the gloom; and all along, the polished floor, its uneven slabs faintly gleaming in the filtered light, was filled with the essence of expensive artwork. It’s definitely appealing, if we take the lower church of St. Francis to symbolize the human heart, to find a few bright spots there. But if the overall impression is of brightness being stifled and subdued, does that make the symbol any less meaningful? For the cramped, biased, passionate heart, let it stand.
One thing at all events we can say, that we should rejoice to boast as capacious, symmetrical and well-ordered a head as the upper sanctuary. Thanks to these merits, in spite of a brave array of Giottesque work which has the advantage of being easily seen, it lacks the great character of its counterpart. The frescoes, which are admirable, represent certain leading events in the life of St. Francis, and suddenly remind you, by one of those anomalies that are half the secret of the consummate mise-en-scene of Catholicism, that the apostle of beggary, the saint whose only tenement in life was the ragged robe which barely covered him, is the hero of this massive structure. Church upon church, nothing less will adequately shroud his consecrated clay. The great reality of Giotto’s designs adds to the helpless wonderment with which we feel the passionate pluck of the Hero, the sense of being separated from it by an impassable gulf, the reflection on all that has come and gone to make morality at that vertiginous pitch impossible. There are no such high places of humility left to climb to. An observant friend who has lived long in Italy lately declared to me, however, that she detested the name of this moralist, deeming him chief propagator of the Italian vice most trying to the would-be lover of the people, the want of personal self-respect. There is a solidarity in the use of soap, and every cringing beggar, idler, liar and pilferer flourished for her under the shadow of the great Francisan indifference to it. She was possibly right; at Rome, at Naples, I might have admitted she was right; but at Assisi, face to face with Giotto’s vivid chronicle, we admire too much in its main subject the exquisite play of that subject’s genius—we don’t remit to him, and this for very envy, a single throb of his consciousness. It took in, that human, that divine embrace, everything but soap.
One thing we can definitely say is that we should be proud to point out how spacious, balanced, and well-organized the main sanctuary is. Thanks to these qualities, despite the impressive display of Giottesque artwork that is easy to notice, it lacks the strong presence of its counterpart. The frescoes, which are stunning, depict significant moments in the life of St. Francis, and they suddenly remind you, through one of those oddities that are part of the masterful staging of Catholicism, that the apostle of poverty, the saint whose only possession was a tattered robe that barely covered him, is the focal point of this grand structure. Not just one church, but many, are needed to properly honor his holy remains. Giotto’s powerful designs enhance the awe we feel for the courageous spirit of the Hero, making us acutely aware of how far removed we are from it, prompting us to reflect on all that has come before and how it has made morality at such a dizzying height seem unattainable. There are no lofty places of humility left to aspire to. However, a perceptive friend who has spent a long time in Italy recently told me that she hated this moralist's name, considering him the main promoter of the Italian vice that is most challenging for anyone wanting to appreciate the people: the lack of personal dignity. There’s a shared connection in the use of soap, and every submissive beggar, slacker, liar, and thief thrived for her under the shade of the great Franciscan indifference to it. She might have been right; in Rome and Naples, I might have agreed with her; but in Assisi, confronted with Giotto’s vivid narrative, we admire too much in the central figure the beautiful expression of that figure’s talent—we don’t hold back any bit of his awareness out of pure envy. It encompassed, in that human and divine embrace, everything but soap.
I should find it hard to give an orderly account of my next adventures or impressions at Assisi, which could n’t well be anything more than mere romantic flanerie. One may easily plead as the final result of a meditation at the shrine of St. Francis a great and even an amused charity. This state of mind led me slowly up and down for a couple of hours through the steep little streets, and at last stretched itself on the grass with me in the shadow of the great ruined castle that decorates so grandly the eminence above the town. I remember edging along the sunless side of the small mouldy houses and pausing very often to look at nothing in particular. It was all very hot, very hushed, very resignedly but very persistently old. A wheeled vehicle in such a place is an event, and the forestiero’s interrogative tread in the blank sonorous lanes has the privilege of bringing the inhabitants to their doorways. Some of the better houses, however, achieve a sombre stillness that protests against the least curiosity as to what may happen in any such century as this. You wonder, as you pass, what lingering old-world social types vegetate there, but you won’t find out; albeit that in one very silent little street I had a glimpse of an open door which I have not forgotten. A long-haired peddler who must have been a Jew, and who yet carried without prejudice a burden of mass-books and rosaries, was offering his wares to a stout old priest. The priest had opened the door rather stingily and appeared half-heartedly to dismiss him. But the peddler held up something I couldn’t see; the priest wavered with a timorous concession to profane curiosity and then furtively pulled the agent of sophistication, or whatever it might be, into the house. I should have liked to enter with that worthy.
I would find it challenging to give a clear account of my next adventures or impressions in Assisi, which can only be described as a bit of romantic wandering. One could easily conclude that after meditating at the shrine of St. Francis, I felt a deep and even amused compassion. This mindset led me to stroll up and down the steep little streets for a few hours and eventually lie down on the grass with me in the shadow of the impressive ruined castle overlooking the town. I remember carefully moving along the shaded side of the small, musty houses and frequently stopping to look at nothing in particular. It was very hot, very quiet, and yet so old in a persistently resigned way. A vehicle of any kind in such a place feels like an event, and the foreigner’s curious footsteps in the empty, echoing streets draw the locals to their doorways. However, some of the nicer houses maintain a gloomy stillness that seems to resist any curiosity about what might occur in this day and age. You wonder as you walk by what old-fashioned social types still exist there, but you won’t discover the answer; although, in one quiet little street, I caught a glimpse of an open door that has stayed with me. A long-haired peddler, who must have been Jewish and yet carried an assortment of mass-books and rosaries without any bias, was showing his goods to a stout old priest. The priest had opened the door quite begrudgingly and seemed to dismiss him half-heartedly. But the peddler held up something I couldn’t see; the priest hesitated, yielding to a timid curiosity, and then stealthily brought the vendor of whatever it was into the house. I wished I could have joined that worthy.
I saw later some gentlemen of Assisi who also seemed bored enough to have found entertainment in his tray. They were at the door of the cafe on the Piazza, and were so thankful to me for asking them the way to the cathedral that, answering all in chorus, they lighted up with smiles as sympathetic as if I had done them a favour. Of that type were my mild, my delicate adventures. The Piazza has a fine old portico of an ancient Temple of Minerva—six fluted columns and a pediment, of beautiful proportions, but sadly battered and decayed. Goethe, I believe, found it much more interesting than the mighty mediaeval church, and Goethe, as a cicerone, doubtless could have persuaded one that it was so; but in the humble society of Murray we shall most of us find a richer sense in the later monument. I found quaint old meanings enough in the dark yellow facade of the small cathedral as I sat on a stone bench by the oblong green stretched before it. This is a pleasing piece of Italian Gothic and, like several of its companions at Assisi, has an elegant wheel window and a number of grotesque little carvings of creatures human and bestial. If with Goethe I were to balance anything against the attractions of the double church I should choose the ruined castle on the hill above the town. I had been having glimpses of it all the afternoon at the end of steep street-vistas, and promising myself half-an-hour beside its grey walls at sunset. The sun was very late setting, and my half-hour became a long lounge in the lee of an abutment which arrested the gentle uproar of the wind. The castle is a splendid piece of ruin, perched on the summit of the mountain to whose slope Assisi clings and dropping a pair of stony arms to enclose the little town in its embrace. The city wall, in other words, straggles up the steep green hill and meets the crumbling skeleton of the fortress. On the side off from the town the mountain plunges into a deep ravine, the opposite face of which is formed by the powerful undraped shoulder of Monte Subasio, a fierce reflector of the sun. Gorge and mountain are wild enough, but their frown expires in the teeming softness of the great vale of Umbria. To lie aloft there on the grass, with silver-grey ramparts at one’s back and the warm rushing wind in one’s ears, and watch the beautiful plain mellow into the tones of twilight, was as exquisite a form of repose as ever fell to a tired tourist’s lot.
I later saw some guys from Assisi who looked bored enough to find entertainment in his tray. They were by the café door on the Piazza and were so grateful to me for asking them the way to the cathedral that they all smiled brightly, as if I had done them a favor. That’s the kind of mild, delicate adventures I had. The Piazza has a beautiful old portico from an ancient Temple of Minerva—six fluted columns and a pediment, with lovely proportions, but sadly worn and decayed. Goethe, I think, found it way more interesting than the grand medieval church, and as a tour guide, he could probably convince anyone of that; but in the humble company of Murray, most of us would find more depth in the later monument. I found enough quaint old meanings in the dark yellow facade of the small cathedral as I sat on a stone bench by the rectangular green space in front of it. This is a charming example of Italian Gothic and, like several other buildings in Assisi, features an elegant wheel window and a number of quirky little carvings of both human and animal figures. If I were to compare anything to the attractions of the double church, like Goethe, I’d choose the ruined castle on the hill above the town. I’d been catching glimpses of it all afternoon at the ends of steep street views, promising myself half an hour beside its grey walls at sunset. The sun set quite late, and my half-hour turned into a long relaxation under a projection that blocked the gentle gusts of wind. The castle is a magnificent ruin, perched on top of the mountain that Assisi clings to, wrapping stone arms around the little town in its embrace. In other words, the city wall climbs up the steep green hill and meets the crumbling skeleton of the fortress. On the side away from the town, the mountain drops into a deep ravine, with the other side formed by the powerful, bare shoulder of Monte Subasio, a fierce reflector of the sun. The gorge and mountain are wild enough, but their intensity softens in the lushness of the great Umbria valley. To lie up there on the grass, with silver-grey ramparts behind me and the warm wind rushing by, watching the beautiful plain change into twilight tones, was as exquisite a form of rest as any tired tourist could hope for.
{Illustration: PERUGIA.}
{Illustration: PERUGIA.}
Perugia too has an ancient stronghold, which one must speak of in earnest as that unconscious humorist the classic American traveller is supposed invariably to speak of the Colosseum: it will be a very handsome building when it’s finished. Even Perugia is going the way of all Italy—straightening out her streets, preparing her ruins, laying her venerable ghosts. The castle is being completely remis a neuf—a Massachusetts schoolhouse could n’t cultivate a “smarter" ideal. There are shops in the basement and fresh putty on all the windows; so that the only thing proper to a castle it has kept is its magnificent position and range, which you may enjoy from the broad platform where the Perugini assemble at eventide. Perugia is chiefly known to fame as the city of Raphael’s master; but it has a still higher claim to renown and ought to figure in the gazetteer of fond memory as the little City of the infinite View. The small dusky, crooked place tries by a hundred prompt pretensions, immediate contortions, rich mantling flushes and other ingenuities, to waylay your attention and keep it at home; but your consciousness, alert and uneasy from the first moment, is all abroad even when your back is turned to the vast alternative or when fifty house-walls conceal it, and you are for ever rushing up by-streets and peeping round corners in the hope of another glimpse or reach of it. As it stretches away before you in that eminent indifference to limits which is at the same time at every step an eminent homage to style, it is altogether too free and fair for compasses and terms. You can only say, and rest upon it, that you prefer it to any other visible fruit of position or claimed empire of the eye that you are anywhere likely to enjoy.
Perugia also has an ancient fortress that deserves serious mention, much like how classic American travelers are expected to talk about the Colosseum: it’ll be quite impressive when it’s finished. Even Perugia is following the trend across Italy—straightening its streets, restoring its ruins, and laying to rest its ancient ghosts. The castle is being completely renovated—no Massachusetts schoolhouse could embody a more “sophisticated” ideal. There are shops in the basement and fresh putty on all the windows; the only thing it has maintained that’s fitting for a castle is its stunning location and view, which you can enjoy from the wide platform where the locals gather at sunset. Perugia is primarily celebrated as the city of Raphael’s teacher, but it has an even greater claim to fame and should be remembered fondly as the little City of the Infinite View. The small, dark, winding place tries in countless ways—through immediate gestures, vibrant hues, and other clever tricks—to capture your attention and keep you engaged, but your mind, alert and restless from the very beginning, is always drawn to the grand vista that’s just beyond your view, even when you’re facing away from it or when fifty buildings block it. You find yourself constantly darting down side streets and peeking around corners, hoping for another glimpse. As it stretches before you with a magnificent disregard for boundaries, all the while embodying an undeniable sense of style, it’s far too expansive and beautiful to be confined by mere measurements. All you can conclude is that you prefer it to any other view or claimed dominion of the eye you’re likely to encounter.
For it is such a wondrous mixture of blooming plain and gleaming river and wavily-multitudinous mountain vaguely dotted with pale grey cities, that, placed as you are, roughly speaking, in the centre of Italy, you all but span the divine peninsula from sea to sea. Up the long vista of the Tiber you look—almost to Rome; past Assisi, Spello, Foligno, Spoleto, all perched on their respective heights and shining through the violet haze. To the north, to the east, to the west, you see a hundred variations of the prospect, of which I have kept no record. Two notes only I have made: one—though who hasn’t made it over and over again?—on the exquisite elegance of mountain forms in this endless play of the excrescence, it being exactly as if there were variation of sex in the upheaved mass, with the effect here mainly of contour and curve and complexion determined in the feminine sense. It further came home to me that the command of such an outlook on the world goes far, surely, to give authority and centrality and experience, those of the great seats of dominion, even to so scant a cluster of attesting objects as here. It must deepen the civic consciousness and take off the edge of ennui. It performs this kindly office, at any rate, for the traveller who may overstay his curiosity as to Perugino and the Etruscan relics. It continually solicits his wonder and praise—it reinforces the historic page. I spent a week in the place, and when it was gone I had had enough of Perugino, but had n’t had enough of the View.
For it's such an amazing mix of blooming fields and shining rivers and wave-like mountains dotted with pale grey towns that, being roughly in the center of Italy, you almost stretch from coast to coast across the beautiful peninsula. You gaze up the long stretch of the Tiber—almost to Rome; past Assisi, Spello, Foligno, Spoleto, all situated on their own heights and glowing through the violet haze. To the north, east, and west, you see countless variations of the landscape, which I've kept no record of. I have only made two notes: one—though who hasn't said this again and again?—on the exquisite elegance of the mountain shapes in this endless display, as if there were variations in gender in the uplifted mass, mainly showing nature's curves and contours in a feminine way. It also struck me that having such a view of the world surely lends authority, centrality, and experience to even a small group of significant landmarks like this, much like the great power centers. It must deepen civic awareness and relieve boredom. It certainly does this for the traveler who might linger too long over their curiosity about Perugino and the Etruscan artifacts. It consistently invites their wonder and admiration—it adds to the historical narrative. I spent a week there, and by the end, I had seen enough of Perugino, but I still wanted more of the View.
I should perhaps do the reader a service by telling him just how a week at Perugia may be spent. His first care must be to ignore the very dream of haste, walking everywhere very slowly and very much at random, and to impute an esoteric sense to almost anything his eye may happen to encounter. Almost everything in fact lends itself to the historic, the romantic, the æsthetic fallacy—almost everything has an antique queerness and richness that ekes out the reduced state; that of a grim and battered old adventuress, the heroine of many shames and scandals, surviving to an extraordinary age and a considerable penury, but with ancient gifts of princes and other forms of the wages of sin to show, and the most beautiful garden of all the world to sit and doze and count her beads in and remember. He must hang a great deal about the huge Palazzo Pubblico, which indeed is very well worth any acquaintance you may scrape with it. It masses itself gloomily above the narrow street to an immense elevation, and leads up the eye along a cliff-like surface of rugged wall, mottled with old scars and new repairs, to the loggia dizzily perched on its cornice. He must repeat his visit to the Etruscan Gate, by whose immemorial composition he must indeed linger long to resolve it back into the elements originally attending it. He must uncap to the irrecoverable, the inimitable style of the statue of Pope Julius III before the cathedral, remembering that Hawthorne fabled his Miriam, in an air of romance from which we are well-nigh as far to-day as from the building of Etruscan gates, to have given rendezvous to Kenyon at its base. Its material is a vivid green bronze, and the mantle and tiara are covered with a delicate embroidery worthy of a silver-smith.
I should probably help the reader by explaining how to spend a week in Perugia. The first thing to do is to forget about rushing; take your time walking everywhere, wandering around randomly, and finding deeper meaning in almost anything you see. Almost everything has a historic, romantic, or aesthetic quality—there’s an old-world charm and richness that hints at a long and complicated past, like an old adventurer who’s been through many scandals and survived to an impressive old age, despite facing hardships. She possesses ancient treasures and the spoils of her past, along with the most beautiful garden in the world where she can sit, relax, and reflect. You should spend a lot of time at the grand Palazzo Pubblico, which is definitely worth getting to know. It looms over the narrow street, rising steeply, and invites your gaze up along its rough, scarred walls, which are a mix of old damage and new repairs, right to the loggia that juts out precariously from its edge. Make sure to revisit the Etruscan Gate; you’ll want to linger there to piece together its original elements. Take in the unique style of the statue of Pope Julius III in front of the cathedral, remembering that Hawthorne imagined his character Miriam having a romantic meeting with Kenyon there, a moment as distant now as the creation of Etruscan gates. The statue is made from vibrant green bronze, and its mantle and tiara are adorned with intricate detailing that’s worthy of a silversmith's craftsmanship.
Then our leisurely friend must bestow on Perugino’s frescoes in the Exchange, and on his pictures in the University, all the placid contemplation they deserve. He must go to the theatre every evening, in an orchestra-chair at twenty-two soldi, and enjoy the curious didacticism of “Amore senza Stima,” “Severita e Debolezza,” “La Societa Equivoca,” and other popular specimens of contemporaneous Italian comedy—unless indeed the last-named be not the edifying title applied, for peninsular use, to “Le Demi-Monde” of the younger Dumas. I shall be very much surprised if, at the end of a week of this varied entertainment, he hasn’t learnt how to live, not exactly in, but with, Perugia. His strolls will abound in small accidents and mercies of vision, but of which a dozen pencil-strokes would be a better memento than this poor word-sketching. From the hill on which the town is planted radiate a dozen ravines, down whose sides the houses slide and scramble with an alarming indifference to the cohesion of their little rugged blocks of flinty red stone. You ramble really nowhither without emerging on some small court or terrace that throws your view across a gulf of tangled gardens or vineyards and over to a cluster of serried black dwellings which have to hollow in their backs to keep their balance on the opposite ledge. On archways and street-staircases and dark alleys that bore through a density of massive basements, and curve and climb and plunge as they go, all to the truest mediaeval tune, you may feast your fill. These are the local, the architectural, the compositional commonplaces.. Some of the little streets in out-of-the-way corners are so rugged and brown and silent that you may imagine them passages long since hewn by the pick-axe in a deserted stone-quarry. The battered black houses, of the colour of buried things—things buried, that is, in accumulations of time, closer packed, even as such are, than spadefuls of earth—resemble exposed sections of natural rock; none the less so when, beyond some narrow gap, you catch the blue and silver of the sublime circle of landscape.
Then our laid-back friend has to give Perugino’s frescoes in the Exchange and his paintings in the University all the relaxed attention they deserve. He should go to the theater every evening, sitting in an orchestra chair for twenty-two soldi, and enjoy the interesting lessons from “Amore senza Stima,” “Severita e Debolezza,” “La Societa Equivoca,” and other popular examples of modern Italian comedy—unless, of course, the last title refers to “Le Demi-Monde” by the younger Dumas, used in that part of the world. I'd be very surprised if, by the end of a week of this varied entertainment, he hasn’t figured out how to live, not exactly in, but alongside, Perugia. His walks will be full of little surprises and beautiful sights, but a dozen pencil sketches would capture them better than this poor written description. From the hill where the town sits, a dozen ravines spread out, where houses slide and scramble down the slopes with alarming disregard for the structure of their little rugged blocks of flinty red stone. You really can wander aimlessly without finding yourself in a small courtyard or terrace that opens your view across a gap of tangled gardens or vineyards and over to a cluster of tightly packed black houses that have to carve out the backs to stay balanced on the opposite ledge. You can indulge in the archways, street staircases, and dark alleys that cut through a mass of sturdy basements, twisting and turning and diving as they go, all to the most authentic medieval rhythm. These are the local, architectural, and compositional commonplaces. Some of the tiny streets in hidden corners are so rough, brown, and quiet that you might imagine they were pathways long ago carved by a pickaxe in an abandoned stone quarry. The battered black houses, the color of things that are buried—things buried in layers of time, even more tightly packed than shovels of dirt—look like exposed sections of natural rock; especially when, beyond a narrow gap, you catch a glimpse of the blue and silver of the stunning landscape beyond.
{Illustration: ETRUSCAN GATEWAY, PERUGIA.}
{Illustration: Etruscan Gateway, Perugia.}
But I ought n’t to talk of mouldy alleys, or yet of azure distances, as if they formed the main appeal to taste in this accomplished little city. In the Sala del Cambio, where in ancient days the money-changers rattled their embossed coin and figured up their profits, you may enjoy one of the serenest aesthetic pleasures that the golden age of art anywhere offers us. Bank parlours, I believe, are always handsomely appointed, but are even those of Messrs. Rothschild such models of mural bravery as this little counting-house of a bygone fashion? The bravery is Perugino’s own; for, invited clearly to do his best, he left it as a lesson to the ages, covering the four low walls and the vault with scriptural and mythological figures of extraordinary beauty. They are ranged in artless attitudes round the upper half of the room—the sibyls, the prophets, the philosophers, the Greek and Roman heroes—looking down with broad serene faces, with small mild eyes and sweet mouths that commit them to nothing in particular unless to being comfortably and charmingly alive, at the incongruous proceedings of a Board of Brokers. Had finance a very high tone in those days, or were genius and faith then simply as frequent as capital and enterprise are among ourselves? The great distinction of the Sala del Cambio is that it has a friendly Yes for both these questions. There was a rigid transactional probity, it seems to say; there was also a high tide of inspiration. About the artist himself many things come up for us—more than I can attempt in their order; for he was not, I think, to an attentive observer, the mere smooth and entire and devout spirit we at first are inclined to take him for. He has that about him which leads us to wonder if he may not, after all, play a proper part enough here as the patron of the money-changers. He is the delight of a million of young ladies; but who knows whether we should n’t find in his works, might we “go into” them a little, a trifle more of manner than of conviction, and of system than of deep sincerity?
But I shouldn’t be talking about moldy alleys or distant blue horizons as if they were the primary attractions in this charming little city. In the Sala del Cambio, where money-changers once clinked their embossed coins and tallied their profits, you can experience one of the most serene artistic pleasures offered by the golden age of art. I believe bank lounges are usually well-decorated, but do even those at Messrs. Rothschild match the mural boldness of this quaint old counting house? The boldness belongs to Perugino; invited to give his best, he created a masterpiece to last through the ages, covering the four low walls and the ceiling with stunning biblical and mythological figures. They are placed in casual poses around the upper part of the room—the sibyls, the prophets, the philosophers, the Greek and Roman heroes—looking down with broad, serene faces, gentle eyes, and sweet mouths that commit to nothing in particular except being comfortably and charmingly alive amidst the out-of-place activities of a Board of Brokers. Did finance have a lofty ethos back then, or was genius and faith simply as abundant as capital and enterprise are today? The great thing about the Sala del Cambio is that it has a warm Yes for both questions. It seems to suggest there was a strict honesty in transactions; there was also a surge of inspiration. Many thoughts come to mind about the artist himself—more than I can address at once, since he’s not just the smooth, polished, and devout figure we might first assume. There’s something about him that makes us wonder if he might actually play a fitting role as the patron of the money-changers. He delights countless young ladies; but who knows if we’d find in his works, if we examined them more closely, a bit more style than authenticity and more system than true sincerity?
This, I allow, would put no great affront on them, and one speculates thus partly but because it’s a pleasure to hang about him on any pretext, and partly because his immediate effect is to make us quite inordinately embrace the pretext of his lovely soul. His portrait, painted on the wall of the Sala (you may see it also in Rome and Florence) might at any rate serve for the likeness of Mr. Worldly-Wiseman in Bunyan’s allegory. He was fond of his glass, I believe, and he made his art lucrative. This tradition is not refuted by his preserved face, and after some experience—or rather after a good deal, since you can’t have a little of Perugino, who abounds wherever old masters congregate, so that one has constantly the sense of being “in” for all there is—you may find an echo of it in the uniform type of his creatures, their monotonous grace, their prodigious invariability. He may very well have wanted to produce figures of a substantial, yet at the same time of an impeccable innocence; but we feel that he had taught himself how even beyond his own belief in them, and had arrived at a process that acted at last mechanically. I confess at the same time that, so interpreted, the painter affects me as hardly less interesting, and one can’t but become conscious of one’s style when one’s style has become, as it were, so conscious of one’s, or at least of its own, fortune. If he was the inventor of a remarkably calculable facture, a calculation that never fails is in its way a grace of the first order, and there are things in this special appearance of perfection of practice that make him the forerunner of a mighty and more modern race. More than any of the early painters who strongly charm, you may take all his measure from a single specimen. The other samples infallibly match, reproduce unerringly the one type he had mastered, but which had the good fortune to be adorably fair, to seem to have dawned on a vision unsullied by the shadows of earth. Which truth, moreover, leaves Perugino all delightful as composer and draughtsman; he has in each of these characters a sort of spacious neatness which suggests that the whole conception has been washed clean by some spiritual chemistry the last thing before reaching the canvas; after which it has been applied to that surface with a rare economy of time and means. Giotto and Fra Angelico, beside him, are full of interesting waste and irrelevant passion. In the sacristy of the charming church of San Pietro—a museum of pictures and carvings—is a row of small heads of saints formerly covering the frame of the artist’s Ascension, carried off by the French. It is almost miniature work, and here at least Perugino triumphs in sincerity, in apparent candour, as well as in touch. Two of the holy men are reading their breviaries, but with an air of infantine innocence quite consistent with their holding the book upside down.
This, I admit, wouldn't really offend them, and one wonders this partly because it’s nice to be around him for any reason, and partly because his immediate effect makes us overly embrace the idea of his beautiful soul. His portrait, painted on the wall of the Sala (you can also see it in Rome and Florence) could definitely represent Mr. Worldly-Wiseman from Bunyan’s allegory. I believe he enjoyed his drinks, and he made his art profitable. This idea is supported by his preserved face, and after some experience—or actually after quite a bit, since you can’t just have a little of Perugino, who is everywhere old masters gather, so you always feel like you're “in” for everything there is—you may notice a reflection of it in the uniform type of his creations, their monotonous grace, their incredible consistency. He may well have aimed to create figures that are substantial yet at the same time perfectly innocent; but we sense that he taught himself how to do this even more than he believed in them, and had reached a process that eventually became mechanical. I admit that, viewed this way, the painter intrigues me almost as much, and one can’t help but become aware of one’s style when one’s style has become, in a way, so aware of its own, or at least of its own, success. If he was the creator of a remarkably predictable facture, a calculation that never fails is in its way a first-rate grace, and there are aspects in this special appearance of perfection that make him the precursor of a powerful and more modern lineage. More than any of the early painters who are deeply charming, you can gauge all his work from a single piece. The other samples consistently match, faithfully reproduce the one type he had mastered, which was fortunate enough to be incredibly beautiful, appearing to have emerged from a vision untouched by the shadows of the earthly realm. This fact, moreover, keeps Perugino delightful as a composer and draftsman; in each of these roles, he has a kind of spacious neatness that suggests the whole concept was purified by some spiritual chemistry just before reaching the canvas; after which it was applied to that surface with a rare economy of time and resources. Giotto and Fra Angelico, in comparison, are full of interesting excess and irrelevant passion. In the sacristy of the lovely church of San Pietro—a museum of paintings and carvings—is a row of small saint heads that previously adorned the frame of the artist’s Ascension, taken by the French. It is almost miniature work, and here at least Perugino shines in sincerity, in apparent honesty, as well as in touch. Two of the holy men are reading their breviaries, but with an air of childlike innocence that fits perfectly with their holding the book upside down.
Between Perugia and Cortona lies the large weedy water of Lake Thrasymene, turned into a witching word for ever by Hannibal’s recorded victory over Rome. Dim as such records have become to us and remote such realities, he is yet a passionless pilgrim who does n’t, as he passes, of a heavy summer’s day, feel the air and the light and the very faintness of the breeze all charged and haunted with them, all interfused as with the wasted ache of experience and with the vague historic gaze. Processions of indistinguishable ghosts bore me company to Cortona itself, most sturdily ancient of Italian towns. It must have been a seat of ancient knowledge even when Hannibal and Flaminius came to the shock of battle, and have looked down afar from its grey ramparts on the contending swarm with something of the philosophic composure suitable to a survivor of Pelasgic and Etruscan revolutions. These grey ramparts are in great part still visible, and form the chief attraction of Cortona. It is perched on the very pinnacle of a mountain, and I wound and doubled interminably over the face of the great hill, while the jumbled roofs and towers of the arrogant little city still seemed nearer to the sky than to the railway-station. “Rather rough,” Murray pronounces the local inn; and rough indeed it was; there was scarce a square foot of it that you would have cared to stroke with your hand. The landlord himself, however, was all smoothness and the best fellow in the world; he took me up into a rickety old loggia on the tip-top of his establishment and played showman as to half the kingdoms of the earth. I was free to decide at the same time whether my loss or my gain was the greater for my seeing Cortona through the medium of a festa. On the one hand the museum was closed (and in a certain sense the smaller and obscurer the town the more I like the museum); the churches—an interesting note of manners and morals—were impenetrably crowded, though, for that matter, so was the cafe, where I found neither an empty stool nor the edge of a table. I missed a sight of the famous painted Muse, the art-treasure of Cortona and supposedly the most precious, as it falls little short of being the only, sample of the Greek painted picture that has come down to us. On the other hand, I saw—but this is what I saw.
Between Perugia and Cortona lies the sprawling, overgrown water of Lake Thrasymene, forever transformed into an enchanting term by Hannibal’s documented victory over Rome. As distant as these accounts may seem to us and as far removed from those realities, one would be a detached traveler who doesn’t, while passing on a sweltering summer day, feel the air, the light, and the gentle whisper of the breeze all infused with history, filled with the lingering ache of experience and a vague sense of the past. A procession of indistinguishable ghosts accompanied me to Cortona itself, the most undeniably ancient of Italian towns. It must have been a hub of ancient knowledge even when Hannibal and Flaminius clashed in battle, gazing down from its grey walls at the chaotic swarm with a certain philosophical calm befitting a survivor of Pelasgic and Etruscan upheavals. These grey walls are largely still visible and are the main attraction of Cortona. It sits at the very top of a mountain, and I wound my way up and down the steep hillside, while the tangled roofs and towers of the proud little city appeared closer to the sky than to the train station. “Rather rough,” Murray describes the local inn; and rough it truly was; there was barely a square foot that you would want to touch. The landlord himself, however, was very accommodating and the kindest person you could meet; he took me up into a rickety old loggia at the very top of his establishment and acted as a tour guide regarding half of the kingdoms of the world. I was free to consider whether my loss or gain was greater from experiencing Cortona during a festa. On one hand, the museum was closed (and in a way, the smaller and lesser-known the town, the more I enjoy the museum); the churches—an intriguing reflection of customs and morals—were completely packed, though, for that matter, so was the café, where I couldn’t find an empty stool or even the edge of a table. I missed seeing the famous painted Muse, the artistic gem of Cortona and supposedly the most valuable, as it is nearly the only surviving example of Greek painted art that has come down to us. On the other hand, I saw—but this is what I saw.
{Illustration: A STREET, CORTONA.}
{Illustration: A STREET, CORTONA.}
A part of the mountain-top is occupied by the church of St. Margaret, and this was St. Margaret’s day. The houses pause roundabout it and leave a grassy slope, planted here and there with lean black cypresses. The contadini from near and far had congregated in force and were crowding into the church or winding up the slope. When I arrived they were all kneeling or uncovered; a bedizened procession, with banners and censers, bearing abroad, I believe, the relics of the saint, was re-entering the church. The scene made one of those pictures that Italy still brushes in for you with an incomparable hand and from an inexhaustible palette when you find her in the mood. The day was superb—the sky blazed overhead like a vault of deepest sapphire. The grave brown peasantry, with no great accent of costume, but with sundry small ones—decked, that is, in cheap fineries of scarlet and yellow—made a mass of motley colour in the high wind-stirred light. The procession halted in the pious hush, and the lovely land around and beneath us melted away, almost to either sea, in tones of azure scarcely less intense than the sky. Behind the church was an empty crumbling citadel, with half-a-dozen old women keeping the gate for coppers. Here were views and breezes and sun and shade and grassy corners to the heart’s content, together with one could n’t say what huge seated mystic melancholy presence, the after-taste of everything the still open maw of time had consumed. I chose a spot that fairly combined all these advantages, a spot from which I seemed to look, as who should say, straight down the throat of the monster, no dark passage now, but with all the glorious day playing into it, and spent a good part of my stay at Cortona lying there at my length and observing the situation over the top of a volume that I must have brought in my pocket just for that especial wanton luxury of the resource provided and slighted. In the afternoon I came down and hustled a while through the crowded little streets, and then strolled forth under the scorching sun and made the outer circuit of the wall. There I found tremendous uncemented blocks; they glared and twinkled in the powerful light, and I had to put on a blue eye-glass in order to throw into its proper perspective the vague Etruscan past, obtruded and magnified in such masses quite as with the effect of inadequately-withdrawn hands and feet in photographs.
A part of the mountaintop is taken up by the church of St. Margaret, and it happened to be St. Margaret’s day. The houses gather around it, leaving a grassy slope, dotted here and there with slender black cypresses. The local farmers from near and far had come together in large numbers, crowding into the church or making their way up the slope. When I got there, they were all kneeling or had their heads uncovered; an adorned procession, with banners and incense burners, was re-entering the church, carrying what I believe were the saint's relics. The scene created one of those vivid images that Italy still paints for you with an unmatched touch and from an endless palette when she's in the right mood. The day was stunning—the sky shone overhead like a deep sapphire vault. The serious brown peasants, dressed without much distinction in their outfits but with some small touches of inexpensive bright red and yellow, created a colorful mix in the lively, wind-blown light. The procession paused in the respectful silence, and the beautiful land around us faded into the distance, almost reaching both seas, in shades of blue just as vivid as the sky. Behind the church stood a crumbling old fortress, with a handful of elderly women manning the gate for a few coins. Here, there were views, breezes, sun and shade, and cozy grassy spots, along with an indescribable sense of deep, mystical melancholy—the lingering essence of everything that the ever-open maw of time has consumed. I picked a spot that seemed to have all these benefits, a vantage point from which I felt I was peering, as if to say, straight down the throat of the beast, no dark passage now, but with the glorious day lighting it up, and I spent a good part of my time in Cortona lying there and taking in the scene over the top of a book I must have brought in my pocket just for that particular indulgent moment. In the afternoon, I came down, hustled through the busy little streets for a while, and then strolled out under the scorching sun to walk around the outer wall. There, I found huge uncemented stones; they glared and sparkled in the intense light, and I had to put on blue-tinted glasses to give the vague Etruscan past the right perspective, which loomed large like inadequately hidden hands and feet in photographs.
I spent the next day at Arezzo, but I confess in very much the same uninvestigating fashion—taking in the “general impression,” I dare say, at every pore, but rather systematically leaving the dust of the ages unfingered on the stored records: I should doubtless, in the poor time at my command, have fingered it to so little purpose. The seeker for the story of things has moreover, if he be worth his salt, a hundred insidious arts; and in that case indeed—by which I mean when his sensibility has come duly to adjust itself—the story assaults him but from too many sides. He even feels at moments that he must sneak along on tiptoe in order not to have too much of it. Besides which the case all depends on the kind of use, the range of application, his tangled consciousness, or his intelligible genius, say, may come to recognize for it. At Arezzo, however this might be, one was far from Rome, one was well within genial Tuscany, and the historic, the romantic decoction seemed to reach one’s lips in less stiff doses. There at once was the “general impression”—the exquisite sense of the scarce expressible Tuscan quality, which makes immediately, for the whole pitch of one’s perception, a grateful, a not at all strenuous difference, attaches to almost any coherent group of objects, to any happy aspect of the scene, for a main note, some mild recall, through pleasant friendly colour, through settled ample form, through something homely and economic too at the very heart of “style,” of an identity of temperament and habit with those of the divine little Florence that one originally knew. Adorable Italy in which, for the constant renewal of interest, of attention, of affection, these refinements of variety, these so harmoniously-grouped and individually-seasoned fruits of the great garden of history, keep presenting themselves! It seemed to fall in with the cheerful Tuscan mildness for instance—sticking as I do to that ineffectual expression of the Tuscan charm, of the yellow-brown Tuscan dignity at large—that the ruined castle on the hill (with which agreeable feature Arezzo is no less furnished than Assisi and Cortona) had been converted into a great blooming, and I hope all profitable, podere or market-garden. I lounged away the half-hours there under a spell as potent as the “wildest” forecast of propriety—propriety to all the particular conditions—could have figured it. I had seen Santa Maria della Pieve and its campanile of quaint colonnades, the stately, dusky cathedral—grass-plotted and residenced about almost after the fashion of an English “close”—and John of Pisa’s elaborate marble shrine; I had seen the museum and its Etruscan vases and majolica platters. These were very well, but the old pacified citadel somehow, through a day of soft saturation, placed me most in relation. Beautiful hills surrounded it, cypresses cast straight shadows at its corners, while in the middle grew a wondrous Italian tangle of wheat and corn, vines and figs, peaches and cabbages, memories and images, anything and everything.
I spent the next day in Arezzo, but I admit I did it in a rather surface-level way—absorbing the “overall impression,” I suppose, at every pore, but systematically leaving the layers of history untouched in the stored records: I probably would have gained little by exploring them in the limited time I had. A true seeker of stories, if they’re worth anything, has a hundred sneaky techniques; and in that case—when their sensitivity is appropriately tuned—the story can come at them from too many angles. Sometimes, they even feel like they need to tiptoe around to avoid being overwhelmed by it. Moreover, it all depends on the kind of use, the range of application, or how their messy consciousness, or their understandable genius, comes to recognize it. In Arezzo, regardless of what that might mean, one was far from Rome, well ensconced in friendly Tuscany, where the historic and romantic blend seemed more accessible. There was the “overall impression” right away—the exquisite sense of the barely expressible Tuscan quality, which creates an immediate, pleasant, and not at all strenuous difference that clings to almost any coherent group of objects, to any appealing aspect of the scene. This main note provides a gentle reminder through delightful colors, through stable and ample forms, and through something cozy and practical at the very heart of “style,” reflecting a shared temperament and habits with the lovely little Florence I originally knew. Adorable Italy, where, for the constant renewal of interest, attention, and affection, these refinements of variety and harmoniously grouped, individually flavored fruits of the great garden of history keep reappearing! It seemed to fit perfectly with the cheerful Tuscan warmth—for instance, I can’t quite shake that ineffective expression of Tuscan charm, that yellow-brown Tuscan dignity—that the ruined castle on the hill (which feature Arezzo shares with Assisi and Cortona) had been turned into a flourishing, hopefully profitable, farm or market garden. I spent leisurely half-hours there under a spell as strong as any “wildest” expectation of propriety regarding the specific conditions could have imagined. I had seen Santa Maria della Pieve and its campanile with quirky columns, the stately, dusky cathedral—surrounded by grass and residences almost like an English “close”—and John of Pisa’s intricate marble shrine; I had visited the museum and its Etruscan vases and majolica plates. Those were all nice, but the old, tranquil citadel somehow connected with me the most after a day of gentle immersion. Beautiful hills surrounded it, cypresses cast straight shadows at its corners, while in the center grew a wonderful Italian mix of wheat and corn, vines and figs, peaches and cabbages, memories and images, anything and everything.
1873.
SIENA EARLY AND LATE
I
Florence being oppressively hot and delivered over to the mosquitoes, the occasion seemed to favour that visit to Siena which I had more than once planned and missed. I arrived late in the evening, by the light of a magnificent moon, and while a couple of benignantly-mumbling old crones were making up my bed at the inn strolled forth in quest of a first impression. Five minutes brought me to where I might gather it unhindered as it bloomed in the white moonshine. The great Piazza of Siena is famous, and though in this day of multiplied photographs and blunted surprises and profaned revelations none of the world’s wonders can pretend, like Wordsworth’s phantom of delight, really to “startle and waylay,” yet as I stepped upon the waiting scene from under a dark archway I was conscious of no loss of the edge of a precious presented sensibility. The waiting scene, as I have called it, was in the shape of a shallow horse-shoe—as the untravelled reader who has turned over his travelled friends’ portfolios will respectfully remember; or, better, of a bow in which the high wide face of the Palazzo Pubblico forms the cord and everything else the arc. It was void of any human presence that could figure to me the current year; so that, the moonshine assisting, I had half-an-hour’s infinite vision of mediæval Italy. The Piazza being built on the side of a hill—or rather, as I believe science affirms, in the cup of a volcanic crater—the vast pavement converges downwards in slanting radiations of stone, the spokes of a great wheel, to a point directly before the Palazzo, which may mark the hub, though it is nothing more ornamental than the mouth of a drain. The great monument stands on the lower side and might seem, in spite of its goodly mass and its embattled cornice, to be rather defiantly out-countenanced by vast private constructions occupying the opposite eminence. This might be, without the extraordinary dignity of the architectural gesture with which the huge high-shouldered pile asserts itself.
Florence was oppressively hot and swarmed with mosquitoes, making it the perfect time for that trip to Siena that I had planned and postponed several times. I arrived late in the evening, under a stunning moon, and while a couple of kindly old women were preparing my bed at the inn, I went out to get my first impression. Within five minutes, I found a spot where I could soak it all in as it unfolded in the bright moonlight. The famous Piazza of Siena was before me, and even though today, with countless photographs and dulled surprises, the world's wonders can't truly “startle and waylay” like Wordsworth's phantom, I felt no loss of that precious sense of wonder as I stepped into the scene from beneath a dark archway. The scene was shaped like a shallow horseshoe—something that anyone who has flipped through their well-traveled friends’ photo albums might recall; or better yet, like a bow where the grand façade of the Palazzo Pubblico forms the base and everything else arches around it. It was devoid of any human presence that could have tethered me to the current year, so with the moonlight helping, I had a half-hour of endless vision of medieval Italy. The Piazza, built on the slant of a hill—or, as science suggests, inside a volcanic crater—features a massive pavement that slopes downwards with stone radiations, like the spokes of a giant wheel, converging at a point right in front of the Palazzo, which could be seen as the hub, even though all it is is the opening of a drain. The grand monument stands on the lower side and might seem overshadowed, despite its impressive size and battlemented cornice, by the vast private buildings on the opposite hill. Yet, this perception is challenged by the extraordinary dignity of the architectural statement made by the massive structure.
On the firm edge of the palace, from bracketed base to grey-capped summit against the sky, where grows a tall slim tower which soars and soars till it has given notice of the city’s greatness over the blue mountains that mark the horizon. It rises as slender and straight as a pennoned lance planted on the steel-shod toe of a mounted knight, and keeps all to itself in the blue air, far above the changing fashions of the market, the proud consciousness or rare arrogance once built into it. This beautiful tower, the finest thing in Siena and, in its rigid fashion, as permanently fine thus as a really handsome nose on a face of no matter what accumulated age, figures there still as a Declaration of Independence beside which such an affair as ours, thrown off at Philadelphia, appears to have scarce done more than helplessly give way to time. Our Independence has become a dependence on a thousand such dreadful things as the incorrupt declaration of Siena strikes us as looking for ever straight over the level of. As it stood silvered by the moonlight, while my greeting lasted, it seemed to speak, all as from soul to soul, very much indeed as some ancient worthy of a lower order, buttonholing one on the coveted chance and at the quiet hour, might have done, of a state of things long and vulgarly superseded, but to the pride and power, the once prodigious vitality, of which who could expect any one effect to testify more incomparably, more indestructibly, quite, as it were, more immortally? The gigantic houses enclosing the rest of the Piazza took up the tale and mingled with it their burden. “We are very old and a trifle weary, but we were built strong and piled high, and we shall last for many an age. The present is cold and heedless, but we keep ourselves in heart by brooding over our store of memories and traditions. We are haunted houses in every creaking timber and aching stone.” Such were the gossiping connections I established with Siena before I went to bed.
On the solid edge of the palace, from its supported base to the gray-capped peak against the sky, stands a tall, narrow tower that rises higher and higher, signaling the city's greatness over the blue mountains on the horizon. It juts up as slender and straight as a flag-tipped lance planted on the armored foot of a mounted knight, remaining solitary in the blue sky, far above the ever-changing trends of the marketplace, the proud awareness or rare arrogance built into it long ago. This stunning tower, the finest feature of Siena and, in its strict form, as enduringly beautiful as a striking nose on a face of any age, stands there still as a Declaration of Independence, beside which our little affair thrown together in Philadelphia seems to have merely surrendered to time. Our Independence has turned into a dependence on a thousand dreadful things that the uncorrupted declaration of Siena seems to look out over forever. As it stood lit by the moonlight while I offered my greeting, it seemed to speak directly from soul to soul, much like some ancient figure of a lower class, seizing the chance during a quiet hour to discuss a state of things long surpassed but to the pride and power, the once incredible vitality of which who could expect any testament to be more comparably, more indestructibly, indeed, more immortally evident? The towering buildings surrounding the rest of the Piazza added to this narrative, mixing in their own essence. “We're very old and a bit tired, but we were built strong and tall, and we will endure for many ages. The present is cold and indifferent, but we keep our spirits alive by reminiscing about our wealth of memories and traditions. We are haunted houses in every creaking timber and weary stone.” Such were the conversations I began with Siena before going to bed.
Since that night I have had a week’s daylight knowledge of the surface of the subject at least, and don’t know how I can better present it than simply as another and a vivider page of the lesson that the ever-hungry artist has only to trust old Italy for her to feed him at every single step from her hand—and if not with one sort of sweetly-stale grain from that wondrous mill of history which during so many ages ground finer than any other on earth, why then always with something else. Siena has at any rate “preserved appearances”—kept the greatest number of them, that is, unaltered for the eye—about as consistently as one can imagine the thing done. Other places perhaps may treat you to as drowsy an odour of antiquity, but few exhale it from so large an area. Lying massed within her walls on a dozen clustered hill-tops, she shows you at every turn in how much greater a way she once lived; and if so much of the grand manner is extinct, the receptacle of the ashes still solidly rounds itself. This heavy general stress of all her emphasis on the past is what she constantly keeps in your eyes and your ears, and if you be but a casual observer and admirer the generalised response is mainly what you give her. The casual observer, however beguiled, is mostly not very learned, not over-equipped in advance with data; he hasn’t specialised, his notions are necessarily vague, the chords of his imagination, for all his good-will, are inevitably muffled and weak. But such as it is, his received, his welcome impression serves his turn so far as the life of sensibility goes, and reminds him from time to time that even the lore of German doctors is but the shadow of satisfied curiosity. I have been living at the inn, walking about the streets, sitting in the Piazza; these are the simple terms of my experience. But streets and inns in Italy are the vehicles of half one’s knowledge; if one has no fancy for their lessons one may burn one’s note-book. In Siena everything is Sienese. The inn has an English sign over the door—a little battered plate with a rusty representation of the lion and the unicorn; but advance hopefully into the mouldy stone alley which serves as vestibule and you will find local colour enough. The landlord, I was told, had been servant in an English family, and I was curious to see how he met the probable argument of the casual Anglo-Saxon after the latter’s first twelve hours in his establishment. As he failed to appear I asked the waiter if he, weren’t at home. “Oh,” said the latter, “he’s a piccolo grasso vecchiotto who doesn’t like to move.” I’m afraid this little fat old man has simply a bad conscience. It’s no small burden for one who likes the Italians—as who doesn’t, under this restriction?—to have so much indifference even to rudimentary purifying processes to dispose of. What is the real philosophy of dirty habits, and are foul surfaces merely superficial? If unclean manners have in truth the moral meaning which I suspect in them we must love Italy better than consistency. This a number of us are prepared to do, but while we are making the sacrifice it is as well we should be aware.
Since that night, I have gained a week’s worth of insight on the topic at the very least, and I can’t think of a better way to share it than as another, more vivid chapter in the lesson that the ever-curious artist just needs to trust old Italy to provide for him at every turn—and even if it’s not with a certain kind of sweetly-stale grain from that remarkable mill of history, which has produced finer things than anything else on earth for ages, then it will always be with something else. Siena has at least “preserved appearances”—kept the greatest number of them, that is, unchanged for the eye—just as consistently as one could imagine it being done. Other places might offer as sleepy a scent of antiquity, but few give off that aroma from such a wide area. Nestled within her walls on a dozen grouped hilltops, she shows you at every corner just how much grander her past was; and even if much of that grandeur is gone, the vessel of her ashes still stands robustly. This heavy emphasis on her past is what continually captivates your eyes and ears, and if you're just a casual observer and admirer, that general impression is mainly what you take away from her. The casual observer, even if enchanted, is usually not very knowledgeable, not particularly prepared with information; they haven’t specialized, their ideas are necessarily vague, the strings of their imagination, despite their goodwill, are bound to be muted and weak. But whatever the case, their received and welcomed impression serves its purpose as far as the life of sensitivity goes and reminds them from time to time that even the knowledge from German scholars is just a shadow of satisfied curiosity. I have been staying at the inn, wandering the streets, and sitting in the Piazza; these are the simple components of my experience. However, streets and inns in Italy are the vessels of a significant part of one’s knowledge; if one isn’t interested in their lessons, one might as well burn their notebook. In Siena, everything is Sienese. The inn has an English sign above the door—a slightly worn plate with a rusty depiction of the lion and the unicorn; but step hopefully into the musty stone passage that acts as a foyer, and you will find plenty of local flavor. I was told the landlord had worked for an English family, and I was eager to see how he would handle the typical comments of a casual Anglo-Saxon after their first twelve hours in his place. Since he didn’t show up, I asked the waiter if he was at home. “Oh,” the waiter said, “he’s a piccolo grasso vecchiotto who doesn’t like to move.” I’m afraid this little fat old man must have a guilty conscience. It’s no small burden for someone who enjoys the Italians—who doesn’t, under these conditions?—to deal with so much indifference, even to basic cleanliness. What is the real philosophy behind dirty habits, and are filthy surfaces just surface-level issues? If unclean behaviors truly carry the moral implications I suspect they do, then we must love Italy more than consistency. A number of us are ready to do that, but while we make that sacrifice, it's good to be aware.
We may plead moreover for these impecunious heirs of the past that even if it were easy to be clean in the midst of their mouldering heritage it would be difficult to appear so. At the risk of seeming to flaunt the silly superstition of restless renovation for the sake of renovation, which is but the challenge of the infinitely precious principle of duration, one is still moved to say that the prime result of one’s contemplative strolls in the dusky alleys of such a place is an ineffable sense of disrepair. Everything is cracking, peeling, fading, crumbling, rotting. No young Sienese eyes rest upon anything youthful; they open into a world battered and befouled with long use. Everything has passed its meridian except the brilliant façade of the cathedral, which is being diligently retouched and restored, and a few private palaces whose broad fronts seem to have been lately furbished and polished. Siena was long ago mellowed to the pictorial tone; the operation of time is now to deposit shabbiness upon shabbiness. But it’s for the most part a patient, sturdy, sympathetic shabbiness, which soothes rather than irritates the nerves, and has in many cases doubtless as long a career to run as most of our pert and shallow freshnesses. It projects at all events a deeper shadow into the constant twilight of the narrow streets—that vague historic dusk, as I may call it, in which one walks and wonders. These streets are hardly more than sinuous flagged alleys, into which the huge black houses, between their almost meeting cornices, suffer a meagre light to filter down over rough-hewn stone, past windows often of graceful Gothic form, and great pendent iron rings and twisted sockets for torches. Scattered over their many-headed hill, they suffer the roadway often to incline to the perpendicular, becoming so impracticable for vehicles that the sound of wheels is only a trifle less anomalous than it would be in Venice. But all day long there comes up to my window an incessant shuffling of feet and clangour of voices. The weather is very warm for the season, all the world is out of doors, and the Tuscan tongue (which in Siena is reputed to have a classic purity) wags in every imaginable key. It doesn’t rest even at night, and I am often an uninvited guest at concerts and conversazioni at two o’clock in the morning. The concerts are sometimes charming. I not only don’t curse my wakefulness, but go to my window to listen. Three men come carolling by, trolling and quavering with voices of delightful sweetness, or a lonely troubadour in his shirt-sleeves draws such artful love-notes from his clear, fresh tenor, that I seem for the moment to be behind the scenes at the opera, watching some Rubini or Mario go “on” and waiting for the round of applause. In the intervals a couple of friends or enemies stop—Italians always make their points in conversation by pulling up, letting you walk on a few paces, to turn and find them standing with finger on nose and engaging your interrogative eye—they pause, by a happy instinct, directly under my window, and dispute their point or tell their story or make their confidence. One scarce is sure which it may be; everything has such an explosive promptness, such a redundancy of inflection and action. But everything for that matter takes on such dramatic life as our lame colloquies never know—so that almost any uttered communications here become an acted play, improvised, mimicked, proportioned and rounded, carried bravely to its dénoûment. The speaker seems actually to establish his stage and face his foot-lights, to create by a gesture a little scenic circumscription about him; he rushes to and fro and shouts and stamps and postures, he ranges through every phase of his inspiration. I noted the other evening a striking instance of the spontaneity of the Italian gesture, in the person of a small Sienese of I hardly know what exact age—the age of inarticulate sounds and the experimental use of a spoon. It was a Sunday evening, and this little man had accompanied his parents to the café. The Caffè Greco at Siena is a most delightful institution; you get a capital demi-tasse for three sous, and an excellent ice for eight, and while you consume these easy luxuries you may buy from a little hunchback the local weekly periodical, the Vita Nuova, for three centimes (the two centimes left from your sou, if you are under the spell of this magical frugality, will do to give the waiter). My young friend was sitting on his father’s knee and helping himself to the half of a strawberry-ice with which his mamma had presented him. He had so many misadventures with his spoon that this lady at length confiscated it, there being nothing left of the ice but a little crimson liquid which he might dispose of by the common instinct of childhood. But he was no friend, it appeared, to such freedoms; he was a perfect little gentleman and he resented it being expected of him that he should drink down his remnant. He protested therefore, and it was the manner of his protest that struck me. He didn’t cry audibly, though he made a very wry face. It was no stupid squall, and yet he was too young to speak. It was a penetrating concord of inarticulately pleading, accusing sounds, accompanied by gestures of the most exquisite propriety. These were perfectly mature; he did everything that a man of forty would have done if he had been pouring out a flood of sonorous eloquence. He shrugged his shoulders and wrinkled his eyebrows, tossed out his hands and folded his arms, obtruded his chin and bobbed about his head—and at last, I am happy to say, recovered his spoon. If I had had a solid little silver one I would have presented it to him as a testimonial to a perfect, though as yet unconscious, artist.
We can also argue on behalf of these financially struggling heirs of the past that even if it were easy to be fresh amidst their decaying heritage, it would be hard to seem so. At the risk of appearing to embrace the ridiculous belief in constant change just for the sake of change—which goes against the incredibly valuable idea of permanence—it's still worth mentioning that the main outcome of walking through the dim streets of such a place is an indescribable feeling of neglect. Everything is cracking, peeling, fading, falling apart, rotting. No young Sienese eyes focus on anything youthful; they look into a world worn down and dirtied by long use. Everything has passed its peak except the stunning façade of the cathedral, which is being carefully touched up and restored, and a few private palaces that seem to have been recently polished and spruced up. Siena long ago softened into a picturesque tone; now, time seems to layer shabby upon shabby. But it’s mostly a patient, strong, and sympathetic shabbiness that calms rather than annoys the nerves, and in many cases, it probably has just as long a lifespan ahead of it as our flashy, superficial newness. It casts a deeper shadow into the constant twilight of the narrow streets—that vague historic dusk, as I like to call it, where one walks and wonders. These streets are hardly more than winding flagged paths, where the massive black houses, almost touching at their roofs, allow minimal light to filter down over rough stone, past windows often shaped in elegant Gothic style, and large hanging iron rings and twisted brackets for torches. Spread over their many-headed hill, the road often tilts almost vertically, becoming so impractical for vehicles that the sound of wheels is nearly as strange as it would be in Venice. But all day long, there's a constant shuffle of feet and a clamor of voices coming up to my window. The weather is quite warm for the season, everyone is outside, and the Tuscan language (which in Siena is said to have a classic purity) is spoken in every imaginable tone. It doesn’t quiet down even at night, and I often find myself an uninvited guest at concerts and conversazioni at two a.m. The concerts can be quite charming. I don’t just curse my wakefulness; I go to the window to listen. Three men stroll by, singing and harmonizing with lovely sweet voices, or a lone troubadour in his shirt-sleeves draws such artful love melodies from his clear, fresh tenor that for a moment, I feel like I’m behind the scenes at the opera, watching some Rubini or Mario perform, waiting for the applause. In between, a couple of friends or foes pause—Italians always make their points in conversation by stopping, letting you walk a few steps ahead, and then turning to find them standing with a finger on their nose, engaging your questioning gaze—they conveniently pause directly under my window and argue their point or share their story or confide something. It’s hard to know which it might be; everything has such explosive immediacy, such a flare of expression and action. But everything here takes on such dramatic life that our awkward conversations never reach—so that almost any spoken exchange here becomes an acted performance, improvised, mimicked, measured and rounded off, confidently carried to its conclusion. The speaker really seems to set up their stage and face their spotlight, creating with a gesture a little scenic space around them; they rush around, shout, stomp, and pose, going through every phase of their inspiration. I noticed the other evening a striking example of spontaneous Italian gesture, in the person of a small Sienese boy of I hardly know what age—just old enough for inarticulate sounds and the experimental use of a spoon. It was a Sunday evening, and this little guy had accompanied his parents to the café. The Caffè Greco in Siena is a delightful place; you can snag a great demi-tasse for three sous and an excellent ice for eight. While enjoying these easy treats, you can buy the local weekly magazine, the Vita Nuova, from a little hunchback for three centimes (the two centimes left from your sou, if you’re under the spell of this magical thriftiness, will work to tip the waiter). My young friend was sitting on his dad’s lap, helping himself to half of a strawberry ice that his mom had given him. He had so many mishaps with his spoon that eventually his mom took it away, leaving only a little crimson liquid for him to manage by the common instinct of childhood. But he didn’t seem to like such expectations; he was a perfect little gentleman and resented the idea that he should drink down his leftover. He protested, and it was the way he protested that struck me. He didn’t cry out loud, although he made a very funny face. It wasn’t a silly wail, and yet he was too young to speak. It was a heartfelt mix of inarticulate pleading and accusing sounds, accompanied by gestures of the most refined propriety. These gestures were fully developed; he acted everything a man of forty would have done if he were pouring out a torrent of eloquence. He shrugged his shoulders and furrowed his brow, threw out his hands and crossed his arms, thrust out his chin and bobbed his head—and finally, I'm pleased to say, got his spoon back. If I had a solid little silver one, I would have given it to him as a tribute to a perfect, though still unconscious, artist.
My actual tribute to him, however, has diverted me from what I had in mind—a much weightier matter—the great private palaces which are the massive majestic syllables, sentences, periods, of the strange message the place addresses to us. They are extraordinarily spacious and numerous, and one wonders what part they can play in the meagre economy of the actual city. The Siena of to-day is a mere shrunken semblance of the rabid little republic which in the thirteenth century waged triumphant war with Florence, cultivated the arts with splendour, planned a cathedral (though it had ultimately to curtail the design) of proportions almost unequalled, and contained a population of two hundred thousand souls. Many of these dusky piles still bear the names of the old mediaeval magnates the vague mild occupancy of whose descendants has the effect of armour of proof worn over “pot” hats and tweed jackets and trousers. Half-a-dozen of them are as high as the Strozzi and Riccardi palaces in Florence; they couldn’t well be higher. The very essence of the romantic and the scenic is in the way these colossal dwellings are packed together in their steep streets, in the depths of their little enclosed, agglomerated city. When we, in our day and country, raise a structure of half the mass and dignity, we leave a great space about it in the manner of a pause after a showy speech. But when a Sienese countess, as things are here, is doing her hair near the window, she is a wonderfully near neighbour to the cavalier opposite, who is being shaved by his valet. Possibly the countess doesn’t object to a certain chosen publicity at her toilet; what does an Italian gentleman assure me but that the aristocracy make very free with each other? Some of the palaces are shown, but only when the occupants are at home, and now they are in villeggiatura. Their villeggiatura lasts eight months of the year, the waiter at the inn informs me, and they spend little more than the carnival in the city. The gossip of an inn-waiter ought perhaps to be beneath the dignity of even such thin history as this; but I confess that when, as a story-seeker always and ever, I have come in from my strolls with an irritated sense of the dumbness of stones and mortar, it has been to listen with avidity, over my dinner, to the proffered confidences of the worthy man who stands by with a napkin. His talk is really very fine, and he prides himself greatly on his cultivated tone, to which he calls my attention. He has very little good to say about the Sienese nobility. They are “proprio d’origine egoista”—whatever that may be—and there are many who can’t write their names. This may be calumny; but I doubt whether the most blameless of them all could have spoken more delicately of a lady of peculiar personal appearance who had been dining near me. “She’s too fat,” I grossly said on her leaving the room. The waiter shook his head with a little sniff: “È troppo materiale.” This lady and her companion were the party whom, thinking I might relish a little company—I had been dining alone for a week—he gleefully announced to me as newly arrived Americans. They were Americans, I found, who wore, pinned to their heads in permanence, the black lace veil or mantilla, conveyed their beans to their mouth with a knife, and spoke a strange raucous Spanish. They were in fine compatriots from Montevideo.
My real tribute to him, however, has taken me away from what I was originally thinking—a much heavier topic—the great private palaces that are the massive, majestic building blocks of the strange message this place sends us. They are incredibly spacious and numerous, leaving one to wonder what role they play in the small economy of the actual city. Today's Siena is just a shrunken version of the bustling little republic that, in the thirteenth century, fought triumphantly against Florence, celebrated the arts with elegance, planned a cathedral (even though they eventually had to downsize the design) of nearly unmatched proportions, and housed a population of two hundred thousand people. Many of these dark structures still carry the names of the old medieval nobles, whose descendants now occupy them in a way that feels like they’re wearing armor over “pot” hats and tweed jackets and trousers. Half-a-dozen of these buildings are as tall as the Strozzi and Riccardi palaces in Florence; they couldn’t really be taller. The very essence of romance and scenery is captured in how these colossal homes are crowded together on their steep streets, in the heart of their small, compact city. In our contemporary world, when we construct a building of half the size and grandeur, we leave ample space around it as if pausing after an impressive speech. But when a Sienese countess is doing her hair by the window, she’s uncomfortably close to the gentleman across the way, who is getting shaved by his valet. Perhaps the countess doesn’t mind a certain chosen visibility at her grooming; what an Italian gentleman assures me is that the aristocracy is very open with one another. Some of the palaces are open for tours, but only when the occupants are home, and now they’re in villeggiatura. The inn's waiter tells me that their time away lasts eight months of the year, and they spend barely more than the carnival in the city. Maybe the gossip from an inn-waiter shouldn’t be taken seriously in even such light history as this; but I admit that when, as a story-seeker, I come back from my walks feeling frustrated by the silence of stones and mortar, I’ve eagerly listened to the suggested confidences of the friendly man standing by with a napkin during dinner. His stories are really quite good, and he takes great pride in his refined tone, drawing my attention to it. He doesn’t have much good to say about the Sienese nobility. They are “proprio d’origine egoista”—whatever that means—and many can’t even write their names. This might be slander; but I doubt even the most virtuous among them could have spoken more delicately about a lady with a distinct appearance who had been dining near me. “She’s too fat,” I bluntly said as she left the room. The waiter shook his head with a little sniff: “È troppo materiale.” This lady and her companion were the ones, thinking I might want some company—I had been dining alone for a week—that he happily introduced to me as newly arrived Americans. They were, I found, Americans who always wore black lace veils or mantillas, used a knife to bring their beans to their mouths, and spoke a strange, raspy Spanish. They were fine compatriots from Montevideo.
{Illustration: THE RED PALACE, SIENA.}
{Illustration: THE RED PALACE, SIENA.}
The genius of old Siena, however, would make little of any stress of such distinctions; one representative of a far-off social platitude being about as much in order as another as he stands before the great loggia of the Casino di Nobili, the club of the best society. The nobility, which is very numerous and very rich, is still, says the apparently competent native I began by quoting, perfectly feudal and uplifted and separate. Morally and intellectually, behind the walls of its palaces, the fourteenth century, it’s thrilling to think, hasn’t ceased to hang on. There is no bourgeoisie to speak of; immediately after the aristocracy come the poor people, who are very poor indeed. My friend’s account of these matters made me wish more than ever, as a lover of the preserved social specimen, of type at almost any price, that one weren’t, a helpless victim of the historic sense, reduced simply to staring at black stones and peeping up stately staircases; and that when one had examined the street-face of the palace, Murray in hand, one might walk up to the great drawing-room, make one’s bow to the master and mistress, the old abbe and the young count, and invite them to favour one with a sketch of their social philosophy or a few first-hand family anecdotes.
The brilliance of old Siena, however, wouldn’t pay much attention to the stress of such distinctions; one representative of a distant social cliché is just as fitting as another, standing before the grand loggia of the Casino di Nobili, the elite club. The nobility, which is quite large and wealthy, is still, according to the apparently knowledgeable local I started by quoting, perfectly feudal and elevated and set apart. It’s thrilling to think that morally and intellectually, behind the walls of its palaces, the fourteenth century hasn’t really faded away. There’s hardly a bourgeoisie to speak of; right after the aristocrats come the poor, who are indeed very impoverished. My friend’s take on these matters made me wish more than ever, as someone who appreciates preserved social specimens of any type, that one wasn’t just a helpless victim of historical awareness, reduced to merely gazing at black stones and peeking up grand staircases; and that after examining the façade of the palace with a guidebook in hand, one could stroll up to the expansive drawing-room, nod to the master and mistress, the elderly abbe and the young count, and ask them to share a glimpse into their social philosophy or a few firsthand family stories.
The dusky labyrinth of the streets, we must in default of such initiations content ourselves with noting, is interrupted by two great candid spaces: the fan-shaped piazza, of which I just now said a word, and the smaller square in which the cathedral erects its walls of many-coloured marble. Of course since paying the great piazza my compliments by moonlight I have strolled through it often at sunnier and shadier hours. The market is held there, and wherever Italians buy and sell, wherever they count and chaffer—as indeed you hear them do right and left, at almost any moment, as you take your way among them—the pulse of life beats fast. It has been doing so on the spot just named, I suppose, for the last five hundred years, and during that time the cost of eggs and earthen pots has been gradually but inexorably increasing. The buyers nevertheless wrestle over their purchases as lustily as so many fourteenth-century burghers suddenly waking up in horror to current prices. You have but to walk aside, however, into the Palazzo Pubblico really to feel yourself a thrifty old medievalist. The state affairs of the Republic were formerly transacted here, but it now gives shelter to modern law-courts and other prosy business. I was marched through a number of vaulted halls and chambers, which, in the intervals of the administrative sessions held in them, are peopled only by the great mouldering archaic frescoes—anything but inanimate these even in their present ruin—that cover the walls and ceiling. The chief painters of the Sienese school lent a hand in producing the works I name, and you may complete there the connoisseurship in which, possibly, you will have embarked at the Academy. I say “possibly” to be very judicial, my own observation having led me no great length. I have rather than otherwise cherished the thought that the Sienese school suffers one’s eagerness peacefully to slumber—benignantly abstains in fact from whipping up a languid curiosity and a tepid faith. “A formidable rival to the Florentine,” says some book—I forget which—into which I recently glanced. Not a bit of it thereupon boldly say I; the Florentines may rest on their laurels and the lounger on his lounge. The early painters of the two groups have indeed much in common; but the Florentines had the good fortune to see their efforts gathered up and applied by a few pre-eminent spirits, such as never came to the rescue of the groping Sienese. Fra Angelico and Ghirlandaio said all their feebler confrères dreamt of and a great deal more beside, but the inspiration of Simone Memmi and Ambrogio Lorenzetti and Sano di Pietro has a painful air of never efflorescing into a maximum. Sodoma and Beccafumi are to my taste a rather abortive maximum. But one should speak of them all gently—and I do, from my soul; for their labour, by their lights, has wrought a precious heritage of still-living colour and rich figure-peopled shadow for the echoing chambers of their old civic fortress. The faded frescoes cover the walls like quaintly-storied tapestries; in one way or another they cast their spell. If one owes a large debt of pleasure to pictorial art one comes to think tenderly and easily of its whole evolution, as of the conscious experience of a single mysterious, striving spirit, and one shrinks from saying rude things about any particular phase of it, just as one would from referring without precautions to some error or lapse in the life of a person one esteemed. You don’t care to remind a grizzled veteran of his defeats, and why should we linger in Siena to talk about Beccafumi? I by no means go so far as to say, with an amateur with whom I have just been discussing the matter, that “Sodoma is a precious poor painter and Beccafumi no painter at all”; but, opportunity being limited, I am willing to let the remark about Beccafumi pass for true. With regard to Sodoma, I remember seeing four years ago in the choir of the Cathedral of Pisa a certain small dusky specimen of the painter—an Abraham and Isaac, if I am not mistaken—which was charged with a gloomy grace. One rarely meets him in general collections, and I had never done so till the other day. He was not prolific, apparently; he had however his own elegance, and his rarity is a part of it.
The dark maze of the streets—lacking such introductions—we have to settle for observing, is broken up by two large open areas: the fan-shaped piazza I mentioned earlier, and the smaller square where the cathedral stands with its walls of colorful marble. Since I admired the grand piazza by moonlight, I've walked through it many times in both sunny and shaded moments. The market is held there, and wherever Italians buy and sell, wherever they count and haggle—as you can hear them do all around you at any moment while you move among them—the energy of life is vibrant. This has likely been the case in that spot for the last five hundred years, and during that time, the price of eggs and clay pots has steadily but relentlessly gone up. Still, buyers argue over their purchases as enthusiastically as fourteenth-century citizens suddenly realizing the current prices. However, if you step inside the Palazzo Pubblico, you will truly feel like a frugal old medievalist. This was once where the Republic conducted its affairs, but now it houses modern courts and other mundane business. I was led through several vaulted halls and chambers, which, during the breaks between administrative sessions, are filled only with the great, decaying, ancient frescoes—far from lifeless, even in their current state—that adorn the walls and ceilings. The main painters from the Sienese school contributed to these works, and you can further your appreciation for them, which you might have started at the Academy. I say “might” to be fair, as my own observations haven't taken me too far. I've tended to think that the Sienese school allows one’s eagerness to rest peacefully—essentially it doesn’t stir up any languid curiosity or lukewarm faith. “A formidable rival to the Florentine,” says some book—I forget which—where I recently glanced. Not at all, I assert boldly; the Florentines can rest on their laurels and the idler on his couch. The early painters from both groups have much in common; however, the Florentines had the good fortune to see their efforts embraced and developed by a few outstanding talents, unlike the struggling Sienese. Fra Angelico and Ghirlandaio expressed everything their lesser counterparts could dream of and much more, but the inspiration of Simone Memmi, Ambrogio Lorenzetti, and Sano di Pietro seems painfully stuck at a lower level. To my taste, Sodoma and Beccafumi represent a rather lukewarm peak. But I should speak of them gently—and I do so sincerely; their work, as they saw it, has created a valuable heritage of vibrant color and intricate, shadow-filled figures for the resonant halls of their old civic fortress. The faded frescoes cover the walls like beautifully illustrated tapestries; in one way or another, they cast their charm. If you owe a significant debt of enjoyment to visual art, you start to think fondly and easily of its entire evolution, as if it were the conscious journey of a single mysterious, striving spirit, and you hesitate to make harsh comments about any specific phase, just as you would avoid mentioning a person's shortcomings that you held in high regard. You wouldn’t want to remind a battle-scarred veteran of his defeats, so why linger in Siena to discuss Beccafumi? I certainly don’t go as far as saying, like an amateur I was just debating this with, that “Sodoma is a pretty poor painter and Beccafumi isn't a painter at all”; but, with limited opportunities, I’m willing to accept the remark about Beccafumi as true. As for Sodoma, I remember seeing a small dark work by him four years ago in the Cathedral of Pisa’s choir—an Abraham and Isaac, if I remember right—which carried a gloomy elegance. You rarely encounter him in general collections, and I hadn’t until recently. He didn’t produce much, apparently; however, he had his own grace, and his scarcity adds to that charm.
Here in Siena are a couple of dozen scattered frescoes and three or four canvases; his masterpiece, among others, an harmonious Descent from the Cross. I wouldn’t give a fig for the equilibrium of the figures or the ladders; but while it lasts the scene is all intensely solemn and graceful and sweet—too sweet for so bitter a subject. Sodoma’s women are strangely sweet; an imaginative sense of morbid appealing attitude—as notably in the sentimental, the pathetic, but the none the less pleasant, “Swooning of St. Catherine,” the great Sienese heroine, at San Domenico—seems to me the author’s finest accomplishment. His frescoes have all the same almost appealing evasion of difficulty, and a kind of mild melancholy which I am inclined to think the sincerest part of them, for it strikes me as practically the artist’s depressed suspicion of his own want of force. Once he determined, however, that if he couldn’t be strong he would make capital of his weakness, and painted the Christ bound to the Column, of the Academy. Here he got much nearer and I have no doubt mixed his colours with his tears; but the result can’t be better described than by saying that it is, pictorially, the first of the modern Christs. Unfortunately it hasn’t been the last.
Here in Siena, there are a couple dozen scattered frescoes and three or four canvases; his masterpiece, among others, is a harmonious Descent from the Cross. I wouldn’t care less about the balance of the figures or the ladders; but while it lasts, the scene is all intensely solemn, graceful, and sweet—too sweet for such a bitter subject. Sodoma’s women are strangely sweet; there’s an imaginative sense of a morbid, appealing attitude—especially in the sentimental, the pathetic, but still pleasant, “Swooning of St. Catherine,” the great Sienese heroine, at San Domenico—this seems to me the author’s finest achievement. His frescoes all have that same almost appealing avoidance of difficulty and a kind of mild melancholy that I think is the most genuine part of them, as it strikes me as the artist’s depressed suspicion of his own lack of strength. However, once he decided that if he couldn’t be strong, he would capitalize on his weakness, and painted the Christ bound to the Column at the Academy. Here he got much closer, and I have no doubt he mixed his colors with his tears; but the result can only be described by saying that it is, pictorially, the first of the modern Christs. Unfortunately, it hasn’t been the last.
{Illustration: SAN DOMINICO, SIENA}
{Illustration: San Domenico, Siena}
The main strength of Sienese art went possibly into the erection of the Cathedral, and yet even here the strength is not of the greatest strain. If, however, there are more interesting temples in Italy, there are few more richly and variously scenic and splendid, the comparative meagreness of the architectural idea being overlaid by a marvellous wealth of ingenious detail. Opposite the church—with the dull old archbishop’s palace on one side and a dismantled residence of the late Grand Duke of Tuscany on the other—is an ancient hospital with a big stone bench running all along its front. Here I have sat a while every morning for a week, like a philosophic convalescent, watching the florid façade of the cathedral glitter against the deep blue sky. It has been lavishly restored of late years, and the fresh white marble of the densely clustered pinnacles and statues and beasts and flowers flashes in the sunshine like a mosaic of jewels. There is more of this goldsmith’s work in stone than I can remember or describe; it is piled up over three great doors with immense margins of exquisite decorative sculpture—still in the ancient cream-coloured marble—and beneath three sharp pediments embossed with images relieved against red marble and tipped with golden mosaics. It is in the highest degree fantastic and luxuriant—it is on the whole very lovely. As a triumph of the many-hued it prepares you for the interior, where the same parti-coloured splendour is endlessly at play—a confident complication of harmonies and contrasts and of the minor structural refinements and braveries. The internal surface is mainly wrought in alternate courses of black and white marble; but as the latter has been dimmed by the centuries to a fine mild brown the place is all a concert of relieved and dispersed glooms. Save for Pinturicchio’s brilliant frescoes in the Sacristy there are no pictures to speak of; but the pavement is covered with many elaborate designs in black and white mosaic after cartoons by Beccafumi. The patient skill of these compositions makes them a rare piece of decoration; yet even here the friend whom I lately quoted rejects this over-ripe fruit of the Sienese school. The designs are nonsensical, he declares, and all his admiration is for the cunning artisans who have imitated the hatchings and shadings and hair-strokes of the pencil by the finest curves of inserted black stone. But the true romance of handiwork at Siena is to be seen in the wondrous stalls of the choir, under the coloured light of the great wheel-window. Wood-carving has ever been a cherished craft of the place, and the best masters of the art during the fifteenth century lavished themselves on this prodigious task. It is the frost-work on one’s window-panes interpreted in polished oak. It would be hard to find, doubtless, a more moving illustration of the peculiar patience, the sacred candour, of the great time. Into such artistry as this the author seems to put more of his personal substance than into any other; he has to wrestle not only with his subject, but with his material. He is richly fortunate when his subject is charming—when his devices, inventions and fantasies spring lightly to his hand; for in the material itself, after age and use have ripened and polished and darkened it to the richness of ebony and to a greater warmth there is something surpassingly delectable and venerable. Wander behind the altar at Siena when the chanting is over and the incense has faded, and look well at the stalls of the Barili.
The main strength of Sienese art likely went into building the Cathedral, and even there, the strength isn't the most remarkable. While there are more interesting temples in Italy, few are as richly and beautifully scenic, with the relative simplicity of the architectural design covered by a marvelous wealth of intricate detail. Across from the church—next to the dull old archbishop’s palace on one side and a crumbling residence of the late Grand Duke of Tuscany on the other—there's an ancient hospital with a long stone bench along its front. I've sat here for a while every morning for a week, like a reflective convalescent, watching the bright façade of the cathedral shine against the deep blue sky. It has been lavishly restored in recent years, and the fresh white marble of the densely clustered spires, statues, animals, and flowers sparkles in the sunlight like a mosaic of jewels. There's more of this masterful stonework than I can remember or describe; it’s piled high over three grand doors with immense frames of exquisite decorative sculpture—still in the ancient cream-colored marble—and beneath three sharp pediments embossed with images set against red marble and topped with golden mosaics. It's incredibly fantastic and lush—it’s overall very beautiful. As a triumph of color, it prepares you for the interior, where the same colorful splendor is constantly at play—a confident mix of harmonies, contrasts, and subtle architectural refinements and boldness. The interior surface is mostly done in alternating layers of black and white marble; but since the white has been dimmed over the centuries to a gentle brown, the place feels like a concert of soft and dispersed shadows. Except for Pinturicchio’s brilliant frescoes in the Sacristy, there aren't any notable pictures; but the floor is adorned with many intricate designs in black and white mosaic based on sketches by Beccafumi. The patient skill in these compositions makes them a unique decoration; yet even here, the friend I recently quoted dismisses this overripe product of the Sienese school. He claims the designs are nonsensical, and his admiration is solely for the skilled artisans who have replicated the hatchings, shadings, and hair-strokes of pencils with the finest curves of embedded black stone. However, the true artistry of Siena shines in the stunning choir stalls, under the colorful light of the large rose window. Wood carving has always been a beloved craft here, and the best masters of the art during the fifteenth century poured their talents into this remarkable work. It’s like frost on your window panes interpreted in polished oak. It would be hard to find a more moving illustration of the unique patience and sacred honesty of that grand time. In this artistry, the creator seems to invest more of his personal essence than in anything else; he must grapple not only with his subject but also with his materials. He is immensely fortunate when his subject is charming—when his ideas, inventions, and fantasies come easily. For in the material itself, after age and use have refined and darkened it to a richness resembling ebony and added warmth, there’s something extraordinarily delightful and venerable. Walk behind the altar at Siena when the singing is over and the incense has faded, and take a good look at the Barili stalls.
1873.
II
I leave the impression noted in the foregoing pages to tell its own small story, but have it on my conscience to wonder, in this connection, quite candidly and publicly and by way of due penance, at the scantness of such first-fruits of my sensibility. I was to see Siena repeatedly in the years to follow, I was to know her better, and I would say that I was to do her an ampler justice didn’t that remark seem to reflect a little on my earlier poor judgment. This judgment strikes me to-day as having fallen short—true as it may be that I find ever a value, or at least an interest, even in the moods and humours and lapses of any brooding, musing or fantasticating observer to whom the finer sense of things is on the whole not closed. If he has on a given occasion nodded or stumbled or strayed, this fact by itself speaks to me of him—speaks to me, that is, of his faculty and his idiosyncrasies, and I care nothing for the application of his faculty unless it be, first of all, in itself interesting. Which may serve as my reply to any objection here breaking out—on the ground that if a spectator’s languors are evidence, of a sort, about that personage, they are scarce evident about the case before him, at least if the case be important. I let my perhaps rather weak expression of the sense of Siena stand, at any rate—for the sake of what I myself read into it; but I should like to amplify it by other memories, and would do so eagerly if I might here enjoy the space. The difficulty for these rectifications is that if the early vision has failed of competence or of full felicity, if initiation has thus been slow, so, with renewals and extensions, so, with the larger experience, one hindrance is exchanged for another. There is quite such a possibility as having lived into a relation too much to be able to make a statement of it.
I let the impression noted in the earlier pages tell its own little story, but it weighs on my conscience to wonder, honestly and openly, as a way of making amends, about the scarcity of my initial insights. I was going to see Siena many more times in the years to come, I would get to know her better, and I could say I would do her greater justice if that comment didn’t seem to reflect a bit on my earlier poor judgment. This judgment seems to me now to be lacking—true as it is that I still find value, or at least interest, even in the moods, quirks, and lapses of any thoughtful observer whose finer appreciation of things is, for the most part, not closed off. If he has, on a particular occasion, nodded off, stumbled, or wandered, that alone tells me something about him—about his abilities and quirks—and I’m not concerned with how he applies those abilities unless it’s interesting on its own. This might serve as my response to any objections that might arise—on the grounds that if a spectator's sluggishness reveals something about him, it doesn’t necessarily reveal much about the situation in front of him, especially if the situation is significant. I’ll leave my perhaps rather weak expression of my feelings about Siena as it is, at least for what I read into it; but I would like to expand on it with other memories and would gladly do so if I had the space here. The challenge with these improvements is that if the early view lacked depth or clarity, if my initial understanding was slow in coming, then, with each renewal and expansion of experience, one obstacle is simply replaced by another. It’s quite possible to have become too immersed in a relationship to be able to clearly articulate it.
I remember on one occasion arriving very late of a summer night, after an almost unbroken run from London, and the note of that approach—I was the only person alighting at the station below the great hill of the little fortress city, under whose at once frowning and gaping gate I must have passed, in the warm darkness and the absolute stillness, very much after the felt fashion of a person of importance about to be enormously incarcerated—gives me, for preservation thus belated, the pitch, as I may call it, at various times, though always at one season, of an almost systematised esthetic use of the place. It wasn’t to be denied that the immensely better “accommodations” instituted by the multiplying, though alas more bustling, years had to be recognised as supplying a basis, comparatively prosaic if one would, to that luxury. No sooner have I written which words, however, than I find myself adding that one “wouldn’t,” that one doesn’t—doesn’t, that is, consent now to regard the then “new” hotel (pretty old indeed by this time) as anything but an aid to a free play of perception. The strong and rank old Arme d’Inghilterra, in the darker street, has passed away; but its ancient rival the Aquila Nera put forth claims to modernisation, and the Grand Hotel, the still fresher flower of modernity near the gate by which you enter from the station, takes on to my present remembrance a mellowness as of all sorts of comfort, cleanliness and kindness. The particular facts, those of the visit I began here by alluding to and those of still others, at all events, inveterately made in June or early in July, enter together in a fusion as of hot golden-brown objects seen through the practicable crevices of shutters drawn upon high, cool, darkened rooms where the scheme of the scene involved longish days of quiet work, with late afternoon emergence and contemplation waiting on the better or the worse conscience. I thus associate the compact world of the admirable hill-top, the world of a predominant golden-brown, with a general invocation of sensibility and fancy, and think of myself as going forth into the lingering light of summer evenings all attuned to intensity of the idea of compositional beauty, or in other words, freely speaking, to the question of colour, to intensity of picture. To communicate with Siena in this charming way was thus, I admit, to have no great margin for the prosecution of inquiries, but I am not sure that it wasn’t, little by little, to feel the whole combination of elements better than by a more exemplary method, and this from beginning to end of the scale.
I remember one time arriving really late on a summer night, after an almost nonstop trip from London. The sound of that arrival—I was the only one getting off at the station below the big hill of the little fortress city—made me feel like a person of importance about to be locked away, as I passed through its intimidating yet inviting gate in the warm darkness and complete stillness. This late arrival gives me what I can call the vibe of the place, which I've experienced at different times, although always in the same season, where it feels almost like a studied aesthetic use of the area. It’s clear that the much better accommodations created by the increasing but sadly more hectic years had to be acknowledged as providing a basis, somewhat mundane if you think about it, for that luxury. Yet, as soon as I write that, I find myself adding that one “wouldn’t”—that one doesn’t, doesn’t, in fact, agree now to see the then “new” hotel (which is pretty old now) as anything but a tool for a free perception. The strong and worn out Arme d’Inghilterra in the darker street is gone, but its old rival, the Aquila Nera, claims to be modernized, and the Grand Hotel, the newer flower of modernity near the gate where you enter from the station, evokes in my memory a warmth of comfort, cleanliness, and kindness. The specific memories of the visit I started mentioning, along with those of others, at least those made in June or early July, blend together like hot golden-brown objects seen through the gaps of shutters drawn in high, cool, darkened rooms where the scene involved long days of quiet work, followed by late afternoon reflections depending on my better or worse conscience. I thus relate the compact world of the beautiful hilltop, a world dominated by golden-brown, with an overall feeling of sensitivity and imagination, thinking of myself going out into the lingering light of summer evenings, all tuned to the intensity of the idea of beauty in composition, or in simpler terms, to the question of color, to the intensity of a picture. Engaging with Siena in this delightful way did mean not having much room to pursue questions, but little by little, I’m not sure it wasn’t a better way to truly feel the whole combination of elements than through a more traditional method, from beginning to end of the scale.
More of the elements indeed, for memory, hang about the days that were ushered in by that straight flight from the north than about any other series—if partly, doubtless, but because of my having then stayed longest. I specify it at all events for fond reminiscence as the year, the only year, at which I was present at the Palio, the earlier one, the series of furious horse-races between elected representatives of different quarters of the town taking place toward the end of June, as the second and still more characteristic exhibition of the same sort is appointed to the month of August; a spectacle that I am far from speaking of as the finest flower of my old and perhaps even a little faded cluster of impressions, but which smudges that special sojourn as with the big thumb—mark of a slightly soiled and decidedly ensanguined hand. For really, after all, the great loud gaudy romp or heated frolic, simulating ferocity if not achieving it, that is the annual pride of the town, was not intrinsically, to my-view, extraordinarily impressive—in spite of its bristling with all due testimony to the passionate Italian clutch of any pretext for costume and attitude and utterance, for mumming and masquerading and raucously representing; the vast cheap vividness rather somehow refines itself, and the swarm and hubbub of the immense square melt, to the uplifted sense of a very high-placed balcony of the overhanging Chigi palace, where everything was superseded but the intenser passage, across the ages, of the great Renaissance tradition of architecture and the infinite sweetness of the waning golden day. The Palio, indubitably, was criard—and the more so for quite monopolising, at Siena, the note of crudity; and much of it demanded doubtless of one’s patience a due respect for the long local continuity of such things; it drops into its humoured position, however, in any retrospective command of the many brave aspects of the prodigious place. Not that I am pretending here, even for rectification, to take these at all in turn; I only go on a little with my rueful glance at the marked gaps left in my original report of sympathies entertained.
More of the memories, indeed, linger about the days that started with that direct journey from the north than about any other time—at least partly because I spent the longest there. I mention it for the sake of fond memories as the year, the only year, when I attended the Palio, the earlier one, a series of intense horse races between selected representatives from different parts of the town that take place towards the end of June, while the second and even more defining event of the same kind is scheduled for August; a spectacle I don’t exactly consider the highlight of my past impressions, yet it marks that particular stay like a big thumbprint from a slightly dirty and definitely bloodstained hand. Because, honestly, the loud, flashy celebration or heated revelry, mimicking ferocity without truly achieving it, which is the town's annual pride, wasn’t all that impressive to me—in spite of its vibrant display of the passionate Italian knack for costumes, attitudes, and expressions, for playacting and masquerading and lively representation; the overwhelming brightness instead somewhat refines itself, and the buzz and chaos of the vast square blur, to the uplifted perspective from a high balcony of the overhanging Chigi palace, where everything is overshadowed except for the powerful legacy of the great Renaissance architecture and the endless beauty of the fading golden day. The Palio was definitely criard—even more so as it monopolized, in Siena, a sense of roughness; and much of it surely required one’s patience and respect for the long local tradition of such events; it fits humorously, though, into any reflective overview of the many striking elements of this remarkable place. Not that I’m trying here, even for the sake of correction, to examine them all one by one; I’m just continuing with my bittersweet look at the noticeable gaps left in my original account of my feelings.
I bow my head for instance to the mystery of my not having mentioned that the coolest and freshest flower of the day was ever that of one’s constant renewal of a charmed homage to Pinturicchio, coolest and freshest and signally youngest and most matutinal (as distinguished from merely primitive or crepuscular) of painters, in the library or sacristy of the Cathedral. Did I always find time before work to spend half-an-hour of immersion, under that splendid roof, in the clearest and tenderest, the very cleanest and “straightest,” as it masters our envious credulity, of all storied fresco-worlds? This wondrous apartment, a monument in itself to the ancient pride and power of the Church, and which contains an unsurpassed treasure of gloriously illuminated missals, psalters and other vast parchment folios, almost each of whose successive leaves gives the impression of rubies, sapphires and emeralds set in gold and practically embedded in the page, offers thus to view, after a fashion splendidly sustained, a pictorial record of the career of Pope Pius II, Aeneas Sylvius of the Siena Piccolomini (who gave him for an immediate successor a second of their name), most profanely literary of Pontiffs and last of would-be Crusaders, whose adventures and achievements under Pinturicchio’s brush smooth themselves out for us very much to the tune of the “stories” told by some fine old man of the world, at the restful end of his life, to the cluster of his grandchildren. The end of AEneas Sylvius was not restful; he died at Ancona in troublous times, preaching war, and attempting to make it, against the then terrific Turk; but over no great worldly personal legend, among those of men of arduous affairs, arches a fairer, lighter or more pacific memorial vault than the shining Libreria of Siena. I seem to remember having it and its unfrequented enclosing precinct so often all to myself that I must indeed mostly have resorted to it for a prompt benediction on the day. Like no other strong solicitation, among artistic appeals to which one may compare it up and down the whole wonderful country, is the felt neighbouring presence of the overwrought Cathedral in its little proud possessive town: you may so often feel by the week at a time that it stands there really for your own personal enjoyment, your romantic convenience, your small wanton aesthetic use. In such a light shines for me, at all events, under such an accumulation and complication of tone flushes and darkens and richly recedes for me, across the years, the treasure-house of many-coloured marbles in the untrodden, the drowsy, empty Sienese square. One could positively do, in the free exercise of any responsible fancy or luxurious taste, what one would with it.
I lower my head, for example, to the mystery of why I never mentioned that the coolest and freshest flower of the day was always the constant renewal of my charmed admiration for Pinturicchio, the coolest, freshest, youngest, and most morning-like of painters, found in the library or sacristy of the Cathedral. Did I always manage to find time before work to spend half an hour immersed under that magnificent roof, surrounded by the clearest and most delicate, the cleanest and “straightest,” of all painted fresco worlds? This incredible room, a monument itself to the ancient pride and power of the Church, holds an unmatched treasure of gloriously illustrated missals, psalters, and other large parchment books, almost every page of which feels like rubies, sapphires, and emeralds set in gold practically embedded in the leaves. It presents, in a brilliantly sustained way, a pictorial record of the life of Pope Pius II, Aeneas Sylvius of the Siena Piccolomini (who later chose a successor of the same name), the most worldly literary Pope and the last of the would-be Crusaders, whose adventures and achievements depicted by Pinturicchio play out like the “stories” shared by a wise old man to his grandchildren at the peaceful end of his life. Aeneas Sylvius’s end was not peaceful; he died in Ancona during turbulent times, preaching war and trying to fight against the terrifying Turk. Yet, among the legends of those who have faced hard experiences, there isn’t a fairer, lighter, or more peaceful memorial than the radiant Libreria of Siena. I seem to recall having that library and its rarely visited surroundings mostly to myself, as if I often turned to it for a quick blessing to start my day. Unlike any other strong call, among the artistic appeals that can be found throughout this beautiful country, the nearby presence of the impressive Cathedral in its small, proud town often feels like it exists solely for your personal enjoyment, romantic convenience, or small aesthetic pleasure. In this way, under a mix of bright and dark tones that have receded for me over the years, the treasure house of many-colored marbles in the quiet, empty Sienese square shines. One could truly do whatever one wished with it, in the free exercise of any responsible imagination or luxury of taste.
But that proposition holds true, after all, for almost any mild pastime of the incurable student of loose meanings and stray relics and odd references and dim analogies in an Italian hill-city bronzed and seasoned by the ages. I ought perhaps, for justification of the right to talk, to have plunged into the Siena archives of which, on one occasion, a kindly custodian gave me, in rather dusty and stuffy conditions, as the incident vaguely comes back to me, a glimpse that was like a moment’s stand at the mouth of a deep, dark mine. I didn’t descend into the pit; I did, instead of this, a much idler and easier thing: I simply went every afternoon, my stint of work over, I like to recall, for a musing stroll upon the Lizza—the Lizza which had its own unpretentious but quite insidious art of meeting the lover of old stories halfway. The great and subtle thing, if you are not a strenuous specialist, in places of a heavily charged historic consciousness, is to profit by the sense of that consciousness—or in other words to cultivate a relation with the oracle—after the fashion that suits yourself; so that if the general after-taste of experience, experience at large, the fine distilled essence of the matter, seems to breathe, in such a case, from the very stones and to make a thick strong liquor of the very air, you may thus gather as you pass what is most to your purpose; which is more the indestructible mixture of lived things, with its concentrated lingering odour, than any interminable list of numbered chapters and verses. Chapters and verses, literally scanned, refuse coincidence, mostly, with the divisional proprieties of your own pile of manuscript—which is but another way of saying, in short, that if the Lizza is a mere fortified promontory of the great Sienese hill, serving at once as a stronghold for the present military garrison and as a planted and benched and band-standed walk and recreation-ground for the citizens, so I could never, toward close of day, either have enough of it or yet feel the vaguest saunterings there to be vain. They were vague with the qualification always of that finer massing, as one wandered off, of the bronzed and seasoned element, the huge rock pedestal, the bravery of walls and gates and towers and palaces and loudly asserted dominion; and then of that pervaded or mildly infested air in which one feels the experience of the ages, of which I just spoke, to be exquisitely in solution; and lastly of the wide, strange, sad, beautiful horizon, a rim of far mountains that always pictured, for the leaner on old rubbed and smoothed parapets at the sunset hour, a country not exactly blighted or deserted, but that had had its life, on an immense scale, and had gone, with all its memories and relics, into rather austere, in fact into almost grim and misanthropic, retirement. This was a manner and a mood, at any rate, in all the land, that favoured in the late afternoons the divinest landscape blues and purples—not to speak of its favouring still more my practical contention that the whole guarded headland in question, with the immense ramparts of golden brown and red that dropped into vineyards and orchards and cornfields and all the rustic elegance of the Tuscan podere, was knitting for me a chain of unforgettable hours; to the justice of which claim let these divagations testify.
But that idea is true for almost any light hobby of the persistent student fascinated by vague meanings, scattered relics, quirky references, and faint analogies in an Italian hill city that has been shaped by time. I should probably justify my right to speak by mentioning the Siena archives, where a friendly custodian once gave me, in somewhat dusty and stuffy conditions, a glimpse that felt like standing at the entrance of a deep, dark mine. I didn’t go down into the pit; instead, I opted for something much lazier and easier: I simply took a relaxing stroll on the Lizza every afternoon after finishing my work. The Lizza had its own unassuming but subtly powerful way of engaging anyone who loved old stories. The great and nuanced thing, if you’re not a rigid specialist, in places with a deeply charged historic consciousness, is to take advantage of that consciousness—or in other words, to develop a relationship with the oracle—in a way that suits you; so that if the overall aftertaste of experience, the essence of the matter, seems to emanate from the very stones, creating a rich atmosphere in the air, you can gather what is most relevant to you as you pass by; this is more about the indestructible blend of lived experiences, with its concentrated lingering scent, than any endless list of numbered chapters and verses. Chapters and verses, when thoroughly examined, often don’t align with the organizational structure of your own collection of writings—which is another way of saying, in short, that if the Lizza is just a fortified point of the great Sienese hill, serving as both a stronghold for the current military garrison and a scenic promenade for the locals, then I could never, by the end of the day, have enough of it nor feel that wandering there was pointless. My walks were always vague but enriched by that finer accumulation of the weathered and aged elements, the massive stone foundation, the grandeur of walls, gates, towers, and palaces, all asserting their presence; then there was the infused or softly haunted air that made the experience of the ages I mentioned feel beautifully intertwined; and finally, the expansive, strange, bittersweet, beautiful horizon, a boundary of distant mountains that always evoked, for those resting on old, worn parapets at sunset, a land not exactly ruined or abandoned, but that had experienced life on a vast scale and had retreated, along with all its memories and relics, into a rather austere and somewhat grim solitude. This was a mood and a manner that, in every corner of the land, enhanced the captivating blues and purples of the late afternoon landscape—not to mention supporting my practical argument that this entire guarded headland, with its immense walls of golden brown and red descending into vineyards, orchards, cornfields, and all the rustic beauty of the Tuscan podere, was weaving together a series of unforgettable moments for me; let these reflections attest to the truth of that claim.
It wasn’t, however, that one mightn’t without disloyalty to that scheme of profit seek impressions further afield—though indeed I may best say of such a matter as the long pilgrimage to the pictured convent of Monte Oliveto that it but played on the same fine chords as the overhanging, the far-gazing Lizza. What it came to was that one simply put to the friendly test, as it were, the mood and manner of the country. This remembrance is precious, but the demonstration of that sense as of a great heaving region stilled by some final shock and returning thoughtfully, in fact tragically, on itself, couldn’t have been more pointed. The long-drawn rural road I refer to, stretching over hill and dale and to which I devoted the whole of the longest day of the year—I was in a small single-horse conveyance, of which I had already made appreciative use, and with a driver as disposed as myself ever to sacrifice speed to contemplation—is doubtless familiar now with the rush of the motor-car; the thought of whose free dealings with the solitude of Monte Oliveto makes me a little ruefully reconsider, I confess, the spirit in which I have elsewhere in these pages, on behalf of the lust, the landscape lust, of the eyes, acknowledged our general increasing debt to that vehicle. For that we met nothing whatever, as I seem at this distance of time to recall, while we gently trotted and trotted through the splendid summer hours and a dry desolation that yet somehow smiled and smiled, was part of the charm and the intimacy of the whole impression—the impression that culminated at last, before the great cloistered square, lonely, bleak and stricken, in the almost aching vision, more frequent in the Italy of to-day than anywhere in the world, of the uncalculated waste of a myriad forms of piety, forces of labour, beautiful fruits of genius. However, one gaped above all things for the impression, and what one mainly asked was that it should be strong of its kind. That was the case, I think I couldn’t but feel, at every moment of the couple of hours I spent in the vast, cold, empty shell, out of which the Benedictine brotherhood sheltered there for ages had lately been turned by the strong arm of a secular State. There was but one good brother left, a very lean and tough survivor, a dusky, elderly, friendly Abbate, of an indescribable type and a perfect manner, of whom I think I felt immediately thereafter that I should have liked to say much, but as to whom I must have yielded to the fact that ingenious and vivid commemoration was even then in store for him. Literary portraiture had marked him for its own, and in the short story of Un Saint, one of the most finished of contemporary French nouvelles, the art and the sympathy of Monsieur Paul Bourget preserve his interesting image. He figures in the beautiful tale, the Abbate of the desolate cloister and of those comparatively quiet years, as a clean, clear type of sainthood; a circumstance this in itself to cause a fond analyst of other than “Latin” race (model and painter in this case having their Latinism so strongly in common) almost endlessly to meditate. Oh, the unutterable differences in any scheme or estimate of physiognomic values, in any range of sensibility to expressional association, among observers of different, of inevitably more or less opposed, traditional and “racial” points of view! One had heard convinced Latins—or at least I had!—speak of situations of trust and intimacy in which they couldn’t have endured near them a Protestant or, as who should say for instance, an Anglo-Saxon; but I was to remember my own private attempt to measure such a change of sensibility as might have permitted the prolonged close approach of the dear dingy, half-starved, very possibly all heroic, and quite ideally urbane Abbate. The depth upon depth of things, the cloud upon cloud of associations, on one side and the other, that would have had to change first!
It wasn’t that one couldn’t look for experiences elsewhere without being disloyal to that profit scheme—though I can say that the long journey to the painted convent of Monte Oliveto resonated with the same beautiful notes as the distant Lizza. Ultimately, it was about testing the friendly mood and vibe of the area. This memory is precious, but the way it expressed a vast, unsettled landscape that was somehow quieted by a final shock, reflecting back on itself in a thoughtful, even tragic way, couldn’t have been clearer. The long rural road I’m talking about, stretching over hills and valleys, consumed the entirety of the longest day of the year for me—I was in a small single-horse carriage, which I had grown to appreciate, with a driver who, like me, preferred contemplation over speed. Nowadays, it’s likely familiar to the rush of motor cars; the thought of their carefree presence in the solitude of Monte Oliveto makes me reconsider, with a bit of regret, the way I have previously acknowledged our growing debt to that vehicle for its visual allure. As far as I can recall, we didn’t encounter a single soul while we gently ambled through the beautiful summer hours and a dry desolation that somehow still felt warm and inviting. This was part of the charm and intimacy of the overall experience—the experience that culminated before the great cloistered square, lonely, bleak, and devastated, in the almost painful image, now common in modern Italy, of the uncalculated waste of countless forms of devotion, labor, and beautiful creations. However, above all, I sought the experience, primarily wanting it to be powerful in its own right. I couldn't help but feel that this was true during the couple of hours I spent in the vast, cold, empty shell that the Benedictine brotherhood had recently vacated due to the strong arm of a secular State. There was only one good brother left—a very lean and sturdy survivor—an elderly, friendly Abbate of an indescribable type and a perfect manner; I immediately felt that I wanted to say much more about him, but I had to admit that clever and vivid commemoration was already in the works for him. Literary depiction had claimed him, and in the short story Un Saint, one of the finest contemporary French nouvelles, the art and empathy of Monsieur Paul Bourget preserve his intriguing image. He appears in the beautiful tale as the Abbate of the desolate cloister during those relatively quiet years, a clear embodiment of sainthood; this fact alone inspired a fond analyst of other than “Latin” races (the model and painter in this case share a strong Latin background) to endlessly reflect. Oh, the indescribable differences in any interpretation or assessment of facial values, and in any sensitivity to expressive associations, among observers from different, often conflicting traditional and “racial” backgrounds! I had heard convinced Latins—or at least I had!—talk about moments of trust and closeness where they couldn’t possibly tolerate a Protestant or, say, an Anglo-Saxon nearby; but I was to recall my own personal attempt to gauge such a shift in sensitivity that might have made it possible to maintain a prolonged close encounter with the dear dingy, half-starved, likely all-heroic, and quite ideally cultured Abbate. The layers upon layers of meanings, the clouds upon clouds of associations, on both sides that would need to shift first!
To which I may add nevertheless that since one ever supremely invoked intensity of impression and abundance of character, I feasted my fill of it at Monte Oliveto, and that for that matter this would have constituted my sole refreshment in the vast icy void of the blighted refectory if I hadn’t bethought myself of bringing with me a scrap of food, too scantly apportioned, I recollect—very scantly indeed, since my cocchiere was to share with me—by my purveyor at Siena. Our tragic—even if so tenderly tragic—entertainer had nothing to give us; but the immemorial cold of the enormous monastic interior in which we smilingly fasted would doubtless not have had for me without that such a wealth of reference. I was to have “liked” the whole adventure, so I must somehow have liked that; by which remark I am recalled to the special treasure of the desecrated temple, those extraordinarily strong and brave frescoes of Luca Signorelli and Sodoma that adorn, in admirable condition, several stretches of cloister wall. These creations in a manner took care of themselves; aided by the blue of the sky above the cloister-court they glowed, they insistently lived; I remember the frigid prowl through all the rest of the bareness, including that of the big dishonoured church and that even of the Abbate’s abysmally resigned testimony to his mere human and personal situation; and then, with such a force of contrast and effect of relief, the great sheltered sun-flares and colour-patches of scenic composition and design where a couple of hands centuries ago turned to dust had so wrought the defiant miracle of life and beauty that the effect is of a garden blooming among ruins. Discredited somehow, since they all would, the destroyers themselves, the ancient piety, the general spirit and intention, but still bright and assured and sublime—practically, enviably immortal—the other, the still subtler, the all aesthetic good faith.
I should mention that since I always seek out intense impressions and rich character, I really enjoyed my time at Monte Oliveto. In fact, it would have been my only comfort in the vast, cold emptiness of the dreary dining hall if I hadn’t thought to bring a bit of food with me, which was barely enough, I remember—very little indeed, since my cocchiere was going to share it with me—provided by my supplier in Siena. Our somewhat tragic—though tenderly tragic—host had nothing to offer us. But the ancient chill of the huge monastic interior where we cheerfully fasted gave me plenty to think about. I was supposed to enjoy the whole experience, so I must have found some enjoyment in it; by that thought, I am reminded of the special treasure of the abandoned temple, those extraordinarily powerful and courageous frescoes by Luca Signorelli and Sodoma that beautifully decorate several sections of the cloister walls. These artworks seemed to take care of themselves; with the blue sky above the cloister courtyard, they glowed and vibrantly came to life. I remember the cold wandering through all the other starkness, including the large dishonored church and the Abbate’s deeply resigned reflection on his personal situation. Then, in stark contrast and relief, there were the great sheltered bursts of sunlight and splashes of color in the scenic composition and design, created by hands that turned to dust centuries ago, performing the defiant miracle of life and beauty, making it feel like a garden blooming among ruins. Somehow discredited, as the destroyers, the ancient reverence, the overall spirit and intent would be, but still bright, confident, and sublime—practically, enviably immortal—the other, the subtler, the aesthetic good faith remained.
1909.
THE AUTUMN IN FLORENCE
Florence too has its “season,” not less than Rome, and I have been rejoicing for the past six weeks in the fact that this comparatively crowded parenthesis hasn’t yet been opened. Coming here in the first days of October I found the summer still in almost unmenaced possession, and ever since, till within a day or two, the weight of its hand has been sensible. Properly enough, as the city of flowers, Florence mingles the elements most artfully in the spring—during the divine crescendo of March and April, the weeks when six months of steady shiver have still not shaken New York and Boston free of the long Polar reach. But the very quality of the decline of the year as we at present here feel it suits peculiarly the mood in which an undiscourageable gatherer of the sense of things, or taster at least of “charm,” moves through these many-memoried streets and galleries and churches. Old things, old places, old people, or at least old races, ever strike us as giving out their secrets most freely in such moist, grey, melancholy days as have formed the complexion of the past fortnight. With Christmas arrives the opera, the only opera worth speaking of—which indeed often means in Florence the only opera worth talking through; the gaiety, the gossip, the reminders in fine of the cosmopolite and watering-place character to which the city of the Medici long ago began to bend her antique temper. Meanwhile it is pleasant enough for the tasters of charm, as I say, and for the makers of invidious distinctions, that the Americans haven’t all arrived, however many may be on their way, and that the weather has a monotonous overcast softness in which, apparently, aimless contemplation grows less and less ashamed. There is no crush along the Cascine, as on the sunny days of winter, and the Arno, wandering away toward the mountains in the haze, seems as shy of being looked at as a good picture in a bad light. No light, to my eyes, nevertheless, could be better than this, which reaches us, all strained and filtered and refined, exquisitely coloured and even a bit conspicuously sophisticated, through the heavy air of the past that hangs about the place for ever.
Florence also has its “season,” just like Rome, and I’ve been enjoying the fact that this relatively crowded period hasn’t started yet for the past six weeks. When I arrived here in early October, summer was still firmly hanging on, and up until just a day or two ago, its presence was still noticeable. As the city of flowers, Florence blends the elements beautifully in the spring—during the wonderful crescendo of March and April, when six months of constant chill haven’t yet freed New York and Boston from the long grip of winter. But the unique atmosphere of autumn that we’re experiencing now matches perfectly with the mood of someone who can’t get discouraged, navigating these memory-filled streets, galleries, and churches, savoring the "charm." Old things, old places, old people, or at least old cultures, seem to share their secrets most openly on these damp, grey, melancholic days that we've had over the past two weeks. With Christmas comes the opera, the only opera worth mentioning—which usually means in Florence the only opera worth discussing; the fun, the gossip, the reminders of the cosmopolitan and resort nature that the city of the Medici has embraced over time. Meanwhile, it’s quite enjoyable for those who appreciate charm, as I mentioned, and for those who take pride in subtle distinctions, that not all the Americans have arrived yet, although many are on their way. The weather has a dull, soft overcast that seems to make aimless contemplation less shameful. There’s no crowd along the Cascine like there is on the sunny winter days, and the Arno, drifting away toward the mountains in the fog, seems as hesitant to be observed as a great painting in poor lighting. Nevertheless, no light, in my view, could be better than this one, which reaches us, all filtered and refined, beautifully colored and even a bit delightfully sophisticated, through the heavy air of the past that eternally envelops this place.
I first knew Florence early enough, I am happy to say, to have heard the change for the worse, the taint of the modern order, bitterly lamented by old haunters, admirers, lovers—those qualified to present a picture of the conditions prevailing under the good old Grand-Dukes, the two last of their line in especial, that, for its blest reflection of sweetness and mildness and cheapness and ease, of every immediate boon in life to be enjoyed quite for nothing, could but draw tears from belated listeners. Some of these survivors from the golden age—just the beauty of which indeed was in the gold, of sorts, that it poured into your lap, and not in the least in its own importunity on that head—have needfully lingered on, have seen the ancient walls pulled down and the compact and belted mass of which the Piazza della Signoria was the immemorial centre expand, under the treatment of enterprising syndics, into an ungirdled organism of the type, as they viciously say, of Chicago; one of those places of which, as their grace of a circumference is nowhere, the dignity of a centre can no longer be predicated. Florence loses itself to-day in dusty boulevards and smart beaux quartiers, such as Napoleon III and Baron Haussmann were to set the fashion of to a too mediæval Europe—with the effect of some precious page of antique text swallowed up in a marginal commentary that smacks of the style of the newspaper. So much for what has happened on this side of that line of demarcation which, by an odd law, makes us, with our preference for what we are pleased to call the picturesque, object to such occurrences even as occurrences. The real truth is that objections are too vain, and that he would be too rude a critic here, just now, who shouldn’t be in the humour to take the thick with the thin and to try at least to read something of the old soul into the new forms.
I’m glad to say I knew Florence early enough to hear the old regulars—admirers and lovers—bitterly lament the decline brought on by modern times. They were the ones who could paint a vivid picture of life under the good old Grand Dukes, especially the last two in their line, whose era could evoke tears from latecomers with its sweet, gentle, inexpensive pleasures and its ability to offer so much for nothing. Some of these survivors from the golden age—whose beauty really came from the wealth that fell into your lap rather than any insistence on their part—have understandably stuck around. They’ve witnessed the ancient walls come down and the once-contained Piazza della Signoria expand into an unbounded space like what the cynical call Chicago; a place where, because its circumference lacks grace, its center can no longer be dignified. Today, Florence has dissolved into dusty boulevards and trendy neighborhoods, like those Napoleon III and Baron Haussmann popularized for a too-medieval Europe—resulting in something like an important piece of ancient text being overwhelmed by a marginal commentary that seems to echo newspaper style. That’s how things stand on this side of the line that, by some strange rule, makes us, with our fondness for the picturesque, react negatively to such changes even as mere events. The real truth is that objections are futile, and anyone criticizing this moment too harshly would be lacking in courtesy; they need to blend the good with the bad and at least try to find traces of the old spirit within the new forms.
There is something to be said moreover for your liking a city (once it’s a question of your actively circulating) to pretend to comfort you more by its extent than by its limits; in addition to which Florence was anciently, was in her palmy days peculiarly, a daughter of change and movement and variety, of shifting moods, policies and régimes—just as the Florentine character, as we have it to-day, is a character that takes all things easily for having seen so many come and go. It saw the national capital, a few years since, arrive and sit down by the Arno, and took no further thought than sufficed for the day; then it saw, the odd visitor depart and whistled her cheerfully on her way to Rome. The new boulevards of the Sindaco Peruzzi come, it may be said, but they don’t go; which, after all, it isn’t from the æsthetic point of view strictly necessary they should. A part of the essential amiability of Florence, of her genius for making you take to your favour on easy terms everything that in any way belongs to her, is that she has already flung an element of her grace over all their undried mortar and plaster. Such modern arrangements as the Piazza d’ Azeglio and the viale or Avenue of the Princess Margaret please not a little, I think—for what they are!—and do so even in a degree, by some fine local privilege just because they are Florentine. The afternoon lights rest on them as if to thank them for not being worse, and their vistas are liberal where they look toward the hills. They carry you close to these admirable elevations, which hang over Florence on all sides, and if in the foreground your sense is a trifle perplexed by the white pavements dotted here and there with a policeman or a nursemaid, you have only to reach beyond and see Fiesole turn to violet, on its ample eminence, from the effect of the opposite sunset.
There’s definitely something to be said for your preference for a city (when it comes to really getting around) that feels more comforting because of its size rather than its boundaries; plus, Florence has always been, and especially in its heyday, a place of change, movement, and variety, reflecting an array of moods, policies, and governments—just like the Florentine spirit today is one that takes everything in stride because it’s seen so much come and go. It watched the national capital set up by the Arno a few years ago and didn’t give it much more thought beyond that day; then it saw the unusual visitor leave and simply waved her off cheerfully on her way to Rome. The new boulevards by Sindaco Peruzzi may be seen to come but they don’t really go; and honestly, from an aesthetic viewpoint, it’s not strictly necessary for them to do so. A key part of Florence's charm, of her ability to make you feel at ease with everything that’s in any way connected to her, is that she’s already cast an air of her elegance over all the fresh mortar and plaster. Modern developments like Piazza d’Azeglio and the viale or Avenue of Princess Margaret are pretty appealing, I think—simply for what they are!—and they manage to charm, at least to some extent, just by being Florentine. The afternoon sunlight shines on them as if to thank them for not being worse, and their views are generous as they look toward the hills. They bring you close to the stunning elevations that rise above Florence on all sides, and while your attention may be a bit confused by the white pavements scattered here and there with a policeman or a nurse, all you have to do is look past that to see Fiesole turning violet on its high ground from the light of the sunset across the way.
Facing again then to Florence proper you have local colour enough and to spare—which you enjoy the more, doubtless, from standing off to get your light and your point of view. The elder streets abutting on all this newness bore away into the heart of the city in narrow, dusky perspectives that quite refine, in certain places, by an art of their own, on the romantic appeal. There are temporal and other accidents thanks to which, as you pause to look down them and to penetrate the deepening shadows that accompany their retreat, they resemble little corridors leading out from the past, mystical like the ladder in Jacob’s dream; so that when you see a single figure advance and draw nearer you are half afraid to wait till it arrives—it must be too much of the nature of a ghost, a messenger from an underworld. However this may be, a place paved with such great mosaics of slabs and lined with palaces of so massive a tradition, structures which, in their large dependence on pure proportion for interest and beauty, reproduce more than other modern styles the simple nobleness of Greek architecture, must ever have placed dignity first in the scale of invoked effect and laid up no great treasure of that ragged picturesqueness—the picturesqueness of large poverty—on which we feast our idle eyes at Rome and Naples. Except in the unfinished fronts of the churches, which, however, unfortunately, are mere ugly blankness, one finds less of the poetry of ancient over-use, or in other words less romantic southern shabbiness, than in most Italian cities. At two or three points, none the less, this sinister grace exists in perfection—just such perfection as so often proves that what is literally hideous may be constructively delightful and what is intrinsically tragic play on the finest chords of appreciation. On the north side of the Arno, between Ponte Vecchio and Ponte Santa Trinita, is a row of immemorial houses that back on the river, in whose yellow flood they bathe their sore old feet. Anything more battered and befouled, more cracked and disjointed, dirtier, drearier, poorer, it would be impossible to conceive. They look as if fifty years ago the liquid mud had risen over their chimneys and then subsided again and left them coated for ever with its unsightly slime. And yet forsooth, because the river is yellow, and the light is yellow, and here and there, elsewhere, some mellow mouldering surface, some hint of colour, some accident of atmosphere, takes up the foolish tale and repeats the note—because, in short, it is Florence, it is Italy, and the fond appraiser, the infatuated alien, may have had in his eyes, at birth and afterwards, the micaceous sparkle of brown-stone fronts no more interesting than so much sand-paper, these miserable dwellings, instead of suggesting mental invocations to an enterprising board of health, simply create their own standard of felicity and shamelessly live in it. Lately, during the misty autumn nights, the moon has shone on them faintly and refined their shabbiness away into something ineffably strange and spectral. The turbid stream sweeps along without a sound, and the pale tenements hang above it like a vague miasmatic exhalation. The dimmest back-scene at the opera, when the tenor is singing his sweetest, seems hardly to belong to a world more detached from responsibility.
Facing Florence itself, you have plenty of local flavor to enjoy—especially since you’re looking from a distance to get your perspective. The narrow, dim streets that lead into the city’s heart have their own unique charm, adding a touch of romance in certain spots. There are twists of time and circumstance that make these streets seem like little corridors leading to the past, mystical like Jacob’s ladder; so when you see a single figure coming closer, you hesitate, feeling it might be a ghost, a messenger from another realm. Regardless, a place paved with magnificent mosaics and lined with grand palaces rooted in deep tradition, which rely on pure proportions for their beauty, offers a nobility akin to Greek architecture. It has always prioritized dignity over the rugged charm—a ruggedness associated with poverty—that we might admire in Rome and Naples. Other than the unfinished facades of churches, which are unfortunately just blank eyesores, there’s less of the ancient, romantic disarray found in many Italian cities. However, there are a few spots where this haunting beauty shines perfectly—showing that what is outright ugly can also be wonderfully captivating, and that tragedy can evoke the most profound appreciation. On the north side of the Arno, between Ponte Vecchio and Ponte Santa Trinita, there’s a row of old houses that face the river, soaking their weary old feet in its yellow waters. They look battered, grimy, cracked, altogether dingy and impoverished. It’s as if fifty years ago, the muddy waters rose over their chimneys and then receded, leaving them forever coated in its unpleasant slime. Yet, because the river is yellow, and the light is yellow, and here and there, some fading surface, a glimpse of color, or a hint of atmosphere echoes this peculiar tale—because, simply put, it is Florence, it is Italy—the enamored observer, having seen only bland brown-stone exteriors no more fascinating than sandpaper, finds that these shabby homes don’t invoke thoughts of a health inspector but instead create their own standard of happiness and unapologetically live by it. Recently, during the misty autumn nights, the moon has cast a soft glow on them, transforming their shabbiness into something strangely beautiful and ghostly. The murky river flows quietly beneath, while the pale buildings hover above like a faint, hazy mist. The faintest backdrop at the opera, when the tenor sings his sweetest notes, seems hardly connected to a world bound by responsibility.
{Illustration: ON THE ARNO, FLORENCE.}
{Illustration: ON THE ARNO, FLORENCE.}
What it is that infuses so rich an interest into the general charm is difficult to say in a few words; yet as we wander hither and thither in quest of sacred canvas and immortal bronze and stone we still feel the genius of the place hang about. Two industrious English ladies, the Misses Horner, have lately published a couple of volumes of “Walks” by the Arno-side, and their work is a long enumeration of great artistic deeds. These things remain for the most part in sound preservation, and, as the weeks go by and you spend a constant portion of your days among them the sense of one of the happiest periods of human Taste—to put it only at that—settles upon your spirit. It was not long; it lasted, in its splendour, for less than a century; but it has stored away in the palaces and churches of Florence a heritage of beauty that these three enjoying centuries since haven’t yet exhausted. This forms a clear intellectual atmosphere into which you may turn aside from the modern world and fill your lungs as with the breath of a forgotten creed. The memorials of the past here address us moreover with a friendliness, win us by we scarcely know what sociability, what equal amenity, that we scarce find matched in other great esthetically endowed communities and periods. Venice, with her old palaces cracking under the weight of their treasures, is, in her influence, insupportably sad; Athens, with her maimed marbles and dishonoured memories, transmutes the consciousness of sensitive observers, I am told, into a chronic heartache; but in one’s impression of old Florence the abiding felicity, the sense of saving sanity, of something sound and human, predominates, offering you a medium still conceivable for life. The reason of this is partly, no doubt, the “sympathetic” nature, the temperate joy, of Florentine art in general—putting the sole Dante, greatest of literary artists, aside; partly the tenderness of time, in its lapse, which, save in a few cases, has been as sparing of injury as if it knew that when it should have dimmed and corroded these charming things it would have nothing so sweet again for its tooth to feed on. If the beautiful Ghirlandaios and Lippis are fading, this generation will never know it. The large Fra Angelico in the Academy is as clear and keen as if the good old monk stood there wiping his brushes; the colours seem to sing, as it were, like new-fledged birds in June. Nothing is more characteristic of early Tuscan art than the high-reliefs of Luca della Robbia; yet there isn’t one of them that, except for the unique mixture of freshness with its wisdom, of candour with its expertness, mightn’t have been modelled yesterday.
What gives such a rich interest to the overall charm is hard to express in just a few words; however, as we explore the area in search of sacred paintings and timeless bronze and stone, we still feel the genius of the place surrounding us. Two dedicated English women, the Misses Horner, have recently published a couple of volumes titled “Walks” along the Arno, and their work is a detailed account of remarkable artistic achievements. Most of these remain well-preserved, and as the weeks pass and you spend a significant part of your days among them, you begin to feel the essence of one of the happiest eras of human taste—just to put it that way—settling into your spirit. It wasn’t a long period; it lasted, in its glory, for less than a century, but it has left behind in the palaces and churches of Florence a legacy of beauty that these past three centuries haven't yet fully tapped into. This creates a clear intellectual atmosphere that allows you to step away from the modern world and breathe in like you’re inhaling the essence of a forgotten belief. Furthermore, the remnants of the past here greet us with warmth, drawing us in with a kind of sociability and easy friendliness rarely found in other great culturally rich communities and periods. Venice, with her ancient palaces crumbling under the weight of their treasures, is heartbreakingly sad in her influence; Athens, with her broken marbles and tarnished memories, reportedly transforms the awareness of sensitive observers into a constant heartache; yet in one’s impression of old Florence, an enduring happiness, a sense of redeeming sanity, of something solid and human, prevails, providing a still conceivable space for life. Part of this is surely due to the “sympathetic” nature, the moderate joy of Florentine art in general—especially if we set aside the singular Dante, the greatest of literary artists; partly due to the gentle passage of time, which, except in a few cases, has carefully avoided damage as if it knew that once it dulled and eroded these beautiful things, it wouldn't have anything so sweet to graze on again. Even if the beautiful works by Ghirlandaio and Lippi are fading, this generation will likely never notice it. The large Fra Angelico in the Academy is as vibrant and sharp as if the good old monk were there, cleaning his brushes; the colors seem to sing, like young birds in June. Nothing is more typical of early Tuscan art than the high-reliefs of Luca della Robbia; yet none of them, except for their unique blend of freshness with wisdom and innocence with skill, could not have been crafted just yesterday.
But perhaps the best image of the absence of stale melancholy or wasted splendour, of the positive presence of what I have called temperate joy, in the Florentine impression and genius, is the bell-tower of Giotto, which rises beside the cathedral. No beholder of it will have forgotten how straight and slender it stands there, how strangely rich in the common street, plated with coloured marble patterns, and yet so far from simple or severe in design that we easily wonder how its author, the painter of exclusively and portentously grave little pictures, should have fashioned a building which in the way of elaborate elegance, of the true play of taste, leaves a jealous modern criticism nothing to miss. Nothing can be imagined at once more lightly and more pointedly fanciful; it might have been handed over to the city, as it stands, by some Oriental genie tired of too much detail. Yet for all that suggestion it seems of no particular time—not grey and hoary like a Gothic steeple, not cracked and despoiled like a Greek temple; its marbles shining so little less freshly than when they were laid together, and the sunset lighting up its cornice with such a friendly radiance, that you come at last to regard it simply as the graceful, indestructible soul of the place made visible. The Cathedral, externally, for all its solemn hugeness, strikes the same note of would-be reasoned elegance and cheer; it has conventional grandeur, of course, but a grandeur so frank and ingenuous even in its parti-pris. It has seen so much, and outlived so much, and served so many sad purposes, and yet remains in aspect so full of the fine Tuscan geniality, the feeling for life, one may almost say the feeling for amusement, that inspired it. Its vast many-coloured marble walls become at any rate, with this, the friendliest note of all Florence; there is an unfailing charm in walking past them while they lift their great acres of geometrical mosaic higher in the air than you have time or other occasion to look. You greet them from the deep street as you greet the side of a mountain when you move in the gorge—not twisting back your head to keep looking at the top, but content with the minor accidents, the nestling hollows and soft cloud-shadows, the general protection of the valley.
But maybe the best representation of the absence of stale sadness or wasted beauty, and the clear presence of what I call tempered joy, in the Florentine impression and genius, is Giotto’s bell tower, which stands next to the cathedral. Anyone who has seen it won’t forget how straight and slender it stands there, how strangely rich it looks among the common streets, covered in colored marble patterns, and yet it's far from simple or severe in design that we easily marvel at how its creator, the painter of exclusively serious little pictures, managed to design a building that showcases such elaborate elegance and true taste, leaving nothing for modern critics to complain about. Nothing could be imagined that is at once more light yet pointedly whimsical; it seems as if it were gifted to the city by some Oriental genie tired of excessive detail. Yet despite that appearance, it feels timeless—not dull and ancient like a Gothic spire, not worn and stripped like a Greek temple; its marbles shine almost as freshly as when they were first laid down, and the sunset illuminates its cornice with such friendly radiance that you ultimately see it simply as the graceful, indestructible soul of the place made visible. The Cathedral, on the outside, despite its solemn size, strikes the same note of intended elegance and cheer; it has conventional grandeur, of course, but a grandeur that is so honest and straightforward, even in its aim. It has witnessed so much, survived so much, and served many somber purposes, yet maintains an appearance filled with fine Tuscan warmth, a love for life, one might even say a love for joy, that inspired it. Its vast, multicolored marble walls become, at the very least, the friendliest aspect of all Florence; there is an undeniable charm in walking past them as they stretch their great expanse of geometric mosaic high into the air, more than you have time to truly admire. You greet them from the deep street like you would greet the side of a mountain while walking in a gorge—not turning back to keep looking at the top, but content with the smaller features, the nestled hollows and soft cloud shadows, the overall embrace of the valley.
Florence is richer in pictures than we really know till we have begun to look for them in outlying corners. Then, here and there, one comes upon lurking values and hidden gems that it quite seems one might as a good New Yorker quietly “bag” for the so aspiring Museum of that city without their being missed. The Pitti Palace is of course a collection of masterpieces; they jostle each other in their splendour, they perhaps even, in their merciless multitude, rather fatigue our admiration. The Uffizi is almost as fine a show, and together with that long serpentine artery which crosses the Arno and connects them, making you ask yourself, whichever way you take it, what goal can be grand enough to crown such a journey, they form the great central treasure-chamber of the town. But I have been neglecting them of late for love of the Academy, where there are fewer copyists and tourists, above all fewer pictorial lions, those whose roar is heard from afar and who strike us as expecting overmuch to have it their own way in the jungle. The pictures at the Academy are all, rather, doves—the whole impression is less pompously tropical. Selection still leaves one too much to say, but I noted here, on my last occasion, an enchanting Botticelli so obscurely hung, in one of the smaller rooms, that I scarce knew whether most to enjoy or to resent its relegation. Placed, in a mean black frame, where you wouldn’t have looked for a masterpiece, it yet gave out to a good glass every characteristic of one. Representing as it does the walk of Tobias with the angel, there are really parts of it that an angel might have painted; but I doubt whether it is observed by half-a-dozen persons a year. That was my excuse for my wanting to know, on the spot, though doubtless all sophistically, what dishonour, could the transfer be artfully accomplished, a strong American light and a brave gilded frame would, comparatively speaking, do it. There and then it would, shine with the intense authority that we claim for the fairest things—would exhale its wondrous beauty as a sovereign example. What it comes to is that this master is the most interesting of a great band—the only Florentine save Leonardo and Michael in whom the impulse was original and the invention rare. His imagination is of things strange, subtle and complicated—things it at first strikes us that we moderns have reason to know, and that it has taken us all the ages to learn; so that we permit ourselves to wonder how a “primitive” could come by them. We soon enough reflect, however, that we ourselves have come by them almost only through him, exquisite spirit that he was, and that when we enjoy, or at least when we encounter, in our William Morrises, in our Rossettis and Burne-Joneses, the note of the haunted or over-charged consciousness, we are but treated, with other matters, to repeated doses of diluted Botticelli. He practically set with his own hand almost all the copies to almost all our so-called pre-Raphaelites, earlier and later, near and remote.
Florence has more art than we realize until we start searching for it in hidden corners. It's then that we discover hidden treasures and overlooked gems that could easily be snatched up by a savvy New Yorker for the Museum back home without anyone noticing. The Pitti Palace is obviously filled with masterpieces; they compete with each other in their brilliance and might even overwhelm our appreciation due to their sheer number. The Uffizi is almost just as impressive, and the long winding bridge that connects them over the Arno makes you wonder what grand destination could justify such a trip. Together, they form the central treasure chest of the city. However, I’ve been avoiding them lately in favor of the Academy, where there are fewer copyists and tourists, and most importantly, fewer artistic show-offs whose loud presence feels out of place. The artwork at the Academy has a more subtle, peaceful vibe—nothing as bold as what you find elsewhere. While there’s still a lot to say, last time I visited, I noticed a breathtaking Botticelli painting tucked away in a small room, so obscurely placed that I didn't know whether to admire or resent its hidden status. Framed in a plain black frame, where you wouldn’t expect to find a masterpiece, it still revealed every quality of one when viewed through a good lens. Depicting Tobias walking with the angel, certain parts of it seem like something an angel could have painted, but I doubt more than a handful of people notice it each year. That prompted me to think, in a somewhat roundabout way, about how a strong American light and a bold gilded frame could, if done artfully, elevate it. In that case, it would shine with the commanding beauty that we reserve for the finest things—radiating stunning beauty as a prime example. Essentially, this artist is the most intriguing of a talented group—the only Florentine besides Leonardo and Michelangelo whose creativity felt original and whose vision was unique. His imagination encompasses strange, subtle, and intricate ideas—concepts that we moderns feel we know well and that have taken us ages to understand; so it makes us wonder how a "primitive" could have come to grasp them. However, we soon realize that we have mostly learned them through him, such a remarkable spirit, and that when we appreciate, or at least when we encounter, the haunted or deeply thoughtful aspects in our William Morrises, Rossettis, and Burne-Joneses, we’re really getting diluted doses of Botticelli's genius. He practically produced nearly all the copies for almost all our so-called pre-Raphaelites, whether earlier or later, nearby or far away.
Let us at the same time, none the less, never fail of response to the great Florentine geniality at large. Fra Angelico, Filippo Lippi, Ghirlandaio, were not “subtly” imaginative, were not even riotously so; but what other three were ever more gladly observant, more vividly and richly true? If there should some time be a weeding out of the world’s possessions the best works of the early Florentines will certainly be counted among the flowers. With the ripest performances of the Venetians—by which I don’t mean the over-ripe—we can but take them for the most valuable things in the history of art. Heaven forbid we should be narrowed down to a cruel choice; but if it came to a question of keeping or losing between half-a-dozen Raphaels and half-a-dozen things it would be a joy to pick out at the Academy, I fear that, for myself, the memory of the Transfiguration, or indeed of the other Roman relics of the painter, wouldn’t save the Raphaels. And yet this was so far from the opinion of a patient artist whom I saw the other day copying the finest of Ghirlandaios—a beautiful Adoration of the Kings at the Hospital of the Innocenti. Here was another sample of the buried art-wealth of Florence. It hangs in an obscure chapel, far aloft, behind an altar, and though now and then a stray tourist wanders in and puzzles a while over the vaguely-glowing forms, the picture is never really seen and enjoyed. I found an aged Frenchman of modest mien perched on a little platform beneath it, behind a great hedge of altar-candlesticks, with an admirable copy all completed. The difficulties of his task had been well-nigh insuperable, and his performance seemed to me a real feat of magic. He could scarcely move or turn, and could find room for his canvas but by rolling it together and painting a small piece at a time, so that he never enjoyed a view of his ensemble. The original is gorgeous with colour and bewildering with decorative detail, but not a gleam of the painter’s crimson was wanting, not a curl in his gold arabesques. It seemed to me that if I had copied a Ghirlandaio in such conditions I would at least maintain for my own credit that he was the first painter in the world. “Very good of its kind,” said the weary old man with a shrug of reply for my raptures; “but oh, how far short of Raphael!” However that may be, if the reader chances to observe this consummate copy in the so commendable Museum devoted in Paris to such works, let him stop before it with a due reverence; it is one of the patient things of art. Seeing it wrought there, in its dusky nook, under such scant convenience, I found no bar in the painter’s foreignness to a thrilled sense that the old art-life of Florence isn’t yet extinct. It still at least works spells and almost miracles.
At the same time, let's not ignore the wonderful spirit of Florence. Fra Angelico, Filippo Lippi, and Ghirlandaio weren't "subtly" imaginative, nor were they excessively so; but what other three artists were ever more observant and vividly true? If there ever comes a time to clear out the world's treasures, the best works of the early Florentines will surely be counted among the gems. In comparison to the most refined works of the Venetians—by which I don’t mean the overly polished—we can only recognize them as some of the most valuable pieces in the history of art. Heaven forbid we should have to make a harsh choice; but if it came down to choosing between half a dozen Raphaels and half a dozen works that could bring joy at the Academy, I fear that, for myself, the memory of the Transfiguration, or even the other Roman masterpieces by the painter, wouldn't save the Raphaels. Yet this was far from the opinion of a patient artist I saw the other day, who was copying the finest Ghirlandaio—a beautiful Adoration of the Kings at the Hospital of the Innocenti. Here was another example of Florence's hidden artistic wealth. It hangs in an obscure chapel, high up behind an altar, and while an occasional tourist may wander in and ponder the vaguely glowing figures, the picture is never truly seen or appreciated. I found an elderly Frenchman, modest in appearance, perched on a small platform beneath it, hidden behind a large array of altar candles, with an impressive copy nearly finished. The challenges of his task were nearly insurmountable, and his work seemed like a true feat of magic. He could hardly move or turn, and had to roll his canvas up to make space, painting only small sections at a time, so he never got to see the entire piece. The original is stunning with color and amazing decorative detail, and yet not a gleam of the artist’s crimson was missing, nor a curl in his golden arabesques. If I had copied a Ghirlandaio under such conditions, I would at least insist for my own sake that he was the greatest painter in the world. “Very good for its kind,” the tired old man replied with a shrug to my admiration; “but oh, how far it falls short of Raphael!” Regardless, if the reader happens to see this masterful copy at the praiseworthy museum in Paris dedicated to such works, let him stop before it with the respect it deserves; it is one of the patient pieces of art. Seeing it created there, in its dim corner, under such limited conditions, I felt no barrier in the artist's foreignness to the thrilling sense that the old artistic spirit of Florence is still alive. It still weaves spells and almost performs miracles.
1873.
FLORENTINE NOTES
I
Yesterday that languid organism known as the Florentine Carnival put on a momentary semblance of vigour, and decreed a general corso through the town. The spectacle was not brilliant, but it suggested some natural reflections. I encountered the line of carriages in the square before Santa Croce, of which they were making the circuit. They rolled solemnly by, with their inmates frowning forth at each other in apparent wrath at not finding each other more worth while. There were no masks, no costumes, no decorations, no throwing of flowers or sweetmeats. It was as if each carriageful had privately and not very heroically resolved not to be at costs, and was rather discomfited at finding that it was getting no better entertainment than it gave. The middle of the piazza was filled with little tables, with shouting mountebanks, mostly disguised in battered bonnets and crinolines, offering chances in raffles for plucked fowls and kerosene lamps. I have never thought the huge marble statue of Dante, which overlooks the scene, a work of the last refinement; but, as it stood there on its high pedestal, chin in hand, frowning down on all this cheap foolery, it seemed to have a great moral intention. The carriages followed a prescribed course—through Via Ghibellina, Via del Proconsolo, past the Badia and the Bargello, beneath the great tessellated cliffs of the Cathedral, through Via Tornabuoni and out into ten minutes’ sunshine beside the Arno. Much of all this is the gravest and stateliest part of Florence, a quarter of supreme dignity, and there was an almost ludicrous incongruity in seeing Pleasure leading her train through these dusky historic streets. It was most uncomfortably cold, and in the absence of masks many a fair nose was fantastically tipped with purple. But as the carriages crept solemnly along they seemed to keep a funeral march—to follow an antique custom, an exploded faith, to its tomb. The Carnival is dead, and these good people who had come abroad to make merry were funeral mutes and grave-diggers. Last winter in Rome it showed but a galvanised life, yet compared with this humble exhibition it was operatic. At Rome indeed it was too operatic. The knights on horseback there were a bevy of circus-riders, and I’m sure half the mad revellers repaired every night to the Capitol for their twelve sous a day.
Yesterday, the laid-back event known as the Florentine Carnival put on a brief show of energy and announced a parade through the town. The spectacle wasn't dazzling, but it sparked some thoughts. I came across the line of carriages in the square in front of Santa Croce, which they were circling. They rolled by solemnly, with their passengers glaring at each other in apparent frustration at not finding each other more interesting. There were no masks, no costumes, no decorations, and no throwing of flowers or sweets. It felt like each carriage-full had privately decided not to engage too much and was somewhat disappointed to realize they were getting no better entertainment than what they offered. The center of the piazza was filled with small tables and loud street performers, mostly dressed in worn-out bonnets and crinolines, offering chances to win raffles for plucked chickens and kerosene lamps. I've never considered the massive marble statue of Dante, which overlooks the scene, a masterpiece of refinement, but as it stood there on its high pedestal, chin in hand, scowling down at all this cheap nonsense, it seemed to carry a strong moral message. The carriages followed a set route—through Via Ghibellina, Via del Proconsolo, past the Badia and the Bargello, under the grand mosaic cliffs of the Cathedral, through Via Tornabuoni, and out into ten minutes of sunshine beside the Arno. Much of this area is the most serious and dignified part of Florence, a quarter of supreme importance, and there was a nearly comical mismatch in seeing Pleasure leading her parade through these shadowy historic streets. It was uncomfortably cold, and without masks, many a pretty nose was humorously tinged with purple. But as the carriages moved solemnly along, they seemed to be in a funeral procession—following an ancient tradition, an outdated belief, to its grave. The Carnival is dead, and these folks who came out to celebrate were like mourners and grave-diggers. Last winter in Rome, it showed a revived energy, yet compared to this modest display, it was theatrical. In Rome, it was indeed too theatrical. The knights on horseback there were a group of circus performers, and I'm sure half the wild revelers went every night to the Capitol for their twelve sous a day.
I have just been reading over the Letters of the President de Brosses. A hundred years ago, in Venice, the Carnival lasted six months; and at Rome for many weeks each year one was free, under cover of a mask, to perpetrate the most fantastic follies and cultivate the most remunerative vices. It’s very well to read the President’s notes, which have indeed a singular interest; but they make us ask ourselves why we should expect the Italians to persist in manners and practices which we ourselves, if we had responsibilities in the matter, should find intolerable. The Florentines at any rate spend no more money nor faith on the carnivalesque. And yet this truth has a qualification; for what struck me in the whole spectacle yesterday, and prompted these observations, was not at all the more or less of costume of the occupants of the carriages, but the obstinate survival of the merrymaking instinct in the people at large. There could be no better example of it than that so dim a shadow of entertainment should keep all Florence standing and strolling, densely packed for hours, in the cold streets. There was nothing to see that mightn’t be seen on the Cascine any fine day in the year—nothing but a name, a tradition, a pretext for sweet staring idleness. The faculty of making much of common things and converting small occasions into great pleasures is, to a son of communities strenuous as ours are strenuous, the most salient characteristic of the so-called Latin civilisations. It charms him and vexes him, according to his mood; and for the most part it represents a moral gulf between his own temperamental and indeed spiritual sense of race, and that of Frenchmen and Italians, far wider than the watery leagues that a steamer may annihilate. But I think his mood is wisest when he accepts the “foreign” easy surrender to all the senses as the sign of an unconscious philosophy of life, instilled by the experience of centuries—the philosophy of people who have lived long and much, who have discovered no short cuts to happiness and no effective circumvention of effort, and so have come to regard the average lot as a ponderous fact that absolutely calls for a certain amount of sitting on the lighter tray of the scales. Florence yesterday then took its holiday in a natural, placid fashion that seemed to make its own temper an affair quite independent of the splendour of the compensation decreed on a higher line to the weariness of its legs. That the corso was stupid or lively was the shame or the glory of the powers “above”—the fates, the gods, the forestieri, the town-councilmen, the rich or the stingy. Common Florence, on the narrow footways, pressed against the houses, obeyed a natural need in looking about complacently, patiently, gently, and never pushing, nor trampling, nor swearing, nor staggering. This liberal margin for festivals in Italy gives the masses a more than man-of-the-world urbanity in taking their pleasure.
I’ve just been reading the Letters of President de Brosses. A hundred years ago, in Venice, Carnival lasted six months; and in Rome for many weeks each year, people could let loose and indulge in the wildest antics while hidden behind masks. It’s interesting to read the President’s notes, which definitely hold a unique appeal; but they make us wonder why we should expect Italians to continue traditions and behaviors that we ourselves would find unbearable if we were in charge. The Florentines, at least, don’t invest as much money or faith in the carnival spirit. Yet, there’s a twist to this observation; what really caught my attention yesterday was not so much the costumes of those in the carriages, but the stubborn persistence of the joy-seeking spirit among the general populace. There’s no better example than how a faint echo of entertainment could keep all of Florence standing and strolling, tightly packed for hours, in the chilly streets. There was nothing to see that you couldn’t see on any beautiful day at the Cascine—just a name, a tradition, a reason for leisurely daydreaming. The ability to make the most out of simple things and turn small opportunities into great pleasures is, for someone from communities as vigorous as ours, the most striking feature of so-called Latin cultures. It can either enchant or annoy him, depending on his mood; and for the most part, it signifies a significant cultural gap between his own temperamental and truly spiritual sense of identity, and that of the French and Italians, much broader than the physical distance a steamer can cover. But I think his perspective is clearest when he acknowledges the “foreign” relaxed surrender to all the senses as a sign of an unconscious life philosophy, shaped by centuries of experience—an outlook from people who have lived extensively and found no shortcuts to happiness or effective ways to avoid effort, thus coming to view everyday life as an undeniable reality that requires some enjoyment along the way. So, Florence yesterday embraced its holiday in a natural, calm manner that seemed to make its mood wholly independent of the grandeur promised by those in higher positions to ease the exhaustion of its legs. Whether the corso was dull or lively reflected poorly or positively on the forces “above”—the fates, the gods, the outsiders, the city council members, the wealthy or the stingy. Ordinary Florentines, on the narrow sidewalks, nestled against the buildings, responded to a basic need by looking around with satisfaction, patience, and gentleness, never pushing, trampling, swearing, or staggering. This generous allowance for festivities in Italy grants the masses a sophisticated urbanity when it comes to enjoying their leisure.
Meanwhile it occurs to me that by a remote New England fireside an unsophisticated young person of either sex is reading in an old volume of travels or an old romantic tale some account of these anniversaries and appointed revels as old Catholic lands offer them to view. Across the page swims a vision of sculptured palace-fronts draped in crimson and gold and shining in a southern sun; of a motley train of maskers sweeping on in voluptuous confusion and pelting each other with nosegays and love-letters. Into the quiet room, quenching the rhythm of the Connecticut clock, floats an uproar of delighted voices, a medley of stirring foreign sounds, an echo of far-heard music of a strangely alien cadence. But the dusk is falling, and the unsophisticated young person closes the book wearily and wanders to the window. The dusk is falling on the beaten snow. Down the road is a white wooden meeting-house, looking grey among the drifts. The young person surveys the prospect a while, and then wanders back and stares at the fire. The Carnival of Venice, of Florence, of Rome; colour and costume, romance and rapture! The young person gazes in the firelight at the flickering chiaroscuro of the future, discerns at last the glowing phantasm of opportunity, and determines with a wild heart-beat to go and see it all—twenty years hence!
Meanwhile, it strikes me that by a cozy New England fireside, an innocent young person of either gender is reading an old travel book or a romantic story about these celebrations and festivities that old Catholic countries showcase. A vision floats across the page of grand palaces adorned in crimson and gold, basking in the warm southern sun; a colorful group of masked revelers moving about in joyful chaos, throwing nosegays and love letters at each other. Into the quiet room, interrupting the soothing tick of the Connecticut clock, comes a lively noise of happy voices, a mix of exciting foreign sounds, and the distant echo of music with a strangely foreign rhythm. But as dusk descends, the innocent young person tiredly closes the book and wanders to the window. The dusk settles over the powdered snow. Down the road stands a white wooden meeting house, looking gray among the drifts. The young person gazes at the scene for a moment, then drifts back and stares into the fire. The Carnival of Venice, Florence, Rome; color, costumes, romance, and exhilaration! The young person gazes into the firelight at the flickering shadows of the future, finally seeing the glowing vision of opportunity and decides with a racing heartbeat to go and experience it all—twenty years from now!
II
A couple of days since, driving to Fiesole, we came back by the castle of Vincigliata. The afternoon was lovely; and, though there is as yet (February 10th) no visible revival of vegetation, the air was full of a vague vernal perfume, and the warm colours of the hills and the yellow western sunlight flooding the plain seemed to contain the promise of Nature’s return to grace. It’s true that above the distant pale blue gorge of Vallombrosa the mountain-line was tipped with snow; but the liberated soul of Spring was nevertheless at large. The view from Fiesole seems vaster and richer with each visit. The hollow in which Florence lies, and which from below seems deep and contracted, opens out into an immense and generous valley and leads away the eye into a hundred gradations of distance. The place itself showed, amid its chequered fields and gardens, with as many towers and spires as a chess-board half cleared. The domes and towers were washed over with a faint blue mist. The scattered columns of smoke, interfused with the sinking sunlight, hung over them like streamers and pennons of silver gauze; and the Arno, twisting and curling and glittering here and there, was a serpent cross-striped with silver.
A couple of days ago, while driving to Fiesole, we returned by the castle of Vincigliata. The afternoon was beautiful; and, although it's still early (February 10th) and there’s no visible sign of plant life returning, the air was filled with a vague springlike scent, and the warm colors of the hills combined with the yellow light of the setting sun pouring over the plain seemed to promise Nature’s return to beauty. It’s true that the distant pale blue gorge of Vallombrosa had snowy peaks; but the spirit of Spring was nonetheless free. The view from Fiesole feels bigger and richer with each visit. The hollow where Florence is located, which seems deep and narrow from below, opens into a vast and expansive valley, drawing the eye into countless layers of distance. The area itself displayed a patchwork of fields and gardens, dotted with as many towers and spires as a chessboard partially cleared. The domes and towers were shrouded in a light blue mist. The wisps of smoke, mingling with the fading sunlight, floated above them like silver streamers and flags; and the Arno, winding and shimmering here and there, resembled a serpent streaked with silver.
Vincigliata is a product of the millions, the leisure and the eccentricity, I suppose people say, of an English gentleman—Mr. Temple Leader, whose name should be commemorated. You reach the castle from Fiesole by a narrow road, returning toward Florence by a romantic twist through the hills and passing nothing on its way save thin plantations of cypress and cedar. Upward of twenty years ago, I believe, this gentleman took a fancy to the crumbling shell of a mediæval fortress on a breezy hill-top overlooking the Val d’ Arno and forthwith bought it and began to “restore” it. I know nothing of what the original ruin may have cost; but in the dusky courts and chambers of the present elaborate structure this impassioned archæologist must have buried a fortune. He has, however, the compensation of feeling that he has erected a monument which, if it is never to stand a feudal siege, may encounter at least some critical over-hauling. It is a disinterested work of art and really a triumph of æsthetic culture. The author has reproduced with minute accuracy a sturdy home-fortress of the fourteenth century, and has kept throughout such rigid terms with his model that the result is literally uninhabitable to degenerate moderns. It is simply a massive facsimile, an elegant museum of archaic images, mainly but most amusingly counterfeit, perched on a spur of the Apennines. The place is most politely shown. There is a charming cloister, painted with extremely clever “quaint” frescoes, celebrating the deeds of the founders of the castle—a cloister that is everything delightful a cloister should be except truly venerable and employable. There is a beautiful castle court, with the embattled tower climbing into the blue far above it, and a spacious loggia with rugged medallions and mild-hued Luca della Robbias fastened unevenly into the walls. But the apartments are the great success, and each of them as good a “reconstruction” as a tale of Walter Scott; or, to speak frankly, a much better one. They are all low-beamed and vaulted, stone-paved, decorated in grave colours and lighted, from narrow, deeply recessed windows, through small leaden-ringed plates of opaque glass.
Vincigliata is the result of the countless resources, leisure, and quirks of an English gentleman—Mr. Temple Leader, whose name deserves to be remembered. You get to the castle from Fiesole via a narrow road that winds back toward Florence through the hills, passing only slender stands of cypress and cedar along the way. Over twenty years ago, this gentleman became fascinated by the crumbling remains of a medieval fortress on a breezy hilltop overlooking the Val d’Arno, bought it on the spot, and started to “restore” it. I don’t know how much the original ruin cost; however, this passionate archaeologist must have invested a fortune in developing the shadowy courtyards and rooms of the current intricate structure. Still, he enjoys the satisfaction of knowing he has created a monument that, while it may never withstand a feudal siege, could at least undergo some critical scrutiny. It’s a selfless piece of art and truly a triumph of aesthetic culture. The creator has accurately recreated a sturdy home-fortress from the fourteenth century, sticking so closely to his model that the result is essentially unlivable for modern-day folks. It’s simply a large replica, an elegant museum of outdated imagery, mostly playful yet amusingly fake, situated on an outcrop of the Apennines. The site is shown to visitors with great courtesy. There’s a lovely cloister, adorned with exceptionally clever “quaint” frescoes that celebrate the castle’s founders—a cloister that is everything charming a cloister should be, except for being genuinely ancient and functional. There’s a beautiful castle courtyard, with the battlement tower rising high above it, and a spacious loggia featuring rugged medallions and softly colored Luca della Robbias unevenly set into the walls. But the real highlight is the apartments, each as impressive a “reconstruction” as a story by Walter Scott; or honestly, a much better one. They all have low-beamed and vaulted ceilings, stone floors, muted colors, and are illuminated by narrow, deeply recessed windows with small leaden-ringed panes of opaque glass.
The details are infinitely ingenious and elaborately grim, and the indoor atmosphere of mediaevalism most forcibly revived. No compromising fact of domiciliary darkness and cold is spared us, no producing condition of mediaeval manners not glanced at. There are oaken benches round the room, of about six inches in depth, and gaunt fauteuils of wrought leather, illustrating the suppressed transitions which, as George Eliot says, unite all contrasts—offering a visible link between the modern conceptions of torture and of luxury. There are fireplaces nowhere but in the kitchen, where a couple of sentry-boxes are inserted on either side of the great hooded chimney-piece, into which people might creep and take their turn at being toasted and smoked. One may doubt whether this dearth of the hearthstone could have raged on such a scale, but it’s a happy stroke in the representation of an Italian dwelling of any period. It shows how the graceful fiction that Italy is all “meridional” flourished for some time before being refuted by grumbling tourists. And yet amid this cold comfort you feel the incongruous presence of a constant intuitive regard for beauty. The shapely spring of the vaulted ceilings; the richly figured walls, coarse and hard in substance as they are; the charming shapes of the great platters and flagons in the deep recesses of the quaintly carved black dressers; the wandering hand of ornament, as it were, playing here and there for its own diversion in unlighted corners—such things redress, to our fond credulity, with all sorts of grace, the balance of the picture.
The details are incredibly clever and darkly elaborate, bringing a strong sense of medieval atmosphere. We're faced with every uncomfortable aspect of home life—darkness and cold—and no aspect of medieval manners goes unmentioned. There are oak benches around the room, only about six inches deep, and thin leather armchairs that highlight the subtle changes—just as George Eliot says—they connect modern ideas of torture and luxury. Fireplaces are only in the kitchen, where a couple of small alcoves are built into each side of the large, hooded chimney, allowing people to huddle in and take turns warming up and getting smoky. One might wonder if the lack of hearths could really have been this extreme, but it perfectly captures the essence of an Italian home from any era. It reflects the charming idea that Italy is all about “meridional” warmth, a notion that lasted until it was challenged by disappointed tourists. And yet, even amid this cold environment, there's an unexpected, ongoing appreciation for beauty. The elegant arch of the vaulted ceilings; the richly patterned walls, despite being rough and hard; the lovely shapes of the large plates and jugs tucked away in the intricately carved black dressers; the playful touches of decoration peeking out in the dark corners—these elements beautifully balance the overall picture for our hopeful imagination.
And yet, somehow, with what dim, unillumined vision one fancies even such inmates as those conscious of finer needs than the mere supply of blows and beef and beer would meet passing their heavy eyes over such slender household beguilements! These crepuscular chambers at Vincigliata are a mystery and a challenge; they seem the mere propounding of an answerless riddle. You long, as you wander through them, turning up your coat-collar and wondering whether ghosts can catch bronchitis, to answer it with some positive notion of what people so encaged and situated “did,” how they looked and talked and carried themselves, how they took their pains and pleasures, how they counted off the hours. Deadly ennui seems to ooze out of the stones and hang in clouds in the brown corners. No wonder men relished a fight and panted for a fray. “Skull-smashers” were sweet, ears ringing with pain and ribs cracking in a tussle were soothing music, compared with the cruel quietude of the dim-windowed castle. When they came back they could only have slept a good deal and eased their dislocated bones on those meagre oaken ledges. Then they woke up and turned about to the table and ate their portion of roasted sheep. They shouted at each other across the board and flung the wooden plates at the servingmen. They jostled and hustled and hooted and bragged; and then, after gorging and boozing and easing their doublets, they squared their elbows one by one on the greasy table and buried their scarred foreheads and dreamed of a good gallop after flying foes. And the women? They must have been strangely simple—simpler far than any moral archraeologist can show us in a learned restoration. Of course, their simplicity had its graces and devices; but one thinks with a sigh that, as the poor things turned away with patient looks from the viewless windows to the same, same looming figures on the dusky walls, they hadn’t even the consolation of knowing that just this attitude and movement, set off by their peaked coifs, their falling sleeves and heavily-twisted trains, would sow the seed of yearning envy—of sorts—on the part of later generations.
And yet, somehow, with what dim, unclear vision one imagines even those who have finer needs than just food and drink would glance their heavy eyes over such minimal household comforts! These shadowy rooms at Vincigliata are a mystery and a challenge; they seem to pose an unanswered riddle. As you wander through them, pulling up your coat collar and wondering if ghosts can catch bronchitis, you yearn to figure out what people confined here actually “did,” how they looked, talked, and carried themselves, how they experienced pain and pleasure, how they counted the hours. A sense of deadly boredom seems to seep out of the stones and hang in the dark corners. It’s no wonder that men craved a fight and yearned for a brawl. Getting into a “skull-smashing” fight was like sweet music, with ears ringing from pain and cracked ribs being a welcome change from the cruel silence of the dim castle. When they returned, they must have mostly slept and tried to ease their sore bodies on those narrow wooden ledges. Then they woke up, turned to the table, and ate their share of roasted sheep. They shouted at each other across the table and tossed the wooden plates at the servants. They jostled and argued and bragged; and then, after gorging themselves and drinking heavily and adjusting their clothing, they leaned their elbows on the greasy table and buried their scarred foreheads, dreaming of a good chase after fleeing enemies. And the women? They must have been oddly simple—far simpler than any moral archaeologist could portray in a scholarly restoration. Of course, their simplicity had its own charms; but one thinks with a sigh that, as they quietly turned away from the invisible windows to the same, looming figures on the dark walls, they didn’t even have the comfort of knowing that this very posture and movement, accented by their pointed headdresses, trailing sleeves, and heavily twisted trains, would spark a kind of longing envy in future generations.
There are moods in which one feels the impulse to enter a tacit protest against too gross an appetite for pure aesthetics in this starving and sinning world. One turns half away, musingly, from certain beautiful useless things. But the healthier state of mind surely is to lay no tax on any really intelligent manifestation of the curious, and exquisite. Intelligence hangs together essentially, all along the line; it only needs time to make, as we say, its connections. The massive pastiche of Vincigliata has no superficial use; but, even if it were less complete, less successful, less brilliant, I should feel a reflective kindness for it. So disinterested and expensive a toy is its own justification; it belongs to the heroics of dilettantism.
There are times when you feel the need to quietly protest against a blatant obsession with pure beauty in this struggling and flawed world. You turn away, thoughtfully pondering certain beautifully useless things. However, the healthier mindset is definitely to not impose any limits on genuinely intelligent expressions of the curious and exquisite. Intelligence is interconnected at its core; it just requires time to make, as we say, its connections. The grand pastiche of Vincigliata has no practical use; but even if it were less complete, less successful, or less impressive, I would still feel a thoughtful affection for it. Such a selfless and extravagant creation is its own reason for existing; it represents the nobility of passion for the arts.
III
One grows to feel the collection of pictures at the Pitti Palace splendid rather than interesting. After walking through it once or twice you catch the key in which it is pitched—you know what you are likely not to find on closer examination; none of the works of the uncompromising period, nothing from the half-groping geniuses of the early time, those whose colouring was sometimes harsh and their outlines sometimes angular. Vague to me the principle on which the pictures were originally gathered and of the aesthetic creed of the princes who chiefly selected them. A princely creed I should roughly call it—the creed of people who believed in things presenting a fine face to society; who esteemed showy results rather than curious processes, and would have hardly cared more to admit into their collection a work by one of the laborious precursors of the full efflorescence than to see a bucket and broom left standing in a state saloon. The gallery contains in literal fact some eight or ten paintings of the early Tuscan School—notably two admirable specimens of Filippo Lippi and one of the frequent circular pictures of the great Botticelli—a Madonna, chilled with tragic prescience, laying a pale cheek against that of a blighted Infant. Such a melancholy mother as this of Botticelli would have strangled her baby in its cradle to rescue it from the future. But of Botticelli there is much to say. One of the Filippo Lippis is perhaps his masterpiece—a Madonna in a small rose-garden (such a “flowery close” as Mr. William Morris loves to haunt), leaning over an Infant who kicks his little human heels on the grass while half-a-dozen curly-pated angels gather about him, looking back over their shoulders with the candour of children in tableaux vivants, and one of them drops an armful of gathered roses one by one upon the baby. The delightful earthly innocence of these winged youngsters is quite inexpressible. Their heads are twisted about toward the spectator as if they were playing at leap-frog and were expecting a companion to come and take a jump. Never did “young” art, never did subjective freshness, attempt with greater success to represent those phases. But these three fine works are hung over the tops of doors in a dark back room—the bucket and broom are thrust behind a curtain. It seems to me, nevertheless, that a fine Filippo Lippi is good enough company for an Allori or a Cigoli, and that that too deeply sentient Virgin of Botticelli might happily balance the flower-like irresponsibility of Raphael’s “Madonna of the Chair.”
You start to appreciate the collection of paintings at the Pitti Palace as stunning rather than just interesting. After walking through it once or twice, you pick up on its overall vibe—you realize what you probably won’t find upon closer inspection; none of the works from that intense period, nothing from the early artists who were still figuring things out, those whose colors could be harsh and outlines quite sharp. The reason these paintings were originally gathered and the aesthetic beliefs of the princes who mainly chose them are unclear to me. I’d roughly call it a princely belief—a view from people who valued appearances over substance; who preferred flashy results instead of intriguing processes, and would hardly have cared to include a piece by one of the hard-working forerunners of the grand style, any more than they’d want to leave a bucket and broom in a fancy parlor. The gallery actually contains about eight or ten pieces from the early Tuscan School—notably two wonderful works by Filippo Lippi and one of Botticelli's frequent circular paintings—a Madonna, filled with tragic foresight, resting a pale cheek against that of a troubled Infant. Such a sorrowful mother as Botticelli’s might have considered ending her baby’s life in the cradle to spare it from the future. But there’s a lot to discuss about Botticelli. One of the Filippo Lippis might be his masterpiece—a Madonna in a small rose garden (the kind of “flowery close” Mr. William Morris loves to visit), leaning over an Infant who kicks his tiny feet on the grass while half a dozen curly-haired angels gather around him, looking back over their shoulders with the innocence of children in tableaux vivants, and one of them drops roses one by one onto the baby. The lovely earthly innocence of these winged little ones is beyond words. Their heads are turned toward the viewer as if they’re playing leapfrog and waiting for a friend to join in. Never has “young” art, never has subjective freshness, succeeded more in capturing those moments. But these three stunning works are hung high above the doors in a dim back room—the bucket and broom are hidden behind a curtain. Still, it seems to me that an excellent Filippo Lippi is a worthy match for an Allori or a Cigoli, and that the deeply expressive Virgin of Botticelli could beautifully balance the carefree charm of Raphael’s “Madonna of the Chair.”
Taking the Pitti collection, however, simply for what it pretends to be, it gives us the very flower of the sumptuous, the courtly, the grand-ducal. It is chiefly official art, as one may say, but it presents the fine side of the type—the brilliancy, the facility, the amplitude, the sovereignty of good taste. I agree on the whole with a nameless companion and with what he lately remarked about his own humour on these matters; that, having been on his first acquaintance with pictures nothing if not critical, and held the lesson incomplete and the opportunity slighted if he left a gallery without a headache, he had come, as he grew older, to regard them more as the grandest of all pleasantries and less as the most strenuous of all lessons, and to remind himself that, after all, it is the privilege of art to make us friendly to the human mind and not to make us suspicious of it. We do in fact as we grow older unstring the critical bow a little and strike a truce with invidious comparisons. We work off the juvenile impulse to heated partisanship and discover that one spontaneous producer isn’t different enough from another to keep the all-knowing Fates from smiling over our loves and our aversions. We perceive a certain human solidarity in all cultivated effort, and are conscious of a growing accommodation of judgment—an easier disposition, the fruit of experience, to take the joke for what it is worth as it passes. We have in short less of a quarrel with the masters we don’t delight in, and less of an impulse to pin all our faith on those in whom, in more zealous days, we fancied that we made our peculiar meanings. The meanings no longer seem quite so peculiar. Since then we have arrived at a few in the depths of our own genius that are not sensibly less striking.
Taking the Pitti collection for what it is, it showcases the pinnacle of luxury, nobility, and grandeur. It’s mostly official art, but it highlights the best aspects—brilliance, ease, breadth, and an undeniable sense of good taste. I generally agree with a friend who recently mentioned his own thoughts on the subject; having been sharply critical of art when he first encountered it, feeling like he hadn’t fully experienced it unless he left a gallery with a headache, he has come to see it more as one of the greatest forms of amusement rather than a difficult lesson. He reminds himself that art's purpose is to connect us to the human experience, not make us skeptical of it. As we get older, we ease up on our critical stance and make peace with less favorable comparisons. We let go of our youthful tendency for passionate allegiances and realize that one creator isn’t different enough from another to prevent fate from laughing at our likes and dislikes. We see a sense of shared humanity in all artistic efforts and develop a more lenient perspective—an easier attitude born from experience, where we appreciate art for what it is as it goes by. In short, we feel less animosity toward the artists we don’t enjoy, and we’re less inclined to place all our trust in those we once believed held special meanings for us. Those meanings no longer feel so unique. Instead, we’ve discovered a few from deep within ourselves that are just as striking.
And yet it must be added that all this depends vastly on one’s mood—as a traveller’s impressions do, generally, to a degree which those who give them to the world would do well more explicitly to declare. We have our hours of expansion and those of contraction, and yet while we follow the traveller’s trade we go about gazing and judging with unadjusted confidence. We can’t suspend judgment; we must take our notes, and the notes are florid or crabbed, as the case may be. A short time ago I spent a week in an ancient city on a hill-top, in the humour, for which I was not to blame, which produces crabbed notes. I knew it at the time, but couldn’t help it. I went through all the motions of liberal appreciation; I uncapped in all the churches and on the massive ramparts stared all the views fairly out of countenance; but my imagination, which I suppose at bottom had very good reasons of its own and knew perfectly what it was about, refused to project into the dark old town and upon the yellow hills that sympathetic glow which forms half the substance of our genial impressions. So it is that in museums and palaces we are alternate radicals and conservatives. On some days we ask but to be somewhat sensibly affected; on others, Ruskin-haunted, to be spiritually steadied. After a long absence from the Pitti Palace I went back there the other morning and transferred myself from chair to chair in the great golden-roofed saloons—the chairs are all gilded and covered with faded silk—in the humour to be diverted at any price. I needn’t mention the things that diverted me; I yawn now when I think of some of them. But an artist, for instance, to whom my kindlier judgment has made permanent concessions is that charming Andrea del Sarto. When I first knew him, in my cold youth, I used to say without mincing that I didn’t like him. Cet âge est sans pitié. The fine sympathetic, melancholy, pleasing painter! He has a dozen faults, and if you insist pedantically on your rights the conclusive word you use about him will be the word weak. But if you are a generous soul you will utter it low—low as the mild grave tone of his own sought harmonies. He is monotonous, narrow, incomplete; he has but a dozen different figures and but two or three ways of distributing them; he seems able to utter but half his thought, and his canvases lack apparently some final return on the whole matter—some process which his impulse failed him before he could bestow. And yet in spite of these limitations his genius is both itself of the great pattern and lighted by the air of a great period. Three gifts he had largely: an instinctive, unaffected, unerring grace; a large and rich, and yet a sort of withdrawn and indifferent sobriety; and best of all, as well as rarest of all, an indescribable property of relatedness as to the moral world. Whether he was aware of the connection or not, or in what measure, I cannot say; but he gives, so to speak, the taste of it. Before his handsome vague-browed Madonnas; the mild, robust young saints who kneel in his foregrounds and look round at you with a conscious anxiety which seems to say that, though in the picture, they are not of it, but of your own sentient life of commingled love and weariness; the stately apostles, with comely heads and harmonious draperies, who gaze up at the high-seated Virgin like early astronomers at a newly seen star—there comes to you the brush of the dark wing of an inward life. A shadow falls for the moment, and in it you feel the chill of moral suffering. Did the Lippis suffer, father or son? Did Raphael suffer? Did Titian? Did Rubens suffer? Perish the thought—it wouldn’t be fair to us that they should have had everything. And I note in our poor second-rate Andrea an element of interest lacking to a number of stronger talents.
And yet, it should be noted that all of this really depends a lot on one’s mood—just like a traveler’s impressions typically do, to an extent that those who share them with the world should be more transparent about. We have our moments of expansion and contraction, and yet, in our role as travelers, we go around observing and judging with misplaced confidence. We can’t hold back our judgment; we have to take our notes, and those notes end up being either overly enthusiastic or quite harsh, depending on the situation. Not long ago, I spent a week in an ancient city on a hilltop, in a mood that I couldn’t control, which led to my critical notes. I realized it at the time, but I couldn’t change it. I went through all the motions of generous appreciation; I explored all the churches and stared at the stunning views from the massive ramparts. However, my imagination, which probably had its own valid reasons and knew exactly what it was doing, refused to cast that warm, sympathetic glow over the dark old town and the golden hills, which is part of what makes our positive impressions. So, in museums and palaces, we swing between being radicals and conservatives. Some days, we just want to be genuinely affected; on other days, haunted by Ruskin, we seek spiritual grounding. After not visiting the Pitti Palace for a long time, I returned there the other morning and moved from chair to chair in the grand, golden-roofed salons—the chairs are all gilded and covered with faded silk—eager to be entertained at any cost. I won’t even bring up the things that entertained me; I yawn just thinking about some of them. But there’s one artist, for whom my more generous judgment has made lasting concessions, and that’s the delightful Andrea del Sarto. When I first saw his work in my cold youth, I outright said I didn’t like him. Cet âge est sans pitié. The fine, sympathetic, melancholy, and charming painter! He has several flaws, and if you pedantically insist on your point, you’d probably call him weak. But if you have a generous spirit, you’ll say it quietly—quietly, like the soft, grave tone of his carefully crafted harmonies. He can be monotonous, limited, and incomplete; he has only a dozen different figures and just two or three ways of arranging them; he seems only able to express half of his thoughts, and his paintings sometimes feel like they miss some final detail—a process he couldn’t complete before he ran out of inspiration. And yet, despite these shortcomings, his genius is genuinely of a grand design and illuminated by the spirit of a great era. He possesses three major gifts: an instinctive, natural, and impeccable grace; a broad richness, and yet a sort of reserved and indifferent sobriety; and, perhaps most importantly, a rare and indescribable quality of connection to the moral world. Whether he was aware of this connection or to what extent, I can’t tell; but he seems to convey, so to speak, a sense of it. Before his beautiful, vague-browed Madonnas; the gentle, robust young saints who kneel in his foregrounds and look at you with a conscious worry that suggests, though they’re in the painting, they’re not truly part of it—they’re connected to your own experience of love and fatigue; the dignified apostles, with pleasing features and harmonious drapery, gazing up at the high-seated Virgin like early astronomers looking at a newly discovered star—there’s a fleeting touch of an inward life. A shadow passes for a moment, and in it, you feel the chill of moral suffering. Did the Lippis suffer, father or son? Did Raphael suffer? Did Titian? Did Rubens suffer? Let’s not entertain that thought—it wouldn’t be fair to us if they had it all. And I notice in our lesser Andrea an element of interest that many stronger talents lack.
Interspersed with him at the Pitti hang the stronger and the weaker in splendid abundance. Raphael is there, strong in portraiture—easy, various, bountiful genius that he was—and (strong here isn’t the word, but) happy beyond the common dream in his beautiful “Madonna of the Chair.” The general instinct of posterity seems to have been to treat this lovely picture as a semi-sacred, an almost miraculous, manifestation. People stand in a worshipful silence before it, as they would before a taper-studded shrine. If we suspend in imagination on the right of it the solid, realistic, unidealised portrait of Leo the Tenth (which hangs in another room) and transport to the left the fresco of the School of Athens from the Vatican, and then reflect that these were three separate fancies of a single youthful, amiable genius we recognise that such a producing consciousness must have been a “treat.” My companion already quoted has a phrase that he “doesn’t care for Raphael,” but confesses, when pressed, that he was a most remarkable young man. Titian has a dozen portraits of unequal interest. I never particularly noticed till lately—it is very ill hung—that portentous image of the Emperor Charles the Fifth. He was a burlier, more imposing personage than his usual legend figures, and in his great puffed sleeves and gold chains and full-skirted over-dress he seems to tell of a tread that might sometimes have been inconveniently resonant. But the purpose to have his way and work his will is there—the great stomach for divine right, the old monarchical temperament. The great Titian, in portraiture, however, remains that formidable young man in black, with the small compact head, the delicate nose and the irascible blue eye. Who was he? What was he? “Ritratto virile” is all the catalogue is able to call the picture. “Virile!” Rather! you vulgarly exclaim. You may weave what romance you please about it, but a romance your dream must be. Handsome, clever, defiant, passionate, dangerous, it was not his own fault if he hadn’t adventures and to spare. He was a gentleman and a warrior, and his adventures balanced between camp and court. I imagine him the young orphan of a noble house, about to come into mortgaged estates. One wouldn’t have cared to be his guardian, bound to paternal admonitions once a month over his precocious transactions with the Jews or his scandalous abduction from her convent of such and such a noble maiden.
Interspersed with him at the Pitti are both the strong and the weak in impressive abundance. Raphael is there, strong in portraiture—an easy, diverse, bountiful genius—and (not the right word, but) exceptionally happy in his beautiful “Madonna of the Chair.” The general feeling of future generations seems to have been to treat this lovely painting as a semi-sacred, almost miraculous creation. People stand in reverential silence before it, as they would in front of a shrine filled with candles. If we imagine placing on the right the solid, realistic, unidealized portrait of Leo the Tenth (which hangs in another room) and moving to the left the fresco of the School of Athens from the Vatican, and then consider that these were three separate works by one youthful, charming genius, we realize that such a creative mind must have been a delight. My previously quoted companion has a phrase that he “doesn’t care for Raphael,” but admits, when pressed, that he was a truly remarkable young man. Titian has a dozen portraits of varying interest. I never really noticed until recently—it's poorly displayed—that impressive image of Emperor Charles the Fifth. He was a bulkier, more imposing figure than his usual legend suggests, and in his large puffed sleeves and gold chains, with his full-skirted coat, he seems to convey a presence that might sometimes have been inconveniently loud. But the purpose to assert himself and fulfill his will is evident—the great appetite for divine right, the old monarchical temperament. The great Titian, in portraiture, however, remains that formidable young man in black, with a small compact head, a delicate nose, and an irritable blue eye. Who was he? What was he? “Ritratto virile” is all the catalog manages to call the painting. “Virile!” you might exclaim in disbelief. You can weave whatever romantic tale you want about it, but it remains a fantasy. Handsome, clever, defiant, passionate, dangerous—it wasn’t his fault if he had plenty of adventures. He was a gentleman and a warrior, and his adventures spanned both camp and court. I picture him as the young orphan from a noble family, about to inherit mortgaged lands. One wouldn’t have wanted to be his guardian, having to provide paternal guidance once a month over his daring dealings with the Jews or his scandalous abduction of a noble maiden from her convent.
The Pitti Gallery contains none of Titian’s golden-toned groups; but it boasts a lovely composition by Paul Veronese, the dealer in silver hues—a Baptism of Christ. W—— named it to me the other day as the picture he most enjoyed, and surely painting seems here to have proposed to itself to discredit and annihilate—and even on the occasion of such a subject—everything but the loveliness of life. The picture bedims and enfeebles its neighbours. We ask ourselves whether painting as such can go further. It is simply that here at last the art stands complete. The early Tuscans, as well as Leonardo, as Raphael, as Michael, saw the great spectacle that surrounded them in beautiful sharp-edged elements and parts. The great Venetians felt its indissoluble unity and recognised that form and colour and earth and air were equal members of every possible subject; and beneath their magical touch the hard outlines melted together and the blank intervals bloomed with meaning. In this beautiful Paul Veronese of the Pitti everything is part of the charm—the atmosphere as well as the figures, the look of radiant morning in the white-streaked sky as well as the living human limbs, the cloth of Venetian purple about the loins of the Christ as well as the noble humility of his attitude. The relation to Nature of the other Italian schools differs from that of the Venetian as courtship—even ardent courtship—differs from marriage.
The Pitti Gallery doesn't have any of Titian’s golden-toned collections, but it features a beautiful painting by Paul Veronese, titled The Baptism of Christ. W—— mentioned to me recently that it's his favorite piece, and it's clear that this artwork seems to focus solely on showcasing the beauty of life, even with such a serious subject. The painting dims and weakens its surroundings. We find ourselves wondering if painting can go any farther. Here, at last, the art feels complete. The early Tuscans, along with Leonardo, Raphael, and Michelangelo, saw the grand scene around them in vivid, defined elements. The great Venetians understood its inseparable unity and recognized that form, color, earth, and air were all essential parts of any subject; under their magical touch, the sharp outlines blended, and the empty spaces filled with meaning. In this beautiful Paul Veronese at the Pitti, everything contributes to the charm—the atmosphere and the figures, the bright morning light in the white-streaked sky, the living human limbs, the Venetian purple cloth around Christ’s waist, and the noble humility of his stance. The relationship to nature in the other Italian schools is like intense courtship, while the Venetian approach feels more like marriage.
IV
I went the other day to the secularised Convent of San Marco, paid my franc at the profane little wicket which creaks away at the door—no less than six custodians, apparently, are needed to turn it, as if it may have a recusant conscience—passed along the bright, still cloister and paid my respects to Fra Angelico’s Crucifixion, in that dusky chamber in the basement. I looked long; one can hardly do otherwise. The fresco deals with the pathetic on the grand scale, and after taking in its beauty you feel as little at liberty to go away abruptly as you would to leave church during the sermon. You may be as little of a formal Christian as Fra Angelico was much of one; you yet feel admonished by spiritual decency to let so yearning a view of the Christian story work its utmost will on you. The three crosses rise high against a strange completely crimson sky, which deepens mysteriously the tragic expression of the scene, though I remain perforce vague as to whether this lurid background be a fine intended piece of symbolism or an effective accident of time. In the first case the extravagance quite triumphs. Between the crosses, under no great rigour of composition, are scattered the most exemplary saints—kneeling, praying, weeping, pitying, worshipping. The swoon of the Madonna is depicted at the left, and this gives the holy presences, in respect to the case, the strangest historical or actual air. Everything is so real that you feel a vague impatience and almost ask yourself how it was that amid the army of his consecrated servants our Lord was permitted to suffer. On reflection you see that the painter’s design, so far as coherent, has been simply to offer an immense representation of Pity, and all with such concentrated truth that his colours here seem dissolved in tears that drop and drop, however softly, through all time. Of this single yearning consciousness the figures are admirably expressive. No later painter learned to render with deeper force than Fra Angelico the one state of the spirit he could conceive—a passionate pious tenderness. Immured in his quiet convent, he apparently never received an intelligible impression of evil; and his conception of human life was a perpetual sense of sacredly loving and being loved. But how, immured in his quiet convent, away from the streets and the studios, did he become that genuine, finished, perfectly professional painter? No one is less of a mere mawkish amateur. His range was broad, from this really heroic fresco to the little trumpeting seraphs, in their opaline robes, enamelled, as it were, on the gold margins of his pictures.
I visited the secularized Convent of San Marco the other day, paid my franc at the small, creaky wicket at the door—apparently, it takes six custodians to operate it, as if it has a mind of its own. I walked through the bright, quiet cloister and paid my respects to Fra Angelico’s Crucifixion in the dimly lit basement chamber. I looked for a long time; it's hard to do otherwise. The fresco expresses profound sorrow on a grand scale, and after absorbing its beauty, you feel as compelled to linger as you would if you were in church during a sermon. You might not be a formal Christian like Fra Angelico was, but you still feel a sense of spiritual decency urging you to allow such a poignant depiction of the Christian story to affect you deeply. The three crosses stand tall against a striking crimson sky, which mysteriously enhances the tragic feel of the scene, though I find it difficult to decide whether this intense background is an intentional piece of symbolism or just an unfortunate consequence of age. If it’s the former, then the extravagance really succeeds. Between the crosses, arranged somewhat loosely, are exemplary saints—kneeling, praying, weeping, and worshipping. The swoon of the Madonna is shown on the left, giving the holy figures a strangely realistic historical feel. Everything appears so real that you can't help but feel a vague impatience and almost wonder how it was that, surrounded by his devoted followers, our Lord was allowed to suffer. On reflection, you realize that the painter’s main intention, coherent or not, was to convey an immense representation of Pity, captured with such intense truth that his colors seem to be dissolved in tears that fall softly, through all time. The figures express this single yearning consciousness beautifully. No later artist captured the one emotional state he could conceive—an ardent, pious tenderness—more powerfully than Fra Angelico. Secluded in his peaceful convent, he seemed to have never received any clear impression of evil, and his view of human life was a constant sense of sacredly loving and being loved. But how, while sheltered in his quiet convent, away from the streets and studios, did he become such a genuine, accomplished, and professional painter? He isn’t a mere sentimental amateur. His range was broad, spanning from this truly heroic fresco to the tiny, trumpeting seraphs in their iridescent robes, almost painted on the gold edges of his works.
I sat out the sermon and departed, I hope, with the gentle preacher’s blessing. I went into the smaller refectory, near by, to refresh my memory of the beautiful Last Supper of Domenico Ghirlandaio. It would be putting things coarsely to say that I adjourned thus from a sernlon to a comedy, though Ghirlandaio’s theme, as contrasted with the blessed Angelico’s, was the dramatic spectacular side of human life. How keenly he observed it and how richly he rendered it, the world about him of colour and costume, of handsome heads and pictorial groupings! In his admirable school there is no painter one enjoys—pace Ruskin—more sociably and irresponsibly. Lippo Lippi is simpler, quainter, more frankly expressive; but we retain before him a remnant of the sympathetic discomfort provoked by the masters whose conceptions were still a trifle too large for their means. The pictorial vision in their minds seems to stretch and strain their undeveloped skill almost to a sense of pain. In Ghirlandaio the skill and the imagination are equal, and he gives us a delightful impression of enjoying his own resources. Of all the painters of his time he affects us least as positively not of ours. He enjoyed a crimson mantle spreading and tumbling in curious folds and embroidered with needlework of gold, just as he enjoyed a handsome well-rounded head, with vigorous dusky locks, profiled in courteous adoration. He enjoyed in short the various reality of things, and had the good fortune to live in an age when reality flowered into a thousand amusing graces—to speak only of those. He was not especially addicted to giving spiritual hints; and yet how hard and meagre they seem, the professed and finished realists of our own day, with the spiritual bonhomie or candour that makes half Ghirlandaio’s richness left out! The Last Supper at San Marco is an excellent example of the natural reverence of an artist of that time with whom reverence was not, as one may say, a specialty. The main idea with him has been the variety, the material bravery and positively social charm of the scene, which finds expression, with irrepressible generosity, in the accessories of the background. Instinctively he imagines an opulent garden—imagines it with a good faith which quite tides him over the reflection that Christ and his disciples were poor men and unused to sit at meat in palaces. Great full-fruited orange-trees peep over the wall before which the table is spread, strange birds fly through the air, while a peacock perches on the edge of the partition and looks down on the sacred repast. It is striking that, without any at all intense religious purpose, the figures, in their varied naturalness, have a dignity and sweetness of attitude that admits of numberless reverential constructions. I should call all this the happy tact of a robust faith.
I sat through the sermon and left, hopefully with the gentle preacher’s blessing. I went into the smaller dining hall nearby to refresh my memory of Domenico Ghirlandaio's beautiful Last Supper. It would be overly simplistic to say I moved from a sermon to a comedy, although Ghirlandaio’s theme, in contrast to the blessed Angelico’s, highlighted the dramatic and spectacular side of human life. How keenly he observed it and how richly he rendered it—the world around him full of color and costume, with handsome faces and picturesque groupings! In his wonderful school, there's no painter one enjoys—pace Ruskin—more sociably and casually. Lippo Lippi is simpler, quirkier, more openly expressive; but we still feel a bit of the sympathetic discomfort left by the masters whose ideas were still slightly too grand for their abilities. The artistic vision in their minds seems to stretch and strain their underdeveloped skills almost painfully. In Ghirlandaio, skill and imagination are in harmony, and he gives us a delightful impression of enjoying his own talents. Of all the painters of his time, he feels the least out of place in ours. He enjoyed a crimson cloak flowing and tumbling in interesting folds, embroidered with golden needlework, just as he enjoyed a handsome, well-rounded head, with strong dark hair, shown in respectful adoration. He simply enjoyed the various realities of things and was fortunate to live in an age when reality blossomed into a thousand charming graces—just to name a few. He wasn’t particularly inclined to give spiritual hints; yet how harsh and meager the professed and polished realists of our own day seem, lacking the spiritual bonhomie or candor that leaves out half of Ghirlandaio’s richness! The Last Supper at San Marco is an excellent example of the natural reverence of an artist from that time, for whom reverence wasn’t, so to speak, a specialty. His main idea was the variety, the material bravery, and positively social charm of the scene, which is expressed with undeniable generosity in the details of the background. He instinctively envisions an opulent garden—with a good faith that completely overshadows the fact that Christ and his disciples were poor men and not used to dining in palaces. Great fully-fruited orange trees peek over the wall in front of the table, strange birds fly through the air, while a peacock perches on the edge of the partition and looks down on the sacred meal. It’s striking that, without any intense religious purpose, the figures, in their varied naturalness, have a dignity and sweetness of posture that allows for countless interpretations of reverence. I would call all this the happy sensitivity of a robust faith.
On the staircase leading up to the little painted cells of the Beato Angelico, however, I suddenly faltered and paused. Somehow I had grown averse to the intenser zeal of the Monk of Fiesole. I wanted no more of him that day. I wanted no more macerated friars and spear-gashed sides. Ghirlandaio’s elegant way of telling his story had put me in the humour for something more largely intelligent, more profanely pleasing. I departed, walked across the square, and found it in the Academy, standing in a particular spot and looking up at a particular high-hung picture. It is difficult to speak adequately, perhaps even intelligibly, of Sandro Botticelli. An accomplished critic—Mr. Pater, in his Studies on the History of the Renaissance—has lately paid him the tribute of an exquisite, a supreme, curiosity. He was rarity and distinction incarnate, and of all the multitudinous masters of his group incomparably the most interesting, the one who detains and perplexes and fascinates us most. Exquisitely fine his imagination—infinitely audacious and adventurous his fancy. Alone among the painters of his time he strikes us as having invention. The glow and thrill of expanding observation—this was the feeling that sent his comrades to their easels; but Botticelli’s moved him to reactions and emotions of which they knew nothing, caused his faculty to sport and wander and explore on its own account. These impulses have fruits often so ingenious and so lovely that it would be easy to talk nonsense about them. I hope it is not nonsense, however, to say that the picture to which I just alluded (the “Coronation of the Virgin,” with a group of life-sized saints below and a garland of miniature angels above) is one of the supremely beautiful productions of the human mind. It is hung so high that you need a good glass to see it; to say nothing of the unprecedented delicacy of the work. The lower half is of moderate interest; but the dance of hand-clasped angels round the heavenly couple above has a beauty newly exhaled from the deepest sources of inspiration. Their perfect little hands are locked with ineffable elegance; their blowing robes are tossed into folds of which each line is a study; their charming feet have the relief of the most delicate sculpture. But, as I have already noted, of Botticelli there is much, too much to say—besides which Mr. Pater has said all. Only add thus to his inimitable grace of design that the exquisite pictorial force driving him goes a-Maying not on wanton errands of its own, but on those of some mystic superstition which trembles for ever in his heart.
On the staircase leading up to the little painted cells of Beato Angelico, I suddenly hesitated and stopped. I had somehow developed a dislike for the intense zeal of the Monk of Fiesole. I didn’t want any more of that today. I was done with emaciated friars and spear-wounded sides. Ghirlandaio’s elegant storytelling had put me in the mood for something broader and more enjoyable. I left, walked across the square, and found that in the Academy, standing in a special spot and gazing up at a particular high-hung painting. It’s hard to talk adequately, maybe even clearly, about Sandro Botticelli. A well-regarded critic—Mr. Pater, in his Studies on the History of the Renaissance—has recently honored him with the praise of being exquisitely curious and unique. He was a rare and distinctive talent, and among all the many masters of his time, he is by far the most interesting, the one who captivates, confuses, and fascinates us the most. His imagination is exquisitely refined—his creativity is infinitely bold and adventurous. Unlike the other painters of his era, he seems to possess true inventiveness. The excitement and thrill of expanding discovery inspired his contemporaries to pick up their brushes; but Botticelli was driven to engage in reactions and feelings that they couldn't grasp, allowing his talent to roam and explore independently. These impulses often lead to works that are so clever and beautiful that it’s easy to speak foolishly about them. I hope it’s not nonsense to say that the painting I just mentioned (the “Coronation of the Virgin,” featuring a group of life-sized saints below and a garland of tiny angels above) is one of the most beautiful creations of the human mind. It’s hung so high that you need a good lens to appreciate it; not to mention the unprecedented delicacy of the work. The lower half is of moderate interest, but the dance of hand-clasped angels around the divine couple above has a beauty newly drawn from the deepest wells of inspiration. Their perfect little hands are locked together with indescribable elegance; their flowing robes are tossed into folds that make each line a study; their charming feet have the relief of the most delicate sculpture. But, as I’ve noted, there is so much to say about Botticelli—too much, in fact—besides what Mr. Pater has already expressed. Just add to his unmatched grace of design that the exquisite artistic drive within him doesn't wander off aimlessly but follows some mystic belief that forever stirs in his heart.
{Illustration: THE GREAT EAVES, FLORENCE}
{Illustration: THE GREAT EAVES, FLORENCE}
V
The more I look at the old Florentine domestic architecture the more I like it—that of the great examples at least; and if I ever am able to build myself a lordly pleasure-house I don’t see how in conscience I can build it different from these. They are sombre and frowning, and look a trifle more as if they were meant to keep people out than to let them in; but what equally “important” type—if there be an equally important—is more expressive of domiciliary dignity and security and yet attests them with a finer æesthetic economy? They are impressively “handsome,” and yet contrive to be so by the simplest means. I don’t say at the smallest pecuniary cost—that’s another matter. There is money buried in the thick walls and diffused through the echoing excess of space. The merchant nobles of the fifteenth century had deep and full pockets, I suppose, though the present bearers of their names are glad to let out their palaces in suites of apartments which are occupied by the commercial aristocracy of another republic. One is told of fine old mouldering chambers of which possession is to be enjoyed for a sum not worth mentioning. I am afraid that behind these so gravely harmonious fronts there is a good deal of dusky discomfort, and I speak now simply of the large serious faces themselves as you can see them from the street; see them ranged cheek to cheek, in the grey historic light of Via dei Bardi, Via Maggio, Via degli Albizzi. The force of character, the familiar severity and majesty, depend on a few simple features: on the great iron-caged windows of the rough-hewn basement; on the noble stretch of space between the summit of one high, round-topped window and the bottom of that above; on the high-hung sculptured shield at the angle of the house; on the flat far-projecting roof; and, finally, on the magnificent tallness of the whole building, which so dwarfs our modern attempts at size. The finest of these Florentine palaces are, I imagine, the tallest habitations in Europe that are frankly and amply habitations—not mere shafts for machinery of the American grain-elevator pattern. Some of the creations of M. Haussmann in Paris may climb very nearly as high; but there is all the difference in the world between the impressiveness of a building which takes breath, as it were, some six or seven times, from storey to storey, and of one that erects itself to an equal height in three long-drawn pulsations. When a house is ten windows wide and the drawing-room floor is as high as a chapel it can afford but three floors. The spaciousness of some of those ancient drawing-rooms is that of a Russian steppe. The “family circle,” gathered anywhere within speaking distance, must resemble a group of pilgrims encamped in the desert on a little oasis of carpet. Madame Gryzanowska, living at the top of a house in that dusky, tortuous old Borgo Pinti, initiated me the other evening most good-naturedly, lamp in hand, into the far-spreading mysteries of her apartment. Such quarters seem a translation into space of the old-fashioned idea of leisure. Leisure and “room” have been passing out of our manners together, but here and there, being of stouter structure, the latter lingers and survives.
The more I look at the old Florentine domestic architecture, the more I appreciate it—especially the great examples; and if I ever get the chance to build myself a grand getaway, I can't imagine doing it any differently than these. They are dark and imposing, slightly more like they were designed to keep people out than to welcome them in; but what other "important" style—if there even is one—is more expressive of home dignity and security while also showcasing a finer aesthetic simplicity? They are strikingly "handsome," yet manage to achieve that with the simplest means. I’m not saying it comes at the lowest financial cost—that’s a different issue. There's a lot of money sunk into the thick walls and spread throughout the expansive, echoing spaces. The merchant nobles of the fifteenth century likely had deep pockets, though the current holders of their names are happy to rent out their palaces as apartments, occupied by the commercial elite of a different republic. You hear about beautiful old crumbling rooms that can be rented for a price that’s barely worth mentioning. I’m afraid that behind these grand and harmonious exteriors, there’s quite a bit of shadowy discomfort, and I’m referring here only to the large, serious facades that you can see from the street; see them lined up next to each other in the grey historical light of Via dei Bardi, Via Maggio, Via degli Albizzi. The strength of character, the familiar severity and majesty, depend on a few simple features: the large iron-barred windows of the rough basement; the noble space between the top of one high, rounded window and the bottom of the one above; the high-hanging sculpted shield at the corner of the house; the flat, protruding roof; and finally, the impressive height of the whole building, which completely overshadows our modern attempts at size. The finest of these Florentine palaces are, I believe, the tallest residences in Europe that are genuinely and fully homes—not just tall structures like those American grain elevators. Some of Haussmann's creations in Paris might reach similarly great heights; but there’s a world of difference between the impressiveness of a building that takes a breath, so to speak, six or seven times from one floor to the next, and one that reaches the same height in three long stretches. When a house is ten windows wide and the drawing-room floor is as high as a chapel, it can only manage three floors. The spaciousness of some of those ancient drawing-rooms is reminiscent of a Russian steppe. The "family circle," gathered anywhere within earshot, must look like a group of pilgrims camped in the desert on a little oasis of carpet. Madame Gryzanowska, living at the top of a house in that dark, winding old Borgo Pinti, kindly introduced me the other evening, lamp in hand, to the vast mysteries of her apartment. Such spaces seem like a physical manifestation of the old-fashioned idea of leisure. Leisure and "room" have been fading from our lives together, but here and there, some sturdier remnants of the latter still linger and survive.
Here and there, indeed, in this blessed Italy, reluctantly modern in spite alike of boasts and lamentations, it seems to have been preserved for curiosity’s and fancy’s sake, with a vague, sweet odour of the embalmer’s spices about it. I went the other morning to the Corsini Palace. The proprietors obviously are great people. One of the ornaments of Rome is their great white-faced palace in the dark Trastevere and its voluminous gallery, none the less delectable for the poorness of the pictures. Here they have a palace on the Arno, with another large, handsome, respectable and mainly uninteresting collection. It contains indeed three or four fine examples of early Florentines. It was not especially for the pictures that I went, however; and certainly not for the pictures that I stayed. I was under the same spell as the inveterate companion with whom I walked the other day through the beautiful private apartments of the Pitti Palace and who said: “I suppose I care for nature, and I know there have been times when I have thought it the greatest pleasure in life to lie under a tree and gaze away at blue hills. But just now I had rather lie on that faded sea-green satin sofa and gaze down through the open door at that retreating vista of gilded, deserted, haunted chambers. In other words I prefer a good ‘interior’ to a good landscape. The impression has a greater intensity—the thing itself a more complex animation. I like fine old rooms that have been occupied in a fine old way. I like the musty upholstery, the antiquated knick-knacks, the view out of the tall deep-embrasured windows at garden cypresses rocking against a grey sky. If you don’t know why, I’m afraid I can’t tell you.” It seemed to me at the Palazzo Corsini that I did know why. In places that have been lived in so long and so much and in such a fine old way, as my friend said—that is under social conditions so multifold and to a comparatively starved and democratic sense so curious—the past seems to have left a sensible deposit, an aroma, an atmosphere. This ghostly presence tells you no secrets, but it prompts you to try and guess a few. What has been done and said here through so many years, what has been ventured or suffered, what has been dreamed or despaired of? Guess the riddle if you can, or if you think it worth your ingenuity. The rooms at Palazzo Corsini suggest indeed, and seem to recall, but a monotony of peace and plenty. One of them imaged such a noble perfection of a home-scene that I dawdled there until the old custodian came shuffling back to see whether possibly I was trying to conceal a Caravaggio about my person: a great crimson-draped drawing-room of the amplest and yet most charming proportions; walls hung with large dark pictures, a great concave ceiling frescoed and moulded with dusky richness, and half-a-dozen south windows looking out on the Arno, whose swift yellow tide sends up the light in a cheerful flicker. I fear that in my appreciation of the particular effect so achieved I uttered a monstrous folly—some momentary willingness to be maimed or crippled all my days if I might pass them in such a place. In fact half the pleasure of inhabiting this spacious saloon would be that of using one’s legs, of strolling up and down past the windows, one by one, and making desultory journeys from station to station and corner to corner. Near by is a colossal ball-room, domed and pilastered like a Renaissance cathedral, and super-abundantly decorated with marble effigies, all yellow and grey with the years.
Here and there, indeed, in this beautiful Italy, reluctantly modern despite its praises and complaints, it seems to have been preserved for curiosity’s and imagination’s sake, with a faint, sweet scent of embalming spices lingering. I went the other morning to the Corsini Palace. The owners are clearly important people. One of the highlights of Rome is their impressive white-faced palace in the dark Trastevere and its extensive gallery, which is still enjoyable despite the mediocrity of the paintings. Here they have a palace on the Arno, with another large, beautiful, respectable, but mainly unexciting collection. It does have a few fine examples of early Florentine art. I didn’t go there primarily for the paintings; and certainly, I didn’t stay for the paintings either. I found myself under the same spell as an old friend who walked with me through the stunning private apartments of the Pitti Palace the other day. He said: “I suppose I appreciate nature, and I know there have been times when I thought it was the greatest pleasure in life to lie under a tree and gaze at blue hills. But right now I’d prefer to lie on that faded sea-green satin sofa and look down through the open door at that fading view of golden, empty, haunted rooms. In other words, I prefer a beautiful ‘interior’ to a beautiful landscape. The impact is more intense—the essence itself is a more intricate energy. I love fine old rooms that have been lived in beautifully. I enjoy the musty upholstery, the old knick-knacks, the view through the tall, deep-set windows at garden cypresses swaying against a grey sky. If you don’t understand why, I’m afraid I can't explain it.” It seemed to me at the Palazzo Corsini that I did understand why. In places that have been lived in for so long, as my friend mentioned—that is under social conditions so varied and to a relatively unfulfilled and democratic sense so intriguing—the past seems to have left a noticeable mark, an aroma, an atmosphere. This ghostly presence doesn’t reveal any secrets, but it nudges you to try and guess a few. What has been said and done here over so many years, what has been risked or endured, what has been dreamed or despaired? Try to solve the riddle if you can, or if you think it’s worth your effort. The rooms at Palazzo Corsini actually suggest, and seem to evoke, just a monotony of peace and abundance. One of them portrayed such a perfect image of a home scene that I lingered there until the old custodian came shuffling back to check if I was perhaps trying to hide a Caravaggio on me: a grand crimson-draped drawing room of the largest and yet most charming proportions; walls adorned with large dark paintings, a vast concave ceiling frescoed and molded with rich tones, and half a dozen south-facing windows looking out on the Arno, whose swift yellow current sends up light in a cheerful flicker. I fear that in my admiration for the particular effect achieved, I uttered a ridiculous folly—some momentary willingness to be maimed or crippled all my days if I could spend them in such a place. In fact, half the joy of living in this spacious salon would be the pleasure of using my legs, strolling back and forth past the windows, one by one, and making aimless journeys from spot to spot and corner to corner. Nearby is a colossal ballroom, domed and columned like a Renaissance cathedral, and extravagantly decorated with marble figures, all yellow and grey with age.
VI
In the Carthusian Monastery outside the Roman Gate, mutilated and profaned though it is, one may still snuff up a strong if stale redolence of old Catholicism and old Italy. The road to it is ugly, being encumbered with vulgar waggons and fringed with tenements suggestive of an Irish-American suburb. Your interest begins as you come in sight of the convent perched on its little mountain and lifting against the sky, around the bell-tower of its gorgeous chapel, a coronet of clustered cells. You make your way into the lower gate, through a clamouring press of deformed beggars who thrust at you their stumps of limbs, and you climb the steep hillside through a shabby plantation which it is proper to fancy was better tended in the monkish time. The monks are not totally abolished, the government having the grace to await the natural extinction of the half-dozen old brothers who remain, and who shuffle doggedly about the cloisters, looking, with their white robes and their pale blank old faces, quite anticipatory ghosts of their future selves. A prosaic, profane old man in a coat and trousers serves you, however, as custodian. The melancholy friars have not even the privilege of doing you the honours of their dishonour. One must imagine the pathetic effect of their former silent pointings to this and that conventual treasure under stress of the feeling that such pointings were narrowly numbered. The convent is vast and irregular—it bristles with those picture-making arts and accidents which one notes as one lingers and passes, but which in Italy the overburdened memory learns to resolve into broadly general images. I rather deplore its position at the gates of a bustling city—it ought rather to be lodged in some lonely fold of the Apennines. And yet to look out from the shady porch of one of the quiet cells upon the teeming vale of the Arno and the clustered towers of Florence must have deepened the sense of monastic quietude.
In the Carthusian Monastery outside the Roman Gate, even though it’s damaged and disrespected, you can still catch a strong, albeit stale, scent of old Catholicism and old Italy. The road to it is unattractive, filled with tacky wagons and lined with buildings that remind you of an Irish-American neighborhood. Your curiosity piques as you catch sight of the convent sitting on its little hill, silhouetted against the sky, with its bell tower surrounded by clusters of cells. You navigate through the lower gate, pushing past a noisy crowd of deformed beggars who shove their stumps of limbs toward you, then you climb the steep hill through a worn-out area that you imagine was better cared for back in the monks' heyday. The monks haven’t been entirely wiped out; the government has had the decency to wait for the natural passing of the half-dozen old brothers who remain, shuffling slowly around the cloisters, looking like ghosts of their future selves in their white robes and pale, expressionless faces. However, a down-to-earth old man in a coat and pants acts as your guide. The sad friars don't even have the honor of serving you in their dishonor. You can only imagine the touching effect of their former silent gestures toward the convent treasures, knowing their time for doing so is limited. The convent is large and irregular—it’s filled with picturesque sights and moments that catch your eye as you linger, but which in Italy, the burdened memory learns to distill into broad images. I really wish it weren’t located at the edge of a bustling city—it would be better situated in some remote part of the Apennines. Still, looking out from the shaded porch of one of the quiet cells over the vibrant valley of the Arno and the clustered towers of Florence must have intensified the feeling of monastic peace.
The chapel, or rather the church, which is of great proportions and designed by Andrea Orcagna, the primitive painter, refines upon the consecrated type or even quite glorifies it. The massive cincture of black sculptured stalls, the dusky Gothic roof, the high-hung, deep-toned pictures and the superb pavement of verd-antique and dark red marble, polished into glassy lights, must throw the white-robed figures of the gathered friars into the highest romantic relief. All this luxury of worship has nowhere such value as in the chapels of monasteries, where we find it contrasted with the otherwise so ascetic economy of the worshippers. The paintings and gildings of their church, the gem-bright marbles and fantastic carvings, are really but the monastic tribute to sensuous delight—an imperious need for which the fond imagination of Rome has officiously opened the door. One smiles when one thinks how largely a fine starved sense for the forbidden things of earth, if it makes the most of its opportunities, may gratify this need under cover of devotion. Nothing is too base, too hard, too sordid for real humility, but nothing too elegant, too amiable, too caressing, caressed, caressable, for the exaltation of faith. The meaner the convent cell the richer the convent chapel. Out of poverty and solitude, inanition and cold, your honest friar may rise at his will into a Mahomet’s Paradise of luxurious analogies.
The chapel, or really the church, which is quite large and designed by Andrea Orcagna, the original painter, refines the traditional style or even enhances it. The sturdy black sculptured stalls, the dark Gothic ceiling, the high-hanging, deep-toned paintings, and the stunning floor made of verd-antique and dark red marble, polished to a shiny finish, must make the white-robed figures of the gathered friars stand out dramatically. This lavishness in worship holds the most significance in monastery chapels, where it contrasts sharply with the otherwise austere lifestyle of the worshippers. The paintings and gildings of their church, the bright gem-like marbles and intricate carvings, are actually just the monastic nod to sensory pleasure—an undeniable craving that the indulgent imagination of Rome has conveniently opened the door to. It’s amusing to think about how a finely tuned desire for the forbidden pleasures of the earth, if it takes full advantage of its chances, can satisfy this need while pretending to be devoted. Nothing is too lowly, too tough, or too filthy for true humility, but nothing is too elegant, too friendly, or too inviting for the upliftment of faith. The more basic the convent cell, the more opulent the convent chapel. From poverty and solitude, hunger and cold, your earnest friar can elevate himself at will into a luxurious paradise of delightful analogies.
There are further various dusky subterranean oratories where a number of bad pictures contend faintly with the friendly gloom. Two or three of these funereal vaults, however, deserve mention. In one of them, side by side, sculptured by Donatello in low relief, lie the white marble effigies of the three members of the Accaiuoli family who founded the convent in the thirteenth century. In another, on his back, on the pavement, rests a grim old bishop of the same stout race by the same honest craftsman. Terribly grim he is, and scowling as if in his stony sleep he still dreamed of his hates and his hard ambitions. Last and best, in another low chapel, with the trodden pavement for its bed, shines dimly a grand image of a later bishop—Leonardo Buonafede, who, dying in 1545, owes his monument to Francesco di San Gallo. I have seen little from this artist’s hand, but it was clearly of the cunningest. His model here was a very sturdy old prelate, though I should say a very genial old man. The sculptor has respected his monumental ugliness, but has suffused it with a singular homely charm—a look of confessed physical comfort in the privilege of paradise. All these figures have an inimitable reality, and their lifelike marble seems such an incorruptible incarnation of the genius of the place that you begin to think of it as even more reckless than cruel on the part of the present public powers to have begun to pull the establishment down, morally speaking, about their ears. They are lying quiet yet a while; but when the last old friar dies and the convent formally lapses, won’t they rise on their stiff old legs and hobble out to the gates and thunder forth anathemas before which even a future and more enterprising régime may be disposed to pause?
There are several dark, underground chapels where some bad paintings barely compete with the inviting gloom. However, a couple of these somber vaults deserve a mention. In one of them, side by side, sculpted by Donatello in low relief, lie the white marble depictions of the three members of the Accaiuoli family who founded the convent in the 13th century. In another, a grim old bishop from the same sturdy lineage rests on his back on the pavement, also by the same honest craftsman. He looks terrifyingly grim, scowling as if in his stony sleep he still dreams of his resentments and relentless ambitions. Last and best, in another small chapel, the well-worn pavement is home to a dimly shining grand image of a later bishop—Leonardo Buonafede, who, having died in 1545, owes his monument to Francesco di San Gallo. I’ve seen little of this artist’s work, but it was clearly very skillful. His model here was a strong old prelate, though I would say a very friendly old man. The sculptor has honored his monumental ugliness but infused it with a unique, down-to-earth charm—a look of genuine physical comfort in the bliss of paradise. All these figures have an unmistakable reality, and their lifelike marble seems such an unblemishable embodiment of the spirit of the place that you start to think it’s even more reckless than cruel for the current authorities to have begun to morally dismantle the establishment around them. They’re resting quietly for now, but when the last old friar passes away and the convent is officially closed down, won’t they rise on their stiff old legs and shuffle to the gates, shouting curses that even a future and bolder regime might think twice about?
Out of the great central cloister open the snug little detached dwellings of the absent fathers. When I said just now that the Certosa in Val d’Ema gives you a glimpse of old Italy I was thinking of this great pillared quadrangle, lying half in sun and half in shade, of its tangled garden-growth in the centre, surrounding the ancient customary well, and of the intense blue sky bending above it, to say nothing of the indispensable old white-robed monk who pokes about among the lettuce and parsley. We have seen such places before; we have visited them in that divinatory glance which strays away into space for a moment over the top of a suggestive book. I don’t quite know whether it’s more or less as one’s fancy would have it that the monkish cells are no cells at all, but very tidy little appartements complets, consisting of a couple of chambers, a sitting-room and a spacious loggia, projecting out into space from the cliff-like wall of the monastery and sweeping from pole to pole the loveliest view in the world. It’s poor work, however, taking notes on views, and I will let this one pass. The little chambers are terribly cold and musty now. Their odour and atmosphere are such as one used, as a child, to imagine those of the school-room during Saturday and Sunday.
Out of the large central cloister open the cozy little standalone homes of the absent fathers. When I mentioned that the Certosa in Val d’Ema gives you a peek into old Italy, I was thinking of this grand pillared courtyard, half in sunlight and half in shade, with its tangled garden in the center surrounding the ancient traditional well, and the deep blue sky stretching above it, not to mention the ever-present old monk in a white robe tending to the lettuce and parsley. We’ve encountered such places before; we’ve visited them in that fleeting moment of daydreaming that drifts away into space while we skim through a compelling book. I’m not sure if it’s more or less than what one might imagine that the monk’s cells are not really cells at all, but very neat little appartements complets, consisting of a couple of rooms, a sitting area, and a spacious loggia that juts out from the monastery's cliff-like wall, offering the most breathtaking view in the world. However, it’s not very useful just jotting down notes about views, so I’ll let this one go. The little rooms are incredibly cold and musty now. Their scent and atmosphere remind me of what I used to think the schoolroom was like during Saturdays and Sundays when I was a child.
VII
In the Roman streets, wherever you turn, the facade of a church in more or less degenerate flamboyance is the principal feature of the scene; and if, in the absence of purer motives, you are weary of aesthetic trudging over the corrugated surface of the Seven Hills, a system of pavement in which small cobble-stones anomalously endowed with angles and edges are alone employed, you may turn aside at your pleasure and take a reviving sniff at the pungency of incense. In Florence, one soon observes, the churches are relatively few and the dusky house-fronts more rarely interrupted by specimens of that extraordinary architecture which in Rome passes for sacred. In Florence, in other words, ecclesiasticism is less cheap a commodity and not dispensed in the same abundance at the street-corners. Heaven forbid, at the same time, that I should undervalue the Roman churches, which are for the most part treasure-houses of history, of curiosity, of promiscuous and associational interest. It is a fact, nevertheless, that, after St. Peter’s, I know but one really beautiful church by the Tiber, the enchanting basilica of St. Mary Major. Many have structural character, some a great allure, but as a rule they all lack the dignity of the best of the Florentine temples. Here, the list being immeasurably shorter and the seed less scattered, the principal churches are all beautiful. And yet I went into the Annunziata the other day and sat there for half-an-hour because, forsooth, the gildings and the marbles and the frescoed dome and the great rococo shrine near the door, with its little black jewelled fetish, reminded me so poignantly of Rome. Such is the city properly styled eternal—since it is eternal, at least, as regards the consciousness of the individual. One loves it in its sophistications—though for that matter isn’t it all rich and precious sophistication?—better than other places in their purity.
In the streets of Rome, everywhere you look, the front of a church, with its more or less extravagant style, is the main feature of the scene. And if you're tired of the aesthetic workout from walking over the uneven surface of the Seven Hills, where small cobblestones with their strange angles and edges are the only option, you can take a break and enjoy the refreshing scent of incense. In Florence, you'll quickly notice that the churches are relatively few, and the dark buildings are less frequently interrupted by examples of that unique architecture that is considered sacred in Rome. In other words, religious buildings in Florence aren't as common and aren't found on every street corner. At the same time, I don’t want to underestimate the Roman churches, which are mostly treasure troves of history, curiosity, and varied interest. However, after St. Peter’s, I only know of one truly beautiful church by the Tiber, which is the lovely basilica of St. Mary Major. Many have structural appeal, and some have great charm, but generally, they all lack the dignity of the best Florentine temples. In Florence, with a significantly shorter list and fewer options scattered around, the main churches are all beautiful. Yet, I visited the Annunziata the other day and sat there for half an hour because the gilding, marbles, frescoed dome, and the grand rococo shrine near the entrance, with its little black jeweled figure, reminded me so much of Rome. Such is the city rightly called eternal—at least it feels eternal to the individual. You love it in its complexities—though isn't it all rich and exquisite complexity?—more than other places in their simplicity.
Coming out of the Annunziata you look past the bronze statue of the Grand Duke Ferdinand I (whom Mr. Browning’s heroine used to watch for—in the poem of “The Statue and the Bust”—from the red palace near by), and down a street vista of enchanting picturesqueness. The street is narrow and dusky and filled with misty shadows, and at its opposite end rises the vast bright-coloured side of the Cathedral. It stands up in very much the same mountainous fashion as the far-shining mass of the bigger prodigy at Milan, of which your first glimpse as you leave your hotel is generally through another such dark avenue; only that, if we talk of mountains, the white walls of Milan must be likened to snow and ice from their base, while those of the Duomo of Florence may be the image of some mighty hillside enamelled with blooming flowers. The big bleak interior here has a naked majesty which, though it may fail of its effect at first, becomes after a while extraordinarily touching. Originally disconcerting, it soon inspired me with a passion. Externally, at any rate, it is one of the loveliest works of man’s hands, and an overwhelming proof into the bargain that when elegance belittles grandeur you have simply had a bungling artist.
Exiting the Annunziata, you gaze past the bronze statue of Grand Duke Ferdinand I (whom Mr. Browning's heroine used to look for—in the poem "The Statue and the Bust"—from the nearby red palace) and down a charmingly picturesque street. The street is narrow, dim, and filled with hazy shadows, and at the far end looms the vibrant side of the Cathedral. It rises in a way reminiscent of the dramatic silhouette of the larger marvel in Milan, which you typically first see through another dark passage; however, if we’re talking about mountains, the white walls of Milan are like snow and ice at their base, while the Duomo of Florence resembles a majestic hillside adorned with blooming flowers. The vast, stark interior here has a raw majesty that, although it may not fully impact you at first, eventually becomes incredibly moving. Initially unsettling, it quickly ignited a passion within me. On the outside, at least, it is one of the most beautiful creations of human hands, and it serves as a compelling reminder that when elegance diminishes grandeur, you're simply dealing with a clumsy artist.
Santa Croce within not only triumphs here, but would triumph anywhere. “A trifle naked if you like,” said my irrepressible companion, “but that’s what I call architecture, just as I don’t call bronze or marble clothes (save under urgent stress of portraiture) statuary.” And indeed we are far enough away from the clustering odds and ends borrowed from every art and every province without which the ritually builded thing doesn’t trust its spell to work in Rome. The vastness, the lightness, the open spring of the arches at Santa Croce, the beautiful shape of the high and narrow choir, the impression made as of mass without weight and the gravity yet reigning without gloom—these are my frequent delight, and the interest grows with acquaintance. The place is the great Florentine Valhalla, the final home or memorial harbour of the native illustrious dead, but that consideration of it would take me far. It must be confessed moreover that, between his coarsely-imagined statue out in front and his horrible monument in one of the aisles, the author of The Divine Comedy, for instance, is just hereabouts rather an extravagant figure. “Ungrateful Florence,” declaims Byron. Ungrateful indeed—would she were more so! the susceptible spirit of the great exile may be still aware enough to exclaim; in common, that is, with most of the other immortals sacrificed on so very large a scale to current Florentine “plastic” facility. In explanation of which remark, however, I must confine myself to noting that, as almost all the old monuments at Santa Croce are small, comparatively small, and interesting and exquisite, so the modern, well nigh without exception, are disproportionately vast and pompous, or in other words distressingly vague and vain. The aptitude of hand, the compositional assurance, with which such things are nevertheless turned out, constitutes an anomaly replete with suggestion for an observer of the present state of the arts on the soil and in the air that once befriended them, taking them all together, as even the soil and the air of Greece scarce availed to do. But on this head, I repeat, there would be too much to say; and I find myself checked by the same warning at the threshold of the church in Florence really interesting beyond Santa Croce, beyond all others. Such, of course, easily, is Santa Maria Novella, where the chapels are lined and plated with wonderful figured and peopled fresco-work even as most of those in Rome with precious inanimate substances. These overscored retreats of devotion, as dusky, some of them, as eremitic caves swarming with importunate visions, have kept me divided all winter between the love of Ghirlandaio and the fear of those seeds of catarrh to which their mortal chill seems propitious till far on into the spring. So I pause here just on the praise of that delightful painter—as to the spirit of whose work the reflections I have already made are but confirmed by these examples. In the choir at Santa Maria Novella, where the incense swings and the great chants resound, between the gorgeous coloured window and the florid grand altar, he still “goes in,” with all his might, for the wicked, the amusing world, the world of faces and forms and characters, of every sort of curious human and rare material thing.
Santa Croce is impressive not just here, but anywhere. "A little bare, if you think so," said my unstoppable friend, "but that’s what I call architecture, just like I don’t consider bronze or marble as clothing (except in urgent portrait situations) to be statuary.” And truly, we’re far removed from the random bits and pieces borrowed from every art and every region that this carefully constructed place needs to make its magic work in Rome. The vastness, the lightness, the open spring of the arches at Santa Croce, the beautiful form of the high and narrow choir, the sensation of mass without heaviness and the gravity that reigns without darkness—these are my constant delights, and my interest deepens with familiarity. This place is the grand Florentine Valhalla, the final resting spot or memorial harbor of the famous local dead, but discussing that would take me too far. It must be admitted, too, that between his poorly conceived statue out front and his awful monument in one of the aisles, the creator of The Divine Comedy is quite a pretentious figure here. "Ungrateful Florence," Byron laments. Ungrateful indeed—would that she were even more so! The sensitive soul of the great exile might still be aware enough to say that, just like most of the other immortals sacrificed in such a grand style to the current Florentine “artistry.” To clarify this remark, I must note that while almost all the old monuments at Santa Croce are comparatively small, interesting, and exquisite, the modern ones are nearly all disproportionately large and ostentatious, or in other words, distressingly vague and arrogant. The skillfulness and compositional confidence with which such works are produced is an anomaly full of suggestions for anyone observing the current state of the arts in a land and an atmosphere that once supported them, even as the soil and air of Greece barely managed to do so. But on this matter, I repeat, there’s too much to say; and I find myself cautioned by the same thought at the entrance of the church in Florence that is truly interesting beyond Santa Croce and all others. Such, of course, is Santa Maria Novella, where the chapels are adorned and layered with stunning frescoes filled with figures, much like those in Rome with precious lifeless materials. These sacred retreats, some as shadowy as hermit caves filled with demanding visions, have kept me torn all winter between my admiration for Ghirlandaio and my dread of the colds that seem encouraged by their mortal chill, lasting far into spring. So I pause here to praise that delightful painter—my reflections about the spirit of his work are only reinforced by these examples. In the choir at Santa Maria Novella, where the incense sways and the powerful chants echo, between the beautifully colored window and the ornate grand altar, he still captures, with all his strength, the wicked and entertaining world, the world of faces and forms and characters, filled with every kind of curious human and rare material thing.
{Illustration: BOBOLI GARDEN, FLORENCE.}
{Illustration: Boboli Garden, Florence.}
VIII
I had always felt the Boboli Gardens charming enough for me to “haunt” them; and yet such is the interest of Florence in every quarter that it took another corso of the same cheap pattern as the last to cause me yesterday to flee the crowded streets, passing under that archway of the Pitti Palace which might almost be the gate of an Etruscan city, so that I might spend the afternoon among the mouldy statues that compose with their screens of cypress, looking down at our clustered towers and our background of pale blue hills vaguely freckled with white villas. These pleasure-grounds of the austere Pitti pile, with its inconsequent charm of being so rough-hewn and yet somehow so elegantly balanced, plead with a voice all their own the general cause of the ample enclosed, planted, cultivated private preserve—preserve of tranquillity and beauty and immunity—in the heart of a city; a cause, I allow, for that matter, easy to plead anywhere, once the pretext is found, the large, quiet, distributed town-garden, with the vague hum of big grudging boundaries all about it, but with everything worse excluded, being of course the most insolently-pleasant thing in the world. In addition to which, when the garden is in the Italian manner, with flowers rather remarkably omitted, as too flimsy and easy and cheap, and without lawns that are too smart, paths that are too often swept and shrubs that are too closely trimmed, though with a fanciful formalism giving style to its shabbiness, and here and there a dusky ilex-walk, and here and there a dried-up fountain, and everywhere a piece of mildewed sculpture staring at you from a green alcove, and just in the right place, above all, a grassy amphitheatre curtained behind with black cypresses and sloping downward in mossy marble steps—when, I say, the place possesses these attractions, and you lounge there of a soft Sunday afternoon, the racier spectacle of the streets having made your fellow-loungers few and left you to the deep stillness and the shady vistas that lead you wonder where, left you to the insidious irresistible mixture of nature and art, nothing too much of either, only a supreme happy resultant, a divine tertium quid: under these conditions, it need scarce be said the revelation invoked descends upon you.
I’ve always found the Boboli Gardens charming enough to “haunt” them; yet, given the captivating nature of Florence in every corner, it took another corso of the same inexpensive kind as before to make me escape the crowded streets yesterday. I went through the archway of the Pitti Palace, which could almost be the entrance to an ancient Etruscan city, to spend the afternoon among the weathered statues that, along with their cypress screens, gaze down at our clustered towers and the backdrop of pale blue hills speckled with white villas. These recreational grounds of the austere Pitti Palace, with their oddly captivating mix of roughness and elegant balance, advocate for their own unique cause: the ample enclosed and cultivated private space— a refuge of tranquility, beauty, and solitude—in the heart of a city. This cause, I must admit, is an easy one to promote anywhere, once the right reason is established, like the large, quiet, distributed town garden, surrounded by grumbling boundaries but keeping out all the worst elements, making it, of course, the most blissfully pleasant thing in the world. Furthermore, when the garden is designed in the Italian style, where flowers are notably lacking as they seem too fragile, easy, and cheap, and without lawns that are overly pristine, paths that are frequently swept, or shrubs that are too meticulously trimmed—though it retains a whimsical formalism that adds style to its shabbiness, with an occasional dusky ilex path, a dry fountain here and there, and mildewed sculptures peering at you from green alcoves—especially when you can find a grassy amphitheater draped behind dark cypress trees, sloping down to mossy marble steps—when, I say, the place has these features, and you lounge there on a soft Sunday afternoon, having avoided the livelier spectacle of the streets, leaving you few companions and immersing you in the profound quietness and shady views that make you wonder where they lead. You find yourself drawn into an insidious, irresistible blend of nature and art, not too much of either, just a blissful outcome, a divine tertium quid: under these circumstances, it goes without saying that the revelation you seek will come upon you.
The Boboli Gardens are not large—you wonder how compact little Florence finds room for them within her walls. But they are scattered, to their extreme, their all-romantic advantage and felicity, over a group of steep undulations between the rugged and terraced palace and a still-surviving stretch of city wall, where the unevenness of the ground much adds to their apparent size. You may cultivate in them the fancy of their solemn and haunted character, of something faint and dim and even, if you like, tragic, in their prescribed, their functional smile; as if they borrowed from the huge monument that overhangs them certain of its ponderous memories and regrets. This course is open to you, I mention, but it isn’t enjoined, and will doubtless indeed not come up for you at all if it isn’t your habit, cherished beyond any other, to spin your impressions to the last tenuity of fineness. Now that I bethink myself I must always have happened to wander here on grey and melancholy days. It remains none the less true that the place contains, thank goodness—or at least thank the grave, the infinitely-distinguished traditional taste of Florence—no cheerful, trivial object, neither parterres, nor pagodas, nor peacocks, nor swans. They have their famous amphitheatre already referred to, with its degrees or stone benches of a thoroughly aged and mottled complexion and its circular wall of evergreens behind, in which small cracked images and vases, things that, according to association, and with the law of the same quite indefinable, may make as much on one occasion for exquisite dignity as they may make on another for (to express it kindly) nothing at all. Something was once done in this charmed and forsaken circle—done or meant to be done; what was it, dumb statues, who saw it with your blank eyes? Opposite stands the huge flat-roofed palace, putting forward two great rectangular arms and looking, with its closed windows and its foundations of almost unreduced rock, like some ghost of a sample of a ruder Babylon. In the wide court-like space between the wings is a fine old white marble fountain that never plays. Its dusty idleness completes the general air of abandonment. Chancing on such a cluster of objects in Italy—glancing at them in a certain light and a certain mood—I get (perhaps on too easy terms, you may think) a sense of history that takes away my breath. Generations of Medici have stood at these closed windows, embroidered and brocaded according to their period, and held fetes champetres and floral games on the greensward, beneath the mouldering hemicycle. And the Medici were great people! But what remains of it all now is a mere tone in the air, a faint sigh in the breeze, a vague expression in things, a passive—or call it rather, perhaps, to be fair, a shyly, pathetically responsive—accessibility to the yearning guess. Call it much or call it little, the ineffaceability of this deep stain of experience, it is the interest of old places and the bribe to the brooding analyst. Time has devoured the doers and their doings, but there still hangs about some effect of their passage. We can “layout” parks on virgin soil, and cause them to bristle with the most expensive importations, but we unfortunately can’t scatter abroad again this seed of the eventual human soul of a place—that comes but in its time and takes too long to grow. There is nothing like it when it has come.
The Boboli Gardens aren’t very big—you can’t help but wonder how little Florence manages to fit them within her walls. But they’re spread out, to their utmost, showcasing their charming, romantic appeal over a series of steep hills between the sturdy, terraced palace and a still-standing section of city wall, where the uneven terrain adds to their perceived size. You might imagine them exuding a serious and haunting vibe, something faint and dim and, if you prefer, even tragic, within their curated, functional charm; as if they’ve borrowed some of the heavy memories and regrets from the massive monument looming over them. This perspective is available to you, but it’s not required, and it probably won’t even occur to you if you don't have a tendency, treasured above all else, to refine your impressions to the last delicate detail. Now that I think about it, I must have always wandered here on gray, gloomy days. Nevertheless, it remains true that the place offers, thankfully—or at least thanks to the solemn, refined tradition of Florence—no cheerful, trivial objects, neither flowerbeds, nor pagodas, nor peacocks, nor swans. They do have their famous amphitheater, already mentioned, featuring stone benches with a well-worn, mottled appearance and a circular wall of evergreens behind it, where small cracked statues and vases might, depending on context and indefinable associations, contribute to moments of exquisite dignity or moments of (to put it kindly) emptiness. Something once occurred in this enchanted and deserted space—something done or meant to be done; what was it, silent statues, that you witnessed with your blank eyes? Opposite stands the massive flat-roofed palace, extending two large rectangular wings and, with its closed windows and almost unprocessed rock foundations, resembling the ghost of a rougher version of Babylon. In the wide courtyard between the wings is a beautiful old white marble fountain that never flows. Its dusty stillness adds to the overall sense of neglect. Encountering such a collection of items in Italy—looking at them in a certain light and mood—I get (perhaps too easily, you might think) a sense of history that takes my breath away. Generations of Medici family members stood at these shuttered windows, dressed in elaborate fabrics of their time, hosting garden parties and floral games on the grass beneath the crumbling semicircle. And the Medici were impressive people! But what remains of it all now is just a feeling in the air, a faint sigh in the breeze, a vague essence in the surroundings, a passive—or perhaps, to be fair, a shyly and sadly responsive—openness to the longing mystery. Call it much or call it little, the indelible mark of this deep stain of experience is the charm of old places and the lure for the introspective thinker. Time has consumed the doers and their deeds, but there still lingers some trace of their passage. We can “create” parks on untouched land and fill them with the most extravagant imports, but unfortunately, we can’t redistribute this essence of the eventual human spirit of a place—that comes in its own time and takes too long to develop. There’s nothing like it once it has arrived.
TUSCAN CITIES
The cities I refer to are Leghorn, Pisa, Lucca and Pistoia, among which I have been spending the last few days. The most striking fact as to Leghorn, it must be conceded at the outset, is that, being in Tuscany, it should be so scantily Tuscan. The traveller curious in local colour must content himself with the deep blue expanse of the Mediterranean. The streets, away from the docks, are modern, genteel and rectangular; Liverpool might acknowledge them if it weren’t for their clean-coloured, sun-bleached stucco. They are the offspring of the new industry which is death to the old idleness. Of interesting architecture, fruit of the old idleness or at least of the old leisure, Leghorn is singularly destitute. It has neither a church worth one’s attention, nor a municipal palace, nor a museum, and it may claim the distinction, unique in Italy, of being the city of no pictures. In a shabby corner near the docks stands a statue of one of the elder Grand Dukes of Tuscany, appealing to posterity on grounds now vague—chiefly that of having placed certain Moors under tribute. Four colossal negroes, in very bad bronze, are chained to the base of the monument, which forms with their assistance a sufficiently fantastic group; but to patronise the arts is not the line of the Livornese, and for want of the slender annuity which would keep its precinct sacred this curious memorial is buried in dockyard rubbish. I must add that on the other hand there is a very well-conditioned and, in attitude and gesture, extremely natural and familiar statue of Cavour in one of the city squares, and in another a couple of effigies of recent Grand Dukes, represented, that is dressed, or rather undressed, in the character of heroes of Plutarch. Leghorn is a city of magnificent spaces, and it was so long a journey from the sidewalk to the pedestal of these images that I never took the time to go and read the inscriptions. And in truth, vaguely, I bore the originals a grudge, and wished to know as little about them as possible; for it seemed to me that as patres patrae, in their degree, they might have decreed that the great blank, ochre-faced piazza should be a trifle less ugly. There is a distinct amenity, however, in any experience of Italy almost anywhere, and I shall probably in the future not be above sparing a light regret to several of the hours of which the one I speak of was composed. I shall remember a large cool bourgeois villa in the garden of a noiseless suburb—a middle-aged Villa Franco (I owe it as a genial pleasant pension the tribute of recognition), roomy and stony, as an Italian villa should be. I shall remember that, as I sat in the garden, and, looking up from my book, saw through a gap in the shrubbery the red house-tiles against the deep blue sky and the grey underside of the ilex-leaves turned up by the Mediterranean breeze, it was all still quite Tuscany, if Tuscany in the minor key.
The cities I'm talking about are Leghorn, Pisa, Lucca, and Pistoia, where I've been spending the last few days. The most noticeable thing about Leghorn, I have to admit right away, is that, despite being in Tuscany, it feels very un-Tuscan. Travelers looking for local charm have to settle for the deep blue waters of the Mediterranean. The streets, away from the docks, are modern, elegant, and laid out in neat rectangles; Liverpool might recognize them if it weren't for their bright-colored, sun-bleached stucco. They are the result of new industry, which has replaced the old leisurely lifestyle. Leghorn is surprisingly lacking in interesting architecture that reflects the old leisure; it has no church worth visiting, no municipal palace, and no museum, and it can proudly claim the unique distinction in Italy of being a city devoid of art. In a rundown corner near the docks, there's a statue of one of the older Grand Dukes of Tuscany, appealing to future generations for reasons that are now unclear—mainly for having put some Moors under tribute. Four colossal bronze figures of Black men, poorly made, are chained to the base of the monument, forming a rather bizarre group; however, supporting the arts isn't really the Livornese style, and due to the lack of a small endowment that would keep its surroundings respected, this peculiar monument is buried in dockyard debris. On the other hand, there is a very well-crafted, natural-looking statue of Cavour in one of the city squares, and in another square, there are a couple of statues of more recent Grand Dukes, depicted, or rather undressed, as Plutarchan heroes. Leghorn boasts spacious areas, and since the walk from the sidewalk to the base of these statues was so long, I never took the time to stop and read the inscriptions. To tell the truth, I held a vague grudge against the originals and wanted to know as little about them as possible; it seemed that, as patres patrae, they could have made the big, blank, ochre-colored piazza a bit less ugly. Nonetheless, any experience in Italy offers a distinct charm, and I will probably in the future feel a slight regret for some of the time spent, including the hours I’ve described. I will remember a spacious, cool, middle-class villa in the garden of a quiet suburb—a middle-aged Villa Franco (I owe it a pleasant pension recognition), roomy and sturdy, just as an Italian villa should be. I remember sitting in the garden, and when I looked up from my book, I saw through a gap in the bushes the red roof tiles against the bright blue sky and the grey underside of the ilex leaves fluttering in the Mediterranean breeze; it all felt quite Tuscan, if in a quieter tone.
If you should naturally desire, in such conditions, a higher intensity, you have but to proceed, by a very short journey, to Pisa—where, for that matter, you will seem to yourself to have hung about a good deal already, and from an early age. Few of us can have had a childhood so unblessed by contact with the arts as that one of its occasional diversions shan’t have been a puzzled scrutiny of some alabaster model of the Leaning Tower under a glass cover in a back-parlour. Pisa and its monuments have, in other words, been industriously vulgarised, but it is astonishing how well they have survived the process. The charm of the place is in fact of a high order and but partially foreshadowed by the famous crookedness of its campanile. I felt it irresistibly and yet almost inexpressibly the other afternoon, as I made my way to the classic corner of the city through the warm drowsy air which nervous people come to inhale as a sedative. I was with an invalid companion who had had no sleep to speak of for a fortnight. “Ah! stop the carriage,” she sighed, or yawned, as I could feel, deliciously, “in the shadow of this old slumbering palazzo, and let me sit here and close my eyes, and taste for an hour of oblivion.” Once strolling over the grass, however, out of which the quartette of marble monuments rises, we awaked responsively enough to the present hour. Most people remember the happy remark of tasteful, old-fashioned Forsyth (who touched a hundred other points in his “Italy” scarce less happily) as to the fact that the four famous objects are “fortunate alike in their society and their solitude.” It must be admitted that they are more fortunate in their society than we felt ourselves to be in ours; for the scene presented the animated appearance for which, on any fine spring day, all the choicest haunts of ancient quietude in Italy are becoming yearly more remarkable. There were clamorous beggars at all the sculptured portals, and bait for beggars, in abundance, trailing in and out of them under convoy of loquacious ciceroni. I forget just how I apportioned the responsibility, of intrusion, for it was not long before fellow-tourists and fellow-countrymen became a vague, deadened, muffled presence, that of the dentist’s last words when he is giving you ether. They suffered mystic disintegration in the dense, bright, tranquil air, so charged with its own messages. The Cathedral and its companions are fortunate indeed in everything—fortunate in the spacious angle of the grey old city-wall which folds about them in their sculptured elegance like a strong protecting arm; fortunate in the broad greensward which stretches from the marble base of Cathedral and cemetery to the rugged foot of the rampart; fortunate in the little vagabonds who dot the grass, plucking daisies and exchanging Italian cries; fortunate in the pale-gold tone to which time and the soft sea-damp have mellowed and darkened their marble plates; fortunate, above all, in an indescribable grace of grouping, half hazard, half design, which insures them, in one’s memory of things admired, very much the same isolated corner that they occupy in the charming city.
If you naturally want something more intense under these circumstances, you just need to take a short trip to Pisa—where, honestly, you may feel like you've spent quite a bit of time already, dating back to your childhood. It's hard to imagine anyone having a completely artless childhood without at least occasionally staring in confusion at a glass-covered alabaster model of the Leaning Tower in some back room. In other words, Pisa and its monuments have been quite commercialized, but it’s amazing how well they’ve held up through that. The charm of the place is genuinely captivating and not solely represented by the famous tilt of its bell tower. I felt this charm irresistibly, yet almost beyond words, the other afternoon as I walked toward the iconic corner of the city through the warm, lazy air that nervous individuals often seek as a calming remedy. I was with a friend who had been unable to sleep much for two weeks. “Ah! stop the carriage,” she sighed, or yawned, as I could feel, delightfully, “under the shade of this old, sleepy palazzo, and let me sit here and close my eyes and enjoy an hour of forgetfulness.” However, once we wandered onto the grass, where the quartet of marble monuments rises, we were pulled back to the present moment. Many people remember the delightful comment from the tasteful, old-fashioned Forsyth (who touched on many other points in his "Italy" no less wonderfully) about how the four famous structures are “fortunate alike in their society and their solitude.” It must be acknowledged that they are more fortunate in their surroundings than we felt in ours; the scene had a lively energy that, on any sunny spring day, makes all the finest spots of ancient peace in Italy increasingly notable. There were loud beggars at all the sculpted doorways, and plenty of bait for them, coming and going under the watchful eyes of chatty tour guides. I can't quite remember how I divided the blame for the interruptions, as it wasn't long before fellow tourists and compatriots faded into a vague, numbed, muffled background, much like the last words of a dentist while you’re under anesthesia. They seemed to dissolve mystically in the dense, bright, serene air, which was so full of its own messages. The Cathedral and its companions are indeed fortunate in every way—lucky to have the wide angle of the old grey city wall wrapping around them like a strong, protective arm; lucky for the expansive green grass stretching from the marble base of the Cathedral and cemetery to the rugged foot of the rampart; lucky for the little children playing on the grass, picking daisies and shouting in Italian; lucky for the pale-gold hue that time and gentle sea mist have softened and deepened in their marble surfaces; and especially lucky for an indescribable grace in their arrangement—partly random and partly intentional—that guarantees they occupy the same cherished space in our memories as they do in the enchanting city.
Of the smaller cathedrals of Italy I know none I prefer to that of Pisa; none that, on a moderate scale, produces more the impression of a great church. It has without so modest a measurability, represents so clean and compact a mass, that you are startled when you cross the threshold at the apparent space it encloses. An architect of genius, for all that he works with colossal blocks and cumbrous pillars, is certainly the most cunning of conjurors. The front of the Duomo is a small pyramidal screen, covered with delicate carvings and chasings, distributed over a series of short columns upholding narrow arches. It might be a sought imitation of goldsmith’s work in stone, and the area covered is apparently so small that extreme fineness has been prescribed. How it is therefore that on the inner side of this façade the wall should appear to rise to a splendid height and to support one end of a ceiling as remote in its gilded grandeur, one could almost fancy, as that of St. Peter’s; how it is that the nave should stretch away in such solemn vastness, the shallow transepts emphasise the grand impression and the apse of the choir hollow itself out like a dusky cavern fretted with golden stalactites, is all matter for exposition by a keener architectural analyst than I. To sit somewhere against a pillar where the vista is large and the incidents cluster richly, and vaguely revolve these mysteries without answering them, is the best of one’s usual enjoyment of a great church. It takes no deep sounding to conclude indeed that a gigantic Byzantine Christ in mosaic, on the concave roof of the choir, contributes largely to the particular impression here as of very old and choice and original and individual things. It has even more of stiff solemnity than is common to works of its school, and prompts to more wonder than ever on the nature of the human mind at a time when such unlovely shapes could satisfy its conception of holiness. Truly pathetic is the fate of these huge mosaic idols, thanks to the change that has overtaken our manner of acceptance of them. Strong the contrast between the original sublimity of their pretensions and the way in which they flatter that free sense of the grotesque which the modern imagination has smuggled even into the appreciation of religious forms. They were meant to yield scarcely to the Deity itself in grandeur, but the only part they play now is to stare helplessly at our critical, our aesthetic patronage of them. The spiritual refinement marking the hither end of a progress had n’t, however, to wait for us to signalise it; it found expression three centuries ago in the beautiful specimen of the painter Sodoma on the wall of the choir. This latter, a small Sacrifice of Isaac, is one of the best examples of its exquisite author, and perhaps, as chance has it, the most perfect opposition that could be found in the way of the range of taste to the effect of the great mosaic. There are many painters more powerful than Sodoma—painters who, like the author of the mosaic, attempted and compassed grandeur; but none has a more persuasive grace, none more than he was to sift and chasten a conception till it should affect one with the sweetness of a perfectly distilled perfume.
Of the smaller cathedrals in Italy, I don’t know of any that I prefer to the one in Pisa; none that, on a moderate scale, creates a more impressive feeling of a grand church. It has a modest yet striking design, representing a clean and compact mass, so that when you walk in, you’re surprised by the apparent space inside. An architect of genius, even while using massive blocks and heavy pillars, is certainly a master of illusion. The façade of the Duomo features a small pyramidal screen, adorned with delicate carvings spread across a series of short columns holding up narrow arches. It might be seen as a delicate imitation of goldsmith work in stone, and the area it covers seems so small that extreme finesse is necessary. How is it then that on the inside, the wall appears to soar to a stunning height, supporting one end of a ceiling that feels as lavish and distant in its gilded grandeur as St. Peter’s? How does the nave extend in such solemn vastness, with the shallow transepts enhancing the grand impression, and the choir’s apse hollowing out like a dark cave studded with golden stalactites? These are questions best handled by a sharper architectural analyst than I. Sitting somewhere against a pillar where the view is expansive and incidents are richly packed, and pondering these mysteries without needing to answer them, is the best part of enjoying a grand church. It doesn’t take deep reflection to realize that a gigantic Byzantine mosaic of Christ on the concave roof of the choir greatly contributes to the impression here, suggesting something ancient, valuable, unique, and distinguished. It carries even more unmistakable solemnity than is typical for works from its school and raises deeper wonder about the nature of the human mind during a time when such unappealing forms could meet its idea of holiness. Truly, the fate of these massive mosaic figures is somewhat tragic, given how our perception of them has changed. There’s a stark contrast between their original grandeur and how they now cater to the modern imagination’s appreciation for the grotesque, even in religious art. They were meant to rival the Divine itself in majesty, yet now they simply watch helplessly as we critique and evaluate them. The spiritual refinement that marks the end of this evolution didn’t wait for us to acknowledge it; it was expressed three centuries ago in the beautiful work of the painter Sodoma on the choir wall. This piece, a small Sacrifice of Isaac, is one of the finest examples from its exquisite creator and perhaps, by chance, the most perfect counterpoint to the effect of the grand mosaic. There are many painters more powerful than Sodoma—artists who, like the mosaic's creator, sought and achieved grandeur—but none convey grace as persuasively as he does, none manage to refine and purify an idea until it resonates with the sweetness of a perfectly distilled perfume.
Of the patient successive efforts of painting to arrive at the supreme refinement of such a work as the Sodoma the Campo Santo hard by offers a most interesting memorial. It presents a long, blank marble wall to the relative profaneness of the Cathedral close, but within it is a perfect treasure-house of art. This quadrangular defence surrounds an open court where weeds and wild roses are tangled together and a sunny stillness seems to rest consentingly, as if Nature had been won to consciousness of the precious relics committed to her. Something in the quality of the place recalls the collegiate cloisters of Oxford, but it must be added that this is the handsomest compliment to that seat of learning. The open arches of the quadrangles of Magdalen and Christ Church are not of mellow Carrara marble, nor do they offer to sight columns, slim and elegant, that seem to frame the unglazed windows of a cathedral. To be buried in the Campo Santo of Pisa, I may however further qualify, you need only be, or to have more or less anciently been, illustrious, and there is a liberal allowance both as to the character and degree of your fame. The most obtrusive object in one of the long vistas is a most complicated monument to Madame Catalani, the singer, recently erected by her possibly too-appreciative heirs. The wide pavement is a mosaic of sepulchral slabs, and the walls, below the base of the paling frescoes, are incrusted with inscriptions and encumbered with urns and antique sarcophagi. The place is at once a cemetery and a museum, and its especial charm is its strange mixture of the active and the passive, of art and rest, of life and death. Originally its walls were one vast continuity of closely pressed frescoes; but now the great capricious scars and stains have come to outnumber the pictures, and the cemetery has grown to be a burial-place of pulverised masterpieces as well as of finished lives. The fragments of painting that remain are fortunately the best; for one is safe in believing that a host of undimmed neighbours would distract but little from the two great works of Orcagna. Most people know the “Triumph of Death” and the “Last Judgment” from descriptions and engravings; but to measure the possible good faith of imitative art one must stand there and see the painter’s howling potentates dragged into hell in all the vividness of his bright hard colouring; see his feudal courtiers, on their palfreys, hold their noses at what they are so fast coming to; see his great Christ, in judgment, refuse forgiveness with a gesture commanding enough, really inhuman enough, to make virtue merciless for ever. The charge that Michael Angelo borrowed his cursing Saviour from this great figure of Orcagna is more valid than most accusations of plagiarism; but of the two figures one at least could be spared. For direct, triumphant expressiveness these two superb frescoes have probably never been surpassed. The painter aims at no very delicate meanings, but he drives certain gross ones home so effectively that for a parallel to his process one must look to the art of the actor, the emphasising “point”—making mime. Some of his female figures are superb—they represent creatures of a formidable temperament.
Of the patient, ongoing efforts in painting to achieve the ultimate refinement of a work like Sodoma, the nearby Campo Santo offers a fascinating tribute. It shows a long, blank marble wall in contrast to the nearby Cathedral, but inside is a perfect treasure trove of art. This rectangular enclosure surrounds an open courtyard where weeds and wild roses grow together, and a sunny stillness seems to settle there, as if Nature has become aware of the valuable relics entrusted to her. The character of the place reminds one of the collegiate cloisters of Oxford, though this is the highest compliment to that seat of learning. The open arches of the quadrangles at Magdalen and Christ Church aren't made of warm Carrara marble, nor do they showcase slim, elegant columns that seem to frame the unglazed windows of a cathedral. To be buried in the Campo Santo of Pisa, I should add, you only need to be, or to have been somewhat illustrious, and there's a generous allowance regarding the character and degree of your fame. The most eye-catching object in one of the long vistas is a complicated monument to Madame Catalani, the singer, recently erected by her perhaps overly appreciative heirs. The wide pavement is a mosaic of grave slabs, and the walls, below the fading frescoes, are covered in inscriptions and filled with urns and ancient sarcophagi. The place serves as both a cemetery and a museum, and its unique charm lies in its strange mix of the active and the passive, of art and rest, of life and death. Originally, its walls were one vast stretch of closely packed frescoes, but now the large, capricious scars and stains have surpassed the paintings, and the cemetery has become a resting place for both shattered masterpieces and completed lives. Fortunately, the fragments of painting that remain are the best; one can safely believe that a multitude of undimmed neighbors would not distract much from the two great works of Orcagna. Most people recognize the “Triumph of Death” and the “Last Judgment” from descriptions and engravings; but to truly appreciate the potential of imitative art, one must stand there and see the painter's howling rulers dragged into hell in all the vividness of his bright, intense coloring; observe his feudal courtiers, on their horses, holding their noses at the fate approaching them; see his magnificent Christ, in judgment, refusing forgiveness with a gesture commanding enough, truly inhuman enough, to make virtue endlessly merciless. The claim that Michelangelo borrowed his cursing Savior from this great figure of Orcagna holds more weight than most accusations of plagiarism; but at least one of those two figures could be overlooked. For direct, triumphant expressiveness, these two stunning frescoes have likely never been surpassed. The painter does not aim for delicate meanings, but he drives certain blunt ones home so effectively that one must look to the art of acting, to the emphasizing "point"-making mime, for a parallel. Some of his female figures are exquisite—they represent beings of formidable temperament.
There are charming women, however, on the other side of the cloister—in the beautiful frescoes of Benozzo Gozzoli. If Orcagna’s work was appointed to survive the ravage of time it is a happy chance that it should be balanced by a group of performances of such a different temper. The contrast is the more striking that in subject the inspiration of both painters is strictly, even though superficially, theological. But Benozzo cares, in his theology, for nothing but the story, the scene and the drama—the chance to pile up palaces and spires in his backgrounds against pale blue skies cross-barred with pearly, fleecy clouds, and to scatter sculptured arches and shady trellises over the front, with every incident of human life going forward lightly and gracefully beneath them. Lightness and grace are the painter’s great qualities, marking the hithermost limit of unconscious elegance, after which “style” and science and the wisdom of the serpent set in. His charm is natural fineness; a little more and we should have refinement—which is a very different thing. Like all les délicats of this world, as M. Renan calls them, Benozzo has suffered greatly. The space on the walls he originally covered with his Old Testament stories is immense; but his exquisite handiwork has peeled off by the acre, as one may almost say, and the latter compartments of the series are swallowed up in huge white scars, out of which a helpless head or hand peeps forth like those of creatures sinking into a quicksand. As for Pisa at large, although it is not exactly what one would call a mouldering city—for it has a certain well-aired cleanness and brightness, even in its supreme tranquillity—it affects the imagination very much in the same way as the Campo Santo. And, in truth, a city so ancient and deeply historic as Pisa is at every step but the burial-ground of a larger life than its present one. The wide empty streets, the goodly Tuscan palaces—which look as if about all of them there were a genteel private understanding, independent of placards, that they are to be let extremely cheap—the delicious relaxing air, the full-flowing yellow river, the lounging Pisani, smelling, metaphorically, their poppy-flowers, seemed to me all so many admonitions to resignation and oblivion. And this is what I mean by saying that the charm of Pisa (apart from its cluster of monuments) is a charm of a high order. The architecture has but a modest dignity; the lions are few; there are no fixed points for stopping and gaping. And yet the impression is profound; the charm is a moral charm. If I were ever to be incurably disappointed in life, if I had lost my health, my money, or my friends, if I were resigned forevermore to pitching my expectations in a minor key, I should go and invoke the Pisan peace. Its quietude would seem something more than a stillness—a hush. Pisa may be a dull place to live in, but it’s an ideal place to wait for death.
There are lovely women, though, on the other side of the cloister—in the beautiful frescoes of Benozzo Gozzoli. If Orcagna’s work was meant to withstand the test of time, it’s a fortunate coincidence that it is balanced by such different performances. The contrast is even more striking because the inspiration for both painters is strictly, albeit superficially, theological. But Benozzo cares, in his theology, only for the story, the scene, and the drama—the opportunity to fill his backgrounds with palaces and spires set against light blue skies crisscrossed with soft, fluffy clouds, and to sprinkle sculptured arches and shady trellises in the foreground, with every aspect of human life happening lightly and gracefully beneath them. Lightness and grace are the painter’s main qualities, marking the utmost limit of effortless elegance, beyond which “style,” technical skill, and cunning wisdom come into play. His charm is a natural refinement; a bit more and it would turn into sophistication—which is a totally different thing. Like all les délicats of this world, as M. Renan labels them, Benozzo has endured much. The space on the walls he originally filled with his Old Testament stories is vast; yet his exquisite work has peeled away in large strips, as one might say, and the later sections of the series are consumed by huge white patches, from which a helpless head or hand emerges like those of beings sinking into quicksand. As for Pisa overall, while it’s not exactly what you’d call a decaying city—since it has a certain fresh cleanliness and brightness, even in its extreme calm—it affects the imagination very much like the Campo Santo. In truth, a city as ancient and historically rich as Pisa seems, at every turn, to be the burial ground of a life larger than its current one. The wide, empty streets, the fine Tuscan palaces—which seem to share an unspoken understanding that they can all be rented very cheaply—the lovely relaxing air, the slow-flowing yellow river, the laid-back Pisani, metaphorically inhaling their poppy flowers, all felt to me like so many reminders to accept and forget. And this is what I mean by saying that the charm of Pisa (aside from its collection of monuments) is of a higher order. The architecture has a modest dignity; the lions are few; there aren't many stopping points to gawk at. Yet the impression is deep; the charm is a moral one. If I were ever to be hopelessly disappointed in life—if I lost my health, my money, or my friends—if I were resigned forever to keeping my expectations low, I would go and seek the peace of Pisa. Its tranquility would seem more than just stillness—it would feel like a hush. Pisa might be a boring place to live in, but it’s an ideal place to await death.
Nothing could be more charming than the country between Pisa and Lucca—unless possibly the country between Lucca and Pistoia. If Pisa is dead Tuscany, Lucca is Tuscany still living and enjoying, desiring and intending. The town is a charming mixture of antique “character” and modern inconsequence; and! not only the town, but the country—the blooming romantic country which you admire from the famous promenade on the city-wall. The wall is of superbly solid and intensely “toned” brickwork and of extraordinary breadth, and its summit, planted with goodly trees and swelling here and there into bastions and outworks and little open gardens, surrounds the city with a circular lounging-place of a splendid dignity. This well-kept, shady, ivy-grown rampart reminded me of certain mossy corners of England; but it looks away to a prospect of more than English loveliness—a broad green plain where the summer yields a double crop of grain, and a circle of bright blue mountains speckled with high-hung convents and profiled castles and nestling villas, and traversed by valleys of a deeper and duskier blue. In one of the deepest and shadiest of these recesses one of the most “sympathetic” of small watering-places is hidden away yet a while longer from easy invasion—the Baths to which Lucca has lent its name. Lucca is pre-eminently a city of churches; ecclesiastical architecture being indeed the only one of the arts to which it seems to have given attention. There are curious bits of domestic architecture, but no great palaces, and no importunate frequency of pictures. The Cathedral, however, sums up the merits of its companions and is a singularly noble and interesting church. Its peculiar boast is a wonderful inlaid front, on which horses and hounds and hunted beasts are lavishly figured in black marble over a white ground. What I chiefly appreciated in the grey solemnity of the nave and transepts was the superb effect of certain second-storey Gothic arches—those which rest on the pavement being Lombard. These arches are delicate and slender, like those of the cloister at Pisa, and they play their part in the dusky upper air with real sublimity.
Nothing is more charming than the countryside between Pisa and Lucca—unless it's maybe the area between Lucca and Pistoia. If Pisa represents the dead side of Tuscany, Lucca is Tuscany full of life, enjoyment, desire, and intention. The town is a delightful mix of old "character" and modern randomness; and it’s not just the town, but the beautiful, romantic countryside that you can admire from the famous walk along the city wall. The wall is incredibly solid with beautifully colored bricks and is remarkably wide, topped with nice trees that swell here and there into bastions, outworks, and little open gardens, creating a circular space around the city that is wonderfully dignified. This well-maintained, shady, ivy-covered rampart reminded me of some mossy spots in England; but it overlooks a view that surpasses even the loveliness of England—a vast green plain where summer produces a bountiful double harvest, and a circle of bright blue mountains sprinkled with high-up convents, silhouetted castles, and cozy villas, all cut through by deeper, dusky blue valleys. In one of the deepest and shadiest recesses of this landscape lies one of the most appealing small resorts, still hidden away from easy access—the Baths that share Lucca's name. Lucca is primarily a city of churches; ecclesiastical architecture is really the only art form it seems to have focused on. There are some interesting bits of domestic architecture, but no grand palaces and no overwhelming abundance of paintings. The Cathedral, however, combines the merits of its peers and stands out as a particularly noble and interesting church. Its unique pride is a stunning inlaid façade featuring horses, hounds, and hunted animals intricately depicted in black marble on a white background. What I especially admired in the grey solemnity of the nave and transepts was the remarkable appearance of certain second-story Gothic arches—those resting on the ground being Lombard. These arches are delicate and slender, much like those in the cloister at Pisa, and they contribute to the dusky upper air with true sublimity.
At Pistoia there is of course a Cathedral, and there is nothing unexpected in its being, externally at least, highly impressive; in its having a grand campanile at its door, a gaudy baptistery, in alternate layers of black and white marble, across the way, and a stately civic palace on either side. But even had I the space to do otherwise I should prefer to speak less of the particular objects of interest in the place than of the pleasure I found it to lounge away in the empty streets the quiet hours of a warm afternoon. To say where I lingered longest would be to tell of a little square before the hospital, out of which you look up at the beautiful frieze in coloured earthernware by the brothers Della Robbia, which runs across the front of the building. It represents the seven orthodox offices of charity and, with its brilliant blues and yellows and its tender expressiveness, brightens up amazingly, to the sense and soul, this little grey corner of the mediaeval city. Pi stoia is still mediaeval. How grass-grown it seemed, how drowsy, how full of idle vistas and melancholy nooks! If nothing was supremely wonderful, everything was delicious.
At Pistoia, there’s obviously a Cathedral, and it’s not surprising that, at least from the outside, it looks quite impressive; it has a grand bell tower at its entrance, a flashy baptistery with alternating layers of black and white marble across the street, and a grand civic palace on either side. But even if I had more space to discuss it, I’d rather talk about the pleasure I found just lounging in the empty streets during the quiet hours of a warm afternoon. If I had to say where I spent the most time, it would be in a small square in front of the hospital, where you can look up at the beautiful frieze made of colored terracotta by the Della Robbia brothers, which runs across the front of the building. It depicts the seven traditional acts of charity and, with its vibrant blues and yellows and its gentle expressiveness, it really brightens up this little grey corner of the medieval city. Pistoia still feels medieval. It seemed so overgrown with grass, so sleepy, so full of lazy views and melancholic corners! While nothing was truly extraordinary, everything was delightful.
{Illustration: THE HOSPITAL, PISTOIA.}
{Illustration: THE HOSPITAL, PISTOIA.}
1874.
OTHER TUSCAN CITIES
I
I had scanted charming Pisa even as I had scanted great Siena in my original small report of it, my scarce more than stammering notes of years before; but even if there had been meagreness of mere gaping vision—which there in fact hadn’t been—as well as insufficiency of public tribute, the indignity would soon have ceased to weigh on my conscience. For to this affection I was to return again still oftener than to the strong call of Siena my eventual frequentations of Pisa, all merely impressionistic and amateurish as they might be—and I pretended, up and down the length of the land, to none other—leave me at the hither end of time with little more than a confused consciousness of exquisite quality on the part of the small sweet scrap of a place of ancient glory; a consciousness so pleadingly content to be general and vague that I shrink from pulling it to pieces. The Republic of Pisa fought with the Republic of Florence, through the ages so ferociously and all but invincibly that what is so pale and languid in her to-day may well be the aspect of any civil or, still more, military creature bled and bled and bled at the “critical” time of its life. She has verily a just languor and is touchingly anæmic; the past history, or at any rate the present perfect acceptedness, of which condition hangs about her with the last grace of weakness, making her state in this particular the very secret of her irresistible appeal. I was to find the appeal, again and again, one of the sweetest, tenderest, even if not one of the fullest and richest impressions possible; and if I went back whenever I could it was very much as one doesn’t indecently neglect a gentle invalid friend. The couch of the invalid friend, beautifully, appealingly resigned, has been wheeled, say, for the case, into the warm still garden, and your visit but consists of your sitting beside it with kind, discreet, testifying silences. Such is the figurative form under which the once rugged enemy of Florence, stretched at her length by the rarely troubled Arno, to-day presents herself; and I find my analogy complete even to my sense of the mere mild séance, the inevitably tacit communion or rather blank interchange, between motionless cripple and hardly more incurable admirer.
I had overlooked charming Pisa just like I had overlooked great Siena in my original brief report, my barely coherent notes from years ago; but even if my view had been lacking—though it really wasn’t—along with my insufficient public praise, the feeling of shame would have quickly faded. For I would return to my affection for Pisa far more often than to the strong lure of Siena. My eventual visits to Pisa, though they were just impressionistic and amateurish as I made them out to be, left me at the end of it all with only a muddled awareness of the exquisite quality of the small, sweet slice of a place with ancient glory; an awareness so comfortably vague that I hesitate to dissect it. The Republic of Pisa battled fiercely and almost invincibly against the Republic of Florence through the ages, and what seems so pale and weakened in her today could easily be the appearance of any civil or, even more so, military entity drained of life during a critical phase. She truly possesses a gentle sluggishness and is touchingly frail; the history behind, or at least the current acceptance of that condition, wraps around her with a delicate aura of weakness, making her state a secret to her irresistible charm. I repeatedly found that this charm was one of the sweetest and most tender, even if it wasn't the fullest and richest impression possible; and if I returned whenever I could, it was much like not wanting to neglect a gentle friend who is ill. The invalid friend, beautifully and appealingly resigned, has been brought into the warm, quiet garden, and your visit consists only of sitting beside them in thoughtful, soothing silence. Such is the metaphor under which the former fierce enemy of Florence, stretched along the rarely disturbed Arno, presents herself today; and I find my analogy complete, including my sense of the mild séance, the inevitably unspoken connection or rather blank exchange between the still figure and their hardly less enamored admirer.
The terms of my enjoyment of Pisa scarce departed from that ideal—slow contemplative perambulations, rather late in the day and after work done mostly in the particular decent inn-room that was repeatedly my portion; where the sunny flicker of the river played up from below to the very ceiling, which, by the same sign, anciently and curiously raftered and hanging over my table at a great height, had been colour-pencilled into ornament as fine (for all practical purposes) as the page of a missal. I add to this, for remembrance, an inveteracy of evening idleness and of reiterated ices in front of one of the quiet cafés—quiet as everything at Pisa is quiet, or will certainly but in these latest days have ceased to be; one in especial so beautifully, so mysteriously void of bustle that almost always the neighbouring presence and admirable chatter of some group of the local University students would fall upon my ear, by the half-hour at a time, not less as a privilege, frankly, than as a clear-cut image of the young Italian mind and life, by which I lost nothing. I use such terms as “admirable” and “privilege,” in this last most casual of connections—which was moreover no connection at all but what my attention made it—simply as an acknowledgment of the interest that might play there through some inevitable thoughts. These were, for that matter, intensely in keeping with the ancient scene and air: they dealt with the exquisite difference between that tone and type of ingenuous adolescence—in the mere relation of charmed audition—and other forms of juvenility of whose mental and material accent one had elsewhere met the assault. Civilised, charmingly civilised, were my loquacious neighbours—as how had n’t they to be, one asked one’s self, through the use of a medium of speech that is in itself a sovereign saturation? There was the beautiful congruity of the happily-caught impression; the fact of my young men’s general Tuscanism of tongue, which related them so on the spot to the whole historic consensus of things. It wasn’t dialect—as it of course easily might have been elsewhere, at Milan, at Turin, at Bologna, at Naples; it was the clear Italian in which all the rest of the surrounding story was told, all the rest of the result of time recorded; and it made them delightful, prattling, unconscious men of the particular little constituted and bequeathed world which everything else that was charged with old meanings and old beauty referred to—all the more that their talk was never by any chance of romping games or deeds of violence, but kept flowering, charmingly and incredibly, into eager ideas and literary opinions and philosophic discussions and, upon my honour, vital questions.
The way I enjoyed Pisa closely matched my ideal—leisurely walks, usually late in the day after finishing my work in the cozy inn room that I occupied repeatedly; where the sunlit reflection from the river danced up to the ceiling, which, by the same token, was beautifully and intriguingly beamed, hanging high above my table, adorned with delicate drawings like the pages of a prayer book. I also remember my evenings of laziness and the frequent ice creams in front of one of the calm cafés—calm like everything about Pisa was, or surely soon would no longer be; one café in particular was so beautifully and mysteriously free of hustle that I would often hear the pleasant conversation and lively presence of a group of local university students for half an hour at a time, which felt like a privilege and a vivid representation of young Italian life that I cherished. I use terms like “admirable” and “privilege” in this casual connection—which was, in reality, no connection at all but simply what my attention turned it into—merely to acknowledge the interest that might be present through some inevitable thoughts. These thoughts were quite in tune with the ancient ambiance: they focused on the lovely distinction between that tone and type of genuine youth—in the simple act of listening—and other types of youth with different mental and material traits I had encountered elsewhere. My lively neighbors were cultured, charmingly cultured, as you might wonder, given the richness of their language. There was a delightful harmony in the impression I had; the fact that my young companions spoke in a Tuscan manner that tied them intimately to the entire historic essence of the place. It wasn’t a dialect—though it easily could have been in other cities like Milan, Turin, Bologna, or Naples; it was the clear Italian that conveyed the surrounding history, capturing all the accumulated meanings over time; and it made them delightful, chatty, oblivious young men rooted in their unique little world that everything else with old meanings and beauty referred to—especially since their conversations were never about rowdy games or violent actions, but instead blooming, charmingly and astonishingly, into eager ideas, literary discussions, philosophical debates, and, I swear, vital questions.
They have taken me too far, for so light a reminiscence; but I claim for the loose web of my impressions at no point a heavier texture. Which comes back to what I was a moment ago saying—that just in proportion as you “feel” the morbid charm of Pisa you press on it gently, and this somehow even under stress of whatever respectful attention. I found this last impulse, at all events, so far as I was concerned, quite contentedly spend itself in a renewed sense of the simple large pacified felicity of such an afternoon aspect as that of the Lung’ Arno, taken up or down its course; whether to within sight of small Santa Maria della Spina, the tiny, the delicate, the exquisite Gothic chapel perched where the quay drops straight, or, in the other direction, toward the melting perspective of the narrow local pleasure-ground, the rather thin and careless bosky grace of which recedes, beside the stream whose very turbidity pleases, to a middle distance of hot and tangled and exuberant rural industry and a proper blue horizon of Carrara mountains. The Pisan Lung’ Arno is shorter and less featured and framed than the Florentine, but it has the fine accent of a marked curve and is quite as bravely Tuscan; witness the type of river-fronting palace which, in half-a-dozen massive specimens, the last word of the anciently “handsome,” are of the essence of the physiognomy of the place. In the glow of which retrospective admission I ask myself how I came, under my first flush, reflected in other pages, to fail of justice to so much proud domestic architecture—in the very teeth moreover of the fact that I was for ever paying my compliments, in a wistful, wondering way, to the fine Palazzo Lanfranchi, occupied in 1822 by the migratory Byron, and whither Leigh Hunt, as commemorated in the latter’s Autobiography, came out to join him in an odd journalistic scheme.
They’ve taken me too far for such a light memory, but I insist that the loose nature of my impressions doesn’t weigh down at any point. This brings me back to what I was saying a moment ago—that the more you “feel” the morbid charm of Pisa, the more gently you engage with it, even while giving it respectful attention. I found this last impulse, at least for myself, happily spent in a renewed sense of the simple, large, peaceful joy of an afternoon by the Lung' Arno, whether I walked upstream or downstream; whether toward the small Santa Maria della Spina, the tiny, delicate, exquisite Gothic chapel perched right where the quay drops straight down, or in the other direction, toward the fading perspective of the narrow local park, which has a rather thin and casual greenery that retreats beside the stream, whose muddiness is oddly pleasing, to a mid-distance packed with hot, tangled, and flourishing rural life and a lovely blue horizon of the Carrara mountains. The Pisan Lung’ Arno is shorter and less feature-rich than the Florentine one, but it has a beautiful, distinct curve and is just as proudly Tuscan; just look at the type of riverfront palace that, with half a dozen strong examples, represents the essence of the place’s historic "handsome" architecture. In light of this reflective admission, I wonder how I initially failed to appreciate so much proud domestic architecture—especially since I was constantly paying my respects, in a wistful, curious way, to the impressive Palazzo Lanfranchi, where the wandering Byron stayed in 1822, and where Leigh Hunt, as mentioned in his autobiography, came out to join him in a quirky journalistic project.
Of course, however, I need scarcely add, the centre of my daily revolution—quite thereby on the circumference—was the great Company of Four in their sequestered corner; objects of regularly recurrent pious pilgrimage, if for no other purpose than to see whether each would each time again so inimitably carry itself as one of a group of wonderfully-worked old ivories. Their charm of relation to each other and to everything else that concerns them, that of the quartette of monuments, is more or less inexpressible all round; but not the least of it, ever, is in their beautiful secret for taking at different hours and seasons, in different states of the light, the sky, the wind, the weather—in different states, even, it used verily to seem to me, of an admirer’s imagination or temper or nerves—different complexional appearances, different shades and pallors, different glows and chills. I have seen them look almost viciously black, and I have seen them as clear and fair as pale gold. And these things, for the most part, off on the large grassy carpet spread for them, and with the elbow of the old city-wall, not elsewhere erect, respectfully but protectingly crooked about, to the tune of a usual unanimity save perhaps in the case of the Leaning Tower—so abnormal a member of any respectable family this structure at best that I always somehow fancied its three companions, the Cathedral, the Baptistery and the Campo Santo, capable of quiet common understandings, for the major or the minor effect, into which their odd fellow, no hint thrown out to him, was left to enter as he might. If one haunted the place, one ended by yielding to the conceit that, beautifully though the others of the group may be said to behave about him, one sometimes caught them in the act of tacitly combining to ignore him—as if he had, after so long, begun to give on their nerves. Or is that absurdity but my shamefaced form of admission that, for all the wonder of him, he finally gave on mine? Frankly—I would put it at such moments—he becomes at last an optical bore or betise.
Of course, I hardly need to add that the center of my daily routine—right there on the edge—was the great Company of Four in their secluded spot; objects of regular, pious visits, even if it was just to see if they would still carry themselves so uniquely like a group of beautifully crafted old ivories. The charm of their relationship to each other and to everything else around them, that of the quartet of monuments, is more or less hard to express; but part of it is their lovely secret of appearing different at various times of the day and year, under different light, sky, wind, and weather conditions—even in different states of an admirer’s imagination, mood, or nerves—showing different complexional appearances, shades and pallors, and different glows and chills. I’ve seen them look almost viciously black, and I’ve seen them as clear and lovely as pale gold. And these things mostly happen on the large grassy area set up for them, with the old city wall, oddly curved around them, standing respectfully but protectively. Usually everything seems in harmony, except maybe in the case of the Leaning Tower—a structure so unusual for a respectable family that I always felt its three companions, the Cathedral, the Baptistery, and the Campo Santo, could quietly understand each other, whether in major or minor matters, while their odd companion, without any invitation, was left to join in as he could. If you spent enough time there, you might end up entertaining the idea that, while the others of the group behaved beautifully around him, you sometimes caught them in the act of quietly cooperating to ignore him—as if, after so long, he had begun to get on their nerves. Or is that just my embarrassed way of admitting that, for all his wonder, he finally got on mine? Honestly—I’d say at those moments—he becomes an optical bore or betise.
{Illustration: THE LOGGIA, LUCCA.}
{Illustration: THE LOGGIA, LUCCA.}
II
To Lucca I was not to return often—I was to return only once; when that compact and admirable little city, the very model of a small pays de Cocagne, overflowing with everything that makes for ease, for plenty, for beauty, for interest and good example, renewed for me, in the highest degree, its genial and robust appearance. The perfection of this renewal must indeed have been, at bottom, the ground of my rather hanging back from possible excess of acquaintance—with the instinct that so right and rich and rounded a little impression had better be left than endangered. I remember positively saying to myself the second time that no brown-and-gold Tuscan city, even, could be as happy as Lucca looked—save always, exactly, Lucca; so that, on the chance of any shade of human illusion in the case, I wouldn’t, as a brooding analyst, go within fifty miles of it again. Just so, I fear I must confess, it was this mere face-value of the place that, when I went back, formed my sufficiency; I spent all my scant time—or the greater part, for I took a day to drive over to the Bagni—just gaping at its visible attitude. This may be described as that of simply sitting there, through the centuries, at the receipt of perfect felicity; on its splendid solid seat of russet masonry, that is—for its great republican ramparts of long ago still lock it tight—with its wide garden-land, its ancient appanage or hereditary domain, teeming and blooming with everything that is good and pleasant for man, all about, and with a ring of graceful and noble, yet comparatively unbeneficed uplands and mountains watching it, for very envy, across the plain, as a circle of bigger boys, in the playground, may watch a privileged or pampered smaller one munch a particularly fine apple. Half smothered thus in oil and wine and corn and all the fruits of the earth, Lucca seems fairly to laugh for good-humour, and it’s as if one can’t say more for her than that, thanks to her putting forward for you a temperament somehow still richer than her heritage, you forgive her at every turn her fortune. She smiles up at you her greeting as you dip into her wide lap, out of which you may select almost any rare morsel whatever. Looking back at my own choice indeed I see it must have suffered a certain embarrassment—that of the sense of too many things; for I scarce remember choosing at all, any more than I recall having had to go hungry. I turned into all the churches—taking care, however, to pause before one of them, though before which I now irrecoverably forget, for verification of Ruskin’s so characteristically magnified rapture over the high and rather narrow and obscure hunting-frieze on its front—and in the Cathedral paid my respects at every turn to the greatest of Lucchesi, Matteo Civitale, wisest, sanest, homeliest, kindest of quattro-cento sculptors, to whose works the Duomo serves almost as a museum. But my nearest approach to anything so invidious as a discrimination or a preference, under the spell of so felt an equilibrium, must have been the act of engaging a carriage for the Baths.
I wasn’t going to return to Lucca very often—I would only return once; when that compact and charming little city, the perfect example of a small pays de Cocagne, overflowing with everything that brings ease, abundance, beauty, interest, and good vibes, showcased its warm and vibrant atmosphere for me once again. The perfection of this renewal must have been why I hesitated to get too familiar—with the instinct that such a right, rich, and well-rounded impression was better left untouched than risked. I clearly remember telling myself the second time that no brown-and-gold Tuscan city could possibly be as happy as Lucca appeared—except for Lucca itself; so, just in case there were any traces of human illusion involved, I decided not to get within fifty miles of it again as an overthinking analyst. Admittedly, this mere surface charm of the place, when I returned, was enough for me; I spent most of my limited time—or the greater part of it, as I took a day to drive to the Bagni—just gazing at its visible vibe. This can be described as simply sitting there through the centuries, basking in perfect joy; resting on its solid base of russet stone since its great republican walls from long ago still hold it tight—with its vast garden land, its ancient estate blooming with everything good and pleasing for humans, surrounded by a ring of graceful, noble, yet relatively unbenefited hills and mountains watching it, enviously, across the plain, like bigger kids in a playground glancing at a pampered little one enjoying a particularly delicious apple. Half smothered in oil, wine, corn, and all the earth’s fruits, Lucca seems to laugh for joy, and it feels like the only thing left to say is that, because she presents a temperament somehow richer than her heritage, you forgive her good fortune at every turn. She greets you with a smile as you dive into her wide embrace, from which you can pick almost any rare delicacy you like. Looking back at my own choices, I realize I must have felt a bit overwhelmed by all the options; I hardly remember choosing at all, just as I don’t recall being hungry. I wandered into all the churches—making sure to pause before one of them, though I can no longer recall which, to verify Ruskin’s famously exaggerated enthusiasm for the high, narrow, and somewhat obscure hunting frieze on its façade—and in the Cathedral, I paid my respects at every turn to the greatest of Lucchesi, Matteo Civitale, the wisest, sanest, homeliest, and kindest of quattro-cento sculptors, whose works make the Duomo feel almost like a museum. But my closest moment to anything resembling a favorite or preference, under the influence of such a profound balance, must have been when I hired a carriage for the Baths.
That inconsequence once perpetrated, let me add, the impression was as right as any other—the impression of the drive through the huge general tangled and fruited podere of the countryside; that of the pair of jogging hours that bring the visitor to where the wideish gate of the valley of the Serchio opens. The question after this became quite other; the narrowing, though always more or less smiling gorge that draws you on and on is a different, a distinct proposition altogether, with its own individual grace of appeal and association. It is the association, exactly, that would even now, on this page, beckon me forward, or perhaps I should rather say backward—weren’t more than a glance at it out of the question—to a view of that easier and not so inordinately remote past when “people spent the summer” in these perhaps slightly stuffy shades. I speak of that age, I think of it at least, as easier than ours, in spite of the fact that even as I made my pilgrimage the mark of modern change, the railway in construction, had begun to be distinct, though the automobile was still pretty far in the future. The relations and proportions of everything are of course now altered—I indeed, I confess, wince at the vision of the cloud of motor-dust that must in the fine season hang over the whole connection. That represents greater promptness of approach to the bosky depths of Ponte-a-Serraglio and the Bagni Caldi, but it throws back the other time, that of the old jogging relation, of the Tuscan grand-ducal “season” and the small cosmopolite sociability, into quite Arcadian air and the comparatively primitive scale. The “easier” Italy of our infatuated precursors there wears its glamour of facility not through any question of “the development of communications,” but through the very absence of the dream of that boon, thanks to which every one (among the infatuated) lived on terms of so much closer intercourse with the general object of their passion. After we had crossed the Serchio that beautiful day we passed into the charming, the amiably tortuous, the thickly umbrageous, valley of the Lima, and then it was that I seemed fairly to remount the stream of time; figuring to myself wistfully, at the small scattered centres of entertainment—modest inns, pensions and other places of convenience clustered where the friendly torrent is bridged or the forested slopes adjust themselves—what the summer days and the summer rambles and the summer dreams must have been, in the blest place, when “people” (by which I mean the contingent of beguiled barbarians) didn’t know better, as we say, than to content themselves with such a mild substitute, such a soft, sweet and essentially elegant apology, for adventure. One wanted not simply to hang about a little, but really to live back, as surely one might, have done by staying on, into the so romantically strong, if mechanically weak, Italy of the associations of one’s youth. It was a pang to have to revert to the present even in the form of Lucca—which says everything.
That inconsistency aside, let me add that the impression was just as valid as any other—the feeling of driving through the large, tangled, and fruitful countryside. The two hours of travel brought the visitor to the somewhat wide gate of the Serchio valley. After this, the focus shifted; the narrowing yet always inviting gorge that draws you onward is a different and unique experience entirely, with its own individual charm and connections. It’s the connection that even now, on this page, draws me forward, or perhaps I should say backward—more than just a glance at it is out of the question—to a time when “people spent the summer” in these maybe slightly stuffy shades. I think of that era as easier than ours, despite the fact that even as I made my journey, the mark of modern change, the railway under construction, had started to be noticeable, even though the automobile was still quite a way off. The relationships and dynamics of everything have, of course, changed—indeed, I confess I wince at the thought of the cloud of motor-dust that must hang over the whole area during the fine season. That represents a quicker access to the shady depths of Ponte-a-Serraglio and the Bagni Caldi, but it also reflects back to a time of the old way of traveling, of the Tuscan grand-ducal “season” and the small cosmopolitan social scene, almost like an idyllic version of those times, with a comparatively simpler scale. The “easier” Italy of our enamored predecessors shines with its charm not through any advancements in travel, but through the very absence of the dream of that advancement, which allowed everyone (among the enamored) to interact much more closely with the object of their dreams. After we crossed the Serchio that beautiful day, we entered the charming, winding, tree-covered valley of the Lima, and it seemed like I was traveling back in time; imagining, wistfully, at the small scattered spots for entertainment—modest inns, pensions, and other convenient places clustered where the friendly stream is bridged or the wooded slopes come together—what the summer days, strolls, and dreams must have been like in that blessed place, when “people” (meaning the group of captivated travelers) didn't know better, as we say, than to be satisfied with such a gentle alternative, such a soft, sweet, and essentially elegant excuse for adventure. One didn't just want to linger a bit but truly to live back, as one surely could have, by staying longer, into the romantically compelling, though mechanically underdeveloped, Italy of one’s youth. It was a heartache to return to the present, even in the form of Lucca—which says everything.
III
If undeveloped communications were to become enough for me at those retrospective moments, I might have felt myself supplied to my taste, let me go on to say, at the hour of my making, with great resolution, an attempt on high-seated and quite grandly out-of-the-way Volterra: a reminiscence associated with quite a different year and, I should perhaps sooner have bethought myself, with my fond experience of Pisa—inasmuch as it was during a pause under that bland and motionless wing that I seem to have had to organise in the darkness of a summer dawn my approach to the old Etruscan stronghold. The railway then existed, but I rose in the dim small hours to take my train; moreover, so far as that might too much savour of an incongruous facility, the fault was in due course quite adequately repaired by an apparent repudiation of any awareness of such false notes on the part of the town. I may not invite the reader to penetrate with me by so much as a step the boundless backward reach of history to which the more massive of the Etruscan gates of Volterra, the Porta all’ Arco, forms the solidest of thresholds; since I perforce take no step myself, and am even exceptionally condemned here to impressionism unashamed. My errand was to spend a Sunday with an Italian friend, a native in fact of the place, master of a house there in which he offered me hospitality; who, also arriving from Florence the night before, had obligingly come on with me from Pisa, and whose consciousness of a due urbanity, already rather overstrained, and still well before noon, by the accumulation of our matutinal vicissitudes and other grounds for patience, met all ruefully at the station the supreme shock of an apparently great desolate world of volcanic hills, of blank, though “engineered,” undulations, as the emergence of a road testified, unmitigated by the smallest sign of a wheeled vehicle. The station, in other words, looked out at that time (and I daresay the case hasn’t strikingly altered) on a mere bare huge hill-country, by some remote mighty shoulder of which the goal of our pilgrimage, so questionably “served” by the railway, was hidden from view. Served as well by a belated omnibus, a four-in-hand of lame and lamentable quality, the place, I hasten to add, eventually put forth some show of being; after a complete practical recognition of which, let me at once further mention, all the other, the positive and sublime, connections of Volterra established themselves for me without my lifting a finger.
If underdeveloped communication were enough for me in those reflective moments, I might have felt satisfied, let me say, when I boldly attempted to visit the high, majestic, and somewhat remote Volterra. This memory is tied to a very different year and, I suppose I should have thought of it sooner, to my cherished experience in Pisa—especially since it was during a pause beneath that calm and unmovable wing that I seem to have organized my approach to the ancient Etruscan stronghold in the dark of a summer dawn. The railway was already in place, but I woke in the early hours to catch my train; however, to avoid any hint of convenience, that fault was later corrected by the town's apparent dismissal of any awareness of such jarring elements. I can't invite the reader to join me even a step into the endless depth of history that the more formidable of Volterra's Etruscan gates, the Porta all’Arco, serves as the sturdiest threshold; since I can't undertake that myself and am, regrettably, left here with nothing but unabashed impressionism. My purpose was to spend a Sunday with an Italian friend, a local who owned a house there and offered me hospitality; he had also come from Florence the night before and kindly traveled with me from Pisa. His sense of appropriate urbanity, already somewhat strained and still well before noon, faced, with some dismay at the station, the overwhelming shock of what seemed like a vast desolate world of volcanic hills, with blank yet “engineered” slopes, as evidenced by the emergence of a road, completely devoid of any sign of a vehicle. In other words, the station at that time (and I doubt it has changed much) overlooked an expanse of bare, enormous hill country, behind which the destination of our journey, poorly “served” by the railway, was hidden from sight. Served, too, by a belated bus, a sorry four-horse carriage of pitiful quality, which I should quickly mention, the place ultimately managed to present some semblance of life; after fully recognizing this, I can also say that all the other, more positive and sublime aspects of Volterra revealed themselves to me without my needing to lift a finger.
The small shrunken, but still lordly prehistoric city is perched, when once you have rather painfully zigzagged to within sight of it, very much as an eagle’s eyrie, oversweeping the land and the sea; and to that type of position, the ideal of the airy peak of vantage, with all accessories and minor features a drop, a slide and a giddiness, its individual items and elements strike you at first as instinctively conforming. This impression was doubtless after a little modified for me; there were levels, there were small stony practicable streets, there were walks and strolls, outside the gates and roundabout the cyclopean wall, to the far end of downward-tending protrusions and promontories, natural buttresses and pleasant terrene headlands, friendly suburban spots (one would call them if the word had less detestable references) where games of bowls and overtrellised wine-tables could put in their note; in spite of which however my friend’s little house of hospitality, clean and charming and oh, so immemorially Tuscan, was as perpendicular and ladder-like as so compact a residence could be; it kept up for me beautifully—as regards posture and air, though humanly and socially it rather cooed like a dovecote—the illusion of the vertiginously “balanced” eagle’s nest. The air, in truth, all the rest of that splendid day, must have been the key to the promptly-produced intensity of one’s relation to every aspect of the charming episode; the light, cool, keen air of those delightful high places, in Italy, that tonically correct the ardours of July, and which at our actual altitude could but affect me as the very breath of the grand local legend. I might have “had” the little house, our particular eagle’s nest, for the summer, and even on such touching terms; and I well remember the force of the temptation to take it, if only other complications had permitted; to spend the series of weeks with that admirable interesting freshness in my lungs: interesting, I especially note, as the strong appropriate medium in which a continuity with the irrecoverable but still effective past had been so robustly preserved. I couldn’t yield, alas, to the conceived felicity, which had half-a-dozen appealing aspects; I could only, while thus feeling how the atmospheric medium itself made for a positively initiative exhilaration, enjoy my illusion till the morrow. The exhilaration therefore supplies to memory the whole light in which, for the too brief time, I went about “seeing” Volterra; so that my glance at the seated splendour reduces itself, as I have said, to the merest impressionism; nothing more was to be looked for, on the stretched surface of consciousness, from one breezy wash of the brush. I find there the clean strong image simplified to the three or four unforgettable particulars of the vast rake of the view; with the Maremma, of evil fame, more or less immediately below, but with those islands of the sea, Corsica and Elba, the names of which are sharply associational beyond any others, dressing the far horizon in the grand manner, and the Ligurian coast-line melting northward into beauty and history galore; with colossal uncemented blocks of Etruscan gates and walls plunging you—and by their very interest—into a sweet surrender of any privilege of appreciation more crushing than your general synthetic stare; and with the rich and perfectly arranged museum, an unsurpassed exhibition of monumental treasure from Etruscan tombs, funereal urns mainly, reliquaries of an infinite power to move and charm us still, contributing to this same so designed, but somehow at the same time so inspired, collapse of the historic imagination under too heavy a pressure, or abeyance of “private judgment” in too unequal a relation.
The small, diminished, yet still impressive prehistoric city is situated, after you’ve painstakingly zigzagged your way to see it, very much like an eagle’s nest, dominating the land and the sea; and in terms of location, it embodies the ideal of a lofty vantage point, with all the accompanying features—a drop, a slide, and a sense of dizziness, its individual components at first seem to perfectly fit this. My impression was likely modified after a bit; there were levels, small rocky streets you could navigate, paths and strolls outside the gates and around the massive walls, leading to the far ends of slopes and cliffs, natural supports and beautiful land that remind you of friendly suburban areas (one might call them that if the word didn’t have such unpleasant connotations) where you could enjoy games of bowls and outdoor wine tables; despite this, my friend’s charming little inn, so clean and unmistakably Tuscan, was as steep and compact as any residence could be; it beautifully maintained the illusion for me—as far as height and atmosphere were concerned, though socially it felt more like a cooing dovecote—of a dizzyingly “balanced” eagle’s nest. The air, truly, throughout that splendid day, was likely the key to the immediate intensity of my connection to every aspect of this delightful experience; the light, cool, crisp air of those lovely high places in Italy, which refreshingly eased the heat of July, and which at our actual altitude felt like the very breath of the illustrious local legend. I could have “had” the little house, our particular eagle’s nest, for the summer, even under such touching terms; and I clearly recall how tempting it was to accept, if only other complications allowed; to spend weeks enjoying that wonderfully refreshing air in my lungs: refreshing, I particularly note, as the strong, fitting environment that maintained a robust continuity with the irretrievable but still impactful past. Alas, I couldn't give in to the imagined happiness that had so many appealing facets; I could only, while feeling how the very air brought about a positively invigorating thrill, enjoy my illusion until the next day. This exhilaration thus fills my memory with the entire light in which, for too brief a period, I wandered about “seeing” Volterra; so that my view of the magnificent scenery becomes, as I mentioned, nothing more than a mere impression; nothing more was to be expected, as a single breezy stroke of a brush encompasses it all. I find there a clear, strong image simplified to three or four unforgettable details of the vast landscape; with the Maremma, notorious for its past, lying more or less immediately below, but with the islands of Corsica and Elba on the horizon, their names sharply linked to associations unlike any others, adorning the distant skyline beautifully, and the Ligurian coast stretching northward rich with beauty and history; colossal unbonded blocks of Etruscan gates and walls inviting you—and through their very intrigue—into a sweet surrender of any right to appreciate more deeply than your general, comprehensive gaze; and with the rich, well-organized museum, an unrivaled showcase of monumental treasures from Etruscan tombs, mainly funerary urns, relics capable of moving and charming us still, contributing to this designed yet somehow inspired collapse of historical imagination under too heavy a weight or suspension of “personal judgment” in an unequal relationship.
IV
I remember recovering private judgment indeed in the course of two or three days following the excursion I have just noted; which must have shaped themselves in some sort of consonance with the idea that as we were hereabouts in the very middle of dim Etruria a common self-respect prescribed our somehow profiting by the fact. This kindled in us the spirit of exploration, but with results of which I here attempt to record, so utterly does the whole impression swoon away, for present memory, into vagueness, confusion and intolerable heat, Our self-respect was of the common order, but the blaze of the July sun was, even for Tuscany, of the uncommon; so that the project of a trudging quest for Etruscan tombs in shadeless wastes yielded to its own temerity. There comes back to me nevertheless at the same time, from the mild misadventure, and quite as through this positive humility of failure, the sense of a supremely intimate revelation of Italy in undress, so to speak (the state, it seemed, in which one would most fondly, most ideally, enjoy her); Italy no longer in winter starch and sobriety, with winter manners and winter prices and winter excuses, all addressed to the forestieri and the philistines; but lolling at her length, with her graces all relaxed, and thereby only the more natural; the brilliant performer, in short, en famille, the curtain down and her salary stopped for the season—thanks to which she is by so much more the easy genius and the good creature as she is by so much less the advertised prima donna. She received us nowhere more sympathetically, that is with less ceremony or self-consciousness, I seem to recall, than at Montepulciano, for instance—where it was indeed that the recovery of private judgment I just referred to couldn’t help taking place. What we were doing, or what we expected to do, at Montepulciano I keep no other trace of than is bound up in a present quite tender consciousness that I wouldn’t for the world not have been there. I think my reason must have been largely just in the beauty of the name (for could any beauty be greater?), reinforced no doubt by the fame of the local vintage and the sense of how we should quaff it on the spot. Perhaps we quaffed it too constantly; since the romantic picture reduces itself for me but to two definite appearances; that of the more priggish discrimination so far reasserting itself as to advise me that Montepulciano was dirty, even remarkably dirty; and that of her being not much else besides but perched and brown and queer and crooked, and noble withal (which is what almost any Tuscan city more easily than not acquits herself of; all the while she may on such occasions figure, when one looks off from her to the end of dark street-vistas or catches glimpses through high arcades, some big battered, blistered, overladen, overmasted ship, swimming in a violet sea).
I remember regaining my own judgment in just two or three days after the trip I just mentioned; this must have aligned itself with the idea that since we were right in the heart of gloomy Etruria, we had a sense of self-respect that urged us to take advantage of the situation. This ignited in us a spirit of adventure, but the results I’m trying to describe are so hazy in my mind now, drifting into vagueness, confusion, and unbearable heat. Our self-respect was of the usual kind, but the July sun was, even for Tuscany, exceptionally harsh; so the idea of a long trek to find Etruscan tombs in treeless areas gave way to common sense. However, I also recall from this mild misadventure—and from the humbling nature of our failure—a deep and intimate understanding of Italy in her raw form, so to speak (the way she seems most enjoyable). Italy was no longer dressed in winter's formality, with its cold demeanor and high prices, all directed at tourists and outsiders; instead, she lay there relaxed and natural, like a brilliant performer at home, with the curtain drawn and her pay paused for the season—making her all the more genuine and charming, rather than the glitzy star of the show. She welcomed us most warmly, without any pretense or awkwardness, I recall, particularly in Montepulciano—where I definitely found my judgment I mentioned earlier. The only memory I have of what we were doing or hoped to do in Montepulciano ties back to a warm feeling that I wouldn't have missed being there for anything. I think my reason for that must have largely been the beauty of the name itself (how could anything be more beautiful?), probably enhanced by the reputation of the local wine and the idea of enjoying it right there. Maybe we indulged a bit too often, as the romantic image I have is reduced to just two clear impressions: the more proper part of me asserting that Montepulciano was dirty, quite notably dirty; and the view of the town being mostly perched, brown, strange, crooked, but still noble (which is something any Tuscan city can easily manage; all while she might, on such occasions, appear like a huge, battered, overburdened ship sailing in a violet sea when looking out through the ends of dark street views or catching glimpses through high arches).
If I have lost the sense of what we were doing, that could at all suffer commemoration, at Montepulciano, so I sit helpless before the memory of small stewing Torrita, which we must somehow have expected to yield, under our confidence, a view of shy charms, but which did n’t yield, to my recollection, even anything that could fairly be called a breakfast or a dinner. There may have been in the neighbourhood a rumour of Etruscan tombs; the neighbourhood, however, was vast, and that possibility not to be verified, in the conditions, save after due refreshment. Then it was, doubtless, that the question of refreshment so beckoned us, by a direct appeal, straight across country, from Perugia, that, casting consistency, if not to the winds, since alas there were none, but to the lifeless air, we made the sweltering best of our way (and it took, for the distance, a terrible time) to the Grand Hotel of that city. This course shines for me, in the retrospect, with a light even more shameless than that in which my rueful conscience then saw it; since we thus exchanged again, at a stroke, the tousled bonne fille of our vacational Tuscany for the formal and figged-out presence of Italy on her good behaviour. We had never seen her conform more to all the proprieties, we felt, than under this aspect of lavish hospitality to that now apparently quite inveterate swarm of pampered forestieri, English and Americans in especial, who, having had Roman palaces and villas deliciously to linger in, break the northward journey, when once they decide to take it, in the Umbrian paradise. They were, goodness knows, within their rights, and we profited, as anyone may easily and cannily profit at that time, by the sophistications paraded for them; only I feel, as I pleasantly recover it all, that though we had arrived perhaps at the most poetical of watering-places we had lost our finer clue. (The difference from other days was immense, all the span of evolution from the ancient malodorous inn which somehow did n’t matter, to that new type of polyglot caravanserai which everywhere insists on mattering—mattering, even in places where other interests abound, so much more than anything else.) That clue, the finer as I say, I would fain at any rate to-day pick up for its close attachment to another Tuscan city or two—for a felt pull from strange little San Gimignano delle belle Torre in especial; by which I mean from the memory of a summer Sunday spent there during a stay at Siena. But I have already superabounded, for mere love of my general present rubric—the real thickness of experience having a good deal evaporated, so that the Tiny Town of the Many Towers hangs before me, not to say, rather, far behind me, after the manner of an object directly meeting the wrong or diminishing lens of one’s telescope.
If I've lost track of what we were doing that might be worth remembering at Montepulciano, I find myself stuck thinking about that small, dreary Torrita, which we probably expected would reveal some hidden charm, but which, if I recall correctly, didn’t even serve anything resembling breakfast or dinner. There might have been rumors of Etruscan tombs in the area; however, the area was huge, and that possibility couldn't really be checked out without some proper food first. It was then, no doubt, that the need for refreshment called us, appealing directly from Perugia, so we threw caution to the wind—well, not really since there was hardly any breeze—but resigned ourselves to the stiff air and trudged our way (which took an absurd amount of time given the distance) to the Grand Hotel in that city. In hindsight, this choice looks even more shamelessly appealing than it did back then, since we quickly swapped the messy charm of our Tuscan vacation for the polished and proper side of Italy on her best behavior. We had never seen her adhere to all the niceties as much as she did in that moment of lavish hospitality for the now seemingly entrenched swarm of pampered tourists, especially the English and Americans, who, after enjoying the delicious Roman palaces and villas, break their northern journey when choosing to do so, in the heavenly Umbrian paradise. They were well within their rights, and we benefited, as anyone can cleverly do at that time, by the indulgences put on display for them; still, I feel, as I fondly remember it all, that although we had arrived at what might be the most beautiful tourist spot, we had lost our deeper connection. (The contrast between those days was striking, spanning the evolution from the ancient, unpleasant inn that somehow didn't matter to the new type of multilingual caravanserai which insists on mattering—making itself important even in places where other interests thrive, often more than anything else.) That deeper connection, as I mentioned, I would love to revisit today, especially as it relates to another Tuscan city or two, thanks to a pull from the quirky little San Gimignano delle belle Torre; I'm referring to the memory of a summer Sunday spent there during a visit to Siena. But I've already gone off on a tangent, driven by my affection for my current theme—the genuine wealth of experience has somewhat evaporated, so the Tiny Town of the Many Towers lingers in my mind, not to say, rather, hangs far behind me, like an object viewed through the wrong or diminishing lens of a telescope.
It did everything, on the occasion of that pilgrimage, that it was expected to do, presenting itself more or less in the guise of some rare silvery shell, washed up by the sea of time, cracked and battered and dishonoured, with its mutilated marks of adjustment to the extinct type of creature it once harboured figuring against the sky as maimed gesticulating arms flourished in protest against fate. If the centuries, however, had pretty well cleaned out, vulgarly speaking, this amazing little fortress-town, it wasn’t that a mere aching void was bequeathed us, I recognise as I consult a somewhat faded impression; the whole scene and occasion come back to me as the exhibition, on the contrary, of a stage rather crowded and agitated, of no small quantity of sound and fury, of concussions, discussions, vociferations, hurryings to and fro, that could scarce have reached a higher pitch in the old days of the siege and the sortie. San Gimignano affected me, to a certainty, as not dead, I mean, but as inspired with that strange and slightly sinister new life that is now, in case after case, up and down the peninsula, and even in presence of the dryest and most scattered bones, producing the miracle of resurrection. The effect is often—and I find it strikingly involved in this particular reminiscence—that of the buried hero himself positively waking up to show you his bones for a fee, and almost capering about in his appeal to your attention. What has become of the soul of San Gimignano who shall say?—but, of a genial modern Sunday, it is as if the heroic skeleton, risen from the dust, were in high activity, officious for your entertainment and your detention, clattering and changing plates at the informal friendly inn, personally conducting you to a sight of the admirable Santa Fina of Ghirlandaio, as I believe is supposed, in a dim chapel of the Collegiata church; the poor young saint, on her low bed, in a state of ecstatic vision (the angelic apparition is given), acconpanied by a few figures and accessories of the most beautiful and touching truth. This image is what has most vividly remained with me, of the day I thus so ineffectually recover; the precious ill-set gem or domestic treasure of Santa Fina, and then the wonderful drive, at eventide, back to Siena: the progress through the darkening land that was like a dense fragrant garden, all fireflies and warm emanations and dimly-seen motionless festoons, extravagant vines and elegant branches intertwisted for miles, with couples and companies of young countryfolk almost as fondly united and raising their voices to the night as if superfluously to sing out at you that they were happy, and above all were Tuscan. On reflection, and to be just, I connect the slightly incongruous loudness that hung about me under the Beautiful Towers with the really too coarse competition for my favour among the young vetturini who lay in wait for my approach, and with an eye to my subsequent departure, on my quitting, at some unremembered spot, the morning train from Siena, from which point there was then still a drive. That onset was of a fine mediaeval violence, but the subsiding echoes of it alone must have afterwards borne me company; mingled, at the worst, with certain reverberations of the animated rather than concentrated presence of sundry young sketchers and copyists of my own nationality, which element in the picture conveyed beyond anything else how thoroughly it was all to sit again henceforth in the eye of day. My final vision perhaps was of a sacred reliquary not so much rudely as familiarly and “humorously” torn open. The note had, with all its references, its own interest; but I never went again.
It did everything it was supposed to do during that pilgrimage, showing up like a rare silvery shell washed ashore by the sea of time, cracked, worn, and tarnished, with its damaged signs of adjustment to the long-gone creature it once housed, appearing against the sky like injured arms waving in protest against fate. If the centuries had cleaned out this amazing little fortress-town, it didn’t leave behind just an empty void, as I realize when I think back on my somewhat faded memory; instead, the whole scene and event come back to me as a chaotic and lively stage filled with noise and commotion, with a lot of shouting, discussions, and people rushing around, hardly any different from the old days of sieges and assaults. San Gimignano definitely struck me as not dead but instead filled with a strange, somewhat eerie new life that, across the region, is performing the miracle of resurrection even amidst the most desolate ruins. The impression I have, which is especially vivid in this memory, is like a buried hero suddenly waking up to show you his bones for a price, almost dancing around to get your attention. What has happened to the soul of San Gimignano is anyone’s guess—but on a pleasant modern Sunday, it feels as if the heroic skeleton has risen from the dust, actively engaging you with its presence, bustling around at the friendly inn, personally leading you to see the lovely Santa Fina by Ghirlandaio, which is supposedly located in a dim chapel of the Collegiata church; the young saint lying on her low bed, in a state of ecstatic vision (the angel appears), accompanied by beautiful and poignant figures and details. This image is what remains most vividly with me from that day I only partially remember; the precious yet misplaced gem or household treasure of Santa Fina, and then the wonderful drive back to Siena in the evening: traveling through the darkening countryside that felt like a dense fragrant garden, filled with fireflies, warm scents, and dimly visible still decorations, extravagant vines, and graceful branches intertwining for miles, with couples and groups of young locals joyfully united, raising their voices to the night as if to sing out to me how happy they were, and most of all, how Tuscan they were. On reflection, to be fair, I link the somewhat mismatched loudness surrounding me under the Beautiful Towers to the rather rough competition for my attention among the young carriage drivers waiting for me, especially as I departed from some forgotten spot after getting off the morning train from Siena, from which point there was still a drive ahead. That initial bustle had a lively medieval energy, but only the faint echoes of it must have kept me company afterward; mixed, at worst, with the animated presence of fellow sketch artists and copyists from my own country, which element in the scene showed above all else how completely it would continue to exist in the light of day. My last image, perhaps, was of a sacred reliquary not so much roughly opened as casually and humorously torn apart. The note contained its own interest with all its references, but I never returned again.
{Illustration: TOWERS OF SAN GIMIGNANO.}
{Illustration: Towers of San Gimignano.}
RAVENNA
I write these lines on a cold Swiss mountain-top, shut in by an intense white mist from any glimpse of the underworld of lovely Italy; but as I jotted down the other day in the ancient capital of Honorius and Theodoric the few notes of which they are composed, I let the original date stand for local colour’s sake. Its mere look, as I transcribe it, emits a grateful glow in the midst of the Alpine rawness, and gives a depressed imagination something tangible to grasp while awaiting the return of fine weather. For Ravenna was glowing, less than a week since, as I edged along the narrow strip of shadow binding one side of the empty, white streets. After a long, chill spring the summer this year descended upon Italy with a sudden jump and an ominous hot breath. I stole away from Florence in the night, and even on top of the Apennines, under the dull starlight and in the rushing train, one could but sit and pant perspiringly.
I’m writing these lines on a cold Swiss mountaintop, surrounded by a thick white mist that hides any view of the beautiful underworld of Italy. However, I’ve kept the original date I jotted down the other day in the ancient capital of Honorius and Theodoric for the sake of local color. Just seeing it as I transcribe it brings a comforting warmth amidst the harsh Alpine chill, giving a gloomy imagination something solid to hold onto while waiting for better weather. Just less than a week ago, Ravenna was vibrant as I walked along the narrow strip of shadow lining one side of the empty, white streets. After a long, cold spring, summer hit Italy this year like a sudden jolt with an ominous wave of heat. I slipped away from Florence at night, and even at the top of the Apennines, under the dull starlight and in the speeding train, all one could do was sit and sweat.
At Bologna I found a festa, or rather two festas, a civil and a religious, going on in mutual mistrust and disparagement. The civil, that of the Statuto, was the one fully national Italian holiday as by law established—the day that signalises everywhere over the land at once its achieved and hard-won unification; the religious was a jubilee of certain local churches. The latter is observed by the Bolognese parishes in couples, and comes round for each couple but once in ten years—an arrangement by which the faithful at large insure themselves a liberal recurrence of expensive processions. It was n’t my business to distinguish the sheep from the goats, the pious from the profane, the prayers from the scoffers; it was enough that, melting together under the scorching sun, they filled the admirably solid city with a flood of spectacular life. The combination at one point was really dramatic. While a long procession of priests and young virgins in white veils, bearing tapers, marshalled itself in one of the streets, a review of the King’s troops went forward outside the town. On its return a large detachment of cavalry passed across the space where the incense was burning, the pictured banners swaying and the litany being droned, and checked the advance of the little ecclesiastical troop. The long vista of the street, between the porticoes, was festooned with garlands and scarlet and tinsel; the robes and crosses and canopies of the priests, the clouds of perfumed smoke and the white veils of the maidens, were resolved by the hot bright air into a gorgeous medley of colour, across which the mounted soldiers rattled and flashed as if it had been a conquering army trampling on an embassy of propitiation. It was, to tell the truth, the first time an’ Italian festa had really exhibited to my eyes the genial glow and the romantic particulars promised by song and story; and I confess that those eyes found more pleasure in it than they were to find an hour later in the picturesque on canvas as one observes it in the Pinacoteca. I found myself scowling most unmercifully at Guido and Domenichino.
At Bologna, I came across a festival, or rather two festivals, a civil one and a religious one, both marked by mutual distrust and rivalry. The civil festival, Statuto, was the only fully national Italian holiday established by law—the day that simultaneously marks the hard-won unification of the country everywhere. The religious festival was a jubilee for certain local churches. The Bolognese parishes celebrate it in pairs, and it happens once every ten years for each pair—this way, the faithful ensure themselves a frequent occurrence of expensive processions. It wasn’t my job to separate the pious from the secular, the prayers from the mockers; it was enough that, melting together under the scorching sun, they filled the wonderfully solid city with a vibrant display of life. The combination at one point was truly dramatic. While a long procession of priests and young women in white veils, carrying candles, assembled in one of the streets, a review of the King’s troops took place just outside the town. As they returned, a large group of cavalry crossed through the area where incense was burning, banners were swaying, and the litany was being chanted, halting the advance of the small ecclesiastical crowd. The lengthy view of the street, framed by porticoes, was decorated with garlands and bright colors; the robes, crosses, and canopies of the priests, along with the clouds of fragrant smoke and the white veils of the maidens, blended in the hot bright air into a stunning array of colors, over which the mounted soldiers thundered and flashed as if a conquering army was trampling over a diplomatic delegation. To be honest, it was the first time an Italian festival really showed me the warm glow and romantic details promised by songs and stories; and I admit those eyes found more enjoyment in it than they would an hour later in the picturesque artwork as seen in the Pinacoteca. I found myself glaring quite harshly at Guido and Domenichino.
For Ravenna, however, I had nothing but smiles—grave, reflective, philosophic smiles, I hasten to add, such as accord with the historic dignity, not to say the mortal sunny sadness, of the place. I arrived there in the evening, before, even at drowsy Ravenna, the festa of the Statuto had altogether put itself to bed. I immediately strolled forth from the inn, and found it sitting up a while longer on the piazza, chiefly at the cafe door, listening to the band of the garrison by the light of a dozen or so of feeble tapers, fastened along the front of the palace of the Government. Before long, however, it had dispersed and departed, and I was left alone with the grey illumination and with an affable citizen whose testimony as to the manners and customs of Ravenna I had aspired to obtain. I had, borrowing confidence from prompt observation, suggested deferentially that it was n’t the liveliest place in the world, and my friend admitted that it was in fact not a seat of ardent life. But had I seen the Corso? Without seeing the Corso one did n’t exhaust the possibilities. The Corso of Ravenna, of a hot summer night, had an air of surprising seclusion and repose. Here and there in an upper closed window glimmered a light; my companion’s footsteps and my own were the only sounds; not a creature was within sight. The suffocating air helped me to believe for a moment that I walked in the Italy of Boccaccio, hand-in-hand with the plague, through a city which had lost half its population by pestilence and the other half by flight. I turned back into my inn profoundly satisfied. This at last was the old-world dulness of a prime distillation; this at last was antiquity, history, repose.
For Ravenna, though, I felt nothing but smiles—serious, thoughtful, philosophical smiles, I should add, that matched the historic dignity and the gentle, somber sadness of the place. I arrived in the evening, just as the festa of the Statuto had completely wrapped up, even in sleepy Ravenna. I quickly ventured out of the inn and found a few people still hanging out at the piazza, mainly by the café entrance, listening to the military band under the dim light of a dozen flickering candles lined along the front of the Government Palace. Before long, though, the crowd dispersed, leaving me alone in the soft glow and with a friendly local whose insights about the customs and lifestyle of Ravenna I had hoped to gather. Drawing confidence from my keen observation, I politely suggested that it wasn’t exactly the liveliest place. My companion agreed, admitting that it wasn’t a hub of vibrant activity. But had I seen the Corso? Without seeing the Corso, I hadn’t fully explored what the town had to offer. On a hot summer night, the Corso of Ravenna had an unexpectedly secluded and peaceful vibe. Here and there, a light flickered in an upper window; my friend’s and my own footsteps were the only sounds; not a soul was in sight. The stifling air made me momentarily feel as if I were walking in the Italy of Boccaccio, hand-in-hand with the plague, through a city that had lost half its residents to disease and the other half to escape. I returned to my inn deeply content. This was finally the old-world dullness of prime essence; this was truly antiquity, history, and tranquility.
The impression was largely confirmed and enriched on the following day; but it was obliged at an early stage of my visit to give precedence to another—the lively perception, namely, of the thinness of my saturation with Gibbon and the other sources of legend. At Ravenna the waiter at the café and the coachman who drives you to the Pine-Forest allude to Galla Placidia and Justinian as to any attractive topic of the hour; wherever you turn you encounter some fond appeal to your historic presence of mind. For myself I could only attune my spirit vaguely to so ponderous a challenge, could only feel I was breathing an air of prodigious records and relics. I conned my guide-book and looked up at the great mosaics, and then fumbled at poor Murray again for some intenser light on the court of Justinian; but I can imagine that to a visitor more intimate with the originals of the various great almond-eyed mosaic portraits in the vaults of the churches these extremely curious works of art may have a really formidable interest. I found in the place at large, by daylight, the look of a vast straggling depopulated village. The streets with hardly an exception are grass-grown, and though I walked about all day I failed to encounter a single wheeled vehicle. I remember no shop but the little establishment of an urbane photographer, whose views of the Pineta, the great legendary pine-forest just without the town, gave me an irresistible desire to seek that refuge. There was no architecture to speak of; and though there are a great many large domiciles with aristocratic names they stand cracking and baking in the sun in no very comfortable fashion. The houses have for the most part an all but rustic rudeness; they are low and featureless and shabby, as well as interspersed with high garden walls over which the long arms of tangled vines hang motionless into the stagnant streets. Here and there in all this dreariness, in some particularly silent and grassy corner, rises an old brick church with a front more or less spoiled, by cheap modernisation, and a strange cylindrical campanile pierced with small arched windows and extremely suggestive of the fifth century. These churches constitute the palpable interest of Ravenna, and their own principal interest, after thirteen centuries of well-intentioned spoliation, resides in their unequalled collection of early Christian mosaics. It is an interest simple, as who should say, almost to harshness, and leads one’s attention along a straight and narrow way. There are older churches in Rome, and churches which, looked at as museums, are more variously and richly informing; but in Rome you stumble at every step on some curious pagan memorial, often beautiful enough to make your thoughts wander far from the strange stiff primitive Christian forms.
The impression was mostly confirmed and deepened the next day; however, I had to quickly shift my focus to something else—the realization of how little I understood about Gibbon and other legendary sources. In Ravenna, the café waiter and the coachman who takes you to the Pine-Forest casually mention Galla Placidia and Justinian as if they were current hot topics; everywhere you look, there’s a heartfelt reference to your historical awareness. Personally, I could only vaguely align myself with such a heavy challenge; I simply felt enveloped by an atmosphere filled with incredible stories and remnants from the past. I pored over my guidebook and gazed at the grand mosaics, then awkwardly consulted Murray again for more insight on Justinian's court. But I can imagine that for a visitor more familiar with the original great almond-eyed mosaic portraits in the churches’ vaults, these fascinating artworks might hold a genuinely significant allure. By daylight, the overall look of the town resembled a vast, sprawling, deserted village. Most of the streets are overgrown with grass, and despite wandering around all day, I didn't see a single vehicle. I recall only the small shop of a polite photographer, whose photos of the Pineta, the legendary great pine forest just outside of town, made me really want to explore that sanctuary. There wasn’t much architecture of note; although there are many large homes with prestigious names, they sit cracked and baking under the sun in an uncomfortable way. Most of the houses have a nearly rustic roughness; they are low, plain, and shabby, punctuated by tall garden walls over which tangled vines droop lifelessly into the stagnant streets. In this dreariness, in some particularly quiet and grassy spot, rises an old brick church with a front more or less ruined by cheap renovations, and a strange cylindrical campanile pierced with small arched windows that strongly hints at the fifth century. These churches represent the tangible interest of Ravenna, and their main appeal, after thirteen centuries of misguided renovations, lies in their unmatched collection of early Christian mosaics. This interest is straightforward, almost to the point of being harsh, and directs one's attention along a very clear path. There are older churches in Rome, and churches that, when viewed as museums, are more diverse and richly informative; but in Rome, you stumble upon some curious pagan memorial at every turn, often beautiful enough to distract your thoughts from the strange, rigid forms of primitive Christianity.
Ravenna, on the other hand, began with the Church, and all her monuments and relics are harmoniously rigid. By the middle of the first century she possessed an exemplary saint, Apollinaris, a disciple of Peter, to whom her two finest places of worship are dedicated. It was to one of these, jocosely entitled the “new,” that I first directed my steps. I lingered outside a while and looked at the great red, barrel-shaped bell-towers, so rusty, so crumbling, so archaic, and yet so resolute to ring in another century or two, and then went in to the coolness, the shining marble columns, the queer old sculptured slabs and sarcophagi and the long mosaics that scintillated, under the roof, along the wall of the nave. San Apollinare Nuovo, like most of its companions, is a magazine of early Christian odds and ends; fragments of yellow marble incrusted with quaint sculptured emblems of primitive dogma; great rough troughs, containing the bones of old bishops; episcopal chairs with the marble worn narrow by centuries of pressure from the solid episcopal person; slabs from the fronts of old pulpits, covered with carven hierogylphics of an almost Egyptian abstruseness—lambs and stags and fishes and beasts of theological affinities even less apparent. Upon all these strange things the strange figures in the great mosaic panorama look down, with coloured cheeks and staring eyes, lifelike enough to speak to you and answer your wonderment and tell you in bad Latin of the decadence that it was in such and such a fashion they believed and worshipped. First, on each side, near the door, are houses and ships and various old landmarks of Ravenna; then begins a long procession, on one side, of twenty-two white-robed virgins and three obsequious magi, terminating in a throne bearing the Madonna and Child, surrounded by four angels; on the other side, of an equal number of male saints (twenty-five, that is) holding crowns in their hands and leading to a Saviour enthroned between angels of singular expressiveness. What it is these long slim seraphs express I cannot quite say, but they have an odd, knowing, sidelong look out of the narrow ovals of their eyes which, though not without sweetness, would certainly make me murmur a defensive prayer or so were I to find myself alone in the church towards dusk. All this work is of the latter part of the sixth century and brilliantly preserved. The gold backgrounds twinkle as if they had been inserted yesterday, and here and there a figure is executed almost too much in the modern manner to be interesting; for the charm of mosaic work is, to my sense, confined altogether to the infancy of the art. The great Christ, in the series of which I speak, is quite an elaborate picture, and yet he retains enough of the orthodox stiffness to make him impressive in the simpler, elder sense. He is clad in a purple robe, even as an emperor, his hair and beard are artfully curled, his eyebrows arched, his complexion brilliant, his whole aspect such a one as the popular mind may have attributed to Honorius or Valentinian. It is all very Byzantine, and yet I found in it much of that interest which is inseparable, to a facile imagination, from all early representations of our Lord. Practically they are no more authentic than the more or less plausible inventions of Ary Scheffer and Holman Hunt; in spite of which they borrow a certain value, factitious perhaps but irresistible, from the mere fact that they are twelve or thirteen centuries less distant from the original. It is something that this was the way the people in the sixth century imagined Jesus to have looked; the image has suffered by so many the fewer accretions. The great purple-robed monarch on the wall of Ravenna is at least a very potent and positive Christ, and the only objection I have to make to him is that though in this character he must have had a full apportionment of divine foreknowledge he betrays no apprehension of Dr. Channing and M. Renan. If one’s preference lies, for distinctness’ sake, between the old plainness and the modern fantasy, one must admit that the plainness has here a very grand outline.
Ravenna, on the other hand, started with the Church, and all her monuments and relics are impressively solid. By the middle of the first century, she had a remarkable saint, Apollinaris, a disciple of Peter, dedicated to her two finest places of worship. It was to one of these, playfully called the "new," that I first made my way. I paused outside for a moment, admiring the large red, barrel-shaped bell towers, which looked so rusty, crumbling, and ancient, yet were still determined to ring for another century or two. I then entered to find the coolness within, the shiny marble columns, the quirky old sculpted slabs and sarcophagi, and the long mosaics that sparkled under the roof and along the walls of the nave. San Apollinare Nuovo, like most of its counterparts, is a collection of early Christian curiosities; scraps of yellow marble inlaid with odd sculpted symbols of early beliefs; large rough troughs containing the remains of old bishops; episcopal chairs worn thin by centuries of use; slabs from old pulpits covered in carvings that are almost as obscure as Egyptian hieroglyphs—lambs, stags, fish, and creatures of theological significance that are even less clear. Above these strange objects, the unusual figures in the massive mosaic panorama gaze down, with colorful faces and wide eyes, lifelike enough to engage you and respond to your curiosity, telling you in poor Latin that this was how they believed and worshipped in those times. First, on each side near the entrance, are houses, ships, and various old landmarks of Ravenna; then begins a long procession on one side of twenty-two white-robed virgins and three respectful magi, ending in a throne holding the Madonna and Child, surrounded by four angels; on the other side, an equal number of male saints (twenty-five, to be exact) holding crowns and leading to a Savior seated between angels of remarkable expression. What these long, slender seraphs convey, I can’t quite articulate, but they have a peculiar, knowing side glance from their narrow eyes that, though not devoid of sweetness, would certainly make me murmur a defensive prayer if I found myself alone in the church at dusk. All this artwork is from the latter part of the sixth century and is brilliantly preserved. The gold backgrounds shine like they were added yesterday, and here and there, a figure is depicted almost too modernly to be interesting; for me, the charm of mosaic art is entirely tied to its early phases. The grand Christ in the series I mention is quite an elaborate image, yet he still holds enough of the traditional stiffness to be impressive in a simpler, older sense. He is dressed in a purple robe, just like an emperor, his hair and beard perfectly styled, his eyebrows arched, his complexion radiant, his whole appearance resembling what the popular imagination might have attributed to Honorius or Valentinian. It all feels very Byzantine, yet I found in it much of the interest that is inevitably tied to all early representations of our Lord. In reality, they are no more authentic than the more or less believable creations of Ary Scheffer and Holman Hunt; nonetheless, they gain a certain value, perhaps artificial but undeniable, simply because they are twelve or thirteen centuries closer to the original. It means something that this was how people in the sixth century envisioned Jesus; the image has accumulated fewer distortions over time. The great purple-robed figure on the wall in Ravenna is at least a powerful and distinct Christ, and the only critique I have is that despite being depicted in this manner, he shows no awareness of Dr. Channing or M. Renan. If one prefers, for the sake of clarity, to choose between the old simplicity and modern creativity, one must recognize that the simplicity here has an impressively grand outline.
{Illustration: SANT APOLLINAR NUOVO, RAVENNA.}
{Illustration: SANT APOLLINAR NUOVO, RAVENNA.}
I spent the rest of the morning in charmed transition between the hot yellow streets and the cool grey interiors of the churches. The greyness everywhere was lighted up by the scintillation, on vault and entablature, of mosaics more or less archaic, but always brilliant and elaborate, and everywhere too by the same deep amaze of the fact that, while centuries had worn themselves away and empires risen and fallen, these little cubes of coloured glass had stuck in their allotted places and kept their freshness. I have no space for a list of the various shrines so distinguished, and, to tell the truth, my memory of them has already become a very generalised and undiscriminated record. The total aspect of the place, its sepulchral stillness, its absorbing perfume of evanescence and decay and mortality, confounds the distinctions and blurs the details. The Cathedral, which is vast and high, has been excessively modernised, and was being still more so by a lavish application of tinsel and cotton-velvet in preparation for the centenary feast of St. Apollinaris, which befalls next month. Things on this occasion are to be done handsomely, and a fair Ravennese informed me that a single family had contributed three thousand francs towards a month’s vesper-music. It seemed to me hereupon that I should like in the August twilight to wander into the quiet nave of San Apollinare, and look up at the great mosaics through the resonance of some fine chanting. I remember distinctly enough, however, the tall basilica of San Vitale, of octagonal shape, like an exchange or custom-house—modelled, I believe, upon St. Sophia at Constantinople. It has a great span of height and a great solemnity, as well as a choir densely pictured over on arch and apse with mosaics of the time of Justinian. These are regular pictures, full of movement, gesture and perspective, and just enough sobered in hue by time to bring home their remoteness. In the middle of the church, under the great dome, sat an artist whom I envied, making at an effective angle a study of the choir and its broken lights, its decorated altar and its incrusted twinkling walls. The picture, when finished, will hang, I suppose, on the library wall of some person of taste; but even if it is much better than is probable—I did n’t look at it—all his taste won’t tell the owner, unless he has been there, in just what a soundless, mouldering, out-of-the-way corner of old Italy it was painted. An even better place for an artist fond of dusky architectural nooks, except that here the dusk is excessive and he would hardly be able to tell his green from his red, is the extraordinary little church of the Santi Nazaro e Celso, otherwise known as the mausoleum of Galla Placidia. This is perhaps on the whole the spot in Ravenna where the impression is of most sovereign authority and most thrilling force. It consists of a narrow low-browed cave, shaped like a Latin cross, every inch of which except the floor is covered with dense symbolic mosaics. Before you and on each side, through the thick brown light, loom three enormous barbaric sarcophagi, containing the remains of potentates of the Lower Empire. It is as if history had burrowed under ground to escape from research and you had fairly run it to earth. On the right lie the ashes of the Emperor Honorius, and in the middle those of his sister, Galla Placidia, a lady who, I believe, had great adventures. On the other side rest the bones of Constantius III. The place might be a small natural grotto lined with glimmering mineral substances, and there is something quite tremendous in being shut up so closely with these three imperial ghosts. The shadow of the great Roman name broods upon the huge sepulchres and abides for ever within the narrow walls.
I spent the rest of the morning in a beautiful transition between the hot yellow streets and the cool grey interiors of the churches. The grey everywhere was brightened by the sparkling mosaics on the ceilings and walls, which were more or less ancient but always vibrant and intricate. It was astounding that, while centuries had passed and empires had risen and fallen, these little cubes of colored glass remained in their places, keeping their freshness. I don’t have space to list all the various distinguished shrines, and honestly, my memory of them has become quite generalized. The overall feel of the place, its quiet stillness, and its haunting scent of fleetingness and decay blur the distinctions and details. The Cathedral, which is huge and tall, has been overly modernized and was being made even more so with a lavish application of tinsel and cotton velvet in preparation for the centenary feast of St. Apollinaris next month. For this occasion, things are meant to be done splendidly, and a local told me that one family donated three thousand francs towards a month of evening music. I thought it would be nice to wander into the calm nave of San Apollinare in the August twilight and admire the grand mosaics while listening to some beautiful singing. However, I clearly remember the tall basilica of San Vitale, which is octagonal like a marketplace or customs house—modeled, I believe, after St. Sophia in Constantinople. It has a vast height and a great sense of solemnity, as well as a choir richly adorned with mosaics from the time of Justinian. These are proper pictures, full of movement, gestures, and perspective, just subdued enough in color by time to highlight their distance. In the center of the church, under the great dome, sat an artist I envied, capturing a study of the choir and its broken lights, decorated altar, and twinkling walls from a great angle. When finished, I assume his painting will hang in the library of someone with good taste; but even if it turns out better than expected—I didn’t look closely—all his taste won’t convey to the owner, unless he has been there, just how soundless, crumbling, and remote that corner of old Italy is. An even better place for an artist who loves dark architectural nooks, though here the dimness is so intense he could hardly distinguish green from red, is the extraordinary little church of Santi Nazaro e Celso, also known as the mausoleum of Galla Placidia. This might be the spot in Ravenna that gives off the most powerful sense of authority and excitement. It’s a narrow, low-ceilinged cave shaped like a Latin cross, with every inch of the walls covered in dense, symbolic mosaics, except for the floor. In front of you and on each side, through the thick brown light, stand three massive, barbaric sarcophagi, containing the remains of rulers from the Lower Empire. It feels as if history has buried itself underground to avoid being studied, and you’ve found it. On the right lies the ashes of Emperor Honorius, in the center those of his sister, Galla Placidia, a woman who, I believe, had many adventures. On the other side rest the bones of Constantius III. The place could be a small natural grotto lined with glimmering minerals, and there’s something quite awe-inspiring about being so close to these three imperial ghosts. The shadow of the great Roman name lingers over the massive tombs and remains forever within the narrow walls.
But still other memories hang about than those of primitive bishops and degenerate emperors. Byron lived here and Dante died here, and the tomb of the one poet and the dwelling of the other are among the advertised appeals. The grave of Dante, it must be said, is anything but Dantesque, and the whole precinct is disposed with that odd vulgarity of taste which distinguishes most modern Italian tributes to greatness. The author of The Divine Comedy commemorated in stucco, even in a slumbering corner of Ravenna, is not “sympathetic.” Fortunately of all poets he least needs a monument, as he was pre-eminently an architect in diction and built himself his temple of fame in verses more solid than Cyclopean blocks. If Dante’s tomb is not Dantesque, so neither is Byron’s house Byronic, being a homely, shabby, two-storied dwelling, directly on the street, with as little as possible of isolation and mystery. In Byron’s time it was an inn, and it is rather a curious reflection that “Cain” and the “Vision of Judgment” should have been written at an hotel. The fact supplies a commanding precedent for self-abstraction to tourists at once sentimental and literary. I must declare indeed that my acquaintance with Ravenna considerably increased my esteem for Byron and helped to renew my faith in the sincerity of his inspiration. A man so much de son temps as the author of the above-named and other pieces can have spent two long years in this stagnant city only by the help of taking a great deal of disinterested pleasure in his own genius. He had indeed a notable pastime—the various churches are adorned with monuments of ancestral Guicciolis—but it is none the less obvious that Ravenna, fifty years ago, would have been an intolerably dull residence to a foreigner of distinction unequipped with intellectual resources. The hour one spends with Byron’s memory then is almost compassionate. After all, one says to one’s self as one turns away from the grandiloquent little slab in front of his house and looks down the deadly provincial vista of the empty, sunny street, the author of so many superb stanzas asked less from the world than he gave it. One of his diversions was to ride in the Pineta, which, beginning a couple of miles from the city, extends some twenty-five miles along the sands of the Adriatic. I drove out to it for Byron’s sake, and Dante’s, and Boccaccio’s, all of whom have interwoven it with their fictions, and for that of a possible whiff of coolness from the sea. Between the city and the forest, in the midst of malarious rice-swamps, stands the finest of the Ravennese churches, the stately temple of San Apollinare in Classe. The Emperor Augustus constructed hereabouts a harbour for fleets, which the ages have choked up, and which survives only in the title of this ancient church. Its extreme loneliness makes it doubly impressive. They opened the great doors for me, and let a shaft of heated air go wander up the beautiful nave between the twenty-four lustrous, pearly columns of cipollino marble, and mount the wide staircase of the choir and spend itself beneath the mosaics of the vault. I passed a memorable half-hour sitting in this wave of tempered light, looking down the cool grey avenue of the nave, out of the open door, at the vivid green swamps, and listening to the melancholy stillness. I rambled for an hour in the Wood of Associations, between the tall smooth, silvery stems of the pines, and beside a creek which led me to the outer edge of the wood and a view of white sails, gleaming and gliding behind the sand-hills. It was infinitely, it was nobly “quaint,” but, as the trees stand at wide intervals and bear far aloft in the blue air but a little parasol of foliage, I suppose that, of a glaring summer day, the forest itself was only the more characteristic of its clime and country for being perfectly shadeless.
But there are still other memories here besides those of ancient bishops and corrupt emperors. Byron lived here and Dante died here, and the tomb of one poet and the home of the other are popular attractions. I have to say, Dante's grave is far from being Dantesque, and the entire area has that strange tackiness that marks most modern Italian tributes to greatness. The author of The Divine Comedy memorialized in stucco, even in a quiet corner of Ravenna, doesn’t evoke much sympathy. Luckily, out of all poets, he needs a monument the least, as he was primarily a master of language and built his own temple of fame in verses more solid than giant stone blocks. If Dante’s tomb isn’t Dantesque, then Byron’s house isn't Byronic either; it’s just a plain, shabby two-story building right on the street, with as little isolation and mystery as possible. Back in Byron’s day, it was an inn, and it’s quite interesting to think that “Cain” and the “Vision of Judgment” were written in a hotel. This fact sets a noteworthy example for tourists who are both sentimental and literary. I must admit that my time in Ravenna greatly increased my admiration for Byron and helped restore my belief in the authenticity of his inspiration. A man so much de son temps as the author of the works mentioned above must have spent two long years in this stagnant city only by enjoying his own genius. He actually had quite an interesting pastime—the various churches are filled with monuments to his ancestors, the Guicciolis—but it’s also clear that Ravenna, fifty years ago, would have been an incredibly dull place for a distinguished foreigner without any intellectual resources. Spending time with Byron’s memory feels a bit heartbreaking. After all, as you turn away from the grand little plaque in front of his house and gaze down the lifeless provincial stretch of the empty, sunny street, you realize that the author of so many beautiful verses asked less from the world than he gave it. One of his pastimes was riding in the Pineta, which starts a couple of miles from the city and stretches about twenty-five miles along the Adriatic sands. I drove out there for Byron, and Dante, and Boccaccio, all of whom included it in their stories, as well as for a possible cool breeze from the sea. Between the city and the forest, in the midst of malarial rice fields, stands the most impressive of the churches in Ravenna, the grand temple of San Apollinare in Classe. The Emperor Augustus built a harbor for fleets nearby, which time has filled in, and it remains only in the name of this ancient church. Its extreme solitude makes it even more striking. They opened the big doors for me, letting a stream of hot air drift through the beautiful nave, flowing between the twenty-four lustrous, pearly columns of cipollino marble, ascending the wide staircase to the choir, and dissipating under the mosaics of the ceiling. I spent a memorable half-hour sitting in this warm light, looking down the cool grey expanse of the nave, out the open door at the vivid green swamps, and listening to the mournful silence. I wandered for an hour in the Wood of Associations, among the tall smooth, silvery trunks of the pines, beside a creek that led me to the edge of the forest and a view of white sails glinting and gliding behind the sand dunes. It was infinitely, nobly “quaint,” but since the trees stand at wide intervals and only provide a small canopy of foliage high up in the blue sky, I suppose that on a blazing summer day, the forest itself would only be more characteristic of its environment for being completely sunlit.
{Illustration: RAVENNA PINETA.}
{Illustration: RAVENNA PINETA.}
1873.
THE SAINT’S AFTERNOON AND OTHERS
Before and above all was the sense that, with the narrow limits of past adventure, I had never yet had such an impression of what the summer could be in the south or the south in the summer; but I promptly found it, for the occasion, a good fortune that my terms of comparison were restricted. It was really something, at a time when the stride of the traveller had become as long as it was easy, when the seven-league boots positively hung, for frequent use, in the closet of the most sedentary, to have kept one’s self so innocent of strange horizons that the Bay of Naples in June might still seem quite final. That picture struck me—a particular corner of it at least, and for many reasons—as the last word; and it is this last word that comes back to me, after a short interval, in a green, grey northern nook, and offers me again its warm, bright golden meaning before it also inevitably catches the chill. Too precious, surely, for us not to suffer it to help us as it may is the faculty of putting together again in an order the sharp minutes and hours that the wave of time has been as ready to pass over as the salt sea to wipe out the letters and words your stick has traced in the sand. Let me, at any rate, recover a sufficient number of such signs to make a sort of sense.
Before everything else, I felt that, with my limited past experiences, I had never really understood what summer in the south was like or what the south felt like in the summer. But I quickly realized that my narrow frame of reference was actually a blessing for this occasion. At a time when traveling had become easy and common—when even the most sedentary people had their seven-league boots ready for frequent adventures—it was something to have remained so untouched by unfamiliar places that the Bay of Naples in June could still feel like the absolute end of the world. That image struck me—at least a part of it, for various reasons—as the definitive statement. And it's this statement that returns to me, after a brief moment, in a greenish-grey corner of the north, bringing back its warm, bright golden meaning before it inevitably fades into chill. The ability to piece together the sharp moments and hours that time's wave easily washes away, much like the sea erases the letters and words you've written in the sand, is surely too valuable for us not to let it guide us. Let me, at least, gather enough of these signs to make some sense of it all.
I
Far aloft on the great rock was pitched, as the first note, and indeed the highest, of the wondrous concert, the amazing creation of the friend who had offered me hospitality, and whom, more almost than I had ever envied anyone anything, I envied the privilege of being able to reward a heated, artless pilgrim with a revelation of effects so incalculable. There was none but the loosest prefigurement as the creaking and puffing little boat, which had conveyed me only from Sorrento, drew closer beneath the prodigious island—beautiful, horrible and haunted—that does most, of all the happy elements and accidents, towards making the Bay of Naples, for the study of composition, a lesson in the grand style. There was only, above and below, through the blue of the air and sea, a great confused shining of hot cliffs and crags and buttresses, a loss, from nearness, of the splendid couchant outline and the more comprehensive mass, and an opportunity—oh, not lost, I assure you—to sit and meditate, even moralise, on the empty deck, while a happy brotherhood of American and German tourists, including, of course, many sisters, scrambled down into little waiting, rocking tubs and, after a few strokes, popped systematically into the small orifice of the Blue Grotto. There was an appreciable moment when they were all lost to view in that receptacle, the daily “psychological” moment during which it must so often befall the recalcitrant observer on the deserted deck to find himself aware of how delightful it might be if none of them should come out again. The charm, the fascination of the idea is not a little—though also not wholly—in the fact that, as the wave rises over the aperture, there is the most encouraging appearance that they perfectly may not. There it is. There is no more of them. It is a case to which nature has, by the neatest stroke and with the best taste in the world, just quietly attended.
High up on the massive rock was a striking feature, the first note, and indeed the highest, of the incredible concert, the astonishing creation of the friend who welcomed me, and whom I envied—more than I had ever envied anyone— for the privilege of being able to reward a passionate, innocent traveler with a revelation of effects so unimaginable. There was only the faintest hint of what was to come as the creaking and puffing little boat, which had brought me from Sorrento, got closer beneath the grand island—beautiful, terrifying, and haunted—that contributes the most, among all the delightful elements and chances, to making the Bay of Naples a stunning study of grand composition. Above and below, through the blue of the sky and sea, there was a dazzling mix of hot cliffs, rugged rocks, and supports, a loss of the majestic outline and the larger mass due to proximity, and a chance—oh, not missed, I assure you—to sit and reflect, even moralize, on the empty deck, while a joyful group of American and German tourists, including many women, scrambled into little waiting, swaying boats and, after a few strokes, disappeared systematically into the small entrance of the Blue Grotto. There was a noticeable moment when they all vanished from sight in that space, the daily “psychological” moment during which the reluctant observer on the deserted deck often realizes how delightful it could be if none of them returned. The charm and allure of the idea is not insignificant—though not entirely—in the fact that as the wave rises over the opening, it appears quite possible that they might not. There it is. There is no more of them. Nature has handled this situation with the finest touch and the best taste in the world, just quietly.
Beautiful, horrible, haunted: that is the essence of what, about itself, Capri says to you—dip again into your Tacitus and see why; and yet, while you roast a little under the awning and in the vaster shadow, it is not because the trail of Tiberius is ineffaceable that you are most uneasy. The trail of Germanicus in Italy to-day ramifies further and bites perhaps even deeper; a proof of which is, precisely, that his eclipse in the Blue Grotto is inexorably brief, that here he is popping out again, bobbing enthusiastically back and scrambling triumphantly back. The spirit, in truth, of his effective appropriation of Capri has a broad-faced candour against which there is no standing up, supremely expressive as it is of the well-known “love that kills,” of Germanicus’s fatal susceptibility. If I were to let myself, however, incline to that aspect of the serious case of Capri I should embark on strange depths. The straightness and simplicity, the classic, synthetic directness of the German passion for Italy, make this passion probably the sentiment in the world that is in the act of supplying enjoyment in the largest, sweetest mouthfuls; and there is something unsurpassably marked in the way that on this irresistible shore it has seated itself to ruminate and digest. It keeps the record in its own loud accents; it breaks out in the folds of the hills and on the crests of the crags into every manner of symptom and warning. Huge advertisements and portents stare across the bay; the acclivities bristle with breweries and “restorations” and with great ugly Gothic names. I hasten, of course, to add that some such general consciousness as this may well oppress, under any sky, at the century’s end, the brooding tourist who makes himself a prey by staying anywhere, when the gong sounds, “behind.” It is behind, in the track and the reaction, that he least makes out the end of it all, perceives that to visit anyone’s country for anyone’s sake is more and more to find some one quite other in possession. No one, least of all the brooder himself, is in his own.
Beautiful, terrible, haunted: that’s the essence of what Capri tells you. Dive back into your Tacitus to see why; yet, while you’re lounging a bit under the awning and in the larger shadow, it’s not just the unerasable mark of Tiberius that makes you uneasy. The legacy of Germanicus in Italy today runs deeper and impacts you perhaps even more; proof of this is that his time in the Blue Grotto is fleeting, and he emerges again, popping up enthusiastically and scrambling back triumphantly. The spirit of his successful connection with Capri radiates an undeniable honesty that’s hard to resist, deeply expressive of the well-known “love that kills” and Germanicus’s tragic vulnerability. However, if I allowed myself to lean toward that perspective on the serious matter of Capri, I would plunge into strange depths. The straightforwardness and simplicity, the classic, clear-cut directness of the German passion for Italy, probably makes this feeling the sentiment most capable of delivering enjoyment in the largest, sweetest bites; and it’s something uniquely evident in how it has settled along this captivating shore to reflect and savor. It keeps the record in its own loud way; it bursts forth in the contours of the hills and on the peaks of the cliffs with all kinds of signs and warnings. Huge advertisements and ominous symbols gaze across the bay; the slopes are lined with breweries and “restorations” and with great, ugly Gothic names. I quickly add that this kind of overall awareness might well weigh on the pondering tourist who becomes a victim of lingering anywhere when the gong sounds, “behind.” It’s in the back, in the aftermath and reactions, that they least understand the meaning of it all, realizing that visiting someone’s country for someone else’s sake increasingly means encountering someone entirely different in charge. No one, least of all the brooding traveler, is truly in their own space.
II
I certainly, at any rate, felt the force of this truth when, on scaling the general rock with the eye of apprehension, I made out at a point much nearer its summit than its base the gleam of a dizzily-perched white sea-gazing front which I knew for my particular landmark and which promised so much that it would have been welcome to keep even no more than half. Let me instantly say that it kept still more than it promised, and by no means least in the way of leaving far below it the worst of the outbreak of restorations and breweries. There is a road at present to the upper village, with which till recently communication was all by rude steps cut in the rock and diminutive donkeys scrambling on the flints; one of those fine flights of construction which the great road-making “Latin races” take, wherever they prevail, without advertisement or bombast; and even while I followed along the face of the cliff its climbing consolidated ledge, I asked myself how I could think so well of it without consistently thinking better still of the temples of beer so obviously destined to enrich its terminus. The perfect answer to that was of course that the brooding tourist is never bound to be consistent. What happier law for him than this very one, precisely, when on at last alighting, high up in the blue air, to stare and gasp and almost disbelieve, he embraced little by little the beautiful truth particularly, on this occasion, reserved for himself, and took in the stupendous picture? For here above all had the thought and the hand come from far away—even from ultima Thule, and yet were in possession triumphant and acclaimed. Well, all one could say was that the way they had felt their opportunity, the divine conditions of the place, spoke of the advantage of some such intellectual perspective as a remote original standpoint alone perhaps can give. If what had finally, with infinite patience, passion, labour, taste, got itself done there, was like some supreme reward of an old dream of Italy, something perfect after long delays, was it not verily in ultima Thule that the vow would have been piously enough made and the germ tenderly enough nursed? For a certain art of asking of Italy all she can give, you must doubtless either be a rare raffine or a rare genius, a sophisticated Norseman or just a Gabriele d’ Annunzio.
I definitely felt the impact of this truth when, climbing the rocky landscape with a sense of caution, I spotted, closer to the top than the bottom, the bright gleam of a white sea-viewing structure that I recognized as my landmark, which promised so much that I would have been happy to receive even just half of it. I should quickly mention that it delivered even more than it promised, notably by keeping the worst of the renovations and breweries far below. There’s now a road leading to the upper village, whereas until recently, access was limited to rough steps carved into the rock and tiny donkeys navigating the stones; one of those impressive constructions that the great road-building "Latin races" accomplish without fanfare or boasting. As I followed the ledge climbing along the cliff face, I wondered how I could appreciate it so much while not thinking even better of the breweries that were clearly intended to enhance its end point. The simple answer, of course, is that a reflective traveler doesn’t have to be consistent. What happier rule for him than this, especially when he finally arrives high up in the clear sky, staring in awe and almost disbelief, gradually embracing the beautiful truth specifically meant for him while taking in the stunning view? For here, above all, the creativity and effort had come from far away—even from ultima Thule—and yet they were triumphantly claimed. All one could say was that their recognition of the opportunity and the divine qualities of the place spoke to the advantage of having some intellectual perspective that only a distant original standpoint can offer. If what had finally come to fruition there, after endless patience, passion, labor, and taste, resembled the ultimate reward of a long-held dream of Italy—something perfect after lengthy delays—wasn’t it truly in ultima Thule that the vow would have been reverently made and the essence tenderly nurtured? To truly ask Italy for all she can provide, you must surely either be a rare raffine or a rare genius, a cultured Norseman or just a Gabriele d'Annunzio.
All she can give appeared to me, assuredly, for that day and the following, gathered up and enrolled there: in the wondrous cluster and dispersal of chambers, corners, courts, galleries, arbours, arcades, long white ambulatories and vertiginous points of view. The greatest charm of all perhaps was that, thanks to the particular conditions, she seemed to abound, to overflow, in directions in which I had never yet enjoyed the chance to find her so free. The indispensable thing was therefore, in observation, in reflection, to press the opportunity hard, to recognise that as the abundance was splendid, so, by the same stroke, it was immensely suggestive. It dropped into one’s lap, naturally, at the end of an hour or two, the little white flower of its formula: the brooding tourist, in other words, could only continue to brood till he had made out in a measure, as I may say, what was so wonderfully the matter with him. He was simply then in the presence, more than ever yet, of the possible poetry of the personal and social life of the south, and the fun would depend much—as occasions are fleeting—on his arriving in time, in the interest of that imagination which is his only field of sport, at adequate new notations of it. The sense of all this, his obscure and special fun in the general bravery, mixed, on the morrow, with the long, human hum of the bright, hot day and filled up the golden cup with questions and answers. The feast of St. Antony, the patron of the upper town, was the one thing in the air, and of the private beauty of the place, there on the narrow shelf, in the shining, shaded loggias and above the blue gulfs, all comers were to be made free.
All she could offer struck me, without a doubt, for that day and the next, gathered and recorded there: in the amazing collection and spread of rooms, nooks, courtyards, galleries, alcoves, arcades, long white walkways, and dizzying viewpoints. The greatest appeal of it all, perhaps, was that, due to the specific circumstances, she seemed to flow abundantly in ways I had never had the chance to see her so unrestricted. Therefore, the essential thing was to observe and reflect carefully, to seize the opportunity and realize that while the abundance was magnificent, it was equally highly suggestive. It naturally handed you, by the end of an hour or two, the small white essence of its message: the reflective tourist, in other words, could only keep reflecting until he figured out, to some extent, what was so wonderfully wrong with him. He was simply in the presence, more than ever before, of the potential poetry of personal and social life in the south, and the enjoyment would depend much—since opportunities are fleeting—on him arriving in time, for the sake of that imagination which is his only playground, at suitable new interpretations of it. The awareness of all this, his obscure and unique enjoyment within the general courage, blended the next day with the long, human buzz of the bright, hot day and filled the golden cup with questions and answers. The feast of St. Antony, the patron of the upper town, was the one thing in the air, and regarding the hidden beauty of the place, there on the narrow ledge, in the shining, shaded loggias and over the blue depths, everyone was to be made welcome.
III
The church-feast of its saint is of course for Anacapri, as for any self-respecting Italian town, the great day of the year, and the smaller the small “country,” in native parlance, as well as the simpler, accordingly, the life, the less the chance for leakage, on other pretexts, of the stored wine of loyalty. This pure fluid, it was easy to feel overnight, had not sensibly lowered its level; so that nothing indeed, when the hour came, could well exceed the outpouring. All up and down the Sorrentine promontory the early summer happens to be the time of the saints, and I had just been witness there of a week on every day of which one might have travelled, through kicked-up clouds and other demonstrations, to a different hot holiday. There had been no bland evening that, somewhere or other, in the hills or by the sea, the white dust and the red glow didn’t rise to the dim stars. Dust, perspiration, illumination, conversation—these were the regular elements. “They’re very civilised,” a friend who knows them as well as they can be known had said to me of the people in general; “plenty of fireworks and plenty of talk—that’s all they ever want.” That they were “civilised”—on the side on which they were most to show—was therefore to be the word of the whole business, and nothing could have, in fact, had more interest than the meaning that for the thirty-six hours I read into it.
The church festival for its saint is, of course, for Anacapri, like any self-respecting Italian town, the biggest event of the year. The smaller the “country,” as locals say, the more straightforward the life, and the less likely there is to be any leakage of the reserved loyalty wine for other reasons. This pure liquid, it was clear overnight, hadn’t noticeably dropped in level; so when the moment came, the outpouring couldn’t have been more intense. All along the Sorrentine promontory, early summer is the season of saints, and I had just witnessed a week where each day offered a different festive experience, complete with kicked-up dust and other signs of celebration. There hadn’t been a single calm evening when, somewhere in the hills or by the sea, the white dust and red glow didn’t rise to the faint stars. Dust, sweat, light, conversation—these were the usual elements. “They’re very civilized,” a friend who knows them well said about the locals; “lots of fireworks and plenty of chatter—that’s all they really want.” The fact that they were “civilized”—in the most obvious ways they chose to display—was, therefore, the key takeaway of the whole experience, and nothing could have been more intriguing than the meaning I found in it over those thirty-six hours.
Seen from below and diminished by distance, Anacapri makes scarce a sign, and the road that leads to it is not traceable over the rock; but it sits at its ease on its high, wide table, of which it covers—and with picturesque southern culture as well—as much as it finds convenient. As much of it as possible was squeezed all the morning, for St. Antony, into the piazzetta before the church, and as much more into that edifice as the robust odour mainly prevailing there allowed room for. It was the odour that was in prime occupation, and one could only wonder how so many men, women and children could cram themselves into so much smell. It was surely the smell, thick and resisting, that was least successfully to be elbowed. Meanwhile the good saint, before he could move into the air, had, among the tapers and the tinsel, the opera-music and the pulpit poundings, bravely to snuff it up. The shade outside was hot, and the sun was hot; but we waited as densely for him to come out, or rather to come “on,” as the pit at the opera waits for the great tenor. There were people from below and people from the mainland and people from Pomerania and a brass band from Naples. There were other figures at the end of longer strings—strings that, some of them indeed, had pretty well given way and were now but little snippets trailing in the dust. Oh, the queer sense of the good old Capri of artistic legend, of which the name itself was, in the more benighted years—years of the contadina and the pifferaro—a bright evocation! Oh, the echo, on the spot, of each romantic tale! Oh, the loafing painters, so bad and so happy, the conscious models, the vague personalities! The “beautiful Capri girl” was of course not missed, though not perhaps so beautiful as in her ancient glamour, which none the less didn’t at all exclude the probable presence—with his legendary light quite undimmed—of the English lord in disguise who will at no distant date marry her. The whole thing was there; one held it in one’s hand.
Seen from below and smaller due to distance, Anacapri barely shows any signs, and the road leading to it is hard to trace over the rocks; yet it comfortably sits on its high, wide plateau, covering as much of it—and with its charming southern culture—as it deems fit. Much of it was packed into the piazzetta in front of the church for St. Antony all morning, and even more was inside the building, limited by the strong scent that dominated the space. The scent was the main fixture, and one could only wonder how so many men, women, and children could crowd into such a strong smell. It was surely the scent, thick and persistent, that was the hardest to push through. Meanwhile, the good saint, before he could step outside into the fresh air, had to bravely absorb it amidst the candles and glitter, the opera music and the loud preaching. The shade outside was hot, and the sun was hot; yet we waited with as much anticipation for him to come out, or rather to come “on,” as the audience at the opera waits for the great tenor. There were people from the nearby areas, folks from the mainland, visitors from Pomerania, and a brass band from Naples. There were other figures at the end of longer lines—some of those lines nearly unraveled and now were just little snippets dragging in the dust. Oh, the strange feeling of the old Capri from artistic legends, a name that once evoked vivid memories in the more rustic years—the years of the peasant and the pifferaro! Oh, the echo of every romantic story in that place! Oh, the carefree painters, both awful and joyful, the aware models, the ambiguous personalities! The “beautiful Capri girl” was certainly present, though perhaps not as stunning as in her past glory, which nonetheless didn’t rule out the likely presence—with his legendary charm still intact—of the English lord in disguise who will soon marry her. The entire scene was tangible; one could hold it in one’s hand.
The saint comes out at last, borne aloft in long procession and under a high canopy: a rejoicing, staring, smiling saint, openly delighted with the one happy hour in the year on which he may take his own walk. Frocked and tonsured, but not at all macerated, he holds in his hand a small wax puppet of an infant Jesus and shows him to all their friends, to whom he nods and bows: to whom, in the dazzle of the sun he literally seems to grin and wink, while his litter sways and his banners flap and every one gaily greets him. The ribbons and draperies flutter, and the white veils of the marching maidens, the music blares and the guns go off and the chants resound, and it is all as holy and merry and noisy as possible. The procession—down to the delightful little tinselled and bare-bodied babies, miniature St. Antonys irrespective of sex, led or carried by proud papas or brown grandsires—includes so much of the population that you marvel there is such a muster to look on—like the charades given in a family in which every one wants to act. But it is all indeed in a manner one house, the little high-niched island community, and nobody therefore, even in the presence of the head of it, puts on an air of solemnity. Singular and suggestive before everything else is the absence of any approach to our notion of the posture of respect, and this among people whose manners in general struck one as so good and, in particular, as so cultivated. The office of the saint—of which the festa is but the annual reaffirmation—involves not the faintest attribute of remoteness or mystery.
The saint finally comes out, carried high in a long procession and under a grand canopy: a joyful, watching, smiling saint, clearly thrilled with the one happy hour of the year when he gets to take his own walk. Dressed in his robes and with a tonsured head, but not at all worn down, he holds a small wax figure of the infant Jesus and shows it off to all his friends, to whom he nods and bows: to whom, in the bright sunshine, he genuinely seems to grin and wink, while his litter sways and his banners flap and everyone cheerfully greets him. The ribbons and drapes flutter, the white veils of the marching maidens ripple, the music blares, the guns fire, and the chants echo, creating an atmosphere that is as holy, cheerful, and loud as imaginable. The procession—right down to the delightful little glittery and naked babies, miniature St. Antonys of any gender, led or carried by proud fathers or grandfathers—includes so much of the community that you wonder how everyone came out to watch—like a family charade where everyone wants to play a part. But it really does feel like one big household, this little close-knit island community, so nobody, even in the presence of its leader, acts overly serious. What stands out the most is how there's no sense of reverence, and this is among people whose manners are generally very good and particularly cultured. The role of the saint—of which the festival is just the annual confirmation—doesn’t carry any hint of distance or mystery.
While, with my friend, I waited for him, we went for coolness into the second church of the place, a considerable and bedizened structure, with the rare curiosity of a wondrous pictured pavement of majolica, the garden of Eden done in large coloured tiles or squares, with every beast, bird and river, and a brave diminuendo, in especial, from portal to altar, of perspective, so that the animals and objects of the foreground are big and those of the successive distances differ with much propriety. Here in the sacred shade the old women were knitting, gossipping, yawning, shuffling about; here the children were romping and “larking”; here, in a manner, were the open parlour, the nursery, the kindergarten and the conversazione of the poor. This is everywhere the case by the southern sea. I remember near Sorrento a wayside chapel that seemed the scene of every function of domestic life, including cookery and others. The odd thing is that it all appears to interfere so little with that special civilised note—the note of manners—which is so constantly touched. It is barbarous to expectorate in the temple of your faith, but that doubtless is an extreme case. Is civilisation really measured by the number of things people do respect? There would seem to be much evidence against it. The oldest societies, the societies with most traditions, are naturally not the least ironic, the least blasees, and the African tribes who take so many things into account that they fear to quit their huts at night are not the fine flower.
While I waited for him with my friend, we went into the second church in the area to escape the heat. It was an impressive and ornate building, featuring a unique and stunning tiled floor made of majolica, showcasing the Garden of Eden in large colorful tiles, with every animal, bird, and river. There was a remarkable perspective from the entrance to the altar, making the animals and objects in the foreground appear large while those in the background were appropriately smaller. In this sacred coolness, the older women were knitting, chatting, yawning, and moving around; the children were playing and having fun; and in some ways, it felt like an open living room, a nursery, a kindergarten, and a gathering place for the less fortunate. This is a common sight by the southern sea. I remember a roadside chapel near Sorrento that seemed to serve every aspect of daily life, including cooking and more. The strange thing is that all of this seems to interfere very little with that distinct civilized touch—the touch of manners—that is always present. It's considered rude to spit in the place of your faith, but that’s probably an extreme case. Is civilization really judged by how many things people show respect for? There seems to be a lot of evidence that suggests otherwise. The oldest societies, the ones rich in traditions, are often not the least ironic or least jaded, and the African tribes that consider so many factors that they fear leaving their huts at night are not necessarily the pinnacle of civilization.
IV
Where, on the other hand, it was impossible not to feel to the full all the charming riguardi—to use their own good word—in which our friends could abound, was, that afternoon, in the extraordinary temple of art and hospitality that had been benignantly opened to me. Hither, from three o’clock to seven, all the world, from the small in particular to the smaller and the smallest, might freely flock, and here, from the first hour to the last, the huge straw-bellied flasks of purple wine were tilted for all the thirsty. They were many, the thirsty, they were three hundred, they were unending; but the draughts they drank were neither countable nor counted. This boon was dispensed in a long, pillared portico, where everything was white and light save the blue of the great bay as it played up from far below or as you took it in, between shining columns, with your elbows on the parapet. Sorrento and Vesuvius were over against you; Naples furthest off, melted, in the middle of the picture, into shimmering vagueness and innocence; and the long arm of Posilippo and the presence of the other islands, Procida, the stricken Ischia, made themselves felt to the left. The grand air of it all was in one’s very nostrils and seemed to come from sources too numerous and too complex to name. It was antiquity in solution, with every brown, mild figure, every note of the old speech, every tilt of the great flask, every shadow cast by every classic fragment, adding its touch to the impression. What was the secret of the surprising amenity?—to the essence of which one got no nearer than simply by feeling afresh the old story of the deep interfusion of the present with the past. You had felt that often before, and all that could, at the most, help you now was that, more than ever yet, the present appeared to become again really classic, to sigh with strange elusive sounds of Virgil and Theocritus. Heaven only knows how little they would in truth have had to say to it, but we yield to these visions as we must, and when the imagination fairly turns in its pain almost any soft name is good enough to soothe it.
Where, on the other hand, it was impossible not to fully feel all the charming riguardi—to use their own good term—in which our friends could abound, was that afternoon, in the amazing place of art and hospitality that had been graciously opened to me. Here, from three o’clock to seven, everyone, from the notable to the less notable and the least notable, could freely gather, and here, from the first hour to the last, the large, straw-bellied flasks of purple wine were poured for all the thirsty. There were many thirsty people, three hundred in total, and they seemed endless; but the drinks they consumed were neither counted nor countable. This gift was offered in a long, pillared portico, where everything was white and bright except for the blue of the great bay that sparkled far below, or as you viewed it, between shining columns, with your elbows resting on the parapet. Sorrento and Vesuvius were right in front of you; Naples, further away, blended into shimmering vagueness and innocence in the middle of the scene; and the long curve of Posilippo and the presence of the other islands, Procida and the troubled Ischia, could be felt to the left. The grand atmosphere of it all filled your senses and seemed to come from sources too many and too complex to name. It was antiquity in solution, with every brown, gentle figure, every note of the old language, every tilt of the great flask, and every shadow cast by every classic fragment contributing to the overall impression. What was the secret of this surprising warmth?—the essence of which you could only approach by simply experiencing again the old story of the deep blending of the present with the past. You had felt that often before, and all that could help you now was that, more than ever, the present seemed to become truly classic again, filled with strange, elusive echoes of Virgil and Theocritus. Heaven only knows how little they would really have had to say about it, but we give in to these visions as we must, and when the imagination is in pain, almost any gentle name is good enough to soothe it.
It threw such difficulties but a step back to say that the secret of the amenity was “style”; for what in the world was the secret of style, which you might have followed up and down the abysmal old Italy for so many a year only to be still vainly calling for it? Everything, at any rate, that happy afternoon, in that place of poetry, was bathed and blessed with it. The castle of Barbarossa had been on the height behind; the villa of black Tiberius had overhung the immensity from the right; the white arcades and the cool chambers offered to every step some sweet old “piece” of the past, some rounded porphyry pillar supporting a bust, some shaft of pale alabaster upholding a trellis, some mutilated marble image, some bronze that had roughly resisted. Our host, if we came to that, had the secret; but he could only express it in grand practical ways. One of them was precisely this wonderful “afternoon tea,” in which tea only—that, good as it is, has never the note of style—was not to be found. The beauty and the poetry, at all events, were clear enough, and the extraordinary uplifted distinction; but where, in all this, it may be asked, was the element of “horror” that I have spoken of as sensible?—what obsession that was not charming could find a place in that splendid light, out of which the long summer squeezes every secret and shadow? I’m afraid I’m driven to plead that these evils were exactly in one’s imagination, a predestined victim always of the cruel, the fatal historic sense. To make so much distinction, how much history had been needed!—so that the whole air still throbbed and ached with it, as with an accumulation of ghosts to whom the very climate was pitiless, condemning them to blanch for ever in the general glare and grandeur, offering them no dusky northern nook, no place at the friendly fireside, no shelter of legend or song.
It created so many challenges, but I’d say the secret to the charm was “style.” What exactly is the secret of style? You could search through the depths of old Italy for years and still be left wondering. Everything on that joyful afternoon, in that poetic place, was immersed in it. The castle of Barbarossa stood tall behind us; the villa of dark Tiberius loomed impressively to the right; the bright arcades and cool rooms provided a taste of sweet historical treasures with every step—each rounded porphyry pillar holding up a bust, a pale alabaster shaft supporting a trellis, a damaged marble statue, or a robust piece of bronze that had weathered time. Our host, it turns out, knew the secret as well, but he could only share it through grand practical means. One of those was the delightful “afternoon tea,” where you couldn't find just tea—that, as great as it is, doesn’t quite embody style. The beauty and poetry were evident, along with the remarkable refined distinction; but it begs the question, where was the “horror” I mentioned? What unfriendly obsession could fit into that brilliant light, in which the long summer reveals every secret and shadow? I fear these troubles came entirely from one’s imagination, a destined victim of the harsh, fatal sense of history. So much distinction required immense history!—and the whole atmosphere still pulsed with it, as if filled with ghosts who found the climate merciless, forced to pale forever in the overwhelming brightness, given no shadowy northern refuge, no spot by a warm fire, no shelter of legend or song.
V
My friend had, among many original relics, in one of his white galleries—and how he understood the effect and the “value” of whiteness!—two or three reproductions of the finest bronzes of the Naples museum, the work of a small band of brothers whom he had found himself justified in trusting to deal with their problem honourably and to bring forth something as different as possible from the usual compromise of commerce. They had brought forth, in especial, for him, a copy of the young resting, slightly-panting Mercury which it was a pure delight to live with, and they had come over from Naples on St. Antony’s eve, as they had done the year before, to report themselves to their patron, to keep up good relations, to drink Capri wine and to join in the tarantella. They arrived late, while we were at supper; they received their welcome and their billet, and I am not sure it was not the conversation and the beautiful manners of these obscure young men that most fixed in my mind for the time the sense of the side of life that, all around, was to come out strongest. It would be artless, no doubt, to represent them as high types of innocence or even of energy—at the same time that, weighing them against some ruder folk of our own race, we might perhaps have made bold to place their share even of these qualities in the scale. It was an impression indeed never infrequent in Italy, of which I might, in these days, first have felt the force during a stay, just earlier, with a friend at Sorrento—a friend who had good-naturedly “had in,” on his wondrous terrace, after dinner, for the pleasure of the gaping alien, the usual local quartette, violins, guitar and flute, the musical barber, the musical tailor, sadler, joiner, humblest sons of the people and exponents of Neapolitan song. Neapolitan song, as we know, has been blown well about the world, and it is late in the day to arrive with a ravished ear for it. That, however, was scarcely at all, for me, the question: the question, on the Sorrento terrace, so high up in the cool Capri night, was of the present outlook, in the world, for the races with whom it has been a tradition, in intercourse, positively to please.
My friend had, among many original relics, in one of his white galleries—and how he understood the impact and the “value” of whiteness!—two or three reproductions of the finest bronzes from the Naples museum, created by a small group of brothers whom he trusted to handle their work honorably and to produce something as distinct as possible from the usual commercial compromises. They had created, especially for him, a copy of the young, resting, slightly-breathless Mercury, which was a pure joy to have around, and they had traveled from Naples on St. Antony’s eve, just like they did the year before, to check in with their patron, maintain good relations, enjoy Capri wine, and join in the tarantella. They arrived late, while we were having supper; they received their welcome and their accommodations, and I’m not sure if it wasn’t their conversation and the charming manners of these unassuming young men that most strongly impressed upon me the aspect of life that was about to emerge the most vividly. It would be naive, for sure, to depict them as paragons of innocence or even energy—though, if we compared them to some rougher folks of our own culture, we might dare to consider their share of these qualities in the same light. It was a feeling I often encountered in Italy, which I might have first truly felt during an earlier visit with a friend in Sorrento—a friend who, with good humor, had invited, on his incredible terrace, after dinner, for the amusement of the curious outsider, the typical local quartet of violin, guitar, and flute: the musical barber, the musical tailor, the saddler, the carpenter, humble sons of the people and representatives of Neapolitan song. Neapolitan song, as we know, has been widely celebrated around the world, and it’s a bit late to arrive with an enchanted ear for it. However, that wasn’t really my concern: the issue, on the Sorrento terrace, high up in the cool Capri night, was about the current outlook in the world for the cultures that have traditionally engaged in pleasing social interactions.
The personal civilisation, for intercourse, of the musical barber and tailor, of the pleasant young craftsmen of my other friend’s company, was something that could be trusted to make the brooding tourist brood afresh—to say more to him in fact, all the rest of the second occasion, than everything else put together. The happy address, the charming expression, the indistinctive discretion, the complete eclipse, in short, of vulgarity and brutality—these things easily became among these people the supremely suggestive note, begetting a hundred hopes and fears as to the place that, with the present general turn of affairs about the globe, is being kept for them. They are perhaps what the races politically feeble have still most to contribute—but what appears to be the happy prospect for the races politically feeble? And so the afternoon waned, among the mellow marbles and the pleasant folk—-the purple wine flowed, the golden light faded, song and dance grew free and circulation slightly embarrassed. But the great impression remained and finally was exquisite. It was all purple wine, all art and song, and nobody a grain the worse. It was fireworks and conversation—the former, in the piazzetta, were to come later; it was civilisation and amenity. I took in the greater picture, but I lost nothing else; and I talked with the contadini about antique sculpture. No, nobody was a grain the worse; and I had plenty to think of. So it was I was quickened to remember that we others, we of my own country, as a race politically not weak, had—by what I had somewhere just heard—opened “three hundred ‘saloons’” at Manila.
The personal vibe of the musical barber and tailor, along with the friendly young craftsmen in my other friend’s group, was definitely enough to make the contemplative tourist think even more deeply—actually, it said more to him throughout the entire second occasion than everything else combined. The warm greetings, charming expressions, subtle discretion, and complete absence of crudeness and aggression easily became the most striking aspects among these people, sparking countless hopes and worries about the uncertain future facing them in light of the current global situation. They might be what politically weaker groups still have to offer, but what does a bright future look like for those politically weaker? As the afternoon faded away, surrounded by beautiful marble and friendly faces—the purple wine flowed, golden light dimmed, and song and dance became more carefree, though mingled with a slight awkwardness. But the lasting impression was ultimately beautiful. It was all about purple wine, art, and song, and no one was any worse for it. It was a blend of celebration and conversation—the fireworks in the piazzetta were yet to come; it was civility and charm. I took in the bigger picture, yet didn't miss anything else; I chatted with the local farmers about ancient sculpture. No, no one was any worse off, and I had plenty to ponder. That’s when I was reminded that we, from my own country, as a not politically weak race, had—by something I had just heard—opened “three hundred ‘saloons’” in Manila.
VI
The “other” afternoons I here pass on to—and I may include in them, for that matter, various mornings scarce less charmingly sacred to memory—were occasions of another and a later year; a brief but all felicitous impression of Naples itself, and of the approach to it from Rome, as well as of the return to Rome by a different wonderful way, which I feel I shall be wise never to attempt to “improve on.” Let me muster assurance to confess that this comparatively recent and superlatively rich reminiscence gives me for its first train of ineffable images those of a motor-run that, beginning betimes of a splendid June day, and seeing me, with my genial companions, blissfully out of Porta San Paolo, hung over us thus its benediction till the splendour had faded in the lamplit rest of the Chiaja. “We’ll go by the mountains,” my friend, of the chariot of fire, had said, “and we’ll come back, after three days, by the sea”; which handsome promise flowered into such flawless performance that I could but feel it to have closed and rounded for me, beyond any further rehandling, the long-drawn rather indeed than thick-studded chaplet of my visitations of Naples—from the first, seasoned with the highest sensibility of youth, forty years ago, to this last the other day. I find myself noting with interest—and just to be able to emphasise it is what inspires me with these remarks—that, in spite of the milder and smoother and perhaps, pictorially speaking, considerably emptier, Neapolitan face of things, things in general, of our later time, I recognised in my final impression a grateful, a beguiling serenity. The place is at the best wild and weird and sinister, and yet seemed on this occasion to be seated more at her ease in her immense natural dignity. My disposition to feel that, I hasten to add, was doubtless my own secret; my three beautiful days, at any rate, filled themselves with the splendid harmony, several of the minor notes of which ask for a place, such as it may be, just here.
The “other” afternoons I spent here—and I can also include various mornings that were just as charmingly memorable—were from another and later year; a brief but incredibly happy impression of Naples itself, and the journey to it from Rome, as well as the return to Rome via a different, wonderful route, which I think I should never try to “improve on.” Let me gather the courage to admit that this relatively recent and richly vivid memory brings to mind a journey that, starting early on a beautiful June day, took me, along with my friendly companions, joyfully out of Porta San Paolo, blessing us until the glory faded into the lamplight of the Chiaja. “We’ll go by the mountains,” my friend, who had a flair for adventure, had said, “and we’ll come back, after three days, by the sea”; which lovely promise turned into such a perfect experience that I felt it had beautifully closed and completed, without needing any more tweaking, the long chain of my visits to Naples—from the first, filled with youthful sensitivity, forty years ago, to this last visit just recently. I find it interesting to note—and it’s this point that motivates my comments—that despite the softer, smoother, and perhaps, artistically speaking, somewhat emptier Neapolitan atmosphere of our later times, I recognized in my final impression a comforting, enchanting calm. The place, at its core, is wild, strange, and unsettling, yet this time it felt more at ease in its immense natural beauty. My inclination to feel this, I should quickly add, was surely my own secret; my three lovely days, in any case, were filled with a wonderful harmony, several of the minor notes of which deserve a mention right here.
Wondrously, it was a clean and cool and, as who should say, quiet and amply interspaced Naples—in tune with itself, no harsh jangle of forestieri vulgarising the concert. I seemed in fact, under the blaze of summer, the only stranger—though the blaze of summer itself was, for that matter, everywhere but a higher pitch of light and colour and tradition, and a lower pitch of everything else; even, it struck me, of sound and fury. The appeal in short was genial, and, faring out to Pompeii of a Sunday afternoon, I enjoyed there, for the only time I can recall, the sweet chance of a late hour or two, the hour of the lengthening shadows, absolutely alone. The impression remains ineffaceable—it was to supersede half-a-dozen other mixed memories, the sense that had remained with me, from far back, of a pilgrimage always here beset with traps and shocks and vulgar importunities, achieved under fatal discouragements. Even Pompeii, in fine, haunt of all the cockneys of creation, burned itself, in the warm still eventide, as clear as glass, or as the glow of a pale topaz, and the particular cockney who roamed without a plan and at his ease, but with his feet on Roman slabs, his hands on Roman stones, his eyes on the Roman void, his consciousness really at last of some good to him, could open himself as never before to the fond luxurious fallacy of a close communion, a direct revelation. With which there were other moments for him not less the fruit of the slow unfolding of time; the clearest of these again being those enjoyed on the terrace of a small island-villa—the island a rock and the villa a wondrous little rock-garden, unless a better term would be perhaps rock-salon, just off the extreme point of Posilippo and where, thanks to a friendliest hospitality, he was to hang ecstatic, through another sublime afternoon, on the wave of a magical wand. Here, as happened, were charming wise, original people even down to delightful amphibious American children, enamelled by the sun of the Bay as for figures of miniature Tritons and Nereids on a Renaissance plaque; and above all, on the part of the general prospect, a demonstration of the grand style of composition and effect that one was never to wish to see bettered. The way in which the Italian scene on such occasions as this seems to purify itself to the transcendent and perfect idea alone—idea of beauty, of dignity, of comprehensive grace, with all accidents merged, all defects disowned, all experience outlived, and to gather itself up into the mere mute eloquence of what has just incalculably been, remains for ever the secret and the lesson of the subtlest daughter of History. All one could do, at the heart of the overarching crystal, and in presence of the relegated City, the far-trailing Mount, the grand Sorrentine headland, the islands incomparably stationed and related, was to wonder what may well become of the so many other elements of any poor human and social complexus, what might become of any successfully working or only struggling and floundering civilisation at all, when high Natural Elegance proceeds to take such exclusive charge and recklessly assume, as it were, all the responsibilities.
It was wonderfully clean and cool, and, as someone might say, quiet and spacious in Naples—harmonious, without the harsh noise of tourists ruining the experience. It felt like, under the summer sun, I was the only outsider—though the summer heat was everywhere, just with a brighter intensity of light, color, and tradition, and a duller intensity of everything else; even, I thought, of noise and chaos. The overall vibe was warm and welcoming, and while heading out to Pompeii on a Sunday afternoon, I enjoyed, for the only time I can remember, the sweet chance to spend a late hour or two alone during the long shadows of evening. The impression is unforgettable—it overshadowed a mix of other memories, the feeling that I had long carried of a pilgrimage often fraught with traps, shocks, and annoying distractions, achieved under discouraging circumstances. Even Pompeii, the favorite haunt of all the tourists in the world, shone in the warm, still evening as clear as glass, or like the glow of pale topaz. The tourist who wandered around without a plan and at his own pace, with his feet on Roman stones, his hands touching Roman relics, and his eyes on the Roman emptiness, finally became aware of something meaningful for him. He could open himself up like never before to the comforting delusion of a close connection, a direct revelation. There were also other moments that were equally the result of gradual passage of time; the clearest of these being those experienced on the terrace of a small villa on an island—the island a rocky outcrop and the villa a lovely little rock garden, or perhaps better described as a rock salon, just off the tip of Posilippo. Thanks to a kind friend's hospitality, he spent another amazing afternoon there, wrapped in the magic of the moment. Here, there were charming, wise, original people, including delightful American kids, sun-kissed like little Tritons and Nereids on a Renaissance plaque; and above all, the view demonstrated the grand style of composition and effect that one could only hope to see replicated. The way the Italian scene seemed to elevate itself to pure and perfect beauty—an idea of beauty, dignity, and graceful completeness, with all flaws merged, all defects denied, and all experiences transcended—gathered itself into a simple, silent eloquence of what had just profoundly existed, remains the secret and lesson of the most nuanced aspects of History. All one could do, in the presence of the overarching beauty, the distant city, the sweeping mountain, the majestic Sorrentine headland, and the islands perfectly positioned around them, was to wonder what might happen to so many other elements of any fragile human and social structure, what could come of any civilization—whether flourishing or merely struggling—when supreme Natural Elegance takes full control and boldly assumes all the responsibilities.
VII
This indeed had been quite the thing I was asking myself all the wondrous way down from Rome, and was to ask myself afresh, on the return, largely within sight of the sea, as our earlier course had kept to the ineffably romantic inland valleys, the great decorated blue vistas in which the breasts of the mountains shine vaguely with strange high-lying city and castle and church and convent, even as shoulders of no diviner line might be hung about with dim old jewels. It was odd, at the end of time, long after those initiations, of comparative youth, that had then struck one as extending the very field itself of felt charm, as exhausting the possibilities of fond surrender, it was odd to have positively a new basis of enjoyment, a new gate of triumphant passage, thrust into one’s consciousness and opening to one’s use; just as I confess I have to brace myself a little to call by such fine names our latest, our ugliest and most monstrous aid to motion. It is true of the monster, as we have known him up to now, that one can neither quite praise him nor quite blame him without a blush—he reflects so the nature of the company he’s condemned to keep. His splendid easy power addressed to noble aims makes him assuredly on occasion a purely beneficent creature. I parenthesise at any rate that I know him in no other light—counting out of course the acquaintance that consists of a dismayed arrest in the road, with back flattened against wall or hedge, for the dusty, smoky, stenchy shock of his passage. To no end is his easy power more blest than to that of ministering to the ramifications, as it were, of curiosity, or to that, in other words, of achieving for us, among the kingdoms of the earth, the grander and more genial, the comprehensive and complete introduction. Much as was ever to be said for our old forms of pilgrimage—and I am convinced that they are far from wholly superseded—they left, they had to leave, dreadful gaps in our yearning, dreadful lapses in our knowledge, dreadful failures in our energy; there were always things off and beyond, goals of delight and dreams of desire, that dropped as a matter of course into the unattainable, and over to which our wonder-working agent now flings the firm straight bridge. Curiosity has lost, under this amazing extension, its salutary renouncements perhaps; contemplation has become one with action and satisfaction one with desire—speaking always in the spirit of the inordinate lover of an enlightened use of our eyes. That may represent, for all I know, an insolence of advantage on which there will be eventual heavy charges, as yet obscure and incalculable, to pay, and I glance at the possibility only to avoid all thought of the lesson of the long run, and to insist that I utter this dithyramb but in the immediate flush and fever of the short. For such a beat of time as our fine courteous and contemplative advance upon Naples, and for such another as our retreat northward under the same fine law of observation and homage, the bribed consciousness could only decline to question its security. The sword of Damocles suspended over that presumption, the skeleton at the banquet of extravagant ease, would have been that even at our actual inordinate rate—leaving quite apart “improvements” to come—such savings of trouble begin to use up the world; some hard grain of difficulty being always a necessary part of the composition of pleasure. The hard grain in our old comparatively pedestrian mixture, before this business of our learning not so much even to fly (which might indeed involve trouble) as to be mechanically and prodigiously flown, quite another matter, was the element of uncertainty, effort and patience; the handful of silver nails which, I admit, drove many an impression home. The seated motorist misses the silver nails, I fully acknowledge, save in so far as his aesthetic (let alone his moral) conscience may supply him with some artful subjective substitute; in which case the thing becomes a precious secret of his own.
This had definitely been on my mind all the amazing way down from Rome, and I would ask myself again on the way back, especially as we could see the sea, since our earlier journey had stayed in those incredibly romantic inland valleys, the vast decorated blue views where the sides of the mountains vaguely glimmer with strange high-up cities, castles, churches, and convents, like shoulders adorned with old, faded jewels. It felt strange, in the end, long after those eye-opening times of youth that had seemed to expand the very realm of perceived charm and exhaust the possibilities of deep affection, to be presented with a genuinely new foundation of enjoyment, a fresh gateway to thrilling experiences opening in my consciousness and available for my use; just as I admit I need to prepare myself a bit to attribute such grand descriptions to our newest, ugliest, and most monstrous means of transportation. It’s true of this monster, as we’ve known him until now, that you can neither fully praise him nor completely condemn him without feeling a bit embarrassed—he reflects so much of the nature of the company he’s stuck with. His impressive power, directed towards noble goals, sometimes makes him a purely beneficial entity. I should mention that I only know him in this positive light—excluding, of course, the moments of being immobilized on the road, pressed against a wall or hedge, due to the dusty, smoky, foul shock of his passing. No aspect of his effortless power is more blessed than its ability to satisfy our curiosity or, in other words, to provide us, among the realms of the earth, with a grander and kinder, a more comprehensive and complete introduction. While much can still be said for our old forms of pilgrimage—and I believe they are far from being completely replaced—they left, and had to leave, terrible gaps in our longing, terrible lapses in our understanding, terrible failures in our energy; there were always things off in the distance, destinations of joy and dreams of desire, that naturally fell into the realm of the unreachable, and now our wonder-working agent has thrown a solid, straight bridge to them. Curiosity might have lost, under this amazing growth, its beneficial renunciations; contemplation has merged with action and satisfaction with desire—always in the spirit of an excessive lover of a refined use of our vision. That might represent, for all I know, a hubristic advantage that will eventually come with serious, yet currently hidden and unpredictable, costs, and I only mention this possibility to avoid thinking too much about the long-term lessons and to emphasize that I’m expressing this praise only in the immediate excitement and passion of the short term. For the brief time we had our polite and thoughtful approach to Naples, and for the similar time of our journey north under the same respectful law of observation, our pampered consciousness couldn’t help but feel secure. The sword of Damocles hanging over that certainty, the skeleton at the feast of reckless ease, would be that even at our actual excessive pace—setting aside any future “improvements”—these conveniences start to wear down the world; some hard bit of difficulty is always a necessary part of the pleasure equation. The hard bit in our previously more pedestrian blend, before this business of learning not just to fly (which might indeed involve hassle) but to be flown mechanically and impressively, was made up of uncertainty, effort, and patience; the handful of silver nails which, I admit, drove many an impression home. The seated driver misses those silver nails, I fully acknowledge, except to the extent that his aesthetic (let alone moral) conscience may provide him with some artful subjective replacement; in which case, the experience becomes a precious secret of his own.
However, I wander wild—by which I mean I look too far ahead; my intention having been only to let my sense of the merciless June beauty of Naples Bay at the sunset hour and on the island terrace associate itself with the whole inexpressible taste of our two motor-days’ feast of scenery. That queer question of the exquisite grand manner as the most emphasised all of things—of what it may, seated so predominant in nature, insidiously, through the centuries, let generations and populations “in for,” hadn’t in the least waited for the special emphasis I speak of to hang about me. I must have found myself more or less consciously entertaining it by the way—since how couldn’t it be of the very essence of the truth, constantly and intensely before us, that Italy is really so much the most beautiful country in the world, taking all things together, that others must stand off and be hushed while she speaks? Seen thus in great comprehensive iridescent stretches, it is the incomparable wrought fusion, fusion of human history and mortal passion with the elements of earth and air, of colour, composition and form, that constitutes her appeal and gives it the supreme heroic grace. The chariot of fire favours fusion rather than promotes analysis, and leaves much of that first June picture for me, doubtless, a great accepted blur of violet and silver. The various hours and successive aspects, the different strong passages of our reverse process, on the other hand, still figure for me even as some series of sublime landscape-frescoes—if the great Claude, say, had ever used that medium—in the immense gallery of a palace; the homeward run by Capua, Terracina, Gaeta and its storied headland fortress, across the deep, strong, indescribable Pontine Marshes, white-cattled, strangely pastoral, sleeping in the afternoon glow, yet stirred by the near sea-breath. Thick somehow to the imagination as some full-bodied sweetness of syrup is thick to the palate the atmosphere of that region—thick with the sense of history and the very taste of time; as if the haunt and home (which indeed it is) of some great fair bovine aristocracy attended and guarded by halberdiers in the form of the mounted and long-lanced herdsmen, admirably congruous with the whole picture at every point, and never more so than in their manner of gaily taking up, as with bell-voices of golden bronze, the offered wayside greeting.
However, I drift aimlessly—by which I mean I look too far ahead; my intention was simply to let my feeling for the brutal beauty of Naples Bay at sunset and on the island terrace connect with the overall indescribable experience of our two days' journey through breathtaking scenery. That strange question about the exquisite grand style as the most emphasized all of things—what it might be, sitting so prominently in nature, insidiously, through the centuries, letting generations and populations "in for," hadn’t really waited for the particular emphasis I mention to linger around me. I must have found myself somewhat consciously entertaining it along the way—since how could it not be fundamentally true, constantly and intensely before us, that Italy is truly the most beautiful country in the world overall, requiring others to step back and remain silent while she speaks? When seen in vast, comprehensive, iridescent stretches, it is the unmatched craft of fusion, the blend of human history and earthly passion with the elements of earth and air, of color, composition, and form, that gives her appeal its supreme heroic grace. The chariot of fire favors fusion rather than analysis, leaving much of that first June scene for me, undoubtedly, a great accepted blur of violet and silver. The various hours and changing views, the different powerful moments of our reverse journey, still appear to me like a series of sublime landscape frescoes—if the great Claude, for example, had ever used that medium—in the vast gallery of a palace; the return trip by Capua, Terracina, Gaeta and its historic headland fortress, across the deep, strong, indescribable Pontine Marshes, filled with white cattle, strangely pastoral, resting in the afternoon glow, yet stirred by the nearby sea breeze. Thick somehow to the imagination as some rich sweetness of syrup is thick to the palate, the atmosphere of that region is dense with the sense of history and the very taste of time; as if it were the haunt and home (which it truly is) of some grand fair bovine aristocracy, attended and protected by halberdiers in the form of the mounted and long-lanced herdsmen, remarkably fitting into the entire scene at every point, and never more so than in their cheerful way of responding, as with bell-like voices of golden bronze, to the offered wayside greeting.
{Illustration: TERRACINA}
{Illustration: TERRACINA}
There had been this morning among the impressions of our first hour an unforgettable specimen of that general type—the image of one of those human figures on which our perception of the romantic so often pounces in Italy as on the genius of the scene personified; with this advantage, that as the scene there has, at its best, an unsurpassable distinction, so the physiognomic representative, standing for it all, and with an animation, a complexion, an expression, a fineness and fulness of humanity that appear to have gathered it in and to sum it up, becomes beautiful by the same simple process, very much, that makes the heir to a great capitalist rich. Our early start, our roundabout descent from Posilippo by shining Baire for avoidance of the city, had been an hour of enchantment beyond any notation I can here recover; all lustre and azure, yet all composition and classicism, the prospect developed and spread, till after extraordinary upper reaches of radiance and horizons of pearl we came at the turn of a descent upon a stalwart young gamekeeper, or perhaps substantial young farmer, who, well-appointed and blooming, had unslung his gun and, resting on it beside a hedge, just lived for us, in the rare felicity of his whole look, during that moment and while, in recognition, or almost, as we felt, in homage, we instinctively checked our speed. He pointed, as it were, the lesson, giving the supreme right accent or final exquisite turn to the immense magnificent phrase; which from those moments on, and on and on, resembled doubtless nothing so much as a page written, by a consummate verbal economist and master of style, in the noblest of all tongues. Our splendid human plant by the wayside had flowered thus into style—and there wasn’t to be, all day, a lapse of eloquence, a wasted word or a cadence missed.
This morning, in the first hour, I encountered an unforgettable example of that general type—the image of one of those human figures that our perception of the romantic often seizes upon in Italy as if it were the spirit of the scene brought to life; and with the added bonus that, just as the scene, at its best, has an unmatched elegance, this figure, representing it all, with such energy, a vibrant complexion, an expressive face, and a richness and depth of humanity that seem to embody it perfectly, becomes beautiful in much the same effortless way that the heir of a wealthy capitalist enjoys their riches. Our early start, our winding descent from Posilippo via shining Baire to avoid the city, was an hour of enchantment beyond anything I can describe here; filled with brilliance and blue skies, yet rich with classic beauty, the view unfolded and expanded until, after remarkable stretches of radiance and horizons of pearl, we rounded a bend and came upon a robust young gamekeeper, or perhaps a solid young farmer, who, well-dressed and radiant, had set down his gun and leaned on it by a hedge, just existing for us in the rare joy of his whole appearance, while we instinctively slowed down, feeling as if it were recognition or almost, in a way, homage. He seemed to point out the lesson, giving the perfect rhythm or final exquisite touch to the immense, magnificent phrase; which from that moment on resembled nothing so much as a page crafted by a skilled wordsmith and master of style in the finest of all languages. Our splendid human presence by the roadside had thus blossomed into style—and there wouldn’t be, all day, a lapse of eloquence, a wasted word, or a missed cadence.
These things are personal memories, however, with the logic of certain insistences of that sort often difficult to seize. Why should I have kept so sacredly uneffaced, for instance, our small afternoon wait at tea-time or, as we made it, coffee-time, in the little brown piazzetta of Velletri, just short of the final push on through the flushed Castelli Romani and the drop and home-stretch across the darkening Campagna? We had been dropped into the very lap of the ancient civic family, after the inveterate fashion of one’s sense of such stations in small Italian towns. There was a narrow raised terrace, with steps, in front of the best of the two or three local cafes, and in the soft enclosed, the warm waning light of June various benign contemplative worthies sat at disburdened tables and, while they smoked long black weeds, enjoyed us under those probable workings of subtlety with which we invest so many quite unimaginably blank (I dare say) Italian simplicities. The charm was, as always in Italy, in the tone and the air and the happy hazard of things, which made any positive pretension or claimed importance a comparatively trifling question. We slid, in the steep little place, more or less down hill; we wished, stomachically, we had rather addressed ourselves to a tea-basket; we suffered importunity from unchidden infants who swarmed about our chairs and romped about our feet; we stayed no long time, and “went to see” nothing; yet we communicated to intensity, we lay at our ease in the bosom of the past, we practised intimacy, in short, an intimacy so much greater than the mere accidental and ostensible: the difficulty for the right and grateful expression of which makes the old, the familiar tax on the luxury of loving Italy.
These are personal memories, but it’s often tough to grasp the logic behind certain feelings like these. Why have I held onto our small afternoon wait during tea-time—or, as we called it, coffee-time—in the little brown square of Velletri, just before the final push through the vibrant Castelli Romani and the drop into the home stretch across the darkening countryside? We had found ourselves right in the heart of an ancient local community, following the usual patterns one feels in small Italian towns. There was a narrow raised terrace with steps in front of the best of the two or three local cafes, and in the soft, warm light of June, various thoughtful locals sat at relaxed tables, smoking long black cigarettes and observing us with the subtlety we often project onto those seemingly simple (I dare say) Italian moments. The charm, as always in Italy, lay in the atmosphere and the happy randomness of life, which made any sense of seriousness or claimed importance seem rather trivial. We slid down the steep little place, wishing, on a stomach level, that we had opted for a tea basket; we dealt with the persistent kids swarming around our chairs and playing at our feet; we didn’t stay long and didn’t “see” anything in particular; yet we felt intensely connected, relaxed in the comfort of the past, fostering a deeper intimacy—one far greater than mere casual acquaintance. The challenge of expressing this feeling accurately and thankfully makes the old, familiar strain of enjoying Italy all the more luxurious.
1900-1909.
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!